summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-05 01:52:22 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-05 01:52:22 -0800
commit0c0c2864ca51110a1d4a22da8a2cb9fcdb48b110 (patch)
tree0e79dc0dc77a198a672183d30c00e4186d261e58
parentb6346f679a253e6e46af739c1dee69c2280b4ef4 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/50434-0.txt9928
-rw-r--r--old/50434-0.zipbin193700 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h.zipbin1793912 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/50434-h.htm12631
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/cover.jpgbin148655 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_004.jpgbin66309 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_023.jpgbin69959 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_037.jpgbin56749 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_043.jpgbin127115 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_061.jpgbin52890 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_085.jpgbin128572 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_091.jpgbin50806 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_103.jpgbin62953 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_141.jpgbin62294 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_153.jpgbin63833 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_185.jpgbin95884 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_191.jpgbin61732 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_199.jpgbin71228 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_213.jpgbin77270 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_223.jpgbin61839 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_245.jpgbin126554 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_249.jpgbin60827 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_255.jpgbin65069 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50434-h/images/i_265.jpgbin71686 -> 0 bytes
27 files changed, 17 insertions, 22559 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..301e234
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #50434 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/50434)
diff --git a/old/50434-0.txt b/old/50434-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index effa9de..0000000
--- a/old/50434-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9928 +0,0 @@
-Project Gutenberg's The Story of Wellington, by Harold F. B. Wheeler
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Story of Wellington
-
-Author: Harold F. B. Wheeler
-
-Release Date: November 11, 2015 [EBook #50434]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF WELLINGTON ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Shaun Pinder, Charlie Howard, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: (front cover)]
-
-
-
-
- THE STORY OF
- WELLINGTON
-
-
-
-
-_Uniform with this Volume_
-
-
-THE STORY OF NAPOLEON
-
- By HAROLD F. B. WHEELER,
- F.R.Hist.S. With 16 full-page Illustrations.
-
- THE STORY OF NELSON
- By HAROLD F. B. WHEELER, F.R.Hist.S. With 16 full-page
- Illustrations.
-
- FAMOUS VOYAGES OF THE GREAT DISCOVERERS
- By ERIC WOOD. With 16 full-page Illustrations.
-
- THE STORY OF THE CRUSADES
- By E. M. WILMOT-BUXTON, F.R.Hist.S. With 16 full-page
- Illustrations by M. MEREDITH WILLIAMS.
-
- STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER
- By Mr and Mrs WILLIAM PLATT. With 16 full-page Illustrations
- by M. MEREDITH WILLIAMS.
-
-
-[Illustration: The Duke writing his Waterloo Despatch
-
- _Fr._ Lady Burghersh
-]
-
-
-
-
- THE STORY OF
- WELLINGTON
-
- _BY_
- HAROLD F. B. WHEELER F.R.Hist.S.
-
- MEMBER OF THE HISTORICAL ASSOCIATION
- JOINT-AUTHOR OF
- ‘NAPOLEON AND THE INVASION OF ENGLAND’ ETC.
- AUTHOR OF
- ‘THE MAXIMS OF NAPOLEON’ ‘THE MIND OF NAPOLEON’
- ‘THE STORY OF NAPOLEON’ AND ‘THE STORY OF NELSON’
-
-
- ‘_For this is England’s greatest son,
- He that gain’d a hundred fights,
- Nor ever lost an English gun_’
-
- TENNYSON
-
-
- LONDON
- GEORGE G. HARRAP & COMPANY
- 3 PORTSMOUTH STREET KINGSWAY W.C.
- MCMXII
-
-
-
-
- _Illustrations by Ballantyne & Co., Ltd., London_
- _Printed by Turnbull & Spears, Edinburgh_
-
-
-
-
- DEDICATED TO
- C. ALFRED HAMILTON, ESQ
- MY LIFE-LONG FRIEND
-
- “_Vera amicitia sempiterna est_”
-
-
-
-
-Foreword
-
-
-In this, the last of a trio of volumes dealing with three great
-contemporary men of action, I have attempted to tell the story, in its
-main lines, of the crowded life of Wellington. The narrative provides
-as substantial a view of Wellington as is possible within the limits of
-my space, but I hope that readers of my book will be so interested that
-they will go on to the perusal of its companions, for the careers of
-Napoleon, Nelson, and Wellington should be studied together. They are
-the three sides of a triangle of which Napoleon is the base.
-
-The Duke’s career, when compared to the others, is “a plain,
-unvarnished tale,” not altogether devoid of romance, certainly not of
-adventure, but lacking in many of the qualities which have endeared
-less notable men. It would be obviously untrue to state that Wellington
-lacked humanity, but he was certainly deficient in that attractive
-personal magnetism so evident in Nelson. Speaking broadly, he did not
-repose that confidence in his subordinates which was one of the great
-sea-captain’s most marked characteristics, and he often said hard
-things of the men under him. Nelson is “the darling Hero of England”;
-Wellington will always be known as the Iron Duke. If it ever became
-the fashion to canonize military and naval men, Nelson’s nimbus would
-be of rosemary, Wellington’s of steel. The mob never broke the windows
-of Merton Place, but it shattered every exposed pane in Apsley House.
-The incident arose from his conscientious opposition to reform, and
-occurred in 1831, sixteen years after the battle of Waterloo. A little
-over a decade later, an immense mob cheered him as he proceeded up
-Constitution Hill. His acknowledgment was to point to the iron shutters
-of his house when he reached Hyde Park Corner. They had been put up
-after the bombardment by brickbats, and were never taken down during
-his lifetime.
-
-In a way, Wellington is the typical John Bull of our fancy. He gloried
-in an open-air life, he enjoyed sport, he was a man wedded to duty,
-stern and uncompromising once his mind was made up. We love to imagine
-that the average Briton displays the same characteristics, although
-we know at heart that he does not do so, and that the secret of our
-material success as a nation is our extraordinary power of absorption,
-of “setting our sail to every passing breeze,” of compromising provided
-we get the best of the bargain.
-
-This is how the Duke appeared to a foreigner, the Duchesse de Dino,
-Talleyrand’s niece: “He has a very exact memory, and never quotes
-incorrectly. He forgets nothing, and exaggerates nothing, and if his
-conversation is a little dry and military, it attracts by its fairness
-and perfect propriety. His tone is excellent, and no woman has ever
-to be on her guard against the turn that the conversation may take.”
-In later years Wellington’s memory failed somewhat. He was invariably
-precise, always a soldier, and never given to what is generally known
-as small talk. In a word, he commanded.
-
-A more intimate and less familiar view of Wellington is afforded us in
-the diary of Benjamin Robert Haydon, who painted the Duke’s portrait
-at Walmer Castle in the autumn of 1839. During breakfast, he tells us,
-“six dear, healthy, noisy children were brought to the windows. ‘Let
-them in,’ said the Duke, and in they came, and rushed over to him,
-saying, ‘How d’ye do, Duke? How d’ye do, Duke?’ One boy, young Grey,
-roared, ‘I want some tea, Duke!’ ‘You shall have it if you promise not
-to slop it over me, as you did yesterday.’ Toast and tea were then in
-demand. Three got on one side, and three on the other, and he hugged
-’em all. Tea was poured out, and I saw little Grey try to slop it over
-the Duke’s frock coat. Sir Astley [Cooper] said, ‘You did not expect to
-see this.’
-
-“They all then rushed out on the leads, by the cannon, and after
-breakfast I saw the Duke romping with the whole of them, and one of
-them gave his Grace a tremendous thump. I went round to my bedroom. The
-children came to the window, and a dear little black-eyed girl began
-romping. I put my head out and said, ‘I’ll catch you.’ Just as I did
-this the Duke, who did not see me, put his head out at the door close
-to my room, No. 10, which leads to the leads, and said, ‘I’ll catch ye!
-Ha, ha, I’ve got ye!’ at which they all ran away. He looked at them and
-laughed and went in.”
-
-That is a very human picture of the grim warrior when the sword had
-been put aside for ever and the smoke of battle was cleared. “I hit
-his grand, upright, manly expression,” Haydon adds. “He looked like an
-eagle of the gods who had put on human shape, and had got silvery with
-age and service.... His colour was fresh. All the portraits are too
-pale.... ’Twas a noble head. I saw nothing of that peculiar expression
-of mouth the sculptors give him, bordering on simpering. His colour was
-beautiful and fleshy, his lips compressed and energetic.”
-
-From this passive scene in the evening of his days let us turn to the
-more stirring days of the storming of Badajoz for our final portrait
-of the Duke, for it is in the field that we like to remember him.
-The glimpse is afforded us by Robert Blakeney, one of the boy heroes
-of the Peninsular War. “I galloped off,” he writes, “to where Lord
-Wellington had taken his station: this was easily discerned by means of
-two fireballs shot out from the fortress at the commencement of the
-attack, which continued to burn brilliantly along the water-cut which
-divided the 3rd from the other divisions. Near the end of this channel,
-behind a rising mound, were Lord Wellington and his personal staff,
-screened from the enemy’s direct fire, but within range of shells. One
-of his staff sat down by his side with a candle to enable the general
-to read and write all his communications and orders relative to the
-passing events. I stood not far from his lordship. But due respect
-prevented any of us bystanders from approaching so near as to enable
-us to ascertain the import of the reports which he was continually
-receiving; yet it was very evident that the information which they
-conveyed was far from flattering; and the recall on the bugles was
-again and again repeated. But about half-past eleven o’clock an officer
-rode up at full speed on a horse covered with foam, and announced the
-joyful tidings that General Picton had made a lodgment within the
-castle by escalade, and had withdrawn the troops from the trenches to
-enable him to maintain his dearly purchased hold. Lord Wellington was
-evidently delighted, but exclaimed, ‘What! abandon the trenches?’ and
-ordered two regiments of the 5th Division instantly to replace those
-withdrawn. I waited to hear no more, but, admiring the prompt genius
-which immediately provided for every contingency, I mounted my horse.”
-
-I shall not attempt to enumerate the lengthy list of authorities I
-have consulted in writing this volume, but special mention must be
-made of Professor Oman’s monumental “History of the Peninsular War,”
-which corrects Napier in many important points. Four volumes have now
-been published, and I am under obligation to the eminent scholar whose
-name appears on the title-pages for his kindness in allowing me to
-use without reserve the labour of many years. The “Cambridge Modern
-History” (vol. ix.), Rose’s “Napoleon,” Croker’s “Correspondence and
-Diaries,” Siborne’s “Waterloo Letters,” the “Lives” of Wellington by
-Sir Herbert Maxwell, W. H. Maxwell, Gleig, Hooper, Yonge, and many
-others have been laid under contribution, as well as contemporary works
-by soldiers who fought with the Iron Duke. As I have endeavoured to let
-Wellington speak for himself whenever possible, Gurwood’s “Dispatches”
-have been frequently consulted, and for sidelights I have had access
-to a large number of volumes of correspondence, autobiography, and
-biography in which he plays a part, however insignificant.
-
-Finally, I must express the hope that my readers, as they progress over
-the field which I have endeavoured to open up to them, will share the
-love of the strong, silent Man of Duty which has grown upon me as I
-have become more intimate with the story of his life.
-
- _The path of duty was the way to glory.
- His work is done.
- But while the races of mankind endure,
- Let his great example stand
- Colossal, seen of every land._
-
- HAROLD F. B. WHEELER
-
- NORTHWOOD, MIDDLESEX.
-
-
-
-
-Contents
-
-
- CHAP. PAGE
-
- I. THE FOOL OF THE FAMILY (1769-93) 17
-
- II. WELLINGTON’S BAPTISM OF FIRE (1794-97) 28
-
- III. THE CAMPAIGN OF SERINGAPATAM (1797-1800) 35
-
- IV. WAR WITH THE MARHATTÁS (1801-3) 47
-
- V. LAST YEARS IN INDIA (1803-5) 58
-
- VI. SERVICE IN ENGLAND, IRELAND, AND DENMARK (1805-7) 68
-
- VII. THE FIRST BATTLES OF THE PENINSULAR WAR (1808) 76
-
- VIII. VICTORY ABROAD AND DISPLEASURE AT HOME (1808-9) 90
-
- IX. SIR ARTHUR’S RETURN TO PORTUGAL (1809) 99
-
- X. TALAVERA (1809) 110
-
- XI. WELLESLEY’S DEFENCE OF PORTUGAL (1809-10) 119
-
- XII. THE LINES OF TORRES VEDRAS (1810) 128
-
- XIII. MASSÉNA BEATS A RETREAT (1810-11) 137
-
- XIV. THE SIEGE OF CIUDAD RODRIGO (1811-12) 154
-
- XV. BADAJOZ AND SALAMANCA (1812) 165
-
- XVI. THE CLOSING BATTLES OF THE PENINSULAR WAR (1812-14) 181
-
- XVII. THE PRELUDE TO THE WATERLOO CAMPAIGN (1814-15) 200
-
- XVIII. LIGNY AND QUATRE BRAS (1815) 210
-
- XIX. WATERLOO (1815) 218
-
- XX. WELLINGTON THE STATESMAN (1815-52) 236
-
- INDEX 253
-
- MAPS--
-
- (1) WELLINGTON’S CAMPAIGNS IN INDIA 37
-
- (2) WELLINGTON’S PENINSULAR CAMPAIGNS 77
-
- (3) THE BATTLE OF WATERLOO 219
-
-
-
-
-Illustrations
-
-
- PAGE
-
- THE DUKE WRITING HIS WATERLOO DISPATCH
- (_Lady Burghersh_) _Frontispiece_
-
- ARTHUR AND THE MARQUIS DE PIGNEROL (_George W. Joy_) 20
-
- “THE FULL FORCE OF THE BLAST” (_Thomas Maybank_) 32
-
- “HE WAS HURLED DOWN BY THE DEFENDERS” (_Thomas Maybank_) 54
-
- SIR HARRY SMITH AND THE SPANISH PATRIOT
- (_Thomas Maybank_) 82
-
- THE GALLANT PIPER AT VIMIERO (_Thomas Maybank_) 92
-
- “YOU ARE TOO YOUNG, SIR, TO BE KILLED!”
- (_Thomas Maybank_) 128
-
- THE RETREAT FROM COIMBRA (_Thomas Maybank_) 138
-
- WELLINGTON AT BADAJOZ CONGRATULATING COLONEL WATSON
- (_R. Caton Woodville_) 168
-
- THE END OF BREAKFAST (_Thomas Maybank_) 172
-
- CHARGE OF PAKENHAM’S THIRD DIVISION AT SALAMANCA
- (_R. Caton Woodville_) 178
-
- FLIGHT OF THE FRENCH THROUGH VITTORIA (_Robert Hillingford_) 190
-
- THE FRENCH RETREAT OVER THE PYRENEES
- (_R. Caton Woodville_) 198
-
- FARM OF MONT ST JEAN }
- }
- CHÂTEAU OF HOUGOUMONT }
- } (_Photographs by C. A. Hamilton_,}
- LA BELLE ALLIANCE INN } _Hornsey_) } 222
- }
- FARM OF LA HAYE SAINTE }
-
- THE DESPERATE STAND OF THE GUARDS AT HOUGOUMONT
- (_R. Caton Woodville_) 226
-
- Charge of the Scots Greys at Waterloo
- (_R. Caton Woodville_) 234
-
-
-
-
-The Story of Wellington
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-The Fool of the Family
-
-(1769-93)
-
- “_I don’t know what I shall do with my awkward son Arthur._”
-
- LADY MORNINGTON.
-
-
-Gathering clouds, dark and ominous, obscured the political horizon in
-the year 1769. The habitués of London coffee-houses discussed one of
-three things--“The Letters of Junius,” the most remarkable series of
-political exposures ever penned; the election of the notorious John
-Wilkes for Middlesex; and the rebellious conduct of the North American
-colonists. On the other side of the Channel the Duc de Choiseul was
-skilfully planning ways and means of fanning into a fierce outburst
-the flames of discontent now flickering in the West. To heap coals of
-fire on the country which, during the Seven Years’ War (1756-63), had
-enforced her claims to Canada and India, would be a triumph worthy
-of the statesman who had banished the Jesuits from the hereditary
-possessions of Louis XV.
-
-Had the people who lived in those stirring times been gifted with the
-power of penetrating the future, their eyes would have turned in the
-eventful year of 1769 from the larger stages to the comparatively
-insignificant islands of Corsica and Ireland, for the former was the
-birthplace of Napoleon and the latter of Wellington, and both were born
-in 1769.
-
-There are other remarkable coincidences connected with the childhood
-of Napoleon and Wellington. Their respective fathers were easy-going,
-unpractical men, their mothers were women of marked force of character,
-left widows early in life with large families. In addition, the hero of
-Austerlitz was the fourth child of Letizia Bonaparte, his conqueror at
-Waterloo the fourth son of the Countess of Mornington.
-
-A certain amount of obscurity is associated with their juvenile days.
-Although the date of the entrance into the world of “the little
-Corporal” is now fairly well established, it was long before historians
-ceased to discuss it. There is still much uncertainty as to that of
-Wellington. The Duke was always vague on the point, and celebrated
-his birthday on the 1st May, which is the day following that on which
-he was baptized at St Peter’s, Dublin, presuming the parish register
-to be correct.[1] Lady Mornington announced that Arthur was a Mayday
-boy, but her nurse as stoutly maintained that the event took place on
-the 6th March. Dangan Castle, West Meath, and Mornington House, Marion
-Street, Dublin, contest the honour of being his birthplace. The witness
-for the country home is the afore-mentioned nurse; a prescription of
-the physician who attended Lady Mornington about the period was sent
-to a chemist in Ireland’s capital, and attests the claim of the town
-mansion. The matter is not of prime importance, but serves to show the
-somewhat casual habits of a less practical generation than our own.
-The real family name of the Westleys, Wesleys, or Wellesleys--the
-different forms were all used--was Colley or Cowley, but the Duke’s
-grandfather inherited the estates of his kinsman, Garret Wesley, on
-condition that he assumed that surname. He became Baron Mornington in
-1747. It was the son of this fortunate individual, also a Garret, who
-was created the first Earl of Mornington in the year previous to his
-marriage to the eldest daughter of Viscount Dungannon. They became the
-parents of the future Duke of Wellington as well as of several other
-children.
-
-Of Arthur Wellesley’s scholastic career little can be ascertained
-with certainty. We know that he spent a little while at a preparatory
-school in Chelsea, then a very different place from what it is now, and
-that he and his eldest brother, Lord Wellesley, who had succeeded his
-father on his sire’s death in 1781, were at the same house at Eton.
-Unfortunately the two rooms which they occupied are now demolished.
-While it would be incorrect to call Arthur a dull boy, he certainly
-displayed little interest in learning. Indeed, his mother was so
-cynical regarding his ability, or want of it, that she called him “the
-fool of the family.”
-
-The dictum that Waterloo was won on the playing fields of Eton may have
-been true so far as other officers were concerned, but the younger
-Wellesley showed not the slightest interest in games. He preferred the
-fiddle to cricket, for he inherited his father’s passion for music.
-“I was a player on the violin once myself, sir,” he mentioned to an
-acquaintance in after years, “but I soon found that fiddling and
-soldiering didn’t agree--so I gave it up, sir! I gave it up!” He was a
-great admirer of Handel’s compositions.
-
-One precious anecdote regarding his life at the famous public school
-has been spared to posterity, and appropriately enough it is a record
-of his first serious fight--not with a sword, but with fisticuffs.
-Robert Smith, brother of Sydney Smith, the witty divine and essayist,
-happened to be bathing in the river when Wellesley was passing.
-Prompted by some evil or jocular spirit the latter picked up a handful
-of small stones and began to pelt his fellow student. Smith yelled
-that he would thrash him if he did not stop. Wellesley defiantly dared
-him to do so. The enraged “Bobus” promptly waded out and accepted the
-challenge, which he regretted before many rounds had been fought.
-
-Although Wellesley was by no means of a pugnacious disposition, a
-second fight, in which he was not victorious, took place during a
-holiday spent at the Welsh home of his maternal grandfather, Lord
-Dungannon. His opponent was a young blacksmith, named Hughes, who lived
-to hear of the mighty exploits of the Iron Duke. He was never tired of
-telling how he once conquered the vanquisher of Napoleon. It was his
-one title to fame.
-
-[Illustration: Arthur and the Marquis de Pignerol
-
-George W. Joy]
-
-After leaving Eton, Wellesley was taken to Brussels in 1784 by his
-mother, who found the many attractions of London society a heavy tax
-on a slender purse, for she had removed to the Metropolis on the
-death of her husband. As her son seemed to take little or no interest
-in anything but the army, and as that service was then considered a
-desirable alternative to the Church for the fool of the family, Lady
-Mornington accepted the offer of some friends to provide for his
-military education. Whatever ability her fourth son displayed seems to
-have been less obvious to her than to others, as frequently happens.
-“They are all,” she writes with reference to her family, “I think,
-endowed with excellent abilities except Arthur, and he would probably
-not be wanting, if only there was more energy in his nature; but he is
-so wanting in this respect, that I really do not know what to do with
-him.” However, the youth whom she described as being “food for powder
-and nothing more” was packed across the frontier to Angers. She herself
-returned to London in 1785, Wellesley proceeding to the quaint
-old town associated with King John of England. Here he had his first
-encounter with the French, and there is a celebrated picture showing
-him in conversation with the Marquis of Pignerol.
-
-Pignerol, who presided over an Academy, not exclusively devoted to the
-training of would-be soldiers as some writers have assumed, was an
-engineer officer, and did his best to initiate the Irish lad into some
-of the mysteries of the science of war. As his pupil only remained at
-Angers for about twelve months, he cannot have learned more than the
-rudiments, but he assimilated French with comparative ease. Unlike
-Napoleon, who was never happier than when he was poring over military
-books at Brienne, Wellesley enjoyed much good society. He made the
-acquaintance of the Duc de Brissac, who seems to have been a delightful
-foster-father of the scholars, for he frequently entertained them at
-his château. The Duc de Praslin, the Abbé Siéyès, later one of the
-French Consuls, D’Archambault, Talleyrand’s brother, Jaucourt, who
-afterwards became Secretary for Foreign Affairs under Louis XVIII,
-were all on his visiting list. It is quite probable that among his
-schoolmates was Chateaubriand, destined to fill an honoured place in
-the world of letters, but of this, said the Duke, he was not absolutely
-certain.
-
-The British army was not then the skilfully organised fighting-machine
-it has since become. Entrance into its ranks as an officer was not
-difficult, provided one had financial support and influence. This
-explains the rapid promotion of Wellesley. At the age of seventeen he
-began his military career as an ensign in a Foot regiment, his gazette
-being dated the 7th March 1787. Nine months later he was promoted
-lieutenant into the 76th. By successive steps he rose to be captain
-(1791), major (1793), lieutenant-colonel (1793), and colonel (1796). A
-colonel at twenty-seven is beyond the dreams of mortal men to-day, and
-this advancement contrasts oddly with the slow progress of Nelson,
-Wellesley’s great naval contemporary, who had to depend upon his own
-unaided merits for promotion. In 1793, six years following his first
-appointment, he was placed in command of the 33rd Foot, after having
-experience of the cavalry by serving in both the 12th and 18th Light
-Dragoons.
-
-A little influence went a long way in those casual times; there was
-nothing so valuable as “a friend at court.” Unlike many aristocratic
-nobodies who secured high position, Wellesley afterwards proved his
-worth, but he scarcely would have ascended the military ladder with
-such astonishing quickness had not his brother Richard held office
-under the younger Pitt. Lord Westmorland, Lord-Lieutenant of Ireland,
-also took a fancy to him and made him one of his _aides-de-camp_.
-
-In 1790, when he was still in his twenty-first year, he entered the
-Irish House of Commons as Member of Parliament for Trim, County Meath,
-a “pocket borough” of the Wellesley family. We are told by Sir Jonah
-Barrington, who made his acquaintance some three years later, that
-the young soldier “was then ruddy-faced and juvenile in appearance,
-and popular enough among the young men of his age and station. His
-address was unpolished; he occasionally spoke in Parliament, but
-not successfully, and never on important subjects; and evinced no
-promise of that unparalleled celebrity and splendour which he has
-since reached, and whereto intrepidity and decision, good luck, and
-great military science have justly combined to elevate him.” The same
-authority then proceeds to introduce us to Lord Castlereagh, and adds:
-“At the period to which I allude, I feel confident nobody could have
-predicted that one of those young gentlemen would become the most
-celebrated English general of his era, and the other one of the most
-mischievous statesmen and unfortunate ministers that has ever appeared
-in modern Europe.[2] However, it is observable that to the personal
-intimacy and reciprocal friendship of those two individuals they
-mutually owed the extent of their respective elevation and celebrity:
-Sir Arthur Wellesley never would have had the chief command in Spain
-but for the ministerial manœuvring and aid of Lord Castlereagh; and
-Lord Castlereagh never could have stood his ground as a minister, but
-for Lord Wellington’s successes.”
-
-Another contemporary tells quite a different story of Wellesley’s
-ability, and as he also heard him in 1793 it is printed here in order
-that the reader may not be prejudiced by Barrington’s opinion. So
-much is determined by the point-of-view of the witness. The occasion
-was a debate on the perennial question of the Roman Catholics.
-Captain Wellesley’s remarks, we are told, “were terse and pertinent,
-his delivery fluent, and his manner unembarrassed.” Gleig, who was
-intimately acquainted with the Duke, says that he “seems to have
-spoken but rarely, and never at any length. His votes were of course
-given in support of the party to which he belonged, but otherwise he
-entered very little into the business of the House.” He mentions but
-one incident connected with this period, namely, Wellesley’s attachment
-to the Hon. Catherine Pakenham, an acknowledged Society beauty and a
-daughter of Baron Longford. His Lordship, possessing a keen eye for the
-practical affairs of life, objected to the match on the score of lack
-of money, but there is little doubt that the couple came to a mutual
-understanding.
-
-That Wellesley took more than a casual interest in his military
-duties is evident, and if he did not display the inherent genius of
-Napoleon he certainly went about his duties in a highly commendable and
-workmanlike manner. For instance, he had scarcely donned the uniform
-of his first regiment before he entered into calculations regarding
-the weight of the accoutrements, ammunition, and other paraphernalia
-carried by a private when in marching order. For this purpose he
-ordered a soldier to be weighed both with and without his trappings.
-
-“I wished,” he says, “to have some measure of the power of the
-individual man compared with the weight he was to carry and the work
-he was expected to do. I was not so young as not to know that since I
-had undertaken a profession I had better endeavour to understand it.”
-He adds, “It must always be kept in mind that the power of the greatest
-armies depends upon what the individual soldier is capable of doing
-and bearing,” a maxim which still holds good, notwithstanding the many
-changes effected in the course of a century and a quarter. However
-excellent the gun, it is the man behind it which determines the issue.
-
-It was not until 1794 that Wellesley underwent the hardships of active
-service. Before that phase of his career is detailed we must make a
-hasty and general survey of the wide and scattered field of action.
-The occasion was the second year of the great strife which occupied
-the attention of Europe, with little intermittance, for over twenty
-years. The gauntlet had been flung down by France in 1792, when war was
-declared against the Holy Roman Empire, with which Prussia made common
-cause. The campaign was an eye-opener to all Europe, for although
-the Prussians and Austrians began well they did not follow up their
-advantages, particularly when the road to Châlons and Paris lay open
-to the former. At Valmy the Prussians were defeated, and subsequently
-withdrew across the frontier in a deplorable condition of dearth and
-disease. Dumouriez then invaded Flanders, and was victorious over the
-Austrians at Jemappes, a success followed by the fall of Mons, Malines,
-Ghent, Brussels, Antwerp, and Namur, while smaller towns, such as
-Tournay, Ostend, and Bruges welcomed the victorious troops with open
-arms as the heralds of a new era.
-
-In Savoy the scanty Sardinian forces were routed by Montesquiou, and
-the country annexed, as was Nice by Anselme. With the dawning of 1793
-Belgium shared a similar fate, and the occupation of Dutch territory
-was decided on. This latter was an extremely foolish move, as events
-soon proved.
-
-England and Holland became involved in the second month of the new
-year, when the French Convention announced hostile intentions to
-both Powers. Previous to this, Great Britain had maintained a strict
-neutrality. She now commenced proceedings by sending 10,000 troops to
-Holland under the incompetent Duke of York, where they united with a
-similar force of Hessians and Hanoverians, whose expenses were met by
-English gold, a plentiful supply of which also found its way into the
-coffers of other Powers. The Island Kingdom and Russia had already
-allied themselves, although the Czarina’s designs on Poland precluded
-immediate co-operation, and during the next few months Sardinia, Spain,
-Naples, Prussia, the Holy Roman Empire, and Portugal joined in mutual
-support.
-
-Dumouriez duly appeared on Dutch territory, but was compelled to
-retreat on Flanders by the defeat of the general engaged in besieging
-Maestricht. On resuming offensive operations he himself lost the
-battle of Neerwinden. Within a fortnight the French had abandoned all
-their conquests in Belgium, which again passed into the possession of
-Austria. Dumouriez took refuge in the camp of the Imperialists after
-negotiating with Coburg, the commander of the “White Coats,” to place
-the frontier fortresses into his hands and to unite the two armies.
-Neither arrangement was carried through, for the defeated general
-found it more prudent to fly the country.[3] Mayence, on the Rhine,
-was invested by the Prussians, to whom it eventually capitulated, and
-Valenciennes and Condé were successfully besieged by the Austrians and
-British. All three fortresses fell during July 1793.
-
-The tide was beginning to turn even in France, for Toulon and Lyons
-openly revolted, and civil war broke out in La Vendée. Had the Allies
-made a concerted effort, the defeat of the Republican cause could
-scarcely have failed to follow, but they quarrelled amongst themselves
-instead of following up their advantage. They squandered their strength
-by dividing their army into detachments, and much precious time was
-wasted by the diversion on Dunkirk made by the English, Hanoverian,
-Hessian, and some of the Austrian forces, about 37,000 strong.
-
-The Revolutionary Government, augmenting its fighting body, instructed
-General Houchard to attack the enemy before the historic seaport. As
-a sequel to this movement the Duke of York was forced to retreat and
-abandon forty guns and much of his baggage. Houchard’s triumph was
-short-lived. He met with disaster at the hands of the Austrians, and
-paid the price of failure with his head. With the Convention defeat
-spelt death. Professing the Cause of Humanity, it refused to be
-humanitarian.
-
-By the middle of September all the important fortresses which blockaded
-the way of the Allies to the Capital had fallen, with the exception
-of Maubeuge. The victory of Jourdan, the successor of Houchard, over
-the covering force at Wattignies saved the situation, and on the
-17th October the French marched into Maubeuge. On the Upper Rhine
-the Allies found themselves in possession of Metz only, at the end
-of 1793. In the south-west of Europe the campaign made no further
-progress, and the Republican cause gained fresh impetus by the crushing
-of the royalist risings at Lyons and Toulon. It will be remembered
-that Napoleon won his first laurels in helping to subjugate the great
-arsenal in the south of France, and in forcing the withdrawal of the
-British fleet under Hood which had gone to support the rebellious
-inhabitants.
-
-These facts, dry as dust though they may be, are essential to a correct
-understanding of the part played by Wellington in the early days of the
-Great War detailed in the following chapter.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-Wellington’s Baptism of Fire
-
-(1794-97)
-
- “_I learnt what one ought not to do, and that is always something._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-The pages of military romance teem with references to the disappointed
-lover who seeks to assuage his sorrow by active service. In actual
-life one doubts whether such things often happen, but it appears that
-it was true of Arthur Wellesley. He asked his eldest brother to use
-his influence with Pitt to persuade Lord Westmorland to send him “as
-major to one of the flank corps,” his own regiment being “the last
-for service.” The request was refused, and the young officer had to
-wait until May 1794. Orders were then issued for the 33rd to proceed
-on foreign service as part of a contingent under Lord Moira which was
-urgently required to reinforce the Duke of York.
-
-The Allies had not only experienced a series of defeats, but Prussia
-had withdrawn many of her forces on the Rhine for service in Poland,
-the dismemberment of which seemed to offer more tangible advantages
-than the protracted warfare against “armed opinions.” As a member of
-the Holy Roman Empire she had of necessity to supply 20,000 troops--a
-mere handful--and she announced her intention of merely fulfilling
-this obligation. Again British gold came to the rescue, and Prussia,
-by a treaty signed on the 19th April 1794, agreed to keep 62,000 men
-at the disposal of the Allies in return for a handsome subsidy. The
-unfortunate Austrian general, Mack, was then given command of the new
-campaign. The fatal mistake was repeated of dividing the army, with
-the result that while the Imperialists under Clerfait were forced to
-retreat on Tournay, the Duke of York, aided by Prince Schwartzenberg,
-secured an advantage at Troisville. A series of actions around
-Tourcoing followed on the 16th to the 18th May, during which his
-Highness narrowly escaped being made a prisoner, owing partly to his
-having been left isolated by the cutting off of his communications,
-and partly to a praiseworthy determination to hold the positions his
-troops had gained. At Pont-à-chin, near Tournay, the repeated attempts
-of Pichegru to secure the village ended in disaster. On the 26th June
-the Austrians, in their endeavour to relieve Charleroi, which had
-surrendered to the growing forces of the French under Jourdan a few
-hours before, were forced to retreat from the plains of Fleurus. “The
-loss of Flanders,” says Alison, “immediately followed a contest which
-an enterprizing general would have converted into the most decisive
-triumph.” The Duke of York, having sustained a reverse at Oudenarde,
-was also retreating, intent upon covering Antwerp and Holland.
-
-Wellesley arrived at Ostend with his regiment in June 1794, from whence
-he was sent to Antwerp, on which the Duke of York and the Prince of
-Orange shortly afterwards fell back, while Moira marched to Malines.
-The Colonel held that his senior officer would have been better advised
-had he and his troops proceeded up the Scheldt or the Maes in boats, an
-opinion subsequently confirmed by events.
-
-After settling necessary matters Wellesley carried out his instructions
-and reached the Duke of York several days before Moira was in touch
-with him. It was a moral victory for the young officer, and doubtless
-served the very useful purpose of stimulating his ambition.
-
-For three months the Duke of York and the Prince of Orange remained
-at Antwerp. The Commander of the Dutch troops then retired towards
-the Rhine, and the former moved towards Holland. During the march
-General Abercromby was told to secure the village of Boxtel, captured
-on the previous evening by one of Pichegru’s divisions. A desperate
-affray ensued, and notwithstanding the intrepid bravery of the British
-infantry, cavalry, and artillery, it ended in disaster. It is extremely
-probable that the entire force would have been annihilated but for
-Wellesley’s promptitude in covering the retreat. No opposition was
-offered until the British were passing through a wood, when a masked
-battery opened fire. A little later there was considerable confusion,
-and a body of French Hussars charged forward only to meet Wellesley’s
-battalion drawn across the road. They were repulsed, thanks to the
-valour of the young commander.
-
-Throughout an extremely severe winter the British were continually
-pressed by the ardent Republicans. From October to January 1795
-Wellesley held a post on the Waal, and the arduous nature of his duties
-is described by him in letters written at the time. “At present,” he
-says on the 20th December 1794, “the French keep us in a perpetual
-state of alarm; we turn out once, sometimes twice, every night; the
-officers and men are harassed to death, and if we are not relieved,
-I believe there will be very few of the latter remaining shortly. I
-have not had the clothes off my back for a long time, and generally
-spend the greatest part of the night upon the bank of the river,
-notwithstanding which I have entirely got rid of that disorder which
-was near killing me at the close of the summer campaign. Although
-the French annoy us much at night, they are very entertaining during
-the daytime; they are perpetually chattering with our officers and
-soldiers,[4] and dance the _carmagnol_ upon the opposite bank whenever
-we desire them; but occasionally the spectators on our side are
-interrupted in the middle of a dance by a cannon ball from theirs.”
-
-It is a genial, good-natured message, but Wellesley always held his
-feelings well under control. In the above he chose to reveal the
-humorous aspect of the long-drawn-out agony. There was plenty to
-complain about had he desired. The food supply was deficient; the
-wounded had to bear their agonies with the patience of Stoics, because
-the stock of medicines ran short; and the general privation was
-terrible. A pitiful lack of foresight characterised the whole campaign.
-What could be expected of a Commander-in-Chief who gave preference to
-the pleasures of the table if a dispatch arrived during a meal, and
-contemptuously remarked, “That will keep till the morning”? During the
-time of his sojourn on the Waal, Wellesley “only saw once one general
-from the headquarters,[5] which was old Sir David Dundas.... We had
-letters from England, and I declare that those letters told us more of
-what was passing at headquarters than we learnt from the headquarters
-ourselves.... It has always been a marvel to me how any of us escaped.”
-
-That “old Sir David Dundas” thought very highly of the young officer’s
-conduct is evident. When he succeeded as Commander-in-Chief of the
-British forces, on the recall of the Duke of York in the following
-December, Wellesley was appointed Brigadier and given command of the
-rear guard. By a series of retreats the tattered army eventually
-reached Bremen. It embarked for England early in 1795.
-
-In summing up Wellesley’s first experience of field service, Earl
-Roberts states that it was, “no doubt, extremely valuable to
-Wellington in after years. It must have taught him that soldiers even
-of the best quality, well drilled, disciplined and equipped, cannot
-hope to be successful unless proper arrangements are made for their
-supply and transport; and unless those who direct the operations have
-formed some definite plan of action, and have sufficient zeal and
-professional knowledge to carry it out. If the French generals had
-taken full advantage of the opportunities which the incapacity of the
-English and German commanders threw in their way, the British force
-must have been annihilated.”
-
-One is inclined to doubt whether the troops were “well drilled,
-disciplined and equipped” at this period. The gross incompetence of
-many of the highest officers is abundantly proved, and continued lack
-of success speedily reduces the vital strength of any regiment.
-
-As already noted, the commissariat was execrable. We have it on the
-authority of one who was present that during the retreat hundreds of
-invalids succumbed, “whilst the shameful neglect that then pervaded
-the medical department, rendered the hospitals nothing better than
-slaughter-houses for the wounded and the sick.”
-
-[Illustration: “The full force of the blast”
-
-Thomas Maybank]
-
-Shortly after Wellesley reached England he decided to leave the Army.
-The cause is unknown, but it seems highly probable that either his
-recent experience had disgusted him with the service as constituted, or
-he wished to obtain more remunerative employment so that he might be
-in a position to marry the lady of his choice. He also owed money to
-his brother, who had made advances for his promotion. This sum could
-be repaid by the sale of his commission. Although Wellesley was always
-scrupulous in money matters, the reason seems scarcely credible. We
-are therefore forced to accept one of the other alternatives, perhaps
-both, for mention is made of the miserable state of the Army in
-his letter to Lord Camden[6] regarding the desired appointment. He
-consulted Mornington on the matter, and it was decided that a position
-under the Revenue or Treasury Boards would serve his purpose. “If your
-Excellency,” he writes to the Viceroy, “is of opinion that the offices
-at these boards are too high for me, of course you will say so; and
-as I am convinced that no man is so bad a judge of a claim as he who
-makes it, I trust you will not believe that I shall feel otherwise
-towards you than as I have always felt, with sentiments of the greatest
-regard.... You will probably be surprised at my desiring a civil
-instead of a military office. It is certainly a departure from the line
-which I prefer, but I see the manner in which the military offices are
-filled, and I don’t want to ask you for that which I know you cannot
-give me.”
-
-Research has failed to discover what answer, if any, was vouchsafed
-this communication. Wellesley remained in the Army. In October 1795
-he and his regiment sailed from Southampton as part of an expedition
-against the French settlements in the West Indies. The vessels
-encountered a terrible gale, still known as “Christian’s Storm,” after
-the name of the admiral who commanded the fleet. While it might be
-untrue to say that the ships were in an unseaworthy condition, their
-sanitary state was deplorable, for they had but recently returned from
-a long voyage as hospital and prison transports. Scarcely forty-eight
-hours after they had sailed, and when they were off Weymouth, the full
-force of the blast struck them. One vessel foundered with all hands,
-half-a-dozen or more were totally dismasted, and hundreds of soldiers
-went to their death in a battle with the elements against which all the
-drill in the world was ineffectual. Fortunately Wellesley escaped, but
-when he received orders, in April 1796, to embark his men for India he
-was too ill to accompany them. However, he set sail for Calcutta in
-June, and overtaking the 33rd Regiment at the Cape of Good Hope, duly
-reached his destination in February 1797. “The station is so highly
-advantageous to him that I could not advise him to decline it,” says
-Lord Mornington.[7] The good-natured Earl little knew what advantage,
-both to Wellesley and the Empire, was to accrue as the result of the
-failure of his brother’s civil ambitions.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-The Campaign of Seringapatam
-
-(1797-1800)
-
- _India, “a country fertile in heroes and statesmen._”
-
- CANNING.
-
-
-The proverb to the effect that “History repeats itself” is not strictly
-true. The further we study the subject, the more we find that like
-causes do not necessarily bring about similar effects. The ill success
-which attended the expedition to the West Indies, ere it left the
-English Channel, has a fitting parallel so far as its practical utility
-is concerned in the force placed at General St Leger’s disposal to
-attack Manilla, the Philippine Islands then being in the possession of
-Spain, with whom Great Britain was now at war. Fortunately it did not
-meet with disaster, but neither expedition reached its destination.
-Wellesley accepted the offer of Sir John Shore, the Governor-General
-of India, to command a brigade, and the troops were embarked. They had
-not proceeded farther than Penang before an order was issued for their
-recall owing to troubles brewing in India itself.
-
-Shortly after his return to Calcutta the Colonel was placed in command
-of the forces in Madras. He also heard that his eldest brother
-had been offered the extremely responsible and difficult post of
-Governor-General in succession to Sir John Shore. It was now his turn
-to feed the flames of Mornington’s ambition. He writes: “I strongly
-advise you to come out. I am convinced that you will retain your
-health; nay, it is possible that its general state may be improved,
-and you will have the fairest opportunity of rendering material
-service to the public and of doing yourself credit.” Mornington lacked
-self-confidence, and a thousand and one doubts and fears possessed his
-mind. The Colonel reminded him that if he refused so advantageous a
-position on account of his young family, “you forego both for yourself
-and them what will certainly be a material and lasting advantage.”
-
-Mornington accepted, and arrived at Calcutta with his youngest brother,
-Henry, as private secretary in the middle of May 1798. He speedily
-found an antidote for home-sickness in endeavouring to unravel the
-tangled skein of affairs in Mysore, where Tipú Sultan was intriguing
-with the French Republic for assistance in attacking the possessions
-of the East India Company in Southern India. The pugnacious character
-of the son of Hyder Ali was typified by the tiger’s stripes on his
-flag. He possessed the fanaticism and barbarity of the Oriental at his
-worst, and when opportunity occurred would feed a beast of prey with an
-English prisoner.
-
-[Illustration: WELLINGTON’S CAMPAIGN IN INDIA.]
-
-To secure either the friendship or the neutrality of the Nizám,
-whose territory abutted that of the bloodthirsty Tipú, now became of
-paramount importance. His army was officered by Frenchmen, which was
-proof positive that in the event of war it would assist Britain’s
-enemy, although the Nizám had a distinct leaning towards the English.
-As it happened, the native troops mutinied against their officers,
-and, seizing his opportunity, the Nizám dismissed them. They were sent
-to England as prisoners, and subsequently allowed to return to their
-own country, a most humane consideration, for which Mornington was
-largely responsible. The military positions they formerly occupied
-were promptly filled by our own officers. A new treaty was made to
-preclude the Marhattás from allying themselves with Tipú, and a force
-of 6000 British troops was maintained by the Nizám at Hyderabad.
-
-Meanwhile Wellesley had proceeded with his regiment to Madras, and,
-owing to the death of the senior officer, was placed in temporary
-command of the troops. In communication with Lord Clive, the Governor
-of the Presidency, and General Harris, the Commander-in-Chief, he
-busied himself with the multitudinous arrangements necessary for
-an advance upon Seringapatam, the capital of the Mysore Dominions.
-Horses, bullocks, and elephants had to be provided for the purpose of
-transport; forts equipped and provisioned; the siege train properly
-organized. He drew up a plan of campaign, and bent himself to the task
-with exacting energy. Notwithstanding the preparations for war, he
-still hoped that a resort to arms would prove unnecessary. Those who
-are apt to think that all military men delight in strife for the mere
-love of it will do well to remember this fact and judge less harshly,
-for Wellington is the typical representative of the British Army. But
-he believed in being ready, and hated nothing so much as “muddling
-through.”
-
-There was still a possibility, though scarcely a probability, that Tipú
-would repent. He had received word that Napoleon, then on his famous
-Egyptian expedition, was coming to his aid with an “invincible army.”
-So far he had refused a definite statement of policy. Not until it was
-abundantly evident that the protracted negotiations of the Sultan of
-Mysore with the Government were merely to gain time, was a declaration
-of war issued on the 22nd February 1799. According to Wellesley,
-General Harris “expressed his approbation of what I had done, and
-adopted as his own all the orders and regulations I had made, and then
-said that he should mention his approbation publicly, only that he was
-afraid others would be displeased and jealous. Now as there is nothing
-to be got in the army except credit, and as it is not always that the
-best intentions and endeavours to serve the public succeed, it is hard
-that when they do succeed they should not receive the approbation which
-it is acknowledged by all they deserve. I was much hurt about it at the
-time, but I don’t care now, and shall certainly do everything to serve
-General Harris, and to support his name and authority.”
-
-Wellesley never feared to speak his mind, as his voluminous dispatches
-abundantly testify. In a letter to Mornington he admits that he had
-“lectured” the Commander-in-Chief because he allowed the Madras
-Military Board too much license in the matter of appointments. On the
-other hand, he had “urged publicly to the army (in which I flatter
-myself I have some influence) the necessity of supporting him, whether
-he be right or wrong.” In his opinion it was “impossible” to hold the
-General “too high, if he is to be the head of the army in the field.”
-
-Harris certainly compensated Wellesley to some extent by placing him
-in command of thirteen regiments, including the Nizám’s contingent,
-with the rank of brigadier. The strength of this force was about 16,000
-men, that of the whole army 35,000, excluding 120,000 camp followers,
-the bugbear of the old-time commander. The Bombay corps under General
-Stuart attacked a portion of the enemy, commanded by the wily Tipú, in
-the vicinity of Sedasser, on the 6th March. This success augured well,
-for the Sultan was forced to retire.
-
-Harris’s first serious engagement took place near Malavelly on the
-27th, Wellesley advancing to the attack and turning Tipú’s right flank.
-After an engagement lasting three hours the enemy withdrew, with the
-loss of some 2000 men by death or wounds against the British 7 killed
-and 53 wounded. Tipú was a skilful soldier, and had not neglected to
-throw up a line of entrenchments before Seringapatam, into which city
-he now withdrew. To drive in the advanced outposts before definitely
-besieging the place was Harris’s first object. This duty was intrusted
-to Wellesley and Colonel Shaw respectively, each having charge of a
-detachment. It was the task of the former to carry a tope, or thicket,
-and a village called Sultanpettah. He failed, for reasons explained in
-the following letter:
-
-“On the night of the 5th, we made an attack on the enemy’s outposts,
-which, at least on my side, was not quite so successful as could have
-been wished. The fact is, that the night was very dark, that the
-enemy expected us, and were strongly posted in an almost impenetrable
-jungle. We lost an officer, killed, and nine men of the 33rd wounded,
-and at last, as I could not find out the post which it was desirable
-I should occupy, I was obliged to desist from the attack, the enemy
-also having retired from the post. In the morning they re-occupied it,
-and we attacked it again at day-light, and carried it with ease and
-with little loss. I got a slight touch on the knee, from which I have
-felt no inconvenience, and I have come to the determination never to
-suffer an attack to be made by night upon an enemy who was prepared
-and strongly posted, and whose posts had not been reconnoitred by
-daylight.” It should be added that twelve soldiers were taken prisoner
-and executed by the brutal method of nails being driven through their
-heads, and that Wellesley had previously given it as his opinion that
-the projected attack on the thicket would be a mistake. The operation
-undertaken by Colonel Shaw was successful.
-
-The siege now proceeded in earnest, but a breach was not made in the
-solid walls surrounding Seringapatam for three days. On the 4th May the
-place was stormed by General Baird. General Sherbrooke’s right column
-was the first to ford the Cauvery River. His men speedily scaled the
-ramparts, and engaged that part of the Sultan’s 22,000 troops stationed
-in the immediate vicinity. The defenders fought with the fatalistic
-energy and determination so characteristic of the natives of India. The
-left column followed, but found the way more difficult. Tipú, mounting
-the ramparts, fired at the oncoming red-coats with muskets handed to
-him by his attendants. It was his last battle; his body was afterwards
-discovered in a covered gateway, together with hundreds of others.
-Wellesley, with his corps, occupied the trenches as a first reserve.
-
-“About a quarter past one p.m.,” says an eye-witness, “as we were
-anxiously peering, telescope in hand, at the ford, and the intermediate
-ground between our batteries and the breach, a sharp and sudden
-discharge of musquetry and rockets, along the western face of the
-fort, announced to us that General Baird and the column of assault
-were crossing the ford; and immediately afterwards, we perceived our
-soldiers, in rather loose array, rushing towards the breach. The
-moment was one of agony; and we continued, with aching eyes, to watch
-the result, until, after a short and appalling interval, we saw the
-acclivity of the breach covered with a cloud of crimson,--and in a
-very few minutes afterwards, observing the files passing rapidly to
-the right and left at the summit of the breach, I could not help
-exclaiming, ‘Thank God! the business is done.’
-
-“The firing continued in different parts of the place until about two
-o’clock, or a little afterwards; when, the whole of the works being
-in the possession of our troops, and the St George’s ensign floating
-proudly from the flagstaff of the southern cavalier, announced to us
-that the triumph was completed.”
-
-On the 5th, Wellesley took over the command from Baird, who had
-requested temporary leave of absence, and without delay began to
-restore some kind of order among the British troops, whose one object
-after victory was plunder, in which matter they showed little delicacy
-of feeling. The city was on fire in several places, but the flames
-were all extinguished within twenty-four hours, and the inhabitants
-were “retiring to their homes fast.” Having stopped, “by hanging,
-flogging, etc.,” the insubordination of the troops and the rifling of
-the dead by the camp followers who had flocked in, Wellesley proceeded
-to bury those who had fallen.
-
-During the four weeks of the siege the British lost 22 officers and
-310 men, and no fewer than 45 officers and 1164 men were reported as
-wounded and missing.[8] The Commander mentions that jewels of the
-greatest value, and bars of gold, were obtained. As the prize agents
-assessed the treasure taken at £1,143,216, the wealth of Seringapatam
-must have been astounding. Wellesley’s share came to about £4000.[9]
-Hundreds of animals were required to carry the rich stuffs, plate,
-and richly-bound books from this city of opulence. A little humorous
-relief to so much sordidness is afforded by Wellesley’s difficulties
-regarding some of the late Sultan’s pets. “There are some tigers here,”
-he writes, “which I wish Meer Allum would send for, or else I must give
-orders to have them shot, as there is no food for them, and nobody to
-attend to them, and they are getting violent.” Tipú’s 650 wives gave
-less trouble than the wild beasts. They were removed to a remote region
-and set at liberty.
-
-Wellesley’s next appointment was as Commander of the Forces in Mysore.
-He proved himself to be particularly well fitted for the post, which
-obviously required a man of infinite tact, who could be lenient or
-severe as circumstances demanded. It was Wellesley’s testing-time, and
-he did not fail either in administration or the rough and tumble of
-the “little war” so soon to fall to his lot. He had already served on
-a commission appointed to go into the question of the partition of the
-conquered Dominions, a small part of which was made over to the Peshwá,
-and larger shares to the Nizám and the East India Company respectively.
-The dynasty overturned by Tipú’s father was restored. As the new
-Rájá of Mysore was only five years of age, he was scarcely able to
-appreciate the fact that his territory was so greatly diminished.
-
-We now come to a story worthy of a place in the Arabian Nights. It
-concerns an adventurer who, later, assumed the truly regal title of
-King of the World. Dhoondia Waugh, to give him the name by which those
-who were unfortunate enough to make his acquaintance first knew him,
-was the chief of a band of robbers whom Tipú had captured and thrown
-into prison. Recognizing in him a brave man, the Sultan remitted the
-sentence of death and gave him a military appointment, thus turning his
-acknowledged abilities into a less questionable channel, for a thief
-must needs be fearless and daring if he is to succeed. For some reason
-not altogether clear, Dhoondia Waugh was again imprisoned, and he did
-not regain his liberty until the fall of Seringapatam, when he was
-liberated, together with a number of other gaol-birds. The old thieving
-instinct reasserted itself, and as he encountered no difficulty in
-collecting a band of the late Tipú’s cavalry, he speedily resorted to
-means and measures which alarmed the inhabitants of every place he
-visited. When pressed by the troops sent after them the horde took
-refuge in the territory of the Peshwá, the nominal head of the Marhattá
-confederacy. There they received anything but a cordial welcome,
-although it seems probable that reinforcements were obtained among
-the malcontents. However that may be, Dhoondia Waugh duly appeared
-near Savanore. Having the safety of the Mysore Dominions very much at
-heart, for he had supreme civil and military control, Wellesley started
-in pursuit of the freebooter. Several fortresses held by Dhoondia’s
-unlawful bands were stormed, his baggage taken, and a number of guns
-captured.
-
-An affray which took place near the Malpurda River at the end of
-July 1800, not only reduced the chief’s forces, but caused many of
-his followers to forsake the cause, although their strength in the
-following September was considerably more than that at Wellesley’s
-command; in actual figures, some 5000 against 1200. The operation on
-the 10th of that month, which proved decisive, was extremely difficult,
-for the enemy was strongly posted at a village called Conahgull. The
-Colonel charged with such cool daring and so determined a front, that
-after having stood firm for some time the enemy made off, closely
-pursued for many miles by the British cavalry. A dire and just
-retribution was exacted; those who were not killed “were scattered in
-small parties over the face of the country.” The King of the World had
-fought his last battle. He was found among the slain.
-
-It is frequently asserted that Wellesley held but a low opinion of
-the troops which he commanded, and he certainly passed harsh judgment
-on those who shared his later campaigns. Not so in this particular
-instance, however. In the dispatch detailing “the complete defeat and
-dispersion” of the forces of Dhoondia, he expressly remarks on the
-“determined valour and discipline” of the soldiers, the patience and
-perseverance displayed in “a series of fatiguing services,” and the
-excellent organization of the commissariat department.
-
-Wellesley also showed that a kind heart is not necessarily the
-attribute of a weak nature. With a humanity entirely worthy so great
-a man, he had Dhoondia’s “supposed or adopted son” cared for, and
-afterwards placed £400 in the hands of trustees for his future
-use.[10] “Had you and your regicide army been out of the way,” writes
-Sir Thomas Munro to Wellesley, “Dhoondia would undoubtedly have become
-an independent and powerful prince, and the founder of a new dynasty of
-cruel and treacherous Sultauns.”
-
-This short campaign likewise furnishes us with one of the secrets of
-the success of our national military hero. Just before he set out on
-the long chase after the King of the World, he was offered a position
-particularly rich in prospects, namely, the military command of an
-expedition for the surrender of the Dutch island of Batavia. The sole
-condition was that Lord Clive, the Governor of Madras, to whom he was
-responsible, could spare him. A man who was moved by purely personal
-ambition would have had no hesitation in bringing all his influence to
-bear on the Governor in order to secure so good an opening. Wellesley,
-however, recognizing that he had already begun preparations for the
-running to earth of the bloodthirsty and cruel Dhoondia--an end much
-to be desired--asked Clive to accept or decline for him as he thought
-best. He neither pleaded for nor against, although he hoped that if
-Admiral Rainier were not starting at once he might be able to join him
-when the work on hand was finished. “I am determined that nothing shall
-induce me to desire to quit this country, until its tranquillity is
-ensured. The general want of troops, however, at the present moment,
-and the season, may induce the Admiral to be desirous to postpone the
-expedition till late in the year. In that case it may be convenient
-that I should accompany him....”
-
-The Governor of Madras refused his permission, and there the matter
-ended. Months afterwards, when there seemed a probability of operations
-in the Marhattá Territory, Wellesley wrote a lengthy Memorandum on
-the means of carrying such a campaign to a successful issue. “The
-experience,” he notes in his opening remarks, “which has been acquired
-in the late contest with Dhoondia Waugh, of the seasons, the nature of
-the country, its roads, its produce, and its means of defence, will be
-of use in pointing them out.”
-
-Thus it will be seen that the knowledge gained by Wellesley during
-the performance of an individual duty was stored up for future use. A
-march or a campaign was not simply carried out and then dismissed. It
-was a lesson learned and to be remembered. In military matters he was
-to a very appreciable extent self-taught. No drill-book in existence
-can furnish skill or assure victory, and genius itself is valueless
-on the battle-field without a clear perception based on things
-ascertained--“the experience which has been acquired” referred to in
-the above communication. Napoleon, against whom Wellesley was to fight
-in the years to come, early recognized the supreme importance of this
-principle. “The adroit man,” he says, “profits by everything, neglects
-nothing which can increase his chances.”
-
-The “Sepoy General” was such a man.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-War with the Marhattás
-
-(1801-3)
-
- “_We must get the upper hand, and if once we have that, we shall
- keep it with ease, and shall certainly succeed._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-That disappointments are frequently blessings in disguise had already
-been proved by Arthur Wellesley. Unfortunately, it is easier to forget
-such a precept than to practise it, and each apparent failure to climb
-another rung of ambition’s ladder is apt to be regarded as a definite
-set back. It was so with Wellesley, and a time of trial and perplexity
-followed the campaign of Seringapatam and the defeat of Dhoondia.
-
-He eventually weathered the storm of depression which pressed upon him,
-as he weathered many another, but it must be admitted that he bent
-before it. It came about in this way. The French army in Egypt was
-still very active, although Napoleon had long since left it. He was
-now First Consul, and gradually preparing himself and the nation for
-the assumption of the Imperial crown. The Governor-General, henceforth
-to be known as Marquis Wellesley,[11] was of opinion that a small
-expedition should be sent either to Batavia or the Mauritius, or to
-assist Sir Ralph Abercromby in his attempt to drive the French out of
-Egypt.
-
-With one of these desirable objects in view his brother Arthur was
-given 5000 troops. He at once set off for Trincomalee, in the island
-of Ceylon, the headquarters of the little army, intent on personally
-superintending the arrangements. Shortly afterwards instructions came
-to hand from the Home Government that 3000 men were to be sent to
-Egypt. Colonel Wellesley was informed of this decision, and determined
-to lose no time in forwarding the project. Without receiving official
-word to do so, and still believing he held the premier post, he
-embarked the men and sailed for Bombay, where he had ordered an ample
-supply of provisions to be ready.
-
-When off Cape Comorin, Wellesley received a letter from his brother,
-stating that he had appointed Major-General Baird to the command of the
-troops destined for the island of Batavia, which made it clear that the
-Governor-General had not then received the dispatches of the Secretary
-of State. Knowing that some at least of the troops on the transports
-would be required for Egypt, he proceeded on his way, and wrote to
-Baird of his intention. A little later a further letter came to hand
-from another source; but the fleet was in want of water, some of the
-troops had died, and “I was induced to adhere to my original plan.”
-
-Baird, who, on arriving at Trincomalee, found “the cupboard was
-bare,” was deeply incensed at Wellesley’s high-handed behaviour. The
-“culprit’s” feelings as to the Governor-General’s new appointment were
-also far from pacific. That he acted in perfect good faith is evident
-from the preceding, which is borne out in a lengthy dispatch in which
-he sought to justify his action in the eyes of his brother.
-
-“I have not been guilty of robbery or murder,” he writes to Henry
-Wellesley from Bombay on the 23rd March 1801, “and he has certainly
-changed his mind; but the world, which is always good-natured towards
-those whose affairs do not exactly prosper, will not, or rather does
-not, fail to suspect that both, or worse, have been the occasion of my
-being banished, like General Kray, to my estate in Hungary.[12] I did
-not look, and did not wish, for the appointment which was given to me;
-and I say that it would probably have been more proper to give it to
-somebody else; but when it was given to me, and a circular written to
-the governments upon the subject, it would have been fair to allow me
-to hold it till I did something to deserve to lose it.
-
-“I put private considerations out of the question, as they ought and
-have had no weight in causing either my original appointment or my
-supercession. I am not quite satisfied with the manner in which I have
-been treated by Government upon the occasion. However, I have lost
-neither my health, spirits, nor temper in consequence thereof. But it
-is useless to write any more upon a subject of which I wish to retain
-no remembrance whatever.”
-
-Baird would have been scarcely human had he not felt hurt by finding
-himself head of a force which had disappeared, especially as the
-Colonel had already superseded him as Governor of Seringapatam. But
-he forgave, if he did not forget, and so did Wellesley. Some thirty
-years afterwards, when Baird’s days of active soldiering were over, he
-remarked, during the course of a chat with Sir John Malcolm, who had
-himself done good service in India: “Time’s are changed. No one knows
-so well as you how severely I felt the preference given on several
-occasions to your friend Wellesley, but now I see all these things from
-a far different point of view. It is the highest pride of my life that
-anybody should ever have dreamed of my being put in the balance with
-him. His name is now to me joy, and I may almost say glory.”
-
-It is satisfactory to know that Arthur Wellesley was not foolish enough
-to allow the iron to enter into his soul to such an extent as to
-prevent him from co-operating with Baird, into whose hands he placed a
-“Memorandum on the Operations in the Red Sea,” accompanied by a letter
-acknowledging “the kind, candid, and handsome manner in which you have
-behaved towards me.” When the expedition was ready, Arthur Wellesley
-was laid low with a fever, consequently the Commander-in-Chief
-was obliged to sail without his lieutenant, not altogether to his
-discomfiture one would surmise.
-
-An attack of the dreaded Malabar itch did not tend to a speedy recovery
-of the invalid, but he was sufficiently well in May 1801 to resume his
-former duties at Seringapatam, where he had been reinstated by his
-brother. By living moderately, drinking little or no wine, avoiding
-much medicine, taking exercise, and keeping his mind employed, he
-eventually recovered. As Baird saw no fighting, his rival lost nothing
-by remaining in India.
-
-Sir Herbert Maxwell[13] assumes that Arthur Wellesley’s fever
-was caused by disappointment, but as the latter expressly states
-that Baird’s “conduct towards me has by no means occasioned this
-determination (namely, to resign the appointment), but that it has
-been perfectly satisfactory,”[14] the statement is obviously based on
-a surmise that the Colonel was diplomatically lying. Everybody fully
-appreciates the influence of mind over matter, and thwarted desire may
-have weakened Wellesley’s health, but surely the facts of the case
-scarcely justify so definite an assertion.
-
-Colonel Wellesley remained in Mysore for nearly two years, during
-which he did his work both wisely and well, showing favour to none and
-justice to all. It was in February 1803 that the future Wellington,
-now a Major-General, received news that he was required for active
-service against the Marhattás. The war-like intentions of this powerful
-confederacy, which alone could challenge British supremacy, had not
-escaped the notice of Government. The nominal head of the five native
-princes who constituted it was Baji Rao, the Peshwá of Poona, the
-others being Daulat Rao, Sindhia of Gwalior; Jeswant Rao, Holkar of
-Indore; the Gaikwár of Baroda, and the Bhonsla Rájá of Berar. Sindhia
-was the most powerful, and possessed a fine army drilled by French
-officers and commanded by Perron, a deserter from the French Marine.
-
-Holkar had at his disposal no fewer than 80,000 splendidly-equipped
-men, mostly cavalry, likewise organized by European soldiers. Intense
-rivalry existed between these princes, and when, in October 1802, the
-latter invaded Poona, the armies of Sindhia and the Peshwá met with
-disaster. The Peshwá sought refuge with the British, and forthwith
-entered into an offensive and defensive alliance with Lord Wellesley
-as the only means of saving his territory. The chief clauses were that
-6000 British troops should be kept at Poona, the expense being met by
-the assignment to the East India Company of certain territory; that the
-Peshwá would not make war with the other princes or allow them to prey
-on each other without the consent of Government; and that he should be
-reinstated in his capital. This arrangement, known as the Subsidiary
-Treaty of Bassein, soon had the effect of drawing together the
-remaining members of the Marhattá confederacy, cementing a friendship
-between Sindhia and Holkar, and an alliance between Sindhia and the
-Bhonsla Rájá. It is clear that the continued acknowledgment of the
-Peshwá as head of the confederacy, now that he was under the ægis of
-the British, would have been to admit the supremacy of the conquering
-Power they so much resented. Lord Wellesley had already signed a
-defensive alliance with the Gaikwár of Baroda, and in order to be ready
-for eventualities, men from the armies of the three Presidencies,
-namely, Madras, Bombay, and Calcutta, were concentrated at various
-points, the first for operation on the north-west frontier of Mysore,
-the second for action about Surat and Broach, and the third for the
-occupation of Cuttack. A large force was also ordered to assemble at
-Cawnpore under General Lake, the Commander-in-Chief in India, while
-three corps were held in reserve. Major-General Wellesley was placed in
-command of a detachment of some 10,600 troops, to which must be added
-the Nizám’s contingent of 8400 men under Colonel Stevenson, making
-19,000 in all. His orders were to secure Poona, now held by a small
-garrison of Holkar’s soldiers totalling not more than 1500. He was
-already on the march when he heard of the intention of the Governor,
-acting on Holkar’s instructions, to burn the town on the approach of
-the British.
-
-“We were within forty miles of the place”--Wellesley himself tells
-the story[15]--“when this resolution of Holkar’s lieutenant was
-communicated to me. My troops had marched twenty miles that day under
-a burning sun, and the infantry could no more have gone five miles
-farther than they would have flown. The cavalry, though not fresh,
-were less knocked up, so I got together 400 of the best mounted among
-them, and set off. We started after dark on the night of the 19th of
-April, and in the afternoon of the 20th we got close to the place.
-There was an awful uproar, and I expected to see the flames burst out,
-but nothing of the kind occurred. Amrut Rao--that was the Marhattá’s
-name--was too frightened to think of anything except providing for his
-own safety, and I had the satisfaction of finding, when I rode into the
-town, that he had gone off with his garrison by one gate as we went in
-by another. We were too tired to follow, had it been worth while to do
-so, which it was not. Poona was safe, and that was all I cared for.”
-In the following month the Peshwá returned to his capital.
-
-Sindhia and the Rájá of Berar now busied themselves with gathering a
-large army at Burhanpur, ready to threaten the Deccan, Holkar retiring
-to Indore. Wellesley was no less active at Poona; his experience in
-Holland had taught him the all-important lesson that an efficient
-organization is a powerful ally. In addition, he was busy endeavouring
-to come to terms with Sindhia and the Rájá, for which purpose he had
-been given chief command of the British forces in the Marhattá states,
-with the fullest political authority. Similar powers were vested in
-General Lake in Northern India. After wasting as much time as possible
-in the negotiations so as to gain it for military preparations,
-Wellesley anticipated the inevitable. “I offered you peace on terms
-of equality,” he writes on the 6th August 1803, “and honourable
-to all parties: you have chosen war, and are responsible for all
-consequences.” On the following day hostilities were declared against
-Sindhia and the Rájá of Berar.
-
-The stone-built fortress of Ahmednuggur, the capture of which would
-safeguard his communications with Poona and Bombay and prevent
-reinforcements from Southern India reaching the enemy, was his first
-object of attack. The main body of Sindhia’s men was threatening
-Hyderabad, but the place was well garrisoned and so solidly constructed
-that it looked as though it would defy whatever artillery could be
-brought to bear on it. Wellesley said that with the exception of
-Vellore, in the Carnatic, it was the strongest country fort he had
-ever seen. However, he began operations against the outworks on the
-8th, after having made proposals for its surrender without favourable
-result. “The Arabs,” we are told, “defended their posts with the
-utmost obstinacy,” but towards evening were forced to quit the wall.
-On the following day the ground in the neighbourhood of the fort was
-reconnoitred and a commanding position seized, on which a battery
-of four guns was constructed for use during the attack. The first
-shots were fired on the 10th at dawn, and the storming party speedily
-began its work. Three times an officer ascended a scaling ladder
-propped against one of the walls, and thrice he was hurled down by the
-defenders. The fourth attempt was successful, and, followed by some of
-his men, the gallant soldier literally hewed a way into the town. The
-remaining troops, pressing on, took the place of those who fell. At
-length the Commander of the enemy’s forces surrendered, “on condition
-that he should be allowed to depart with his garrison, and that he
-should have his private property.” His fourteen hundred men marched out
-of the fort, and Wellesley’s troops took possession.
-
-[Illustration: “He was hurled down by the defenders”
-
-Thomas Maybank]
-
-On the 23rd September the General found himself and his small
-contingent of some 8000 soldiers face to face with the whole combined
-army of Sindhia and the Rájá of Berar, a state of affairs brought
-about by unreliable information, causing the separation of Wellesley
-and Stevenson. At least 50,000 of the enemy were posted in a strong
-position behind the river Kaitna, near the village of Assaye. As
-Wellesley had received no reinforcements, and had only 17 guns compared
-with 128 commanded by skilful French officers at the disposal of the
-Marhattás, the disproportion of the forces was sufficiently obvious.
-To a general less experienced or daring the situation would have been
-considered sufficient cause for an instant retreat; even he called
-the attack “desperate.” The problem for him to settle was, should he
-wait a few hours for Stevenson, or begin immediately with the scanty
-resources at his disposal? Although only 1500 of his men were British,
-the Commander-in-Chief decided on the latter alternative, ignoring the
-information vouchsafed by his guides that the river was absolutely
-impassable. Yet it was only by crossing the stream that he could take
-advantage of the opportunity to attack. Here Wellesley’s native wit
-and acute intelligence--he himself called it “common sense”--assisted
-him. His telescope merely revealed a village on either side of the
-stream. This fact suggested the probability of a neighbouring ford.
-On investigation such proved to be the case, and if the passage was
-difficult the General was at least fortunate in being able to carry
-out the operation without severe molestation by the enemy, who had
-foolishly neglected to guard this point. They repaired the omission so
-far as was possible by firing upon the oncoming army as it slowly waded
-across, but the losses were comparatively trivial. “All the business of
-war,” Wellesley once told Croker, “and indeed all the business of life,
-is to endeavour to find out what you don’t know by what you do.”
-
-The battle began well by the routing of some of the infantry and
-artillery by the Highlanders and Sepoys. This advantage was almost
-immediately counterbalanced by the mistaken zeal of the officer
-commanding the pickets, supported by the 74th Regiment. He foolishly
-led his men against the village, thereby exposing them to the
-concentrated fire of the enemy’s artillery and musketry stationed
-there. Had he taken a less direct route, this could not have happened,
-but his enthusiasm overruled his caution. Men dropped down like
-ninepins in a skittle-alley when the ball is thrown by a skilful
-player. They fell by the dozen as they came within the zone of fire.
-Their comrades filled up the tell-tale gaps and continued to push
-on with a dogged tenacity entirely worthy their intrepid commander.
-Meanwhile what few British guns remained pounded away, and were
-silenced one by one as the men who worked them fell dead at their post.
-The enemy’s cavalry then proceeded to decimate the already sorely
-depleted ranks of the 74th.
-
-At this moment the 19th Light Dragoons, under Colonel Maxwell, were
-hurled at Sindhia’s troops. The charge turned the fate of the day.
-What remained of the 74th rallied under the support thus given, and
-when Wellesley led the 78th into action the village fell. An attempt
-was made by the enemy to rally, but it was too late. Men who, with true
-Oriental cunning, had fallen as though killed in order to avoid the
-oncoming British cavalry as they charged, and had escaped the iron-shod
-hoofs of the horses, rejoined the ranks, only to find that the day
-had been lost. The whole body was soon flying helter-skelter from the
-blood-stained field towards Burrampur, abandoning artillery, baggage,
-ammunition--everything that precluded swift movement. Twelve hundred of
-the Marhattás breathed their last on this memorable day.
-
-In fighting this battle--“the hardest-fought affair that ever took
-place in India”--o’er again in the twilight of his days, the Duke
-of Wellington made light of the indiscretions of the officers at
-Assaye and remembered only their bravery. “I lost an enormous number
-of men: 170 officers were killed and wounded, and upwards of 2000
-non-commissioned officers and privates;[16] but we carried all before
-us. We took their guns, which were in the first line, and were fired
-upon by the gunners afterwards, who threw themselves down, pretending
-to be dead, and then rose up again after our men had passed; but they
-paid dearly for the freak. The 19th cut them to pieces. Sindhia’s
-infantry behaved admirably. They were in support of his cannon, and we
-drove them off at the point of the bayonet. We pursued them as long as
-daylight lasted and the exhausted state of the men and horses would
-allow; and slept on the field.”[17]
-
-Wellesley himself, although not wounded, lost two horses. An
-eye-witness has recorded that he had never seen “a man so cool and
-collected as he was the whole time.” Stevenson arrived on the
-following evening, and set out almost immediately to follow the enemy,
-Wellesley being forced to remain owing to his lack of transport for the
-wounded, whom he refused to leave. The Colonel seconded Wellesley’s
-magnificent victory by reducing the fortress of Burrampur on the
-16th October, and that of Asseerghur on the 21st. Wellesley covered
-Stevenson’s operations and defended the territories of the Nizám and
-the Peshwá. “I have been like a man who fights with one hand and
-defends himself with the other,” he notes on the 26th October. “I have
-made some terrible marches, but I have been remarkably fortunate:
-first, in stopping the enemy when they intended to press to the
-southward, through the Casserbarry ghaut; and afterwards, by a rapid
-march to the northward, in stopping Sindhia, when he was moving to
-interrupt Colonel Stevenson’s operations against Asseerghur; in which
-he would otherwise have undoubtedly succeeded.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-Last Years in India
-
-(1803-5)
-
- “_Time is everything in military operations._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-Bhonsla Rájá now became the immediate object of Wellesley’s attention.
-While proceeding in quest of him the General received envoys from
-Sindhia requesting an armistice. This was granted on the 23rd November
-1803, the principal condition imposed by Wellesley being that the
-enemy’s army should retire forty miles east of Ellichpúr. This clause
-was not fulfilled, the cavalry of the wily Sindhia encamping at
-Sersooly, some four miles from the position occupied by Manoo Bappoo,
-brother of the Rájá, ready for immediate co-operation. Having again
-united their divisions, Wellesley and Stevenson pushed towards them. “A
-confused mass” about two miles beyond Sersooly proved to be the enemy’s
-armies on the march. A little later the General made out “a long line
-of infantry, cavalry, and artillery, regularly drawn up on the plains
-of Argaum, immediately in front of that village.”
-
-“Although late in the day,” says Wellesley in describing the events
-of the 29th November, “I immediately determined to attack this army.
-Accordingly, I marched on in one column, the British cavalry leading in
-a direction nearly parallel to that of the enemy’s line; covering the
-rear and left by the Mogul and Mysore cavalry. The enemy’s infantry and
-guns were in the left of their centre, with a body of cavalry on their
-left. Sindhia’s army, consisting of one very heavy body of cavalry,
-was on the right, having upon its right a body of pindarries and other
-light corps. Their line extended above five miles, having in their rear
-the village and extensive gardens and enclosure of Argaum; and in their
-front a plain, which, however, was much cut by watercourses, etc.
-
-“I formed the army in two lines; the infantry in the first, the cavalry
-in the second, and supporting the right; and the Mogul and Mysore
-cavalry the left, nearly parallel to that of the enemy; with the right
-rather advanced in order to press upon the enemy’s left. Some little
-time elapsed before the lines could be formed, owing to a part of the
-infantry of my division which led the column having got into some
-confusion. When formed, the whole advanced in the greatest order; the
-74th and 78th regiments were attacked by a large body (supposed to be
-Persians), and all these were destroyed. Sindhia’s cavalry charged
-the 1st battalion, 6th regiment, which was on the left of our line,
-and were repulsed; and their whole line retired in disorder before
-our troops, leaving in our hands 38 pieces of cannon and all their
-ammunition.
-
-“The British cavalry then pursued them for several miles, destroyed
-great numbers, and took many elephants and camels and much baggage. The
-Mogul and Mysore cavalry also pursued the fugitives, and did them great
-mischief. Some of the latter are still following them; and I have sent
-out this morning all of the Mysore, Mogul, and Marhattá cavalry, in
-order to secure as many advantages from this victory as can be gained,
-and complete the enemy’s confusion.... The troops conducted themselves
-with their usual bravery....”
-
-One of the bravest deeds performed during the battle of Argaum was
-that of Lieutenant Langlands, of the 74th. Wounded in the fleshy
-part of the leg by a spear, he promptly pulled out the weapon and
-thrust it through the body of the Arab who had thrown it. A Sepoy who
-witnessed this extraordinary display of self-possession, forgetting all
-discipline, rushed from the ranks and patted the young officer on the
-back, yelling in his native tongue, “Well done, sir; very well done!”
-
-Wellesley next marched on the mountain fort of Gawilghur, strongly
-garrisoned by the Rájá’s troops. This defence consisted of an outer and
-inner fort, the former protected by strongly-built walls, and the whole
-by ramparts and towers. Admittance was gained only by three gates, all
-extremely difficult of access by an invading army owing to the roads
-leading to them. That to the south, communicating with the inner fort,
-was long and steep, and could only be negotiated on foot; the second
-was exposed to the guns mounted on the west side and was extremely
-narrow and scarped by rock; the third, or north gate, communicated with
-the village. Wellesley chose the last as being the most practicable for
-his purpose, although he did not blind his eyes to the fact that “the
-difficulty and labour of moving ordnance and stores from Labada would
-be very great.”
-
-From the 7th December, when the corps under Wellesley and Stevenson
-marched from Ellichpúr by different routes, till the 12th, “on which
-Colonel Stevenson broke ground near Labada, the troops in his division
-went through a series of laborious services, such as I never before
-witnessed, with the utmost cheerfulness and perseverance. The heavy
-ordnance and stores were dragged by hand over mountains, and through
-ravines, for nearly the whole distance, by roads which it had been
-previously necessary for the troops to make for themselves.”
-
-On the night of the 12th, Stevenson erected two batteries in front of
-the north face of the fort, and Wellesley one on the mountain, “under
-the southern gate.” Although firing was begun on the following morning,
-the breaches in the walls of the outer fort were not sufficiently
-large for practical purposes until the 14th. Next day, while the
-storming party was getting to work, Wellesley made two attacks from
-the southward so as to draw the enemy’s fire upon himself as much as
-possible. The north-west gate was carried, and a detachment entered
-without difficulty. Captain Campbell, with the light infantry of the
-94th, then succeeded in fixing ladders against the wall of the inner
-fort. They “escaladed the wall, opened the gate for the storming party,
-and the fort was shortly in our possession.” In a later communication
-Wellesley mentions that he never knew a place taken by storm which
-was so little plundered, “and it is but doing justice to the corps to
-declare that in an hour after having stormed that large place, they
-marched out with as much regularity as if they had been only passing
-through it.”
-
-Bhonsla Rájá had already sent his vakeel[18] to sue for peace. This
-was granted by his ceding to the Company the province of Cuttack, with
-the district of Balasore, and dismissing the European officers who
-had played so important a part in the drilling of his army. Sindhia
-also “began to be a little alarmed respecting his own situation,” and
-shortly afterwards concluded hostilities, handing over all the country
-between the Jumna and the Ganges, and several important fortresses.
-These happenings did not relieve Wellesley from active service.
-Several bands of freebooters, “the terror of the country,” consisting
-mainly of fugitive soldiers from the defeated armies, were carrying
-on lawless practices in the West Deccan. After crossing the Godavery,
-he and some of his troops marched many weary miles along bad roads,
-often at accelerated speed, in order to attack them, only to find
-that the enemy had received intelligence of their approach, probably
-from a traitor in Wellesley’s own ranks. With set purpose the General
-continued to follow where the marauders led, and eventually broke up
-the bands, securing the whole of their guns, ammunition, and baggage,
-thus depriving them of their means of warfare: “they have lost every
-thing which could enable them to subsist when collected.” Wellesley
-afterwards asserted that his chase of the freebooters was the greatest
-march he ever made.
-
-Towards the end of May 1804 Wellesley received instructions from the
-Governor-General to break up the army in the Deccan, the task of
-running to earth Holkar, the sole remaining enemy of the confederacy,
-being given to Lake. In the following month he relinquished his
-command, and after a short visit to Calcutta returned to Seringapatam.
-He had already requested that he might be allowed to leave India “when
-circumstances will permit it,” and the Commander-in-Chief had given him
-the necessary permission. He was dissatisfied because he had not been
-promoted since he became Major-General, “and I think that there appears
-a prospect of service in Europe, in which I should be more likely to
-get forward.” In addition, he was suffering from rheumatism, “for which
-living in a tent during another monsoon is not a very good remedy.” He
-sailed for the Homeland on the 10th March 1805, after six years of hard
-work, and still harder fighting, in the interests of British rule in
-India.
-
-The following contemporary pen-portrait of “the Sepoy General,”
-sketched for us by Captain Sherer, will enable us to visualize him as
-he appeared at this time:
-
-“General Wellesley was a little above the middle height, well limbed,
-and muscular; with little incumbrance of flesh beyond that which
-gives shape and manliness to the outline of the figure; with a firm
-tread, an erect carriage, a countenance strongly patrician, both in
-feature, profile, and expression, and an appearance remarkable and
-distinguished: few could approach him on any duty, or on any subject
-requiring his serious attention, without being sensible of a something
-strange and penetrating in his clear light eye. Nothing could be more
-simple and straightforward than the matter of what he uttered; nor did
-he ever in his life affect any peculiarity or pomp of manner, or rise
-to any coarse, weak loudness in his tone of voice. It was not so that
-he gave expression to excited feeling.”
-
-To what extent did the Governor-General influence his brother’s career
-in India? First of all we must understand the position of the Marquis
-Wellesley. It was naturally one of tremendous power and responsibility.
-The glamour attached to the post was sufficiently evident to the
-general public. There it ended, for it was glitter rather than gold to
-its holder. The Directors of the East India Company, ever on the side
-of rigid economy and large dividends, expressly forbade the costly
-system of conquest and annexation, yet this was necessarily the sheet
-anchor of Wellesley’s policy, as former chapters have shown. When
-pacific measures were tried and failed, it would have been disastrous
-to continue them. As it usually took over three months[19] for a
-communication from India to reach England, it follows that the same
-period was necessary for a reply. The consequences of indecision on
-the part of the Viceroy, of waiting for advice from home in matters
-requiring urgency, were therefore fraught with dire peril. On the
-other hand, if he showed too despotic tendencies he ran a grave risk
-of incurring displeasure. Indeed, this is exactly what happened, for
-Lord Wellesley was recalled in 1805 and censured by the Court of
-Proprietors. When, after thirty years, it became evident that his
-administration had been wise and not foolish, that he had carried
-out what would have had to be done eventually to establish British
-influence, the Directors relented and voted him a grant of £20,000.
-
-Fortunately there was “a barrier state” in London between the
-Governor-General and the Directors in the person of the President of
-the Board of Control, the said Board consisting of Cabinet Ministers.
-This position had been occupied since July 1802 by Lord Castlereagh,
-who, on taking office, found that Wellesley had come to the conclusion
-that resignation was better than humiliation. He did much to smooth
-over the difficulties, and from that time until Wellesley’s return to
-England Castlereagh loyally supported the Viceroy on every possible
-occasion. For instance, when the reduction of the Indian establishment
-to 10,000 troops was seriously mooted by the Directors and the Cabinet
-at home, notwithstanding the threatening attitude of the Marhattá
-confederacy, it was largely due to Castlereagh’s support of Lord
-Wellesley’s demands that so absurd a policy was prevented.
-
-The President of the Board of Control never interfered in the matter
-of patronage, knowing full well that the Governor-General on the spot
-was better able to recognize merit for the special requirements of the
-service than a man thousands of miles away. This brings us back to our
-proper subject.
-
-We have noted how Lord Mornington discerned the opportunity awaiting
-his brother in India, and how that brother reciprocated when the former
-was diffident in the matter of accepting the chief official post there.
-It is true that Wellesley was made Governor of Seringapatam over the
-head of Baird, his senior officer, but whether this appointment was due
-to the fact that Mornington influenced General Harris in the matter of
-his choice is not sufficiently evident. There is a strong suspicion
-that it was,[20] because Arthur Wellesley had only served as commander
-of the reserve, whereas Baird was the leader of the assault, and as
-such military tradition unquestionably favoured his appointment.
-
-Again, in the matter of the Batavian expedition, the Governor-General
-offered Wellesley the appointment as military commander: “The King
-has given me the power of selecting the persons who are to conduct
-this expedition; ... and a conscientious sense of duty induces me
-to think that you are the most fit person to be selected for that
-service, provided you can safely be spared from Mysore for the period
-of the expedition....” In Mornington’s opinion, “the expedition will
-be very advantageous to the naval and military commanders.” On the
-other hand, we know that when the project was abandoned for a diversion
-on the coasts of the Red Sea, he superseded his brother. One wonders
-what would have happened when Wellesley set off for Bombay without
-instructions, had he not been closely related to the Governor-General.
-The Marquis certainly did not minimize Arthur’s successes to those at
-home. Writing to Addington, then Speaker of the House of Commons, in
-October 1800, he says, “My brother Arthur has distinguished himself
-most brilliantly in an expedition against an insurgent, who had
-collected a great force of predatory cavalry--the wreck of Tippú’s
-army.” Three years later, when Addington was Prime Minister, he again
-drew attention to his brother’s achievements, as follows:--
-
-“My public duty will not permit me to be silent respecting
-Major-General Wellesley. His march from Mysore to Poona, his able
-conduct of the measures adopted for restoring the Peishwah, for
-conciliating the feudatory Mahratta chiefs who maintained their
-allegiance to the Peishwah, for preserving the dominions of the
-Nizám, and our interests at Hyderabad, combined with his sieges of
-Ahmednuggur, Burrampur, and Asseerghur, his glorious and splendid
-victories at Assaye and on the plains of Argaum, with the entire ruin
-of Sindhia’s French troops and powerful artillery in the Deccan,
-must place the name of General Wellesley among the most bright and
-distinguished characters that have adorned the military history of
-the British power in India. He is now employed in reducing the main
-fortress of Perar, and in negotiating, with the utmost judgment and
-skill, the conditions of peace. I leave his merits to your justice, and
-to the judgment of his King and country. The pride and honour of being
-allied by the nearest ties of blood to such an officer cannot absolve
-me from the obligations of my public station, as the representative
-of the supreme civil and military authority in India; and I cannot,
-therefore, omit this testimony to the merits of General Wellesley
-without a positive violation of my duty.”[21]
-
-Whatever may be thought of such glowing praise from a brother on the
-score of good taste, it evidently achieved its purpose, for before he
-left India, Arthur Wellesley was appointed an extra Knight Companion of
-the Bath and received the thanks of the King and Parliament.
-
-Earl Roberts,[22] in summing up this phase of the future Duke’s career,
-remarks: “On his arrival in India he found himself in a country where
-in almost every matter the power and influence of the Governor-General
-were supreme, and the Governor-General being his brother, he was
-quickly placed in a position of responsibility, which gave him the
-opportunity of developing his talents as a soldier and statesman in
-the best of all schools--the school of practice. It cannot be denied
-that in early life Wellington owed much to family influence,[23] and
-to a system of promotion which would now be stigmatized as jobbery.
-On the other hand, he took full advantage of every chance that was
-thrown in his way, and by his industry and capacity fully justified the
-exceptional favour with which he was treated.”
-
-With this conclusion the present writer heartily agrees; whatever Sir
-Arthur gained from his relative’s assistance was amply repaid in his
-achievements. British India owes much to the brothers Wellesley.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-Service in England, Ireland, and Denmark
-
-(1805-7)
-
- “_I am not afraid of responsibility, God knows, and I am ready to
- incur any personal risk for the public service._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-When, in 1803, the short-lived Peace of Amiens came to an end, and
-Great Britain and France again resorted to the sword, Napoleon’s first
-feat of arms was the conquest of Hanover. Thus, at the very beginning
-of the second phase of the Great War, George III found himself not only
-minus his hereditary continental possessions, but deprived of a very
-useful base for those futile military excursions so beloved of the
-British Government.
-
-That His Majesty received the tidings of his loss “with great
-magnanimity, and a real kingliness of mind,” may or may not be true.
-His ministers asserted that such was the case; considerations of policy
-would have precluded them from saying otherwise.
-
-However this may be, two months after Sir Arthur Wellesley landed in
-England, that is to say, in November 1805, he was given the command of
-a brigade in an expedition to Hanover about to be undertaken by Lord
-Cathcart. The object was to rout the comparatively few French troops
-left to garrison the country, and to co-operate with Russian, Swedish,
-and Danish troops in ridding Germany of the common enemy. The surrender
-of Mack at Ulm, and Napoleon’s wonderful victory at Austerlitz,
-although it followed within a few weeks of Nelson’s signal triumph at
-Trafalgar,[24] completely shattered this desirable object, just as
-the negotiations that followed put an end to the ambitious hopes of
-the Third Coalition. The recall of the troops before they had been
-able to carry out any of the objects of the diversion, beyond gaining
-some thousands of adherents to the rank and file, therefore became
-imperative, and was duly effected.
-
-Sir Arthur Wellesley now spent a short time in command of his brigade
-at Hastings, and he was gazetted colonel of the famous 33rd Regiment,
-which post had become vacant on the death of the venerable Marquis
-Cornwallis, his brother’s successor in India. The next important
-event in his life, if not in his career, was his marriage to the Hon.
-Catherine Pakenham, thus consummating a romance begun many years
-before,[25] and his single ambition apart from the Army. The ceremony
-was performed in Dublin on the 10th April 1806, the bridegroom being
-nearly thirty-seven years of age. One wishes it were possible to add
-that “they lived happy ever after.” Biography, the twin sister of
-History, tells us that it was not so, and Gleig suggests that a broken
-engagement with a second suitor, of which Wellesley was not informed
-on his return from India, was partly the cause.[26] Two days after the
-wedding Wellesley was elected Member of Parliament for Rye, his main
-object in seeking political distinction being that he might defend
-his brother’s administration in India, where his system of making
-recalcitrant States subsidiary to England, whilst retaining their own
-rulers, was the subject of an embittered attack. The “high crimes and
-misdemeanours” alleged against Lord Wellesley were referred to from
-time to time, but on the 17th March 1808, the following motion was
-carried by 182 votes against 31: “That it appears to this House that
-the Marquis Wellesley, in his arrangements in the province of Oude,
-was actuated by an ardent zeal for the service of his country, and an
-anxious desire to promote the safety, interests, and prosperity of the
-British Empire in India.” This did not altogether end the unsavoury
-affair, for another unsuccessful attempt to incriminate the statesman
-was made some time later.
-
-Sir Arthur was by this time Chief Secretary for Ireland, having
-been appointed in the previous year. Once again we see two members
-of this distinguished family holding prominent appointments, for
-Henry Wellesley became one of the Secretaries to the Treasury in the
-newly-appointed Portland ministry.
-
-Barrington, whose acquaintance we have already made, relates an
-interesting anecdote of the soldier at this time. He met Lord
-Castlereagh, accompanied by a gentleman, in the Strand. “His lordship
-stopped me,” he writes, “whereat I was rather surprised, as we had not
-met for some time; he spoke very kindly, smiled, and asked if I had
-forgotten my old friend, Sir Arthur Wellesley? whom I discovered in his
-companion, but looking so sallow and wan, and with every mark of what
-is called a worn-out man, that I was truly concerned at his appearance.
-But he soon recovered his health and looks, and went as the Duke of
-Richmond’s[27] secretary to Ireland, where he was in all material
-traits still Sir Arthur Wellesley, but it was Sir Arthur Wellesley
-judiciously improved. He had not forgotten his friends, nor did he
-forget himself. He said that he had accepted the office of secretary
-only on the terms that it should not impede or interfere with his
-military pursuits; and what he said proved true....”
-
-Obviously his duties in Ireland bear no comparison with those he so
-successfully undertook in India, but following his own maxim, “to do
-the business of the day in the day,” he got through a vast amount of
-routine labour, frequently important, sometimes trivial. Under the
-former head we must put his investigation of the military defences of
-the island. It must not be forgotten that although the invasion of the
-United Kingdom by Napoleon was no longer a standing menace, there was
-always a likelihood of its resurrection, and Ireland was the danger
-zone.
-
-The Peace of Tilsit, signed between France and Russia on the 7th July
-1807, and between France and Prussia on the 9th of the same month,
-was a most serious blow to British interests. By a secret treaty the
-Emperor Alexander undertook to aid Napoleon against England if that
-Power refused to make peace within a certain period, to recognize the
-equality of all nations at sea, and to hand back the conquests made by
-her since 1805. As a bait--it really savoured of insult--Great Britain
-was to be offered Hanover. Should she refuse these terms the Autocrats
-of France and of Russia agreed to compel Denmark, Sweden, and Portugal
-to join them in a vast naval confederacy against Great Britain, and
-to close their ports against her. In addition, the reigning monarchs
-of Spain and Portugal were to be deposed in favour of the Bonaparte
-family. For his connivance in the matter Alexander was to be handsomely
-compensated in the Ottoman Empire and by territorial acquisitions in
-Western Europe.
-
-Fortunately, or otherwise, according to the point of view, the British
-Cabinet was put in possession of certain facts regarding these
-plans. Canning, who was Minister for Foreign Affairs, realizing the
-responsibilities of his unenviable position, as also of that of his
-country, determined to forestall the plotters. He felt that some kind
-of arrangement with Denmark was essential, especially as the Prince
-Regent of Portugal had communicated news to the effect that Napoleon
-purposed to invade England with the Portuguese and Danish fleets.
-Canning suggested to Denmark that her fleet should be put in the safe
-custody of England until peace was restored. In addition, he promised
-a subsidy of £100,000, and the assistance of troops should Denmark be
-attacked. Mr F. J. Jackson was sent to open negotiations; the Prince
-Royal promptly vetoed them. “I stated plainly,” says Jackson, “that I
-was ordered to demand the junction of the Danish fleet with that of
-England, and that in case of refusal it was the determination of His
-Majesty to enforce it.”
-
-Lord Cathcart was put in command of an army of 27,000 troops, the
-naval portion of the expedition being placed in the hands of Admiral
-Gambier. No sooner had Sir Arthur Wellesley heard of the project than
-he communicated with Castlereagh, then at the War Office and ever his
-staunch supporter, for an opportunity to take part. He was given charge
-of a division. On the 3rd August a formidable array of twenty-five
-sail-of-the-line and over fifty gunboats and transports appeared off
-Elsinore. Gambier and Cathcart were told by Jackson “that it now
-rested with them to carry out the measure prescribed by the British
-Government.” In a letter to his brother the diplomatist adds, “The
-Danes must, I think, soon surrender, for they are without any hopes
-of succour, are unfurnished with any effectual means of resistance,
-and are almost in total want of the necessaries of life, as far as I
-could learn or was able to see for myself during my few hours’ stay
-there.[28] There were no droves of cattle or flocks of sheep; no
-provisions of any sort being sent in the direction of the city. No
-troops marching towards the town; no guns mounted on the ramparts; no
-embrasures cut, in fact, no preparations of any sort. What the Danes
-chiefly rely on is the defence by water. They brought out this morning
-several _praams_[29] and floating batteries, and cut away one or two of
-the buoys.
-
-“The garrison of Copenhagen does not amount to more than four thousand
-regular troops. The _landwehr_ is a mere rabble, as indeed all _levées
-en masse_ must be.
-
-“The people are said to be anxious to capitulate before a conflagration
-takes place, which must happen soon after a bombardment begins, when,
-not improbably, the fleet as well as the city will become a prey to the
-flames.”
-
-Jackson’s prophecy came true, but against his statement that the army
-disembarked at Veldbeck “in grand style,” we must set that of Captain
-Napier: “I never saw any fair in Ireland so confused as the landing;
-had the enemy opposed us, the _remains_ of the army would have been on
-their way to England.”[30] Wellesley’s first affray--it can scarcely
-be termed a battle--took place at Roskilde. Like almost everything
-connected with the expedition, Jackson has something to say about
-it, and that “something” in this particular instance is anything but
-complimentary. “Sir Arthur Wellesley,” he tells his wife, “has had an
-affair which you will probably see blazoned forth in an extraordinary
-_Gazette_. With about four thousand men he attacked a Danish corps of
-armed peasantry, and killed and wounded about nine hundred men, besides
-taking upwards of fifteen hundred prisoners, amongst whom were sixty
-officers. One was a General officer. I spoke to him this morning,
-for he and his officers are let off on their parole. The men are on
-board prison ships, and miserable wretches they are, fit for nothing
-but following the plough. They wear red and green striped woollen
-jackets, and wooden _sabots_. Their long lank hair hangs over their
-shoulders, and gives to their rugged features a wild expression. The
-knowing ones say that after the first fire they threw away their arms,
-hoping, without them, to escape the pursuit of our troops. In fact,
-the _battle_ was not a very glorious one, but this you will keep for
-yourself.”[31]
-
-Wellesley himself afterwards referred to the event as “the little
-battle at Kiöge,” and mentioned that “the Danes had made but a
-poor resistance; indeed, I believe they were only new raised
-men--militia.”[32]
-
-The bombardment of Copenhagen began on the 2nd September 1807, and
-concluded three days later, when an armistice was granted in order
-that terms might be discussed. On the 7th, Copenhagen capitulated.
-The conditions imposed by Sir Arthur Wellesley, Sir Home Popham, and
-Lieutenant-Colonel Murray were that the British should occupy the
-citadel and dockyards for six weeks, and take possession of the ships
-and naval stores. Their troops would then evacuate Zealand. “I might
-have carried our terms higher ... had not our troops been needed at
-home,” Wellesley writes to Canning. The various clauses were carried
-out, and fifteen sail-of-the-line, fifteen frigates, and thirty-one
-smaller vessels of the Danish fleet, as well as 20,000 tons of naval
-stores, were escorted to England. “That the attack was necessary,” says
-a recent historian, “no one will now deny. England was fighting for her
-existence; and, however disagreeable was the task of striking a weak
-neutral, she risked her own safety if she left in Napoleon’s hand a
-fleet of such proportions. In Count Vandal’s words, she ‘merely broke,
-before he had seized it, the weapon which Napoleon had determined to
-make his own.’”[33] Dr J. Holland Rose disapproves, and points out
-that “In one respect our action was unpardonable: it was not the last
-desperate effort of a long period of struggle: it came after a time of
-selfish torpor fatal alike to our reputation and the interests of our
-allies. After protesting their inability to help them, Ministers belied
-their own words by the energy with which they acted against a small
-State.”[34]
-
-Canning’s hope for an alliance with Sweden, in order to keep open the
-Baltic, was destined never to be fulfilled. Sir John Moore was sent to
-assist Gustavus in his efforts to resist the attacks of Russia, but
-the nation deserted the King, deposed him, and joined Napoleon. War
-speedily broke out between Sweden and Denmark, and also between the
-latter and Great Britain. The Czar’s overtures to England on behalf of
-France, as arranged at Tilsit, came to nothing. He was not anxious for
-them to have any other ending, so enraptured was he with Napoleon’s
-grandiloquent schemes. Enraptured? Yes, but only for a few short years.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-The First Battles of the Peninsular War
-
-(1808)
-
- “_In war _men_ are nothing: it is a _man_ who is everything._”
-
- NAPOLEON.
-
-
-On his return from Copenhagen, Wellesley, never happy unless his mind
-was fully occupied, resumed his duties as Chief Secretary for Ireland.
-Special mention of the services he had rendered to his country was made
-in the House of Commons, and there was some talk of a second period in
-India, where affairs were far from settled. Before long, however, it
-became increasingly evident that his knowledge and ability would be
-required nearer home.
-
-[Illustration: WELLINGTON’S PENINSULAR CAMPAIGNS.]
-
-Portugal, our old ally, had been forced by Napoleon to declare war
-against Great Britain on the 20th October 1807. Bent on pursuing
-the rigid restrictions on trade imposed by his Continental System,
-he had also peremptorily ordered the confiscation of the property
-of the British merchants. Fortunately for those most concerned, the
-Prince Regent remembered past friendship and may have discerned future
-possibilities. He temporized, and this enabled many of the English
-residents to settle their affairs and sail for home before the Dictator
-could enforce obedience. The sequel was the overrunning of the
-kingdom by French troops under the intrepid Junot, who met with no
-resistance, and the desertion of their subjects by the Royal Family,
-who sailed for Brazil.
-
-Although this plan was carried out at the earnest request of the
-British Government, as represented by Lord Strangford, the Ambassador
-at the Portuguese Capital, it cannot be regarded as a pleasing example
-of patriotism on the part of the House of Braganza.
-
-In October 1807, Junot, in command of the French Army, and strengthened
-by a few regiments of the Spanish corps placed at Napoleon’s disposal
-for the dismemberment of the western portion of the Iberian Peninsula,
-began his march on Lisbon. He concluded it on the 30th November with
-only 1500 troops, the remainder following slowly by reason of the
-terrible sufferings they had endured during a forced march made at
-Napoleon’s urgent behest.
-
-Here it should be mentioned that the presence of the Spanish troops
-was due to the infamous Treaty of Fontainebleau, signed the previous
-October. In this arrangement the Emperor had promised Godoy, the
-real ruler of Spain and an intensely ambitious man, a large slice of
-territory in the country about to be conquered in return for favours
-rendered. It is more than probable that Napoleon never intended this
-particular clause to be taken seriously by anyone but his dupe; the
-gift was so much dust thrown in the eyes of the favourite for the
-purpose of securing the entry of French troops into Spain.[35] In this
-he was pre-eminently successful. Once in Lisbon Junot speedily removed
-any fear of the national army by breaking up many of the regiments and
-sending the remainder on service outside the kingdom. The flames of
-rebellion were not yet kindled. So far so good.
-
-Unhappily the chief prizes which the Emperor had hoped to secure at
-Lisbon were beyond his reach. Even the squadron which was to have
-seized the Portuguese and British shipping in the harbour was held in
-check by the hated English.
-
-Napoleon, pretending to be the friend of Spain, was in reality her
-worst enemy. He merely used her as a useful tool to pick Portuguese
-locks, and then pursued the same course with his friend’s lockers.
-He began his unwelcome attentions by seizing the important frontier
-fortresses of Pampeluna, Barcelona, San Sebastian, and Figueras, and
-invading the country by a force which speedily numbered 116,000 men,
-mostly conscripts, for he thought the country easy prey. Murat entered
-Madrid as Junot had entered Lisbon. By the most unscrupulous methods,
-namely, the enforced abdication of Charles IV and his son Ferdinand,
-the Emperor secured the throne, permanently as he fondly imagined, for
-his brother Joseph, King of Naples.
-
-In July 1808 the eldest Bonaparte was proclaimed King, and entered his
-capital. Within a month he found it desirable to retire behind the
-Ebro; his subjects had not only broken into open revolt, but a French
-army of over 17,000 troops under Dupont had been forced to capitulate
-at Baylen, in Andalusia. Riots, assassinations, and massacres made it
-evident that the Spanish temper was considerably more dangerous than
-that of the Portuguese; it soon became obvious, moreover, that the
-people had employed some of their time in organizing, on a necessarily
-rough and ready principle, such forces as they possessed.
-
-The inhabitants of the Asturias, in the north, were the first of the
-provincials to apply the torch to the tinder of revolt, after a riot in
-Madrid on the 2nd May 1808, and its Junta General called into being a
-levy of 18,000 men to protect the principality. It sent two deputies to
-England for assistance, which was readily given in money and military
-stores. Other provinces likewise selected Juntas, and Galicia also
-dispatched representatives to plead its cause in London. Galicia,
-adjoining the Asturias on the west, lost little time in following the
-warlike example of its neighbours, and the arsenals of Coruña and
-Ferrol, made memorable by the Trafalgar campaign, threw in their lot
-against Napoleon and contributed no fewer than thirty-two battalions of
-regulars and militia to the general forces. Leon and Old Castile also
-rose in rebellion, though with less energy. There were too many French
-in the Basque Provinces and Navarre for much to be attempted there.
-Coming still farther to the east, Catalonia sheltered 16,000 regulars
-and many irregular levies, but Aragon, Valencia, and Murcia were very
-weak. Andalusia, in the extreme south of the country, was almost as
-fortunately placed with regard to troops as Galicia, and the remains of
-the French fleet which had escaped Nelson and Collingwood were taken as
-they rode in Cadiz harbour.
-
-There was nothing approaching united action, provinces and towns often
-vieing in more or less friendly rivalry. They did not understand, or
-if they understood they did not realize, that patriotic cliques do
-not make for strength. They fought for themselves rather than for the
-nation as a whole. Throughout the struggle we find a lack of cohesion.
-
-When we come to look at the earliest available statistics[36] of the
-various Spanish armies which formed the front line, we find that their
-total strength in regulars, militia battalions, and newly-raised corps
-was 151,248. They were divided into five chief armies, namely, of
-Galicia, Aragon, Estremadura, the Centre, and Catalonia, under Generals
-Blake, Palafox, Galluzzo, Castaños, and Vives respectively. The troops
-of the second line numbered about 65,000, and included the Army of
-Granada, under Reding, the Army of Reserve of Madrid, commanded by San
-Juan, the Galician, Asturian, Estremaduran, Andalusian, Murcian and
-Valencian reserves, and the 3000 odd men in garrison in the Balearic
-Isles.
-
-The gross total of the French Army of Spain at this period dwarfs the
-above figures for all their brave show; it reached 314,612. From this
-must be deducted 32,643 detached troops and 37,844 in hospital or
-missing, making the “effective” no fewer than 244,125. Of the eight
-corps, Victor commanded the 1st, Bessières[37] the 2nd, Moncey the
-3rd, Lefebvre the 4th, Mortier the 5th, Ney the 6th, St Cyr the 7th,
-and Junot the 8th. There were also Reserve Cavalry and Infantry, the
-Imperial Guard, troops marching from Germany, and National Guards
-inside the French frontier.[38]
-
-When we consider that on the 31st May 1808 Napoleon had only 116,000
-men in Spain and that within six months he had found it necessary to
-more than double that number, the desperate nature of the undertaking
-becomes plain.
-
-To enter fully into the doings of the various armies throughout the war
-would deflect us far out of our proper course, but we shall hear of
-them whenever Wellesley was involved.
-
-If you would know the ferocious spirit of the patriots, the hate they
-cherished for Napoleon and the French, you have only to turn to any one
-of the many Memoirs of men who fought in the Peninsular War. Captain,
-later Sir Harry, Smith, who was with Sir John Moore in 1808 and
-remained with Wellesley until March 1814, gives many instances in his
-vivacious “Autobiography,”[39] but the following must suffice. Smith’s
-guide happened to be the owner of the house in which his wife and
-baggage were quartered in the village of Offala:
-
-“After I had dressed myself,” he relates, “he came to me and said,
-‘When you dine, I have some capital wine, as much as you and your
-servants like; but,’ he says, ‘come down and look at my cellar.’ The
-fellow had been so civil, I did not like to refuse him. We descended by
-a stone staircase, he carrying a light. He had upon his countenance a
-most sinister expression. I saw something exceedingly excited him: his
-look became fiend-like. He and I were alone, but such confidence had we
-Englishmen in a Spaniard, and with the best reason, that I apprehended
-no personal evil. Still his appearance was very singular. When we got
-to the cellar-door, he opened it, and held the light so as to show
-the cellar; when, in a voice of thunder, and with an expression of
-demoniacal hatred and antipathy, pointing to the floor, he exclaimed,
-‘There lie four of the devils who thought to subjugate Spain! I am a
-Navarrese. I was born free from all foreign invasion, and this right
-hand shall plunge this stiletto in my own heart as it did into theirs,
-ere I and my countrymen are subjugated!’ brandishing his weapon like
-a demon. I see the excited patriot as I write. Horror-struck as I
-was, the instinct of self-preservation induced me to admire the deed
-exceedingly, while my very frame quivered and my blood was frozen,
-to see the noble science of war and the honour and chivalry of arms
-reduced to the practices of midnight assassins. Upon the expression
-of my admiration, he cooled, and while he was deliberately drawing
-wine for my dinner, which, however strange it may be, I drank with
-the gusto its flavour merited, I examined the four bodies. They were
-Dragoons--four athletic, healthy-looking fellows. As we ascended, he
-had perfectly recovered the equilibrium of his vivacity and naturally
-good humour. I asked him how he, single-handed, had perpetrated this
-deed on four armed men (for their swords were by their sides). ‘Oh,
-easily enough. I pretended to love a Frenchman’ (or, in his words,
-‘I was an Afrancesado’), ‘and I proposed, after giving them a good
-dinner, we should drink to the extermination of the English.’ He then
-looked at me and ground his teeth. ‘The French rascals, they little
-guessed what I contemplated. Well, we got into the cellar, and drank
-away until I made them so drunk, they fell, and my purpose was easily,
-and as joyfully, effected.’ He again brandished his dagger, and said,
-‘Thus die all enemies to Spain.’ Their horses were in his stable. When
-the French Regiment marched off, he gave these to some guerrillas in
-the neighbourhood. It is not difficult to reconcile with truth the
-assertion of the historian who puts down the loss of the French army,
-during the Spanish war, as 400,000 men, for more men fell in this
-midnight manner than by the broad-day sword, or the pestilence of
-climate, which in Spain, in the autumn, is excessive.”
-
-[Illustration: Sir Harry Smith and the Spanish Patriot
-
-Thomas Maybank]
-
-That there was considerable cause for complaint on the part of the
-Spaniards is also borne out by other eye-witnesses. Napier records that
-a captain and his company came across a peasant’s hut and demanded
-provisions, as was their wont. The father explained that his children
-were half-starving, and he had but little food left. He was told that
-he would be hanged to a beam. Should he give a sign that he repented of
-his decision he would be cut down, but not otherwise. He was strung up
-without further ado. Then the cries of his wife and children overcame
-his noble act of self-sacrifice, and he was released. The soldiers
-then took every scrap of food in the miserable dwelling and departed.
-A similar method was adopted by a second body of plunderers, and
-when they could find nothing they spitefully killed the poor fellow,
-doubtless on the charge that he was hiding his stock.
-
-Robert Blakeney, in noticing that most writers have referred to the
-Spanish army as “ragged, half-famished wretches,” cautions us that
-the men themselves must not be blamed for their unkempt appearance.
-“The scandal and disgrace,” he writes, “were the legitimate attributes
-of the Spanish Government. The members of the Cortez and Juntas were
-entirely occupied in peculation, amassing wealth for themselves and
-appointing their relatives and dependents to all places of power and
-emolument, however unworthy and unqualified; and although it was
-notorious that shiploads of arms, equipments, clothing, and millions
-of dollars were sent from England for the use and maintenance of the
-Spanish troops, yet all was appropriated to themselves by the members
-of the general or local governments or their rapacious satellites,
-while their armies were left barefoot, ragged and half-starved. In
-this deplorable state they were brought into the field under leaders,
-many of whom were scarcely competent to command a sergeant’s outlying
-piquet; for in the Spanish army, as elsewhere, such was the undue
-influence of a jealous and covetous aristocracy, that, unsupported
-by their influence, personal gallantry and distinction, however
-conspicuous, were but rarely rewarded.”[40] The same officer, who
-joined the 28th Regiment as a boy of fifteen and saw much service in
-the Peninsular War, assures us that “Courage was never wanting to the
-Spanish soldiers; but confidence in their chiefs was rare.”[41]
-
-An expedition against the American colonies of Spain had been mooted
-several times by the British Cabinet, and Sir Arthur Wellesley had
-reported on ways and means. The scheme had developed sufficiently for
-some 8000 troops to be assembled at Cork preparatory to embarking for
-the voyage. It was finally decided that the troops should be used for
-a descent on Portugal, with the immediate intention of expelling the
-French and raising the enthusiasm of the population against Napoleon.
-
-The force sailed on the 12th July 1808 with Wellesley, now a
-Lieutenant-General, in command.
-
-John Wilson Croker, who served his country as Secretary to the
-Admiralty from 1809 to 1830, dined with Sir Arthur and Lady Wellesley
-in Harley Street on the evening before the General set out for Cork.
-After settling some business connected with Ireland, Wellesley “seemed
-to lapse into a kind of reverie,” his guest informs us, “and remained
-silent so long that I asked him what he was thinking of. He replied,
-‘Why, to say the truth, I am thinking of the French that I am going to
-fight. I have not seen them since the campaign in Flanders, when they
-were capital soldiers, and a dozen years of victory under Buonaparte
-must have made them better still. They have besides, it seems, a new
-system of strategy, which has out-manœuvred and overwhelmed all the
-armies of Europe. ’Tis enough to make one thoughtful; but no matter:
-my die is cast, they may overwhelm me, but I don’t think they will
-out-manœuvre me. First, because I am not afraid of them, as everybody
-else seems to be; and secondly, because if what I hear of their system
-of manœuvres be true, I think it a false one as against steady troops.
-I suspect all the continental armies were more than half beaten before
-the battle was begun. I, at least, will not be frightened beforehand.”
-
-Wellesley made the voyage to Portugal in a fast frigate, and landed
-at Coruña on the 20th July 1808, ahead of his troops. This gave him
-sufficient time to make a preliminary study of the situation at first
-hand, and to be ready for immediate operations on the arrival of his
-men.
-
-The first news he received was not encouraging, for it told of the
-battle of Medina de Rio Seco, which Bessières had won against the Army
-of Galicia on the 14th July. A little relief was afforded by rumours
-of success elsewhere, and “the arrival of the British money,” speedily
-renewed the flagging spirits of the patriots who were fighting under
-such adverse conditions.
-
-The Junta of Galicia, while keenly appreciative of gold, ammunition,
-and arms, showed no disposition to avail themselves of the Commander’s
-services, and suggested his landing in the north of Portugal as
-the government of Oporto was collecting native troops in that
-neighbourhood. “The difference between any two men,” Wellesley writes
-on the 21st July, the day before he sailed from Coruña, “is whether
-the one is a better or a worse Spaniard, and the better Spaniard is
-the one who detests the French most heartily. I understand that there
-is actually no French party in the country; and at all events I am
-convinced that no man now dares to show that he is a friend to the
-French.”
-
-To sum up the situation was not an arduous task for Wellesley. He came
-to the conclusion without further ado that the only reasonable way to
-assist the Spaniards was “to get possession of and organize a good army
-in Portugal.” He proceeded to the fleet off Cape Finisterre, spent a
-few hours there, and then went to Oporto, where he had an important
-conference with the Bishop, who was also head of the Portuguese Junta,
-and a number of military officers. It was eventually decided that about
-5300 troops, chiefly infantry, stationed at Coimbra under Bernardino
-Freire, should be used to co-operate with Wellesley, and that the
-remaining forces, namely, 12,000 peasants, should either be employed
-in the neighbourhood or in the province of Tras os Montes, where a
-French attack seemed probable. Finally a spot in Mondego Bay was chosen
-as the most suitable point for disembarkation, especially as it had
-the additional advantage of being near Coimbra. On the 1st August the
-business commenced, tiresome, and not unattended by danger because of
-the heavy surf.
-
-Wellesley had much to think about while this was proceeding. He had
-just received the amazing news that he had been superseded by Sir
-Hew Dalrymple, with Sir Harry Burrard as second in command, that Sir
-John Moore was on his way with 10,000 men, and that he (Wellesley) and
-Lieut.-Generals the Hon. J. Hope, Sir E. Paget, and Mackenzie Frazer
-were to command divisions. Whatever agitation the new arrangements may
-have occasioned Wellesley, he did not allow it to shake his purpose or
-lessen his enthusiasm for the cause he had now so much at heart. He
-writes to Castlereagh, “Whether I am to command the army or not, or
-am to quit it, I shall do my best to insure its success; and you may
-depend upon it that I shall not hurry the operations, or commence them
-one moment sooner than they ought to be commenced, in order that I may
-acquire the credit of the success. The Government will determine for
-me what way they will employ me hereafter, whether here or elsewhere.”
-He then goes on to sketch a campaign suitable for an army “of 30,000
-Portuguese troops, which might be easily raised at an early period; and
-20,000 British, including 4000 or 5000 cavalry.”
-
-“The weather was so rough and stormy,” writes one of the soldiers of
-the 71st Regiment, “that we were not all landed until the 5th. On our
-leaving the ship, each man got four pound of biscuit, and four pound
-of salt beef cooked on board. We marched, for twelve miles, up to the
-knees in sand, which caused us to suffer much from thirst; for the
-marching made it rise and cover us. We lost four men of our regiment,
-who died of thirst. We buried them where they fell. At night we came to
-our camp ground [Lugar], in a wood, where we found plenty of water, to
-us more acceptable than anything besides on earth. We here built large
-huts, and remained four days. We again commenced our march alongst
-the coast, towards Lisbon. In our advance, we found all the villages
-deserted, except by the old and destitute....”
-
-On the night of the 8th, General Spencer and his corps of 4500 men
-joined Wellesley from Cadiz, where he had landed at the request of
-the Junta of Seville. By the 11th the whole army had arrived at
-Leiria, and on the following day it was augmented by 2300 of Freire’s
-Portuguese troops, their commander refusing point blank to march with
-his remaining forces unless certain impossible demands were met. “My
-object,” writes Wellesley, “is to obtain possession of Lisbon, and to
-that I must adhere, whatever may be the consequences, till I shall have
-attained it, as being the first and greatest step towards dispossessing
-the French of Portugal.”
-
-Meanwhile, Junot had sent instructions to Generals Loison and Delaborde
-to effect a junction and attack Wellesley. This was prevented by the
-timely arrival of the British troops at Leiria, for the former was
-some sixteen miles to the south-east and the latter about the same
-distance to the south-west. Wellesley was consequently between them.
-This necessitated Loison’s return to the southward if he wished to join
-Delaborde, and the British General determined to prevent the operation.
-On the 14th, Wellesley was at Alcobaço, from whence the French had
-retreated but a few hours before.
-
-Although a small engagement took place near Obidos, Wellesley did not
-offer battle until two days later because his whole force had not yet
-come up. The conflict occurred at Roliça, where Delaborde’s army was
-awaiting him on a hill. We know that the allied force totalled 15,000;
-the strength of the enemy is uncertain, Wellesley believing it to be
-6000, while Professor Oman[42] gives the figure as “about 4350 men,”
-basing his conclusion on known official returns previous to the fight
-and making allowance for probable losses by sickness.
-
-“On the morning of the 17th,” says the eye-witness already quoted, “we
-were under arms an hour before day. Half an hour after sunrise, we
-observed the enemy in a wood. We received orders to retreat. Having
-fallen back about two miles, we struck to the right, in order to come
-upon their flank, whilst the 9th, 29th, and 5th battalion of the 60th,
-attacked them in front. They had a very strong position on a hill. The
-29th advanced up the hill, not perceiving an ambush of the enemy, which
-they had placed on each side of the road. As soon as the 29th was right
-between them, they gave a volley, which killed, or wounded, every man
-in the grenadier company, except seven. Unmindful of their loss, the
-regiment drove on, and carried the entrenchments.[43] The engagement
-lasted until about four o’clock, when the enemy gave way. We continued
-the pursuit, till darkness put a stop to it. The 71st had only one
-man killed and one wounded. We were manœuvring all day, to turn their
-flank; so that our fatigue was excessive, though our loss was but
-small.”
-
-Such was the battle of Roliça, Wellesley’s first victory over the
-French. He was perfectly satisfied with the fighting and moral
-qualities of his men as displayed in this engagement.
-
-“I cannot sufficiently applaud the conduct of the troops throughout
-this action,” he tells Castlereagh. Although he had a superiority of
-strength, the number of soldiers “actually employed in the heat of the
-action,” namely, 4635, was, “from unfavourable circumstances ... by
-no means equal to that of the enemy.” The returns showed 479 British
-killed, wounded, and missing, and the French about 600.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-Victory Abroad, and Displeasure at Home
-
-(1808-9)
-
- “_From the sublime to the ridiculous is but a step._”
-
- NAPOLEON.
-
-
-With a mere handful of soldiers, Junot, big with ideas of a future
-kingship, and underestimating the strength and fighting powers of the
-enemy, left Lisbon and entered the field against Wellesley, whose
-troops were now encamped at Vimiero to cover the landing of 4000
-additional men under Generals Anstruther and Acland. Having joined
-forces with the unfortunate Loison and Delaborde and thereby brought up
-the total strength of his army to 13,056 men, the Marshal prepared to
-attack.
-
-Wellesley, who had over 18,000 troops, including 2000 Portuguese, was
-well prepared, nay eager, for the encounter, but, unfortunately for
-him, Burrard arrived on the evening of the 20th August. When Wellesley
-explained to him his scheme of operations he showed no disposition to
-fall in with it. Wellesley had wished Sir John Moore to proceed to
-Lisbon by land in order to cut off Junot’s retreat, but the less-active
-Burrard would have none of it, and ordered him to wait until Moore’s
-arrival. “Whether we advance or not,” replied the General, “we shall
-have to fight. For the French will certainly attack us if we do not
-attack them.”
-
-This prophecy was fulfilled about 8 o’clock on the morning of the
-21st August 1808, when squadrons of the enemy’s cavalry appeared. An
-attack was made on the British advanced guard. The French were driven
-back at the point of the bayonet, while other troops, stationed in the
-churchyard of Vimiero, prevented them from reaching the village of that
-name, and Acland’s brigade attacked them in flank. “A most desperate
-contest” was necessary before the enemy recoiled in confusion, during
-which they lost heavily in killed and wounded, and in _material_
-seven pieces of cannon. Other French troops, supported by a large
-body of cavalry, turned their attention to the heights on the road to
-Lourinhão, where Ferguson’s brigade was stationed. The latter charged
-with praiseworthy coolness, and again there was a tale of disaster to
-tell when the enemy fell back, while half a dozen guns were captured.
-An attempt to recover part of the lost artillery resulted in the French
-being obliged to retire “with great loss.”
-
-Burrard, who had slept on the vessel which had brought him out, did
-not arrive on the field till late in the day, and took no part in
-the direction of the battle until Wellesley wished to pursue the
-enemy to Torres Vedras and cut them off from Lisbon. “Sir Harry,” he
-said, “now is your time to advance, the enemy is completely beaten,
-and we shall be in Lisbon in three days.” This his senior officer
-absolutely forbade. Had the former been allowed to follow his own
-wishes he believed that, “in all probability, the whole would have
-been destroyed.” As it was, at least 1800 of the enemy were rendered
-_hors de combat_, including 300 or 400 troops who were made prisoners.
-The British lost in killed and missing 186 men, and 534 were wounded.
-The General was again delighted with the behaviour of his men, and in
-communicating with the Duke of York, he averred that “this is the
-only action I have ever been in, in which every thing passed as it was
-directed and no mistake was made by any of the Officers charged with
-its conduct.”
-
-One splendid incident, one altogether human touch, affords relief
-to the story of the battle of Vimiero. A piper of the gallant 71st
-Highlanders, severely wounded in the thigh and deeply in need of
-surgical aid, continued to blow his pibroch for the encouragement of
-his colleagues, until exhaustion finally conquered his determined
-spirit. Seated on the ground he declared that “the lads should nae
-want music to their wark,” and went on with his weird music as though
-parading within the walls of Edinburgh Castle.
-
-“I afterwards saw him,” relates Lieut.-General Sir William Warre, “in
-a hovel, where we collected the wounded ... both French and English. I
-shook him by the hand, and told him I was very sorry to see so fine a
-fellow so badly hurt; he answered, ‘Indeed, captain, I fear I am done
-for, but there are some of those poor fellows,’ pointing to the French,
-‘who are very bad indeed.’”
-
-Such coolness, typified in successive instances, although not always
-under such conditions,[44] has made our Empire what it is to-day. The
-“common” British soldier, sowing the highway with his bones, enables a
-later generation to reap a golden harvest.
-
-[Illustration: The Gallant Piper at Vimiera
-
-Thomas Maybank]
-
-It is due to the French to record that they were not without men
-equally as cool as Piper Mackay. A typical example is furnished by
-Major Ross-Lewin, who fought in the 32nd, and it occurred immediately
-after the battle of Vimiero:
-
-“An officer of my regiment,” he relates, “happened to pass near an old
-French soldier, who was seated by the roadside, covered with dust,
-and desperately wounded; a cannon-shot had taken off both his feet
-just above the ankles, but his legs were so swollen that his wounds
-bled but little. On seeing the officer, the poor fellow addressed him,
-saying, ‘_Monsieur, je vous conjure donnez moi mes pieds_.’ and at the
-same time pointed to his feet, which lay on the road beyond his reach.
-His request met with a ready compliance. The pale, toilworn features of
-the veteran brightened up for an instant on receiving these mutilated
-members, which had borne him through many a weary day, and which it
-grieved him to see trampled on by the victorious troops that passed;
-and then, as if prepared to meet his fast-approaching fate becomingly,
-by the attainment of this one poor wish, he laid them tranquilly
-beside him, and, with a look of resignation, and the words, ‘_Je suis
-content_,’ seemed to settle himself for death.”
-
-Many years afterwards, when in a reminiscent mood, the Duke of
-Wellington recapitulated the events of the 21st August 1808. “The
-French,” he told his guests, “came on at Vimiero with more confidence,
-and seemed to _feel their way_ less than [smiling] I always found them
-to do _afterwards_. They came on in their usual way, in a very heavy
-column, and I received them in line, which they were not accustomed to,
-and we repulsed them there several times, and at last they went off
-beaten on all points, while I had half the army untouched and ready to
-pursue; but Sir H. Burrard--who had joined the army in about the middle
-of the battle, but seeing all doing so well, had desired me to continue
-in the command now that he considered the battle as won, though I
-thought it but half done--resolved to push it no further. I begged very
-hard that he would go on, but he said enough had been done. Indeed,
-if he had come earlier, the battle would not have taken place at all,
-for when I waited on him on board the frigate in the bay the evening
-before, he desired me to suspend all operations, and said he would do
-nothing till he had collected all the force which he knew to be on the
-way. He had heard of Moore’s arrival, but the French luckily resolving
-to attack us, led to a different result. I came from the frigate about
-nine at night, and went to my own quarters with the army, which, from
-the nearness of the enemy, I naturally kept on the alert. In the dead
-of the night a fellow came in--a German sergeant, or quartermaster--in
-a great fright--so great that his hair seemed actually to stand on
-end--who told me that the enemy was advancing rapidly, and would be
-soon on us. I immediately sent round to the generals to order them
-to get the troops under arms, and soon after the dawn of day we
-were vigorously attacked. The enemy were first met by the (50th ?),
-not a good-looking regiment, but devilish steady, who received them
-admirably, and brought them to a full stop immediately, and soon drove
-them back; they then tried two other attacks ... one very serious,
-through a valley on our left; but they were defeated everywhere, and
-completely repulsed, and in full retreat by noon, so that we had time
-enough to have _finished them_ if I could have persuaded Sir H. Burrard
-to go on.”
-
-On the day following the battle of Vimiero, Dalrymple arrived.
-While pondering over the situation he received a proposal for an
-armistice from Junot, which developed into the Convention of Cintra,
-preliminarily signed on the 30th August 1808. The most important
-conditions were--the surrender of all places and forts in Portugal
-occupied by the French troops, the evacuation of the country, and the
-transport of the army, its munitions and “property,” to France in
-British ships. By a strange oversight the important question of future
-service was overlooked, consequently there was nothing to prevent an
-early return of the troops to the Peninsula should Napoleon think fit
-for them to do so.
-
-We have now to consider Wellesley’s part in this much discussed
-transaction. The Convention was definitely signed on the 30th August
-1808, but previous to this a meeting of the General Officers was
-called to deliberate upon it. “The result of the meeting,” Wellesley
-writes on the 29th inst., “was a proposal to make certain alterations,
-which I acknowledge I do not think sufficient, although the treaty
-will answer in its amended form.... At the same time I must say that
-I approve of allowing the French to evacuate Portugal, because I see
-clearly that we cannot get them out of Portugal otherwise, under
-existing circumstances, without such an arrangement; and we should
-be employed in the blockade or siege of the places which they would
-occupy during the season in which we ought and might be advantageously
-employed against the French in Spain. But the Convention, by which they
-should be allowed to evacuate Portugal, ought to be settled in the
-most honorable manner to the army by which they have been beaten; and
-we ought not to be kept for 10 days on our field of battle before the
-enemy (who sued on the day after the action) is brought to terms.
-
-“I am quite annoyed on this subject.”
-
-Wellesley signed the preliminary Memorandum at the request of
-Dalrymple, but had nothing to do with the final settlement. “I lament
-the situation of our affairs as much as you do,” he writes on the 5th
-September, “and I did every thing in my power to prevent it; but my
-opinion was overruled. I had nothing to do with the Convention as it
-now stands; and I have never seen it to this moment.... I have only to
-regret that I put my name to an agreement of which I did not approve,
-and which I did not negotiate: if I had not done it, I really believe
-that they would not have dared to make such a Convention as they have
-made: notwithstanding that that agreement was never ratified, and is
-now so much waste paper.”[45]
-
-His letters at this period teem with allusions to the unfortunate
-treaty. He tells Castlereagh that “It is quite impossible for me to
-continue any longer with this army; and I wish, therefore, that you
-would allow me to return home and resume the duties of my office, if I
-should still be in office, and it is convenient to the Government that
-I should retain it; or if not, that I should remain upon the Staff in
-England; or, if that should not be practicable, that I should remain
-without employment. You will hear from others of the various causes
-which I must have for being dissatisfied, not only with the military
-and other public measures of the Commander-in-Chief, but with his
-treatment of myself. I am convinced it is better for him, for the army,
-and for me, that I should go away; and the sooner I go the better.”
-
-On the 6th October Wellesley was in London, and at once resumed his
-office as Chief Secretary for Ireland. The newspapers teemed with
-unsavory references to the unpopular Convention; the caricaturists, not
-to be rivalled by their journalistic brethren, produced the grossest
-lampoons for the benefit of the indignant public. In one of them
-Wellesley and his colleagues are hanging on gibbets, in another the
-former is shown urging his troops to glory:
-
- _This is Sir Arthur (whose valour and skill, began so well, but
- ended so ill)
- Who beat the French, who took the Gold, that lay in the City of
- Lisbon._
-
-Windham, writing in his Diary under date of the 16th September,
-probably sums up the thoughts of most British statesmen of the time:
-“At Chesterford heard report of news; said to be excellent, but without
-particulars. Feasted upon the hopes of what I should meet at Hockrill.
-Alas! _quanti de spe decidi!_ it was the news of the convention with
-Junot. _There never was surely such a proceeding in the history of wars
-or negotiations._ There is no bearing the thought of it.”
-
-A Court of Inquiry was instituted. Dalrymple and Burrard were recalled,
-and together with Wellesley, were examined before a board of officers,
-which included General David Dundas and Lord Moira, at Chelsea
-Hospital. The finding of the Court was non-committal “respecting
-the fitness of the Convention in the relative situation of the two
-armies,” doubtless because a unanimous “verdict” could not be arrived
-at, but the members definitely declared “that unquestionable zeal and
-firmness appear throughout to have been exhibited by Lieut.-Generals
-Sir Hew Dalrymple, Sir Harry Burrard, and Sir Arthur Wellesley....”
-In commenting on the judgment thus expressed, Sir Herbert Maxwell
-notes that the two senior officers were never employed again, adding,
-“Similar eclipse might have fallen upon Sir Arthur, but for the efforts
-of Castlereagh and other powerful friends, whose confidence in their
-General was never shaken.”
-
-In the following January (1809) the House of Lords and the House of
-Commons expressed their thanks to General Wellesley for the victories
-of Roliça and Vimiero.
-
-“It is your praise,” said the Speaker in the Commons, “to have inspired
-your troops with unshaken confidence and unbounded ardour; to have
-commanded, not the obedience alone, but the hearts and affections of
-your companions in arms; and, having planned your operations with the
-skill and promptitude which have so eminently characterized all your
-former exertions, you have again led the armies of your country to
-battle, with the same deliberate valour and triumphant success which
-have long since rendered your name illustrious in the remotest parts of
-this Empire.
-
-“Military glory has ever been dear to this nation; and great military
-exploits, in the field or upon the ocean, have their sure reward in
-Royal favour and the gratitude of Parliament. It is, therefore, with
-the highest satisfaction, that, in this fresh instance, I now proceed
-to deliver to you the thanks of this House....”
-
-Wellesley’s reply was made in three well-chosen sentences, without the
-slightest attempt at rhetoric. In the House of Lords Vimiero was spoken
-of as “a signal victory, honorable and glorious to the British arms.”
-The resolutions of the peers, which included high appreciation of the
-behaviour of the non-commissioned officers and privates, were conveyed
-to Sir Arthur by the Lord Chancellor, and acknowledged by their
-recipient in a short letter, the most important paragraphs of which are
-as follows:
-
-“I have received the mark of distinction which the House of Lords
-have conferred upon me with sentiments of gratitude and respect
-proportionate to the high sense I entertain of the greatness of the
-honor which it carries with it; and I shall have great pleasure in
-communicating to the Officers and the troops the distinguished reward
-of their exemplary conduct which their Lordships have conferred upon
-them.
-
-“I beg leave, at the same time, to express to their Lordships my thanks
-for the expressions of personal civility with which your Lordship has
-conveyed to me the commands of the House.”
-
-These signs of approval must have been entirely satisfactory to
-Sir Arthur after the bitter criticisms of the previous months, but
-what he particularly valued was a handsome service of plate, worth
-intrinsically £1000, but sentimentally beyond price, presented to him
-by the brigadier and field officers who were associated with him in
-the victory at Vimiero. They, at any rate, had implicit faith in their
-General.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-Sir Arthur’s Return to Portugal
-
-(1809)
-
- “_We are not naturally a military people; the whole business of an
- army upon service is foreign to our habits, and is a constraint
- upon them, particularly in a poor country like this._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-Baron de Frénilly, travelling to Paris in December 1808, notes that
-“the roads along which we passed were crowded with splendid troops
-who were on their way to find a grave in the Peninsula.” Napoleon, in
-the Constitution he granted to Spain, assumes for himself not only
-the so-called “divine right of kings,” but the special favour of
-Providence. “God,” he says, “has given me the power and the will to
-overcome all obstacles.” Frénilly, writing after the Emperor’s death,
-merely states an historical fact; Napoleon, at the height of his
-stupendous power, regards himself as omnipotent, and proves within a
-few years that he is not.
-
-Yet it must be conceded that the Dictator of Europe--apart from moral
-considerations, which never troubled him to any extent--had a certain
-right to infer from his past experience that the Almighty was on his
-side. It was not for him to foresee that the Peninsula was to prove a
-running sore of the Imperial body politic. To be sure, Joseph had not
-been particularly successful on the throne of the Spanish Bourbons,
-Murat had displayed many foolish qualities, Dupont had surrendered,
-Junot had evacuated Portugal, and eleven millions had rebelled either
-practically or theoretically against French domination, but there was
-still himself, and God was “on the side of the heaviest battalions!”
-“I may find in Spain the Pillars of Hercules, but not the limits of
-my power.” Thus he endeavoured to encourage his brother, and there is
-no reason to suspect that he imagined otherwise. He announced that he
-would pour between 300,000 and 400,000 troops across the Pyrenees--he
-actually began the new campaign with over 200,000, which compared more
-than favourably with the 120,000 ill-organized patriots under Castaños,
-Palafox, Vives, Belvedere, Blake, and La Romana, who usually acted
-without any idea of the value of co-operation.
-
-The number of those ready and willing to engage in a guerilla warfare
-cannot be given.[46] Statistics fail in such a matter as this. Names
-indelibly associated with Napoleon’s greatness were either present or
-coming--Victor, Bessières, Moncey, Lefebvre, Ney, St Cyr, Mortier, and
-Junot.
-
-When Dalrymple, Burrard, and Wellesley sailed from Portugal the
-British command devolved upon Sir John Moore. This being a biography
-of Wellington, Moore’s astounding campaign can only be referred to in
-the briefest way, but it is necessary to mention the more important
-incidents if we are to understand the various phases of the war.
-Leaving 9000 men at Lisbon with Lieutenant-General Sir John Cradock,
-and taking with him 14,000 troops, Moore advanced into Spain to
-co-operate with the Spaniards according to his instructions. His own
-columns reached Salamanca, the point of concentration, in November
-1808, but Baird, who, with a reinforcement of 13,000 men, was to
-effect a junction with him, found it impossible to do so. There was
-much delay in consequence.
-
-In the first week of the following month the Emperor was at Madrid, and
-the Spanish capital once again in the hands of the French. Disaster
-after disaster had followed hard in the tracks of the national forces.
-
-It was Moore’s hope that by slowly retreating northward the enemy would
-follow, and thus enable his allies in the south to recover. Having
-united with Baird, and learned that Soult, with not more than 20,000,
-was near Sahagun, Moore was on the eve of combat when the startling
-intelligence reached him that Napoleon was in pursuit. The Emperor had
-told the Senate, “I am determined to carry on the war with the utmost
-activity, and to destroy the armies that England has disembarked in
-that country.” With wonderful promptitude Moore turned towards Coruña,
-where he believed the British fleet awaited him. Napoleon, hearing
-disconcerting news from Paris, made off for his capital, leaving Soult,
-“the Iron Duke of France,” and Ney to pursue the red-coats.
-
-On the 16th January 1809, the battle in which Moore received his
-death-wound was fought. Within twenty-four hours the victorious troops
-embarked for the homeland. Not a British soldier, other than deserters
-or stragglers, was left in Spain. In the sister kingdom there were
-some 12,000, of whom 9000 had been left at Lisbon by Moore when he had
-set out for Salamanca; the remainder had arrived from England in the
-previous November and December. In addition, Sir Robert Wilson had
-succeeded in equipping some 1300 men at Oporto for his Loyal Lusitanian
-Legion.
-
-It soon became evident that war would shortly break out between
-France and Austria, thus precluding any thought on Napoleon’s part of
-going back to the Peninsula. Castlereagh, notwithstanding previous
-experiences, was as enthusiastic as ever. Baird and his ragged troops
-were no sooner home than it was remarked that the Secretary for War
-and Wellesley were very frequently together. Wiseacres foretold an
-early return of the latter to Spain and Portugal.
-
-Sir Arthur prepared a lengthy Memorandum on the defence of Portugal,
-which was placed in the hands of the Cabinet for careful consideration.
-“I have always been of opinion,” it begins, “that Portugal might be
-defended, whatever might be the result of the contest in Spain; and
-that in the meantime the measures adopted for the defence of Portugal
-would be highly useful to the Spaniards in their contest with the
-French.”
-
-Wellesley suggested the thorough reorganization of the native
-Portuguese troops, part of the expense being borne by Great Britain,
-and the employment of not less than 30,000 British troops, including
-4000 or 5000 cavalry and a large body of artillery. The entire army
-was to be commanded by British officers. Riflemen and 3000 British or
-German cavalry should be sent as additional reinforcements as soon as
-possible, in addition to a corps of engineers for an army of 60,000.
-He perfectly understood that the French would not be caught napping,
-for “it may be depended upon that as soon as the newspapers shall have
-announced[47] the departure of Officers for Portugal, the French armies
-in Spain will receive orders to make their movements towards Portugal,
-so as to anticipate our measures for its defence. We ought therefore to
-have every thing on the spot, or nearly so, before any alarm is created
-at home respecting our intentions.”
-
-Thanks in no small measure to Castlereagh, Wellesley was appointed
-to the supreme command of the new expedition. He left England on
-the 14th April 1809, a few weeks after Soult’s vanguard had crossed
-the Portuguese frontier, and landed at Lisbon on the 22nd, after
-a most eventful voyage, having encountered terrible weather off
-the Isle of Wight which threatened to drive his vessel ashore. The
-Commander-in-Chief thus sums up the situation in the Peninsula: “At
-that time,” he says, “the French had got possession of Zaragoza,
-Marshal Soult held Oporto and the northern provinces of Portugal. The
-battle of Medellin had been fought on the 29th March; and General
-Cuesta was endeavouring to recover from its effects, and to collect
-an army again at Monasterio, in the mountains of the Sierra Morena.
-The French, under Marshal Victor, were in possession of the Guadiana,
-and had their advanced posts as forward as Los Santos. Sebastiani
-was at Ciudad Real, and held in check the army of La Carolina, at
-that time under the command of General Venegas, consisting of about
-12,000 men. Ney was in possession of Galicia; Salamanca was held by a
-small detachment of French troops; St Cyr was at Catalonia with his
-corps of 25,000 men; and Kellermann, who had succeeded to Bessières
-in the command of the 6th corps, was at Valladolid. Mortier, with his
-corps,[48] and the Duc d’Abrantès (Junot), with the 8th corps, at
-Zaragoza. The Portuguese army was totally disorganized, and nearly
-annihilated; and the Spanish troops were scarcely able to hold their
-positions in the Sierra Morena. The Marquis de la Romana, who had been
-with his corps on the frontiers of Portugal, near Chaves, from the
-period of the embarkation of the British army at Coruña, in the month
-of January, till the month of March, had moved from thence when Soult
-invaded Portugal by Chaves, and afterwards moved towards the Asturias
-with his army, and went himself into that province.”
-
-The greeting the Commander-in-Chief received at the hands of the
-populace of Lisbon would have been embarrassing to one possessing
-a less cool head, but Wellesley knew perfectly well that applause
-to-day is apt to become condemnation to-morrow. He was appointed
-Marshal-General in the Portuguese Army, which was now placed in the
-capable hands of General Beresford by the British Cabinet, Wellesley’s
-one second-in-command being Major-General Rowland Hill. According to
-his instructions, “the defence of Portugal you will consider as the
-first and immediate object of your attention. But, as the security
-of Portugal can only be effectually provided for in connection with
-the defence of the Peninsula in the larger sense, his Majesty on this
-account, as well as from the unabated interest he takes in the cause
-of Spain, leaves it to your judgment to decide, when your army shall
-be advanced on the frontier of Portugal, how your efforts can be best
-combined with the Spanish, as well as the Portuguese troops, in support
-of the common cause. In any movements you may undertake, you will,
-however, keep in mind that, until you receive further orders, your
-operations must necessarily be conducted with especial reference to the
-protection of that country.”
-
-Of British troops the Commander-in-Chief now had at his disposal
-23,455, namely, 18,935 infantry, 4270 cavalry, and 250 attached
-to the wagon train; Portugal contributed 16,000 men. Costello, a
-non-commissioned officer of the 95th Rifles, and later a Captain in
-the British Legion, has nothing good to say of the Portuguese troops.
-In his record of the Peninsular War[49] he gives several instances of
-their unreliability and treacherous nature. One example must suffice:
-
-“The sanguinary nature of the Portuguese,” he says, “during the whole
-period of the war was notorious. When crossed or excited, nothing but
-the shedding of blood could allay their passion. It was always with
-the greatest difficulty that we could preserve our French prisoners
-from being butchered by them, even in cold blood. They would hang upon
-the rear of a detachment with prisoners, like so many carrion birds,
-waiting every opportunity to satiate their love of vengeance, and it
-required all the firmness and vigilance of our troops to keep them in
-check. It was well known that even our men fell in stepping between
-them and the French whom they had marked out as victims. Indeed, it was
-not unfrequent for our men to suffer from the consequences of their
-ferocity, and I myself, while at Vallée, had a narrow escape. I had
-crossed the hills to purchase some necessaries at the quarters of the
-52nd Regiment, and on my return fell in with several of the soldiers
-of the 3rd Caçadores. One of them, a fierce-looking scoundrel, evinced
-a great inclination to quarrel, the more particularly as he perceived
-that I was unarmed and alone. Having replied rather sharply to some
-abuse they had cast upon the English, by reflecting on their countrymen
-in return, he flew into a rage, drew his bayonet, and made a rush at
-me, which I avoided by stepping aside, and tripping him head foremost
-on the ground. I was in the act of seizing his bayonet, when a number
-of his comrades came up, to whom he related, in exaggerated terms, the
-cause of our disagreement. Before he had half concluded, a general cry
-arose of ‘Kill the English dog’; and the whole, drawing their bayonets,
-were advancing upon me when a party of the 52nd came up, the tables
-were turned, and the Caçadores fled in all directions.”
-
-Wellesley at once prepared to advance, and had not been at Lisbon a
-week before representations were made to him by the Junta of Spanish
-Estremadura for aid in behalf of the southern provinces. He replied
-that until “the enemy who has invaded Portugal shall have been removed”
-he could not hope to lend them the requisite assistance. “The enemy”
-consisted of the corps under Soult and Victor. The army of the former,
-which had left Coruña and invaded Portugal by Napoleon’s imperative
-orders, now occupied Oporto. This, the second city in the kingdom
-and the centre of the most prosperous district, fell after a gallant
-if unscientific resistance on the part of the inhabitants under the
-Bishop. The Marshal took dire vengeance on the insurgents during the
-journey from Galicia, perhaps because he had suffered from the guerilla
-warfare, now almost universal throughout the Peninsula. Victor’s army
-was to take Badajoz and afterwards Seville, while Sebastiani held the
-south in check. Wellesley decided to attack Soult, which necessitated
-a march of over eighty miles of difficult country. Leaving two small
-detachments of his own and of Portuguese troops upon the Tagus to
-watch the movements of Victor, he set out with 13,000 British, 9000
-Portuguese, and 3000 Germans--25,000 in all.
-
-The right column, consisting of 9000 men under Beresford, was sent to
-Lamego, on the Douro, so as to be ready to cut off Soult’s retreat,
-the left making for Oporto with Wellesley. On the 10th May the cavalry
-and advanced guard of the latter crossed the Vouga, hoping to surprise
-the French troops at Albergaria and the neighbouring villages, but the
-movement was not completely successful, although a number of prisoners
-and cannon were taken.
-
-The advanced guard reached Vendas Novas on the following day, and
-drove in the outposts of the French advanced guard. The latter were
-vigorously attacked in the woods and village, and defeated with
-considerable loss. All this augured well for the ensuing operations,
-and on the 12th the vanguard reached the southern bank of the Douro.
-The French were stationed on the opposite bank, having taken the
-precaution to burn the bridge after crossing, and to withdraw all the
-boats they could discover.
-
-Unfortunate in this matter, Wellesley was favoured in another. His
-army was screened by cliffs and a hill called the Serra. This bold
-rock was surmounted by a Franciscan convent, where the Commander
-posted batteries and made his observations. As the river winds a great
-deal, his movements were unobserved by those on the look-out at the
-French headquarters, to the left of Wellesley as he peered through his
-glass across the wide waterway. He had already perceived an extensive
-building, known as the Seminary, surrounded by high walls with but one
-entrance on the landward side, and open to the river. This he knew
-would be an excellent position to secure, especially as it was almost
-opposite to him.
-
-There was in the army a certain Colonel Waters, a keen-eyed officer
-with an infinite amount of resource and a ready wit. He contended that
-it was scarcely probable that Soult could have secured every boat, and
-interrogated a refugee on the point. He found that the man had crossed
-in a small skiff.[50] With the aid of the prior of Amarante, the
-fugitive, and several peasants, he heaved the boat out of the mud, and,
-crossing the stream, brought back a number of barges. In these three
-companies of the Buffs, under Lieut.-General Paget, effected a landing
-on the opposite side. This excellent officer was seriously wounded
-almost immediately afterward, but the passage of the Douro had been
-secured.
-
-General Murray, who had been ordered to cross at Barca d’Avintas, also
-managed to get over, and signally failed to check the retiring columns
-after the battle. As additional troops gained the opposite shore the
-French made repeated attempts to hurl them back, but were ultimately
-obliged to retreat “in the utmost confusion” towards Amarante.
-According to a letter from General Stewart to his brother, Lord
-Castlereagh, the French fled with such haste that “Sir Arthur Wellesley
-dined at their headquarters on the dinner which had been prepared for
-Marshal Soult.”
-
-On the 19th May, Soult was across the frontier, having been compelled
-to abandon over fifty guns and his baggage. In making his way across
-the Sierra Catalina to escape the pursuing troops, his rear-guard was
-defeated at Salamonde, with severe loss. He eventually reached Orense,
-in Galicia, minus some 5000 men, including the sick and wounded he had
-left behind him in Oporto.
-
-“The road from Penafiel to Montealegre,” says Wellesley, “is strewed
-with the carcases of horses and mules, and of French soldiers, who were
-put to death by the peasantry before our advanced guard could save
-them. This last circumstance is the natural effect of the species of
-warfare which the enemy have carried on in this country. Their soldiers
-have plundered and murdered the peasantry at their pleasure; and I
-have seen many persons hanging in the trees by the sides of the road,
-executed for no reason that I could learn, excepting that they have not
-been friendly to the French invasion and usurpation of the government
-of their country; and the route of their column, on their retreat,
-could be traced by the smoke of the villages to which they set fire.”
-
-Within a fortnight Wellesley was writing of the defects of his own men.
-“I have long been of opinion,” he says, “that a British army could
-bear neither success nor failure, and I have had manifest proofs of
-the truth of this opinion in the first of its branches in the recent
-conduct of the soldiers of this army. They have plundered the country
-most terribly, which has given me the greatest concern....
-
-“They have plundered the people of bullocks, among other property, for
-what reason I am sure I do not know, except it be, as I understand
-is their practice, to sell them to the people again. I shall be very
-much obliged to you if you will mention this practice to the Ministers
-of the Regency, and bid them to issue a proclamation forbidding the
-people, in the most positive terms, to purchase any thing from the
-soldiers of the British army.”
-
-The Commander-in-Chief relates the same terrible facts to Castlereagh.
-“The army behave terribly ill,” is his expression. “They are a rabble
-who cannot bear success any more than Sir J. Moore’s army could bear
-failure. I am endeavoring to tame them; but, if I should not succeed, I
-must make an official complaint of them, and send one or two corps home
-in disgrace. They plunder in all directions.”
-
-Meanwhile Victor, far from taking Badajoz and marching on Seville as
-the Emperor wished, had found it necessary to move in the direction
-of Madrid, where he could secure much needed assistance. He therefore
-took up his position at Talavera. Wellesley, intent upon crushing him,
-arrived at Abrantes about the same time as the Marshal was evacuating
-Estremadura and consequently abandoning the fruits of his victory over
-Cuesta at Medellin. For Wellesley to have followed Victor with the
-relatively few men at his disposal would have been to court disaster,
-and he therefore acquiesced in a new plan of operations suggested
-by Cuesta, in which the Spaniards were to be given an opportunity
-of showing their capabilities or proving their incapacity. This,
-says Professor Oman, was “the first and only campaign which he ever
-undertook in company with a Spanish colleague and without supreme
-control over the whole conduct of affairs.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-Talavera
-
-(1809)
-
- “_The battle of Talavera was the hardest fought of modern times._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-The potentialities of the new project were distinctly promising. After
-uniting with Cuesta, Wellesley was to follow the course of the Tagus
-and cut off Victor’s army of 33,000 troops while the attention of
-Sebastiani and Joseph Bonaparte, who had but 17,000 men all told, was
-occupied by Venegas.
-
-When last heard of Soult and Ney were in Galicia busily engaged in
-suppressing an insurrection, so no opposition was anticipated from
-them. In this matter after events proved the facts to be far different
-from the surmise. There seemed every likelihood of a successful issue
-provided there was no snapping of individual links of the chain of
-operations. Wellesley did not find Cuesta a particularly affable
-colleague, but he was not the man to assert his own opinion unless he
-thought it imperative. He characterized him as having “no military
-genius,” which is certainly more favourable than “that deformed-looking
-lump of pride, ignorance, and treachery,” which is the description
-given to us by Costello. “He was,” the latter adds, “the most
-murderous-looking old man I ever saw.” They came together at Oropesa
-on the 20th July, their forces totalling 55,000, of which 35,000 were
-Spanish. It was the task of Venegas and his 26,000 men to approach
-Madrid from the south, and, by a demonstration in force, distract
-the attention of Sebastiani. He proved far too slow, and ere he was
-able to interfere, Victor, Sebastiani, and Joseph concentrated in the
-neighbourhood of Toledo. On the 26th July the last batch of their
-50,000 troops came together.
-
-Had Wellesley been allowed to attack on the 23rd July, as he wished,
-it is probable that he would have crushed Victor, whose reinforcements
-did not begin to arrive until the following day. Cuesta had already
-shown his incompetency, and some of his advanced guard had been roughly
-handled by a French cavalry division. It was Wellesley’s opinion
-that the psychological moment had arrived, but the Spanish commander
-objected. “Had we fought then,” Wellesley afterwards averred, “it
-would have been as great a battle as Waterloo, and would have cleared
-Spain of the French for that time.” The formidable task before him was
-not made lighter by the knowledge that the commissariat and transport
-arrangements had utterly broken down.
-
-At Talavera, evacuated by Victor, who moved a few miles to the east,
-Wellesley was obliged to halt, and even threatened to withdraw from
-Spain because of the ill-treatment accorded his famishing troops. “I
-have never seen an army,” he says, “so ill-treated in any country, or,
-considering that all depends upon its operations, one which deserved
-good treatment so much. It is ridiculous to pretend that the country
-cannot supply our wants. The French army is well fed, and the soldiers
-who are taken in good health, and well supplied with bread, of which
-indeed they left a small magazine behind them. This is a rich country
-in corn, in comparison with Portugal, and yet, during the whole of my
-operations in that country, we never wanted bread but on one day on
-the frontiers of Galicia. In the Vera de Plasencia there are means to
-supply this army for 4 months, as I am informed, and yet the alcaldes
-have not performed their engagements with me. The Spanish army has
-plenty of every thing, and we alone, upon whom every thing depends, are
-actually starving.”
-
-After considerable trouble Cuesta consented to Wellesley assuming
-supreme command of the combined forces. On the afternoon of the
-27th the British General mounted his horse and, accompanied by his
-staff, rode out of the town to an old château, known as the Casa de
-Salinas. His object was to obtain a bird’s-eye view from the roof of
-the movements of the enemy on the Alberche. He apprehended no danger,
-because Spanish troops occupied the adjacent woods. In this he was
-deceived, for a number of French _tirailleurs_ suddenly appearing, the
-troops beat a hasty retreat. The Commander-in-Chief jumped from the
-wall and regained his horse not a moment too soon. Had it not been for
-the near presence of a body of English infantry, who immediately opened
-fire, it is extremely probable that Wellington and his staff would have
-been captured.
-
-At five o’clock the opposing forces were within touch, the French
-having crossed the river and driven in the British piquets, who lost
-about 400 men.
-
-One of the finest descriptions of the ensuing battle--or more
-correctly, series of battles--is that of Captain M. de Rocca, a French
-officer of Hussars, which has the advantage of giving the point of view
-of the enemy, and how Wellesley was regarded by one at least of his
-combatants.
-
-“The Spaniards,” he says, “were posted in a situation deemed
-impregnable, behind old walls and garden-fences, which border and
-encompass the city of Talavera.[51] Their right was defended by the
-Tagus, and their left joined the English, near a redoubt constructed
-on an eminence. The ground in front of the Anglo-Spanish armies was
-very unequal, and intersected here and there by ravines, formed by the
-rains of winter. The whole extent of their position was covered by the
-channel of a pretty deep torrent, at that time dry. The English left
-was strengthened by a conical eminence that commanded the greater part
-of the field of battle, and which was separated by a deep extensive
-valley from the Castilian chain of mountains.
-
-“This eminence was thus in a manner the key to the enemy’s position,
-and against this decisive point of attack, an experienced general,
-possessed of that intuitive glance which insures success, would
-immediately have led the principal part of his disposable force, to
-obtain possession of it. He would either have taken it by assault,
-or have turned it by the valley. But King Joseph, when he should
-have acted, was seized with an unfortunate spirit of indecision and
-uncertainty. He attempted only half measures, he distributed his forces
-partially, and lost the opportunity of conquering while feeling the way
-for it. Marshal Jourdan, the second in command, had not that spur of
-patriotism in the Spanish war, which inspired him when he fought in the
-plains of Fleurus, to achieve the independence of France.
-
-“The French commenced the engagement by a cannonade and rifle-fire in
-advance of their right; and they despatched a single battalion only,
-and some sharp-shooters, by the valley, to take the eminence which
-defended the English left, never thinking they would do otherwise
-than yield. This battalion, however, having to contend with superior
-numbers, was repulsed with loss, and compelled to retire. A division of
-dragoons, which had gone to reconnoitre Talavera, found the approaches
-to that city strongly fortified with artillery, and could not advance.
-
-“At nightfall, the French made another attempt to gain the hill. A
-regiment of infantry, followed at a short distance by two others,
-attacked the extreme left of the English with unexampled ardour,
-arrived at the summit of the hill, and took possession of it. But
-having been fiercely assaulted, in its turn, by an entire division
-of the English, just, when having conquered, it was breathless with
-exertion, it was immediately obliged to give way. One of the two
-regiments, commanded to assist in this attack, had lost its way in a
-wood on account of the darkness; the other not getting soon enough over
-the ravine, which covered the enemy’s position, had not arrived in time.
-
-“Both these attacks had miscarried, though conducted with intrepid
-bravery, because they had been made by an inadequate number of
-troops. A single battalion had been sent, and then one division, when
-a great proportion of the whole army should have been despatched.
-These unsuccessful attempts revealed to the English what we designed
-next day; and still more evidently demonstrated the importance of
-the station they held. They passed the greater part of the night in
-fortifying it with artillery.
-
-“The sun rose next morning on the two armies drawn up in battle order,
-and again the cannonade commenced. The defence of Portugal being
-entrusted to the English army, the fate of that country, and, perhaps,
-of all the Peninsula, was now to be decided by this contest. The
-veterans of the first and fourth French corps, accustomed for years to
-conquer throughout Europe, and always to witness their ardour seconded
-by the combined skill of their chiefs, burned with impatience for
-orders to engage, and thought to overthrow all before them by one well
-conjoined assault.
-
-“One division alone, of three regiments of infantry, was sent by the
-valley to storm the position, of which we had, for a moment, obtained
-possession the preceding evening. After considerable loss, this
-division reached the top of the eminence, and was just about taking
-it. One of the regiments had already advanced as far as the artillery,
-when their charge was repulsed, and the whole division was forced to
-retire. The English, apprehending by this renewed attack that the
-French designed to turn their left by the valley, stationed their
-cavalry there; and caused a division of the Spaniards to occupy the
-skirts of the high Castilian mountains beyond it. The French receded
-to the ground they first occupied. The cannonade continued for another
-hour, and then became gradually silent. The overpowering heat of
-mid-day obliged both armies to suspend the combat, and observe a kind
-of involuntary truce, during which the wounded were removed.
-
-“King Joseph, having at last gone himself to reconnoitre the enemy’s
-position, gave orders, at four o’clock, for a general attack against
-the army of England. A division of dragoons was left to observe the
-Spaniards in the direction of Talavera. General Sebastiani’s corps
-marched against the right of the English, while Marshal Victor’s three
-divisions of infantry, followed by masses of cavalry, charged against
-their left, to attack the eminence by the valley. King Joseph and
-Marshal Jourdan took part with the reserve, in the rear of the 4th
-division. The artillery and musketry were not long in being heard.
-
-“The English Commander, stationed on the hill which overlooked the
-field of battle, was present always where danger demanded his presence.
-He could survey, at a glance, every corps of his army, and perceive
-below him the least movement of the French. He saw the line of battle
-formed, the columns disposed for the conflict; he penetrated their
-designs by their arrangements, and thus had time to order his plans,
-so as to penetrate and prevent those of his foes. The position of the
-English army was naturally strong and difficult of approach, both in
-front and flank; but in the rear it was quite accessible, and gave
-ample freedom to their troops to hasten to the quarter threatened.
-
-“The French had a ravine to pass before they could reach the enemy.
-They had to advance over ground much intersected, very rugged and
-unequal, obliging them frequently to break their line; and the
-positions they attacked had been previously fortified. The left
-could not see the right, or know what was passing there, for the
-rising ground between them. Every corps of the army fought apart,
-with unparalleled bravery, and ability too, but there was no
-co-operation in their efforts. The French were not then commanded by a
-General-in-chief, the resources of whose genius might have compensated
-for the advantages which the nature of the ground denied them and
-yielded to their enemies.
-
-“The division of Lapisse first passed the ravine, attacked the
-fortified eminence, ascended it in defiance of a fire of grape-shot
-which mowed down its ranks, but was repulsed with the loss of its
-General and a great number of officers and soldiers. In retreating,
-it left the right of the fourth corps uncovered, which the British
-artillery took in flank, and forced for a moment to retire. The left
-of General Sebastiani’s corps advanced under a most intense fire of
-artillery to the fort of a redoubt on the right of the English, and
-between the combined armies. It was too far advanced, and too soon
-forward--it was encountered and driven back by the united corps of the
-English right and the Spanish left. Assistance came, and the combat
-was renewed. In the centre, Marshal Victor rallied the division of
-Lapisse at the foot of the hill, and abandoned all further attempt to
-gain possession of it. The French then tried to turn it either by the
-right or left. Villatte’s division advanced in the valley, and Ruffin’s
-moved to the right of this by the foot of the Castilian mountains.
-The cavalry, forming a second line, were in readiness to debouch into
-the plain in the rear of the enemy whenever the infantry could open a
-passage.
-
-“Just as the French began to move, the English, with two regiments
-of cavalry, made a charge against their masses. They engaged in the
-valley, passed onwards regardless of the fire of several battalions
-of infantry, between the divisions of Villatte and Ruffin, and fell
-with impetuosity never surpassed on the 10th and 26th regiments of
-our chasseurs. The 10th could not resist the charge. They opened their
-ranks, but rallied immediately, and nearly the whole of the 23rd
-regiment of light dragoons at the head of the English cavalry was
-either destroyed or taken captive.
-
-“A division of the English Royal Guards, stationed on the left and
-centre of their army, being charged by the French, at first repulsed
-them vigorously; but one of its brigades, being too far advanced, was
-in its turn taken in flank by the fire of the French artillery and
-infantry, sustained considerable loss, and retreated with difficulty
-behind their second line. The French took advantage of this success;
-they again moved forward, and but one other effort was necessary to
-break through into the plain, and combat on equal ground. But King
-Joseph thought it was too late to advance with the reserve, and the
-attack was delayed till the following day.[52] Night again closed over
-us, and the conflict ceased from exhaustion, without either side having
-won such a decided advantage as to entitle it to claim the victory.
-
-“The corps of Marshals Victor and Sebastiani withdrew successively
-during the night towards the reserve, leaving an advanced guard of
-cavalry on the scene of the engagement, to take care of the wounded.
-The English, who expected a new attack in the morning, were greatly
-surprised when day dawned to see that their enemies, leaving twenty
-pieces of cannon, had retreated to their old position on the Alberche.
-The English and Spaniards, according to their own accounts, lost 6,616
-men.[53] The French had nearly 10,000 slain.”
-
-Wellesley characterizes the battle as “a most desperate one ... we had
-about two to one against us; fearful odds! but we maintained all our
-positions, and gave the enemy a terrible beating.” Very few of the
-Spanish troops were engaged in any real sense, although those who took
-an active part behaved well, and one of the cavalry regiments “made
-an excellent and well-timed charge.” The majority of them were in a
-“miserable state of discipline” and “entirely incapable of performing
-any manœuvre, however simple.” There was a sad lack of _morale_,
-qualified officers were few, and seemed either unable or unwilling to
-follow their allies in the matter of subjecting their men to definite
-regulations. When the British soldiers were engaged in removing
-the wounded and in burying the dead after Talavera, “the arms and
-accoutrements of both were collected and carried away by the Spanish
-troops.”
-
-The exhausted condition of his army prevented Wellesley from following
-the enemy, but as Venegas was on the move and threatening Madrid, this
-was not regarded as of consummate importance. Of more immediate concern
-was the alarming intelligence received by the Commander-in-Chief a few
-hours later that Soult’s army was no longer in Galicia, but marching to
-intercept the British communications with Portugal.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-Wellesley’s Defence of Portugal
-
-(1809-10)
-
- “_If I fail, God will, I hope, have mercy upon me, for nobody else
- will._”
-
- WELLESLEY.
-
-
-Soult, joined by Mortier and Ney, had some 50,000 men with which to
-face the victor of Talavera. Had Cuesta guarded the mountain passes as
-he was supposed to do, Wellesley would not have found himself in so
-awkward a predicament. Both his front and rear were threatened, the
-former by Victor and Sebastiani and the latter by Soult. While his
-ranks were sadly depleted, those of the French were augmented. By great
-good fortune General Craufurd and his celebrated Light Division arrived
-on the morning of the 29th July, the day following the conclusion of
-the battle.
-
-Rumour proved on this occasion a powerful ally of the
-Commander-in-Chief, for had not Craufurd heard of the supposed death
-of Sir Arthur, it is scarcely likely that he would have urged his men,
-each loaded with forty pounds weight on his back, to march forty-three
-English miles in twenty-two hours. Wellesley made up his mind to
-advance against Soult, but was forced to abandon the idea when he
-heard that the enemy had entered Plasencia in great force, thereby
-severing the British communications with Lisbon. A retreat “to take up
-the defensive line of the Tagus” became eminently necessary. “We were
-in a bad scrape,” he writes on the 8th August, “from which I think I
-have extricated both armies; and I really believe that, if I had not
-determined to retire at the moment I did, all retreat would have been
-cut off for both.” “Both,” of course, includes the Spaniards, whose
-“train of mismanagement,” added to Soult’s advance, were contributing
-causes of his withdrawal.
-
-The Spaniards promised to remain at Talavera to watch the movements of
-the enemy and to assist the wounded. No sooner was Wellesley out of the
-way than Cuesta felt that the position was untenable, with the result
-that many British soldiers, rendered unable to keep up with the Spanish
-troops by reason of their wounds, were made prisoners by Victor, who
-soon afterwards took possession of the town.
-
-The Tagus was crossed at Arzobispo, and a rearguard of 8000 Spaniards,
-under Cuesta, left to defend the passage. At Almarez the bridge of
-boats was broken to arrest Soult’s advance from Naval Moral, no great
-distance away, and on the high road. As it happened, the French
-Marshal was able to cross the river at Arzobispo by means of a ford.
-He promptly defeated the Spanish force there and captured their guns.
-Not a few of the defenders fled, throwing away their arms and clothing,
-a very usual device. This was followed by the defeat of Venegas by
-Joseph and Sebastiani at Almonacid, near Toledo, where several thousand
-men were either killed, wounded, or captured, and of a Portuguese and
-Spanish column which had been detached from the main army, under Sir
-Robert Wilson, by Ney at the Puerto de Baños.
-
-In the middle of August 1809 the various armies were occupying the
-following positions: British, Jaraicejo; Eguia, Deleytosa; Vanegas, La
-Carolina; Ney, Salamanca; Kellermann, Valladolid; Soult, Plasencia;
-Mortier, Oropesa and Arzobispo; Victor, Talavera and Toledo;
-Sebastiani, La Mancha.
-
-The storm was followed by a lull, for the contesting armies were all
-but worn out and required rest. Wellesley made his headquarters
-first at Deleytosa, and, when that place was vacated on the 11th, at
-Jaraicejo; the Spanish made the former town their headquarters, and the
-Portuguese army, under Beresford, withdrew within their home frontier.
-
-“While the army remained in this position,” namely, Deleytosa, General
-Sir George T. Napier records: “We suffered dreadfully from want of
-food; nothing but a small portion of unground wheat and (when we could
-_catch them_) about a quarter of a pound of old goats’ flesh each man;
-no salt, bread, or wine; and as the Spaniards had plundered the baggage
-of the British army during the battle of Talavera, there was nothing
-of any kind to be procured to help us out, such as tea or sugar.”[54]
-These defects the General determined to remedy, for “no troops can
-serve to any good purpose unless they are regularly fed,” a maxim
-equivalent to that of Napoleon that “an army moves on its stomach.”
-
-Cuesta resigned his command, which was given to Eguia, but from
-henceforth the British Commander placed his sole reliance on his own
-forces. The lack of co-operation in the combined army was also evident
-in that of the French, for the various marshals had separated, and, to
-Napoleon’s disgust, lost a golden opportunity of crushing the hated
-English, which was never again vouchsafed to them. “Force Wellesley
-to fight on every possible occasion,” was his frequent cry. “Win if
-you can, but lose a battle rather than deliver none. We can afford to
-expend three men for every one he loses, and you will thus wear him
-out in the end.” Wellesley preferred to conserve his energy, not to
-squander it.
-
-After repeated requests for provisions and means of transport, all
-more or less evasively answered by the Spanish authorities, Wellesley
-carried out his threat and fell back upon the frontiers of Portugal.
-Not without a certain suggestion of irony, he was at this time
-appointed a Captain-General in the Spanish service, and received six
-Andalusian horses “in the name of King Ferdinand the VIIth.” Shortly
-afterwards he was notified that he had been elevated to the Peerage,
-with the titles of Baron Douro of Wellesley, and Viscount Wellington of
-Talavera. From henceforth we shall style him Wellington, a signature he
-first adopted on the 16th September 1809.
-
-“Nothing,” he writes from Merida, on the 25th August, to Castlereagh,
-“can be worse than the officers of the Spanish army; and it is
-extraordinary that when a nation has devoted itself to war, as this
-nation has, by the measures it has adopted in the last two years,
-so little progress has been made in any one branch of the military
-profession by any individual, and that the business of an army should
-be so little understood. They are really children in the art of war,
-and I cannot say that they do any thing as it ought to be done, with
-the exception of running away and assembling again in a state of
-nature.” In his opinion the Portuguese, under English officers, were
-better than the Spaniards, but both “want the habits and spirit of
-soldiers--the habits of command on one side, and of obedience on the
-other--mutual confidence between officers and men; and, above all, a
-determination in the superiors to obey the spirit of the orders they
-receive, let what will be the consequence, and the spirit to tell the
-true cause if they do not. In short, the fact is, there is so much
-trick in the Portuguese army....”
-
-At the beginning of September he was at Badajoz, on the frontier,
-the advantage being, as Wellington says, “that the British army was
-centrically posted, in reference to all the objects which the enemy
-might have in view; and at any time, by a junction with a Spanish corps
-on its right, or a Portuguese or Spanish corps on its left, it could
-prevent the enemy from undertaking any thing, excepting with a much
-larger force than they could allot to any one object.” Here he heard
-that there was a likelihood of Soult attacking Ciudad Rodrigo. This
-information he obtained from an intercepted letter to Joseph. “The
-success of this scheme,” he avers, “would do them more good, and the
-allies more mischief, than any other they could attempt; and it is most
-likely of all others to be successful.” For this reason he ordered
-Wilson to stay north of the Tagus so as to watch Soult’s movements.
-
-In the middle of the month the Spanish army of Estremadura, stationed
-at Deleytosa, was reduced to 6000 soldiers, the remainder, with Eguia,
-marching towards La Mancha. About the same time an army of some 13,000
-men, under La Romana, whom Wellington describes as “more intelligent
-and reasonable” than most of his countrymen, moved from Galicia to
-the neighbourhood of Ciudad Rodrigo. La Romana himself proceeded to
-Seville and was succeeded by the Duque del Parque, who marched towards
-Salamanca.
-
-Wellington watched del Parque’s forward movements with dismay, and
-ordered magazines to be prepared upon the Douro and Mondego “to assist
-in providing for these vagabonds if they should retire into Portugal,
-which I hope they will do, as their only chance of salvation.”
-
-On the 10th October Wellington was at Lisbon to arrange future
-operations, and where he studied “on the ground” the possibility of
-defending Portugal. This reconnaissance resulted in the defence known
-as the “Lines of Torres Vedras,” of which particulars will be given as
-the story proceeds.[55]
-
-By the end of the month he was back at Badajoz, writing endless
-dispatches relative to the thousand and one concerns--military,
-political and financial--of the two armies. By the beginning of
-November del Parque was obliged to retire owing to the arrival from
-Estremadura of some 36,000 men under Mortier in Old Castile. Eguia’s
-entry into La Mancha from Estremadura two months before had been
-followed by the arrival of 30,000 of the enemy’s troops under Victor
-in that province, whereupon the Spanish commander had withdrawn to the
-Sierra Morena, and the French to the Tagus.
-
-The Spanish Government now entertained the hope of gaining the complete
-possession of Madrid. Two forces were to be honoured with the carrying
-out of this ambitious project. The army of La Mancha, now under the
-inexperienced General Areizaga, joined by the greater part of the army
-of Estremadura, and consisting of 50,000 men, was to march from the
-Sierra Morena. Del Parque, with the army of Galicia, 20,000 strong, was
-to take Salamanca and then present himself before the capital. Areizaga
-met with some temporary success, but on the 19th November some 4000
-of his men were either lying dead or wounded on the bloody field of
-Ocaña, within easy distance of Madrid. No fewer than 18,000 were taken
-prisoners by King Joseph’s troops. When the distressed General gathered
-together the fragments of his shattered army in the Sierra Morena, only
-a half of the original number were present, which means that 3000 had
-deserted. He must have been sadly deficient in cannon, for the French
-had captured over fifty pieces.
-
-Del Parque was scarcely more successful. He was attacked at Tamames
-on the 19th October by troops under Marchand, whom he defeated. Thus
-encouraged, he advanced to Salamanca, which the French had occupied,
-and taken possession of. In the last week of November he was beaten
-at Alba de Tormes, to which he had retreated, with a loss of 3000
-men. Some of his troops retired on Galicia, the remainder on Ciudad
-Rodrigo.[56]
-
-With the object of giving the Spanish Government time to repair their
-losses in southern Spain, and surmising that whatever reinforcements
-the French might receive would be for use against the British now that
-the armies under Blake, Areizaga, and del Parque were scattered,
-Wellington prepared to move the greater part of his army north of the
-Tagus, towards the frontiers of Castile, but leaving a body of troops
-under Lieutenant-General Hill at Abrantes, so that the Lower Tagus
-might not be left unguarded. Early in January 1810, Wellington made
-his headquarters at Coimbra, on the Mondego, and within comparatively
-easy distance of the sea, conceivably a useful ally now that Napoleon
-was sending additional reinforcements, and Soult had 70,000 men at his
-disposal.
-
-The passes of Despeña Perros, and Puerto del Rey through the Sierra
-Morena, but weakly defended by Spanish troops under Areizaga, were
-forced by the French without difficulty. On the last day of January
-1810, Seville capitulated. That Wellington anticipated this is proved
-by a letter he wrote on that date to Lord Liverpool. Cadiz was saved
-from a similar fate by the Duke of Albuquerque, who reached the city
-in the nick of time, although Victor’s outposts had been seen on the
-banks of the Guadalquivir. Major-General the Hon. W. Stewart was sent
-to assist in the defence of the place, and arrived towards the end of
-February with some 5000 British and Portuguese troops, while a British
-fleet lay in the Bay.
-
-Meanwhile Wellington was able to report considerable progress in
-some of the regiments in the Portuguese army, thanks very largely to
-the exertions of Marshal Beresford. Fifteen regiments he had seen
-while marching from Badajoz to Coimbra showed decided improvement in
-discipline, and he had “no doubt that the whole will prove an useful
-acquisition to the country.” They were “in general unhealthy.” The
-conduct of his own troops was “infamous” when not under the inspection
-of officers. “They have never brought up a convoy of money that they
-have not robbed the chest; nor of shoes, or any other article that
-could be of use to them, or could produce money, that they do not steal
-something.”
-
-The failure of the Walcheren Expedition[57] not only led to a
-duel between Canning and Castlereagh and the fall of Portland’s
-administration, but caused the British public to lose faith in things
-military. It seemed not at all improbable that the new Ministry formed
-by Perceval, in which Lord Wellesley became Foreign Secretary, and
-Lord Liverpool Secretary for War and the Colonies, would withdraw the
-British army from the Peninsula, especially as Talavera had aroused
-little or no enthusiasm, and a retreat was regarded by the man in
-the street as scarcely better than a defeat. In this connexion it
-is interesting to note that when Wellington was asked what was the
-best test of a great general, he gave as his answer, “To know when to
-retreat; and to dare to do it.” Aware of the state of public opinion,
-he did not press for further reinforcements.
-
-In a letter to the Rt. Hon. John Villiers, dated Viseu, 14th January
-1810, the Commander-in-Chief definitely states “that in its present
-state” the army was “not sufficient for the defence of Portugal.” He
-anticipated having 30,000 effective British troops when the soldiers
-then on their way from England and those in hospital were available:
-“I will fight a good battle for the possession of Portugal, and see
-whether that country cannot be saved from the general wreck.”
-
-“I conceive,” he concludes, “that the honor and interests of the
-country require that we should hold our ground here as long as
-possible; and, please God, I will maintain it as long as I can; and I
-will neither endeavor to shift from my own shoulders on those of the
-Ministers the responsibility for the failure, by calling for means
-which I know they cannot give, and which, perhaps, would not add
-materially to the facility of attaining our object; nor will I give to
-the Ministers, who are not strong, and who must feel the delicacy of
-their own situation, an excuse for withdrawing the army from a position
-which, in my opinion, the honor and interest of the country require
-they should maintain as long as possible.
-
-“I think that if the Portuguese do their duty, I shall have enough to
-maintain it; if they do not, nothing that Great Britain can afford can
-save the country; and if from that cause I fail in saving it, and am
-obliged to go, I shall be able to carry away the British army.”
-
-The war in Spain still continued see-saw fashion. A province would be
-apparently conquered by Napoleon’s troops when no sooner did the troops
-march on than the trouble began again. This happened more especially
-with Suchet in Aragon. In Catalonia the intrepid O’Donnell and his men
-flitted about like a will-o’-the-wisp and worked sad havoc whenever
-they came across a detached force, though Hostalrich fell and Lerida
-surrendered in May, as well as the castle of Mequinenza a little later.
-
-Napoleon had not been sleeping. In the previous year he had been too
-occupied in humbling Austria and annexing Rome and the Ecclesiastical
-States to give much attention to the Peninsula. He now placed Marshal
-Masséna, Prince of Essling, who by reason of his success was known
-as “the spoilt child of victory”--incidentally he was the son of an
-inn-keeper--in command of 180,000 troops, for which purpose he arrived
-at Valladolid in the middle of May 1810. Within a month the French
-forces in Spain were raised to no fewer than 366,000 men of all ranks
-and arms.
-
-Surely “the heir of Charlemagne,” as Napoleon termed himself, was on
-the point of crushing the resistance of the Iberian Peninsula, and
-with it insignificant Portugal and Wellington? Was it feasible that
-60,000 British, Germans, and Portuguese, sometimes aided but more often
-hindered by an “insurgent” rabble, and indirectly by the two remaining
-Spanish armies in Galicia and Estremadura, could contest with any
-likelihood of success more than a third of a million of trained troops?
-The law of probability answered in the negative.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-The Lines of Torres Vedras
-
-(1810)
-
- “_France is not an enemy whom I despise, nor does it deserve I
- should._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-Pasquier, who had the privilege of knowing most of the generals of the
-Revolution and of the Empire, says of Masséna that he was “France’s
-first military commander after Napoleon.” Neither Pichegru, Moreau,
-Kléber, nor Lannes gave the Chancellor “as completely as Masséna, the
-idea of a born warrior, possessing a genius for war, and endowed with
-all the qualities which render victory certain. His eagle eye seemed
-made to scan a field of battle. One could understand, on seeing him,
-that the soldier under his command never believed it was possible to
-retreat.”
-
-[Illustration: “You are too young, sir, to be killed!”
-
-Thomas Maybank]
-
-Masséna’s first important operation in the Peninsula was the siege of
-the Spanish fortress of Ciudad Rodrigo. Although Wellington was in
-the neighbourhood he was not to be enticed away from his immediate
-objects, which were the defence of Lisbon and the thorough organization
-of the army for service when action became absolutely imperative.
-Notwithstanding a splendid defence for over two months on the part of
-Governor Herrasti, the garrison of Ciudad Rodrigo was compelled to
-surrender on the 10th July. In August, Masséna crossed the frontier
-preparatory to beginning the siege of Almeida, near the river Coa,
-next to Elvas the strongest place in Portugal.
-
-On the 24th July, Craufurd and his famous Light Division--not Light
-Brigade as some would have it--had a fierce tussle with Ney’s corps
-of 24,000 men. Craufurd, who had only 4000 troops at his disposal,
-entertained no wild notion of preventing the investment of the place,
-but as he was suddenly attacked he was obliged to fight. Had he been
-a more cautious soldier he would have crossed the Coa before Ney came
-up, as Wellington had suggested on the 22nd. Indeed, so early as the
-11th, the Commander-in-Chief had said, “I would not wish you to fall
-back beyond that place (_i.e._ Almeida), unless it should be necessary.
-But it does not appear necessary that you should be so far, and it
-will be safer that you should be nearer, at least with your infantry.”
-He delayed too late, and thereby lost over 300 men. While the last of
-the soldiers were crossing the bridge which spanned the swollen river,
-for it had rained in torrents the previous night, a lanky Irish lad
-of nineteen years, named Stewart, and known by the 43rd as “The Boy,”
-positively refused to pass over. “So this is the end of our boasting!
-This is our first battle, and we retreat! The Boy Stewart will not
-live to hear that said,” he cried, and turning back he slashed at
-the oncoming French until he fell dead. Even more courageous was the
-conduct of Sergeant Robert M‘Quade, five years Stewart’s senior. He
-happened to catch sight of two French soldiers with levelled muskets
-awaiting the British to ascend a bank. A boy of sixteen, afterwards
-famous as Sir George Brown (Colonel-in-Chief of the Rifle Brigade) was
-on the verge of being shot by them when the sergeant pulled him back
-from the fatal spot. “You are too young, sir, to be killed,” he cried
-as his own body received two bullets and fell in a lifeless heap at the
-feet of the youth.
-
-That Colonel Cox, who was in charge of the fortress, would have stayed
-Masséna’s advance for a considerable time is extremely likely,
-but unfortunately he was not given the opportunity to display his
-prowess. The powder-magazine blew up, almost destroying the town and
-necessitating immediate surrender. The pursuit of Wellington, “to drive
-him into the sea,” seemed a comparatively easy task until the advance
-showed that the British General had caused the country to be stripped
-almost entirely of provisions. Thus Napoleon’s policy of making “war
-support war” by plundering and raiding the enemy’s country, completely
-broke down. “In war all that is useful is legitimate,” he says, and
-Wellington had followed the maxim, after having obtained permission
-for the destruction of provisions from the Portuguese Regency, which
-included Mr Charles Stuart, the British Minister at Lisbon. What
-Wellington’s measures meant to Masséna’s army is summed up in a single
-sentence by Sir Harry Smith, who carried a dispatch to Lord Hill
-through territory occupied by the enemy. “The spectacle,” he says, “of
-hundreds of miserable wretches of French soldiers on the road in a
-state of _starvation_ is not to be described.” Nor was this all. Not
-only did the place resemble a desert in the difficulty of obtaining
-means of sustenance, but the majority of the inhabitants had fled, some
-seeking the fastnesses of the mountains, others the larger cities such
-as Lisbon and Oporto.
-
-As Masséna advanced so Wellington retreated towards the celebrated
-lines of Torres Vedras, upon the construction of which thousands of
-peasants, under the direction of British engineers, had been busy for
-six months.
-
-These magnificent defences are thus described by one who knew them.[58]
-They “consisted of redoubts and field-works of various kinds; according
-to the ground they were to defend, and all connected with each other
-by entrenchments, etc., so that, when occupied by the army, it would
-almost be impossible to force them. But, even supposing this first line
-of defence should be carried by the enemy, there was another, much
-more contracted, to retreat upon, where a very small force could hold
-out against the French army and cover the embarkation of the British,
-should Lord Wellington be at last forced to quit Portugal. I cannot
-help considering this retreat to the lines, and the pertinacity with
-which he held them in spite of every difficulty, and the remonstrances
-of the Government at home, which was seized with alarm, as the greatest
-proof of a master mind and genius that could be given, and proved
-Lord Wellington to be superior to any general the French had, except
-Napoleon; in short, that he was, next to Buonaparte himself, the
-first general of the day. And I am further convinced that, had he the
-same opportunities that Napoleon had, he would have proved as great a
-general, as his capacity and powers of mind would have strengthened and
-expanded in proportion to the vastness of his views and the obstacles
-to be surmounted.”
-
-An officer of the 60th Rifles, who served behind them, furnishes a
-more detailed pen-sketch. “The line of defence was double,” he writes.
-“The first, which was twenty-nine miles long, began at Alhandra, on
-the Tagus, crossed the valley of Armia, which was rather a weak point,
-and passed along the skirts of Mount Agraça, where there was a large
-and strong redoubt; it then passed across the valley of Zibreira, and
-skirted the ravine of Runa to the heights of Torres Vedras, which were
-well fortified; and from thence followed the course of the little
-river Zizandre to its mouth on the sea-coast. The line followed the
-sinuosities of the mountain track which extends from the Tagus to the
-sea, about thirty miles north of Lisbon. Lord Wellington’s headquarters
-were fixed at Pero Negro, a little in the rear of the centre of the
-line, where a telegraph was fixed corresponding with every part of the
-position. The second line, at a distance varying from six to ten miles
-in the rear of the first, extended from Quintella, on the Tagus, by
-Bucellas, Montechique, and Mafra, to the mouth of the little river
-S. Lourenço, on the sea-coast, and was twenty-four miles long. This
-was the stronger line of the two, both by Nature and art, and if the
-first line were forced by the enemy, the retreat of the army upon the
-second was secure at all times. Both lines were secured by breastworks,
-abattis, stone walls with banquettes, and scarps. In the rear of the
-second line there was a line of embarkation, should that measure become
-necessary, enclosing an entrenched camp and the fort of St Julian.” As
-many as 120 redoubts and 427 pieces of artillery were scattered along
-these lines. “Lord Wellington had received reinforcements from England
-and Cadiz; the Portuguese army had also been strengthened, and the
-Spanish division of La Romana, 5000 strong, came from Estremadura to
-join the Allies;[59] so that the British commander had about 60,000
-regular troops posted along the first and second lines, besides the
-Portuguese militia and artillery (which manned the forts and redoubts
-and garrisoned Lisbon), a fine body of English marines which occupied
-a line of embarkation, a powerful fleet in the Tagus, and a flotilla
-of gun-boats flanking the right of the British line. It was altogether
-a stupendous line of defence, conceived by the military genius of the
-British commander, and executed by the military skill of the British
-engineer officers.”
-
-Wellington continued to fall back until he reached “Busaco’s iron
-ridge,” north of the Mondego. Here he determined to offer Masséna
-battle, for three principal reasons. First, there was a growing
-discontent amongst the rank and file of his army by reason of lack
-of active warfare and the fall of Ciudad Rodrigo and Almeida, and a
-victory would put an end to this growing despondency. Second, also a
-military consideration, the orders he had given for the laying waste of
-the districts about Lisbon were not yet fully carried out. Third, from
-a political point of view it was necessary because it would show that
-he was not about to lock himself up within the lines of Torres Vedras
-because he was incapable or afraid of Napoleon’s legions. In a word, it
-would “restore confidence,” a matter of first importance. It is quite
-incorrect to term Busaco a “useless battle” as some historians have
-done.
-
-“On the 25th and 26th,”[60] says M. de Rocca, “the French corps
-arrived successively at the foot of the mountains Sierra de Busaco,
-whose summits they found occupied by the Anglo-Portuguese army. At six
-o’clock, on the morning of the 27th, they marched in column against the
-right and centre of that army, in the two roads leading to Coimbra, by
-the village of San Antonio de Cantaro, and by the convent of Busaco.
-These roads were cut up in several places, and defended by artillery.
-The mountain over which they pass is besides encumbered with steep
-rocks, and is very difficult of access.
-
-“The French column which attacked the right of the English advanced
-with intrepidity, in spite of the fire of their artillery and
-light troops. It reached the top of the eminence after sustaining
-considerable loss, and began to deploy in line with the greatest
-coolness, and most perfect regularity. But a superior force again
-assaulted it, and compelled it to retire. It soon rallied, made a
-second attack, and was again repulsed. The French battalions, which
-advanced against the convent of Busaco, where the left and centre of
-the English divisions joined, were also driven back, a little before
-they reached that post. General Simon, who had been struck by two balls
-during the charge, was left on the height, and a great many wounded
-officers and soldiers.
-
-“The position occupied by the English and Portuguese on the brow of
-the hill, formed the arc of a circle, whose two extremes embraced
-the ground over which the French had to advance. The allied army saw
-the least movements made below them, and had time to form to receive
-any powerful body before it arrived. This circumstance materially
-contributed to the advantage they obtained....
-
-“Marshal Masséna judged that the position of Lord Wellington could
-not be carried in front, and resolved to turn it. He kept up an
-irregular fire till the evening, and sent off a body of troops by the
-mountain-road, which leads from Mortago to Oporto. The English and
-Portuguese, in consequence of this movement, abandoned their position
-on the mountain of Busaco.”
-
-The attack on the British left was led by Ney, and it succeeded in
-driving in the sharp-shooters. The French had practically reached the
-summit, as Rocca states, when Craufurd’s division, concealed in a
-hollow, gave them the full benefit of their fire. “The enemy,” says Sir
-Charles Stewart, who fought on this memorable day, “unable to retreat,
-and afraid to resist, were rolled down the steep like a torrent of
-hailstones driven before a powerful wind; and not the bayonets only,
-but the very hands of some of our brave fellows, became in an instant
-red with the blood of the fugitives. More brilliant or more decisive
-charges than those executed this day by the two divisions which bore
-the brunt of the action, were never perhaps witnessed; nor could
-anything equal the gallantry and intrepidity of our men throughout,
-except perhaps the hardihood which had ventured upon so desperate an
-attack.”
-
-Reynier’s two divisions, 15,000 men in all, attacked Picton’s 3rd
-division on the right. The troops of Generals Hill and Leith, moving
-rapidly to Picton’s aid, decided their fate. “The right of the 3rd
-division had been, in the first instance, borne back,” says an
-eye-witness, “the 8th Portuguese had suffered most severely; the enemy
-had formed, in good order, upon the ground which they had so boldly
-won, and were preparing to bear down to the right, and sweep our field
-of battle. Lord Wellington arrived on the spot at this moment, and
-aided the gallant efforts of Picton’s regiments, the fire of whose
-musketry was terrible, by causing two guns to play upon the French
-flank with grape. Unshaken even with this destruction, they still held
-their ground, till, with levelled bayonets and the shout of the charge,
-the 45th and 88th regiments, British, most gallantly supported by the
-8th Portuguese, rushed forwards, and hurried them down the mountain
-side with a fearful slaughter.”
-
-“This movement,” writes Wellington, “has afforded me a favorable
-opportunity of showing the enemy the description of troops of which
-this army is composed; it has brought the Portuguese levies into action
-with the enemy for the first time in an advantageous situation; and
-they have proved that the trouble which has been taken with them has
-not been thrown away, and that they are worthy of contending in the
-same ranks with British troops in this interesting cause, which they
-afford the best hopes of saving.
-
-“Throughout the contest on the Serra, and in all the previous marches,
-and those which we have since made, the whole army have conducted
-themselves in the most regular manner. Accordingly all the operations
-have been carried on with ease; the soldiers have suffered no
-privations, have undergone no unnecessary fatigue, there has been no
-loss of stores, and the army is in the highest spirits.”
-
-The total British and Portuguese losses, according to the official
-figures, were 197 killed, 1014 wounded, and 58 missing. Masséna
-reported casualties to the number of 4486 men, including five
-generals. Anything but a kindly feeling existed between the French
-Commander-in-Chief and Ney previous to the battle; the result merely
-deepened their unfriendliness, a pitiful contrast to the cordial
-relations of Wellington and his colleagues.[61]
-
-It is both delightful and pathetic to know that, after the last roll of
-the guns had echoed through the valley, the British and the French put
-aside their weapons and worked side by side in the humanitarian task of
-searching for the wounded. It was the final scene of the tragedy, acted
-after the curtain had fallen. It is recorded, as one of the incidents,
-that a German officer serving with Napoleon’s colours, who had a
-brother in the British 60th Regiment, asked a sworn enemy of an hour
-ago if he knew what had happened to his relative? He answered his own
-pathetic question by finding the soldier’s corpse.
-
- _Books may tell of its story,
- But only the heart can know
- How war is robbed of its glory,
- By the brave ones lying low,_
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-Masséna beats a Retreat
-
-(1810-11)
-
- “_There will be a breeze near Lisbon, but I hope we shall have the
- best of it._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-Owing to the failure of one of Wellington’s officers to occupy the
-Boialva Pass, Masséna was able to turn the British position, with the
-result that his advanced guard appeared in front of Coimbra on the
-evening of the 30th September.
-
-When the Commander-in-Chief saw the French army defiling across the
-mountains “he seemed uneasy,” according to one who watched him, “his
-countenance bore a fierce, angry expression, and, suddenly mounting his
-horse, he rode away without speaking.”
-
-No attempt was made to attack the enemy, Wellington considering it more
-prudent to leave the ridge, cross the Mondego, and retreat towards
-Lisbon. This resolution was come to on the 28th September, and on the
-1st October the last man of the rear-guard had evacuated the town.
-“Although I could not save Coimbra,” Wellington writes, “I have very
-little doubt of being able to hold this country against the force which
-has now attacked it.”
-
-The place was immediately occupied by Masséna’s famished troops,
-who found it not entirely destitute of eatables, as seemed only
-too probable judging by previous experience, although much of the
-food had been destroyed by Wellington’s orders. They had merely to
-help themselves to what they could find, for most of the population
-had followed in the wake of the allied army. “The inhabitants
-of the country have fled from their houses universally,” the
-Commander-in-Chief writes to the Earl of Liverpool from Alcobaço on
-the 5th October, “carrying with them every thing they could take away
-which could be deemed useful to the enemy; and the habits of plunder
-which have been so long encouraged in the enemy’s army prevent them
-from deriving any general advantage from the little resource which the
-inhabitants may have been obliged to leave behind them.”
-
-It is the straightforward utterance of a straightforward man.
-Wellington seldom indulged in picturesque language; he had neither the
-natural ability which commands a delicate choice of language nor the
-time for vivid diction. His mind was cast in a sterner mould; he craved
-for exactness, for cold, matter-of-fact calculations, for ungarnished
-essentials.
-
-[Illustration: The Retreat from Coimbra
-
-Thomas Maybank]
-
-For graphic details we must turn to such an authority as Sir Charles
-Stewart, who writes with the fluency of a gifted war-correspondent
-permitted to ride with the officers and obtain a view of everything
-of importance. “Crowds of men, women, and children,” he says,“--of
-the sick, the aged, and the infirm, as well as of the robust and the
-young--covered the roads and the fields in every direction. Mothers
-might be seen with infants at their breasts hurrying towards the
-capital, and weeping as they went; old men, scarcely able to totter
-along, made way chiefly by the aid of their sons and daughters; whilst
-the whole wayside soon became strewed with bedding, blankets, and
-other species of household furniture, which the weary fugitives were
-unable to carry farther. During the retreat of Sir John Moore’s army
-numerous heartrending scenes were brought before us; for then, as now,
-the people, particularly in Galicia, fled at our approach; but
-they all returned sooner or later to their homes, nor ever dreamed of
-accumulating upon our line of march, or following our fortunes. The
-case was different here. Those who forsook their dwellings, forsook
-them under the persuasion that they should never behold them again;
-and the agony which such an apprehension appeared to excite among the
-majority exceeds any attempt at description.... It could not but occur
-to us that, though the devastating system must inevitably bear hard
-upon the French, the most serious evils would, in all probability,
-arise out of it, both to ourselves and our allies, from the famine and
-general distress which it threatened to bring upon a crowd so dense,
-shut up within the walls of a single city. At the moment there were
-few amongst us who seemed not disposed to view it with reprobation;
-because, whilst they condemned its apparent violation of every feeling
-of humanity and justice, they doubted the soundness of the policy in
-which it originated.”
-
-Leaving a meagre force to guard the wounded and sick at Coimbra,
-Masséna started off in pursuit of the enemy as soon as the most
-primeval of creature comforts had been satisfied. Six days after
-his soldiers had left the place, namely, the 11th October 1810,
-Wellington’s men entered the lines of Torres Vedras, but so rapid had
-been the French advance that they began to appear on the following
-morning. La Romana had crossed from Estremadura with several thousand
-Spanish troops, thereby adding to Wellington’s forces, while Portuguese
-militia threatened the enemy’s communications.
-
-Masséna dared not attempt to retreat for fear of incurring Napoleon’s
-displeasure. His only hope, as he repented at leisure, was that the
-supplies of the defenders might fail, or that the Emperor, in response
-to urgent dispatches, would speedily send reinforcements both of men
-and of arms. The news that Coimbra, its garrison, and its invalids,
-had fallen into the hands of militia under Colonel Trant merely added
-insult to injury. As regards “starving out” the British and their
-allies, it was far more probable that their own food would run out, for
-while Wellington held the Tagus a constant supply of the necessaries
-of life was secured from incoming ships. Hunger did indeed eventually
-drive Masséna from Santarem, a town some thirty miles from Wellington’s
-lines, on which he had been forced to fall back in November. The
-place, perched on the summit of a height between the rivers Rio Mayor
-and Aviella, was admirably suited for defensive purposes, but after
-the surrounding country had been stripped there was nothing to do but
-retire. The Marshal was fortunate in finding a district which the
-Portuguese had not laid bare. It sounds almost incredible, but it is
-recorded that when Masséna succeeded in crossing the frontier his men
-were so famished that one of them consumed no less than seventeen
-pounds of native bread. The French General awaited with feverish
-anxiety the coming of Soult to his relief for nearly four months, but
-that worthy was fighting battles and besieging Badajoz, which the
-Spaniards surrendered on the 10th March 1811, five days after his
-colleague had been forced by sheer necessity to begin a retreat across
-the mountains towards Ciudad Rodrigo.
-
-The author of “The Journal of an Officer,” a reliable eye-witness, thus
-describes the town after Masséna had left it: “I have been for some
-weeks in view of Santarem, and saw at last with pleasure some symptoms
-of the French abandoning it. The first was setting fire to one of the
-principal convents in the upper town, and part of the lower town; the
-volume of smoke was immense for three days. On the fourth morning some
-information to depend on reached us, and the bugle of attack roused us
-from our pillows. The haze of the morning clearing up, we could easily
-perceive the out sentinels were men of straw, and quite passive.[62] In
-fact, a better managed retreat was never executed. Not a vestige of a
-dollar’s worth remained. Being at the outposts with the 11th Dragoons
-and the 1st Royals, I entered with them, and three miserable deserters,
-who had hid themselves with one too ill to move, were the only enemies
-to be found. Such a scene of horror, misery, and desolation, scarce
-ever saluted the eye of man. Smoking ruins, the accumulated filth of
-months, horses and human beings putrefied to suffocation, nearly caused
-to many a vomiting. The houses had scarcely a vestige of wood--doors,
-windows, ceilings, roofs, burnt; and where the sick had expired,
-there left to decay! The number thus left were great. Every church
-demolished, the tombs opened for searching after hidden plate, every
-altar-piece universally destroyed, and the effluvia so offensive as to
-defy describing.
-
-“In some gardens, the miserable heads, undecayed, stuck up like
-scarecrows; in some wells, a body floating.
-
-“Down a precipice to which we were invited by prospect to look, the
-human and animal carcases ... repulsed our senses, and shudderingly
-vibrated the soul at the savage, horrible, diabolical acts of a
-French army. Greater spirits, better discipline, and more order,
-never attended an army than this. But to see the country, is to weep
-for the horrors of war. Such horrid excess I never saw before. Every
-town, village, or cottage destroyed. The growing nursery and the wild
-grove, each havocked for destruction’s sake. The pot that refined
-the oil broken, the wine-press burnt, for burning’s sake; the grape
-vines destroyed as noxious weeds; the furniture unburnt thrown from
-the windows, and with carriages, etc., made a bonfire of; the large
-libraries strewed over the land in remnants of paper; the noble convent
-in ashes, and the poor, unhappy, aged inhabitants, unable to flee, hung
-around as ornamenting the walls, ten or twelve in a place!”
-
-Wellington, who had now received reinforcements, moved his headquarters
-to Santarem on the 6th March, anxious to overtake the enemy with the
-least possible delay. He received the usual conflicting accounts of
-the direction taken by them and their probable destination. Oporto was
-suggested, which the Commander did not believe, “but they are in such a
-state of distress, that it may be expected that they will try anything,
-however desperate. But I follow them closely; and they will find it
-difficult to stop anywhere, for any purpose, till they shall draw near
-the frontier.” He detached two divisions under Beresford, hoping that
-he might be able to relieve Badajoz, and with five others continued to
-keep “close at their heels,” to use his own expression. Unfortunately
-the place fell before it was possible for Beresford to reach it. Had
-the Governor held out, Wellington was of opinion that “the Peninsula
-would have been safe,” and the relief of the south of Spain practically
-certain.
-
-“Affairs” with the enemy were frequent during Wellington’s pursuit,
-but by forcing them to evacuate the various positions they attempted
-to occupy, such as Pombal, Redinha, Cazal Nova and Foz d’Aronce,
-any designs they might have had against the northern provinces were
-prevented, notwithstanding the fact that the country afforded “many
-advantageous positions to a retreating army, of which the enemy have
-shown that they know how to avail themselves.”
-
-In writing to the Earl of Liverpool, Wellington remarks that “their
-conduct throughout this retreat has been marked by a barbarity seldom
-equalled, and never surpassed.” He tells a moving story of plunder,
-the burning of houses, a convent, and a bishop’s palace. “This is the
-mode,” he adds in a burst of indignation, “in which the promises have
-been performed, and the assurances have been fulfilled, which were held
-out in the proclamation of the French Commander-in-Chief, in which he
-told the inhabitants of Portugal that he was not come to make war upon
-them, but with a powerful army of 110,000 men to drive the English into
-the sea.
-
-“It is to be hoped that the example of what has occurred in this
-country will teach the people of this and of other nations what value
-they ought to place on such promises and assurances; and that there
-is no security for life, or for anything which makes life valuable,
-excepting in decided resistance to the enemy.”
-
-The difficulties of the chase were many and oftentimes almost
-unsurmountable. Boats and bridge-building materials were scarce, and
-caused delay in crossing rivers. Shoes wore out rapidly on account
-of the bad quality of the leather, and many of them were too small.
-Endless trouble was caused by the Spanish muleteers, who absolutely
-refused to attend the Portuguese troops, some of whom Wellington was
-obliged to leave in the rear owing to the scarcity of provisions. For
-instance, two brigades of infantry had to make nine days’ provisions,
-consisting chiefly of bread and a little meat supplied by the British
-commissariat, last for twenty-four days. “This is the assistance I
-receive from the Portuguese Government!” the Commander-in-Chief writes,
-and one can imagine his grim face hardening as he pens the words. There
-were the usual grievances against the rascally army contractors. The
-boots sent out were of bad quality, “in general too small.” We find him
-ordering 150,000 pairs of boots and 100,000 pairs of soles and heels at
-a time.
-
-The most serious action during Masséna’s retreat was fought at Sabugal,
-on the Coa, on the 3rd April. “We moved on the 2nd,” Wellington says
-when giving details of the engagement to Beresford, “and the British
-army was formed opposite to them; the divisions of militia, under
-Trant and Wilson, were sent across the river at Cinco Villas, to alarm
-Almeida for its communication. Yesterday morning”--he is writing on
-the 4th inst.--“we moved the whole army (with the exception of the
-6th division, which remained at Rapoula de Coa, opposite Loison) to
-the right, in order to turn this position, and force the passage of
-the river. The 2nd corps could not have stood here for a moment; but
-unfortunately the Light division, which formed the right of the whole,
-necessarily passed first, and the leading brigade, Beckwith’s, drove
-in the enemy’s piquets, which were followed briskly by four companies
-of the 95th, and three of Elder’s caçadores, and supported by the
-43rd regiment. At this time there came on a rain storm, and it was as
-difficult to see as in the fogs on Busaco, and these troops pushed on
-too far, and became engaged with the main body of the enemy. The light
-infantry fell back upon their support, which instead of halting, moved
-forward. The French then seeing how weak the body was which had passed,
-attempted to drive them down to the Coa, and did oblige the 43rd to
-turn. They rallied again, however, and beat in the French; but were
-attacked by fresh troops and cavalry, and were obliged to retire; but
-formed again, and beat back the enemy. At this time the 52nd joined the
-43rd, and both moved on upon the enemy, and to be charged and attacked
-again in the same manner, and beat back. They formed again, moved
-forward upon the enemy, and established themselves on the top of the
-hill in an enclosure, and here they beat off the enemy.
-
-“But Reynier was placing a body of infantry on their left flank, which
-must have destroyed them, only that at that moment the head of the 3rd
-division, which had passed the Coa on the left of the Light division,
-came up, and opened their fire upon this column; and the 5th division,
-which passed this bridge and through this town [Sabugal], made their
-appearance.
-
-“The enemy then retired, having lost in this affair a howitzer, and I
-should think not less than 1000 men.
-
-“Our loss is much less than one would have supposed possible, scarcely
-200 men. The 43rd have 73 killed and wounded. But really these attacks
-in columns[63] against our lines are very contemptible.
-
-“The contest was latterly entirely for the howitzer, which was taken
-and retaken twice, and at last remained in our hands. Our cavalry,
-which ought to have crossed the Coa on the right of the Light division,
-crossed at the same ford, and therefore could be of no use to them.
-Besides they went too far to the right.
-
-“In short, these combinations for engagements do not answer, unless one
-is upon the spot to direct every trifling movement. I was upon a hill
-on the left of the Coa, immediately above the town, till the 3rd and
-5th divisions crossed, whence I could see every movement on both sides,
-and could communicate with ease with everybody; but that was not near
-enough.
-
-“We took 6 Officers, and between 200 and 300 prisoners, and Soult’s[64]
-and Loison’s baggage.”
-
-Two days after this affair on the banks of the Coa Masséna crossed the
-frontier, having been literally driven out of Portugal. Within a few
-hours we find Wellington urging on Beresford the necessity for a strict
-blockade of Badajoz preparatory to besieging it. Masséna fell back
-upon Salamanca, while Wellington busied himself with the investment of
-Almeida, where a French garrison had been left. With Ciudad Rodrigo,
-the second and remaining place occupied by the Marshal’s troops, he
-felt he could do little at the moment beyond intercepting supplies.
-These two forts, which are within comparatively easy distance and
-almost parallel, the one in Portugal and the other in Spain, were
-extremely important, and commanded the north-eastern frontier of the
-former country.
-
-Incidentally, the British Commander-in-Chief also took the opportunity
-to publish a lengthy Proclamation to the Portuguese nation, of which
-the following is a brief synopsis. He informs the inhabitants that they
-are now “at liberty to return to their occupations,” that nearly four
-years have elapsed since “the tyrant of Europe” invaded the country,
-the object being “the insatiable desire of plunder, the wish to
-disturb the tranquillity, and to enjoy the riches of a people who had
-passed nearly half a century in peace.” He then strikes a deeper note
-and adds a few words of advice as to the future:
-
-“The Marshal General, however, considers it his duty, in announcing the
-intelligence of the result of the last invasion, to warn the people
-of Portugal, that, although the danger is removed, it is not entirely
-gone by. They have something to lose, and the tyrant will endeavor to
-plunder them: they are happy under the mild government of a beneficent
-Sovereign; and he will endeavor to destroy their happiness: they have
-successfully resisted him, and he will endeavor to force them to submit
-to his iron yoke. They should be unremitting in their preparations for
-decided and steady resistance; those capable of bearing arms should
-learn the use of them; or those whose age or sex renders them unfit
-to bear arms should fix upon places of security and concealment, and
-should make all the arrangements for their easy removal to them when
-the moment of danger shall approach. Valuable property, which tempts
-the avarice of the tyrant and his followers, and is the great object of
-their invasion, should be carefully buried beforehand, each individual
-concealing his own, and thus not trusting to the weakness of others to
-keep a secret in which they may not be interested.
-
-“Measures should be taken to conceal or destroy provisions which cannot
-be removed, and everything which can tend to facilitate the enemy’s
-progress; for this may be depended upon, that the enemy’s troops seize
-upon everything, and leave nothing for the owner.
-
-“By these measures, whatever may be the superiority of numbers with
-which the desire of plunder and of revenge may induce, and his power
-may enable, the tyrant again to invade this country, the result will be
-certain; and the independence of Portugal, and the happiness of its
-inhabitants, will be finally established to their eternal honor.”[65]
-
-However “beneficent” the Sovereign--who was a lunatic and out of the
-country--might be, Wellington had little that was good to say of its
-present rulers. He told them that he would inform the home Cabinet
-“that they cannot with propriety continue to risk a British army in
-this country unsupported by any exertion of any description on the part
-of the Portuguese Government.” The army was lamentably deficient “in
-that essential arm, its cavalry,” and the commissariat arrangements
-remained hopelessly deficient.
-
-The blockade of Almeida being “a simple operation, which I do not think
-the enemy have the means or inclination to interrupt,” Wellington left
-it in the hands of Lieut.-General Sir Brent Spencer in the middle of
-April, and set out from Villa Fermosa for Alemtejo to discuss his
-future projects with Castaños and also to visit Beresford. He knew that
-the French at Almeida would be forced to withdraw or surrender owing
-to the scarcity of provisions, but at Ciudad Rodrigo “there is a good
-garrison, and we certainly shall not get that place without a siege;
-for which God knows if we shall have time before the enemy will be
-reinforced. The first object is certainly Badajoz, and, as soon as I
-know whether any or what part of our train is required for the attack
-of that place, I shall send the remainder to Oporto, and make all the
-arrangements for the eventual attack of Ciudad Rodrigo.”
-
-As Soult was then busily occupied in fortifying Seville, to the south
-of Badajoz, the siege of the latter city became imperative, and without
-unnecessary delay. Soult might attempt to relieve Badajoz; certainly
-his presence at Seville precluded the likelihood of the garrison being
-deceived by any feint or actual attack made on that place by the allies
-with the object of distracting their attention.
-
-Although Wellington did not meet Castaños personally during his visit
-to the south, he sent him a plan of operations, to be undertaken with
-Blake and Ballasteros in co-operation with Beresford, and got through
-an immense amount of work in connection with the siege. “The continued
-and increasing inefficiency of the Portuguese regiments with this
-army,” gave him much cause for concern. On the 30th April 1811, four
-days after Parliament had thanked him for the liberation of Portugal,
-he tells Beresford that “if some effectual steps are not taken, the
-Portuguese force with this part of the army (_i.e._ Wellington’s) will
-be annihilated.” He concludes by saying that he must report the matter
-to the home authorities, which he did. “The Ministers and the English
-public believe that we have 30,000 men for whom we pay, and half as
-many more supported by the Portuguese Government. I do not believe that
-I have here 11,000, or that you have 5000, and of the number many are
-not fit for service.”
-
-Masséna was not the type of man who easily acknowledges defeat. He
-had been busily engaged at Salamanca in getting what remained of his
-army into working order. He had lost at least 25,000 of the 70,000 men
-who had entered Portugal, but when he decided to go to the assistance
-of Almeida he could with difficulty muster only 39,000, some 5000
-more than Wellington could put into the field. Having relieved Ciudad
-Rodrigo, Masséna crossed the Agueda, with the fixed intention of
-raising the blockade of Almeida. On the 3rd May he was in sight of the
-British army, now arrayed at Fuentes de Oñoro.
-
-The Commander-in-Chief had returned from his travels on the 28th of the
-previous month, after having been informed by Spencer of the gathering
-of the enemy. “I’ll venture to say,” remarks Kincaid, “that there was
-not a heart in the army that did not beat more lightly when we heard
-the joyful news of his arrival the day before the enemy’s advance.” On
-the 3rd May the British were “warmly but partially engaged,” and “made
-no progress in raising the blockade.”
-
-The real battle began on the 5th, and was, in Alison’s opinion, “the
-most critical in which Lord Wellington was engaged in the whole war,
-and in which the chances of irreparable defeat were most against the
-British army.” He then gives some of Sir Charles Stewart’s reflections
-on the fight, which help us to appreciate its difficulties from the
-point of view of an actual eye-witness who took a leading part in the
-battle. “Masséna’s superiority to us,” he notes, “both in cavalry
-and artillery, was very great; whilst the thick woods in our front
-afforded the most convenient plateau which he could have desired for
-the distribution of his columns unseen, and therefore disregarded. Had
-he rightly availed himself of this advantage, he might have poured the
-mass of his force upon any single point, and perhaps made an impression
-before we could have had time to support it. Had he commenced his
-attack with a violent cannonade, it must have produced some havoc,
-and probably considerable confusion, in our line. He might then have
-moved forward his cavalry _en masse_, supporting it by strong columns
-of infantry; and had either the one or the other succeeded in piercing
-through, our situation would have been by no means an enviable one....
-Had he thrown his cavalry round our right flank--a movement which
-we should have found it no easy matter to prevent--crossed the Coa,
-advanced upon our lines of communication, and stopped our supplies,
-at the moment when, with his infantry, he threatened to turn us; then
-pushed upon Sabugal and the places near, he might have compelled us
-to pass the Coa with all our artillery at the most disadvantageous
-places, and cut us off from our best and safest retreat. There was,
-indeed, a time during the affair of the 5th, when his design of acting
-in this manner was seriously apprehended; and Lord Wellington was in
-consequence reduced to the necessity of deciding whether he should
-relinquish the Sabugal road or raise the blockade of Almeida. But
-Lord Wellington’s presence of mind never for a moment forsook him. He
-felt no distrust in his troops; to retain his hold over a secure and
-accessible line of retreat was therefore to him a consideration of less
-moment than to continue an operation of which the ultimate success
-could now be neither doubtful nor remote; and he at once determined to
-expose Sabugal rather than throw open a communication with Almeida. It
-was a bold measure, but it was not adopted without due consideration,
-and it received an ample reward in the successful termination of this
-hard-fought battle.”
-
-Wellington’s line was extended on a table-land between the rivers
-Turones and Dos Casas. It reached several miles, namely, from Fort
-Conception, which covered Almeida (opposite the village of that name
-he disposed his centre), to beyond Nava d’Aver, his right being at
-Fuentes de Oñoro. Poço Velho, between the latter place and Nava d’Aver,
-was also occupied by the left wing of the 7th Division, commanded by
-General Houstoun.
-
-Masséna’s first movement was to attack the Spanish irregulars, under
-Don Julian Sanchez, stationed on the hill of Nava d’Aver, which was
-neither a lengthy nor a difficult process.
-
-Major-General Houstoun scarcely fared better, two of his battalions
-being routed. The immediate consequence was that Captain Norman
-Ramsay’s battery of Horse Artillery, which were supporting Houstoun,
-were soon fighting against fearful odds. By means of a magnificent
-charge, while the attention of part of the French force was detracted
-by the dragoons under Sir Stapleton Cotton, Ramsay made good his escape
-with every gun.
-
-The situation was extremely critical when the squares of the 7th and
-Light Divisions were attacked by the enemy’s cavalry, but Wellington
-did not hesitate for a moment as to the best course to pursue. He
-abandoned Nava d’Aver and closed in his line by a complete change
-of front, withdrawing some of his divisions to the heights, and
-Houstoun’s men behind the Turones, to a position near Freneda, which
-became the British right and Fuentes de Oñoro the left.
-
-“Montbrun’s cavalry,” we are told, “merely hovered about Craufurd’s
-squares, the plain was soon cleared, the cavalry took post behind the
-centre, and the Light Division formed a reserve to the right of the 1st
-Division, sending the riflemen among the rocks to connect it with the
-7th Division, which had arrived at Freneda, and was there joined by
-Julian Sanchez. At the sight of this new front, so deeply lined with
-troops, the French stopped short, and commenced a heavy cannonade,
-which did great execution, from the closeness of the allied masses;
-but twelve British guns replied with vigour, and the violence of the
-enemy’s fire abated; their cavalry then drew out of range, and a body
-of French infantry, attempting to glide down the ravine of the Turones,
-was repulsed by the riflemen and light companies of the Guards.”
-
-Meanwhile a fierce conflict was taking place in the village of Fuentes.
-It continued see-saw fashion until the evening, both sides bringing
-up reserves and contesting every inch of the ground. Three regiments
-were driven from the lower parts of the village, but reinforcements
-were at hand, and the higher streets were never abandoned, although a
-chapel held by the troops in that quarter was evacuated. At nightfall
-the French crossed the river, leaving 400 of their dead in the village.
-Wellington averred that the battle “was the most difficult I was ever
-concerned in, and against the greatest odds. We had very nearly three
-to one against us engaged; about four to one of cavalry; and, moreover,
-our cavalry had not a gallop in them, while some of that of the enemy
-was fresh, and in excellent order. If Bony had been there we should
-have been beaten.”
-
-As a battle the engagement scarcely could be called a victory for the
-Allies, but Masséna had failed to relieve Almeida, while Wellington
-had succeeded in covering its blockade. The total casualties of the
-British, Spanish, and Portuguese on the 3rd and 5th reached 1800, of
-the French nearly 3000, and 210 were taken prisoners. On the morning
-of the 8th May the last of the enemy left the field, but three days
-later the Commander-in-Chief received bad news. On the previous night
-the garrison of Almeida blew up part of the fortress and escaped,
-although the force sent by Wellington to blockade it was “four times
-more numerous than the garrison.” He characterized it as “the most
-disgraceful event that has yet occurred to us.” His correspondence at
-this period teems with references to it.
-
-Masséna was no longer “the favoured child of victory” or Napoleon’s
-“right arm,” as the Emperor had called him, and he was recalled, to be
-succeeded by Marmont, an excellent artillery officer then not quite
-thirty-seven years of age, whereas Masséna was fifty-three and deemed
-“too old” by his autocratic sovereign.
-
-Marmont speedily came to the conclusion when he took up his new
-post that without rest the so-called army of Portugal could not
-possibly expect to meet Wellington with any likelihood of success.
-He accordingly moved his troops to the province of Salamanca, where
-we will leave them for a little while to watch the course of the war
-elsewhere.
-
-Beresford had now invested Badajoz, and engaged the enemy in several
-sorties, on one occasion suffering severe loss owing to the imprudence
-of his troops. Receiving news to the effect that Soult was rapidly
-approaching with the determined object of relieving it, he raised the
-siege and posted his army on the ridge of Albuera to stop the French
-advance. The British Commander had nearly 32,000 men at his disposal.
-Of these no fewer than 24,000 were foreigners, including the Spanish
-forces of Blake, Castaños, Ballasteros, and Don Carlos d’España, which
-had formed a junction with him. The enemy had 23,000 troops.
-
-As Wellington was not present a detailed description of the battle,
-which took place on the 16th May, does not come within the province
-of this volume. It was one of the most fiercely contested of the
-entire war. So much so that Beresford used up his entire reserves and
-lost 4100 British troops, in addition to 1400 Portuguese and Spanish
-killed and wounded. The French losses were over 6000, and 500 were
-taken prisoners. Had it not been for Colonel Hardinge, Beresford would
-have retreated. Following his colleague’s advice he remained and was
-victorious. It was at Albuera that the 57th Foot (now the 1st Middlesex
-Regiment) won the well-deserved name of “Die Hards” from the fact that
-Colonel Inglis shouted to his troops, “Die hard, my men; die hard!”[66]
-“It was observed,” writes Beresford to Wellington, “that our dead,
-particularly the 57th regiment, were lying, as they had fought, in
-ranks, and that every wound was in front.”
-
-On the 19th Wellington, with two divisions, arrived at Elvas, and on
-the 21st he rode to Albuera and surveyed the site of the contest. “The
-fighting was desperate,” he writes, “and the loss of the British has
-been very severe; but, adverting to the nature of the contest, and the
-manner in which they held their ground against all the efforts the
-whole French army could make against them, notwithstanding all the
-losses which they had sustained, I think this action one of the most
-glorious and honourable to the character of the troops of any that has
-been fought during the war.”
-
-Surely a more noble tribute to the “common” soldier was never penned!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-The Siege of Ciudad Rodrigo
-
-(1811-12)
-
- “_The great object in all sieges is to gain time._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-The exacting nature of the campaign was beginning to tell on
-Wellington. “I certainly feel, every day,” he had written to the Earl
-of Liverpool on the 15th May 1811, “more and more the difficulty of
-the situation in which I am placed. I am obliged to go everywhere, and
-if absent from any operation, something goes wrong.” “Another such
-battle” as Albuera, he informs his brother Henry on the 22nd, “would
-ruin us,” and he proceeds to compare the Spanish and Portuguese troops,
-to the disadvantage of the former. They often held their ground too
-well, there was no moving them in a battle. On the other hand, “We do
-what we please now with the Portuguese troops; we manœuvre them under
-fire equally with our own, and have some dependence on them; but these
-Spaniards can do nothing, but stand still, and we consider ourselves
-fortunate if they do not run away.” In his report of the battle
-Beresford mentions the Spanish cavalry as having behaved “extremely
-well.”
-
-Some idea of the enormous amount of labour involved may be gained from
-the fact that on the day mentioned Wellington either wrote or dictated
-at least eighteen dispatches, including two dealing with the loss of
-an officer for whose widow and child he was endeavouring to obtain
-“favour and protection” at the hands of the home authorities. At the
-same time he was actively preparing for the renewed siege of Badajoz:
-“The late action has made a terrible hole in our ranks; but I am
-working hard to set all to rights again.” He appeared “destined to pass
-his life in the harness,” to use his own phrase, and had “a monstrous
-quantity of business to settle of different descriptions.”
-
-Referring to the difference of opinion held by his officers regarding
-his policy, he says, “I believe nothing but something worse than
-firmness could have carried me through.... To this add that people in
-England were changing their opinions almost with the wind, and you will
-see that I had not much to look to excepting myself.” The words are
-almost those of a broken-hearted man.
-
-Badajoz was again invested on the 25th May, and the batteries opened
-fire on the 3rd of the following month in an attempt to breach the
-fort of San Christoval and the castle. Wellington had then made his
-headquarters at Quinta de Granicha, from whence he writes, on the 6th
-to the Earl of Liverpool, to the effect that if he cannot prevent the
-enemy from receiving provisions he will not risk an action because he
-has not the means, and out of fairness to his soldiers he cannot “make
-them endure the labours of another siege at this advanced season.
-Notwithstanding that we have carried on our operations with such
-celerity,” he concludes “we have had great difficulties to contend
-with, and have been much delayed by the use of the old ordnance and
-equipments of Elvas, and of the Portuguese artillery, in this siege;
-some of the guns from which we fire are above 150 years old.” The
-majority of them were supposed to be 24-pounders, but they proved to
-be larger, with the result that their fire was very uncertain. Two
-attempts were made to storm the outwork of San Christoval without
-success, many brave fellows perishing in the vain effort to escalade
-the walls.
-
-Three weeks had not elapsed before it became eminently necessary to
-retire from this scene of activity. During this short time nearly 500
-officers and men had been reported as killed, wounded, or missing,
-and fifty-two of the Chasseurs Britanniques had deserted. “I have a
-great objection to foreigners in this army,” he informs a colleague
-a little later, “as they desert terribly; and they not only give the
-enemy intelligence which he would find it difficult to get in any
-other manner, but by their accounts and stories of the mode in which
-deserters from the French army are treated by us, some of them well
-founded, they have almost put an end to desertion.” The reason for the
-latter belief was the legend “that the deserters from the enemy are
-sent to the West India Islands, and have no chance of ever returning to
-Europe.”
-
-Marmont, having united his scattered units, was about to join
-forces with Soult, which meant that when they marched on Badajoz,
-as undoubtedly they would do, the French army might number between
-50,000 and 60,000 troops. Wellington had been of opinion that it was
-possible to reduce the place before the end of the second week of
-June. An intercepted dispatch from Soult to Marmont made it abundantly
-evident that the enemy were to concentrate in Estremadura, and other
-intelligence clearly proved that the destination of the French army
-was “to the southward.” Elvas, where supplies were running low, had
-first to be replenished, so that it might be in a condition of defence
-should the enemy cross the frontiers. Leaving a comparatively small
-number of men to blockade Badajoz, and having made arrangements for
-the strengthening of Elvas, he marched from that place to Quinta de
-St João, where he remained for a considerable period. For nearly a
-fortnight the French threatened to attack, and had they done so it
-is scarcely possible that Wellington could have held his own in the
-field. Soult was the first to withdraw, the immediate cause being the
-threatening of Seville by Blake, who retired when Soult approached.
-Marmont, feeling unequal to fight alone, marched to the valley of the
-Tagus and cantoned his army between Talavera and Plasencia. During the
-crisis the two marshals mustered 62,000 troops, Wellington about 48,000.
-
-The heat and other considerations prevented Wellington from besieging
-Badajoz; to relieve Cadiz was out of the question because the forces
-of Soult and Marmont would be almost certain to come to the assistance
-of the force before the great southern port. He therefore decided to
-besiege Ciudad Rodrigo, for four reasons stated in a letter to the
-Earl of Liverpool dated the 18th July, namely: “We can derive some
-assistance from our militia in the north in carrying it into execution,
-and the climate in which the operation is to be carried on is not
-unfavorable at this season. If it should not succeed, the attempt will
-remove the war to the strongest frontier of Portugal; and, if obliged
-to resume the defensive, the strength of our army will be centrically
-situated, while the enemy’s armies of the north and of the south will
-be disunited.” Shortly after the above dispatch was written he heard
-that Suchet had captured Tarragona, which made the proposed operation
-“less favorable.” “However,” he tells Beresford on the 20th of the
-same month, “we shall have a very fine army of little less than 60,000
-men,[67] including artillery, in the course of about a fortnight; and
-I do not see what I can do with it, to improve the situation of the
-allies, during the period in which it is probable that, the enemy’s
-attention being taken up with the affairs of the north of Europe,[68]
-we shall be more nearly on a par of strength with him, excepting we
-undertake this operation.”
-
-Lieutenant-General Hill was entrusted with the duty of watching the
-enemy in Alemtejo,[69] and two divisions were left in Estremadura.
-The Commander-in-Chief, with some 40,000 men, hastened towards Ciudad
-Rodrigo, unaware at the moment that the garrison had been reinforced
-and that Napoleon was sending more men to the Peninsula. When these
-important facts reached him he contented himself with blockading the
-place, and prepared to retire behind the Agueda should necessity
-warrant. Marmont sent for Dorsenne, who had taken the command in
-Galicia from Bessières, and with 60,000 troops set out toward the end
-of September to relieve Ciudad Rodrigo. Wellington then occupied El
-Bodon, on the left bank of the Agueda. “The object of taking a position
-so near to the enemy,” he says, “was to force them to show their army.
-This was an object, because the people of the country, as usual,
-believed and reported that the enemy were not so strong as we knew them
-to be; and if they had not seen the enemy’s strength, they would have
-entertained a very unfavorable opinion of the British army, which it
-was desirable to avoid. This object was accomplished by the operations
-at the close of September.”
-
-Early on the morning of the 25th the Marshal drove in the outposts of
-Wellington’s left wing, and turned the heights occupied by the right
-centre, thereby placing the British Commander in a dangerous position,
-from which he extricated himself by hurling his cavalry at the horsemen
-and artillery now endeavouring to scale the heights. Two British guns
-were captured and retaken at the point of the bayonet. When the French
-infantry were brought into action Wellington gradually withdrew in the
-direction of Fuente Guinaldo, pursued by the enemy’s cavalry, which
-were received by solid British squares and repelled as six miles were
-traversed. Marmont again advanced on the 26th, but did not attack.
-Wellington retreated until he reached a strong position in front of
-Sabugal on the 28th.
-
-A rear-guard action had been fought on the previous day at Aldea
-da Ponte, but Marmont withdrew without offering battle, and, after
-supplying much needed necessaries to Ciudad Rodrigo, proceeded to the
-Tagus valley and Dorsenne to Salamanca. Wellington renewed the blockade
-“in order,” as he says, “to keep a large force of the enemy employed
-to observe our operations, and to prevent them from undertaking any
-operation elsewhere.” Placing his army in cantonments on the banks of
-the Coa, the Commander-in-Chief made his headquarters at Freneda.
-
-While in their winter quarters both officers and men were able to
-recuperate after their previous arduous campaign. Sports, theatricals
-and other amusements helped to pass away the time and to cheer up the
-army. Even more important was the opportunity thus afforded the many
-semi-invalids to recover their health. “We are really almost an army
-of convalescents.” Wellington himself rode to hounds occasionally, and
-applauded the amateur histrionic efforts of his soldiers, when time
-and circumstances permitted him to attend their performances. He was
-able to re-establish Almeida as a military post, where he kept his
-battering-train to deceive the enemy, to blockade Ciudad Rodrigo, and
-to prepare for its investment.
-
-Meanwhile the guerillas were “increasing in numbers and boldness
-throughout the Peninsula,” constantly annoying the French commanders.
-“It was their indomitable spirit of resistance,” says Professor
-Oman,[70] “which enabled Wellington, with his small Anglo-Portuguese
-army, to keep the field against such largely superior numbers. No
-sooner had the French concentrated, and abandoned a district, than
-there sprang up in it a local Junta and a ragged apology for an army.
-Even where the invaders lay thickest, along the route from Bayonne to
-Madrid, guerilla bands maintained themselves in the mountains, cut off
-couriers and escorts, and often isolated one French army from another
-for weeks at a time. The greater partisan chiefs, such as Mina in
-Navarre, Julian Sanchez in Leon, and Porlier in the Cantabrian hills,
-kept whole brigades of the French in constant employment. Often beaten,
-they were never destroyed, and always reappeared to strike some daring
-blow at the point where they were least expected. Half the French army
-was always employed in the fruitless task of guerilla-hunting. This was
-the secret which explains the fact that, with 300,000 men under arms,
-the invaders could never concentrate more than 70,000 to deal with
-Wellington.”
-
-In the autumn and winter of 1811 the enemy accomplished nothing of
-importance in eastern and southern Spain. In the south-east Suchet
-defeated Blake on the 25th October at the battle of Sagunto, “the last
-pitched battle of the war,” remarks the above authority, “in which a
-Spanish army, unaided by British troops, attempted to face the French.”
-Forced into the city of Valencia with part of his motley array, Blake
-made a gallant attempt to rid himself of his besieger, an almost
-impossible task considering that Suchet had been reinforced while the
-unfortunate Spanish commander had been considerably reduced. On the 9th
-January 1812 his 16,000 followers laid down their weapons.
-
-The investment of Ciudad Rodrigo by Wellington had been delayed owing
-to a complexity of causes. All the carting had to be performed by
-Portuguese and Spanish, and their slowness and the inclement weather
-combined precluded the Commander-in-Chief from pushing forward his
-operations with any celerity of movement. Empty carts took two days to
-go ten miles on a good road. Wellington confessed that he had to appear
-satisfied, otherwise the drivers would have deserted. If he succeeded
-in his designs he hoped to “make a fine campaign in the spring”; if he
-did not, “I shall bring back towards this frontier the whole [French]
-army which had marched towards Valencia and Aragon. By these means I
-hope to save Valencia.”
-
-Alas, for human ambition! The capital of the province fell three days
-after the above dispatch was written.
-
-On the 8th January 1812 a start was made, and Ciudad Rodrigo invested.
-During the night the palisaded redoubt on the hill of San Francisco,
-which the French had recently constructed, was stormed and carried,
-but Wellington at once perceived that the enemy had made good use
-of their time by strengthening their works and fortifying three
-convents in the suburbs. “The success of this operation,” he writes,
-“enabled us immediately to break ground within 600 yards of the place,
-notwithstanding that the enemy still hold the fortified convents; and
-the enemy’s work has been turned into a part of our first parallel,
-and a good communication made with it.” Wellington encamped his men on
-the southern bank, which necessitated their fording the narrow stream,
-although he had built a bridge lower down the Agueda for munitions.
-It was no child’s play for the soldiers. Through icy cold water,
-across ground covered with snow and frost, and amidst a rain of shot
-and shell, these brave fellows went to their work, each division in
-succession. Some of them returned, others did not, for “The path of
-glory leads but to the grave.”
-
-The convent of Santa Cruz was captured on the night of the 13th,
-followed on the 14th by the fall of the convent of San Francisco and
-other fortified posts in the suburbs. By this time batteries were
-within 180 yards of the walls. “We proceeded at Ciudad Rodrigo,” he
-tells the Duke of Richmond, “on quite a new principle in sieges. The
-whole object of our fire was to lay open the walls. We had not one
-mortar; nor a howitzer, excepting to prevent the enemy from clearing
-the breaches, and for that purpose we had only two; and we fired upon
-the flanks and defences only when we wished to get the better of them,
-with a view to protect those who were to storm. This shows the kind of
-place we had to attack....” Matters now became urgent, for advice had
-been received that Marmont was stirring. By the 19th the breaches made
-in the ramparts by the artillery were declared practicable. Wellington
-had already summoned the Governor to surrender. His reply was that “he
-and the brave garrison which he commanded were prepared rather to bury
-themselves in the ruins of a place entrusted to them by their Emperor.”
-The troops, consisting of the regiments of the 3rd and Light Divisions
-and some Portuguese caçadores, marched to the assault in five columns.
-“Rangers of Connaught,” cried General Picton to the “Fighting 3rd,” who
-were charged with the centre attack, “it is not my intention to expend
-any powder this evening; we’ll do this business with the cold iron.”
-
-It was the task of Picton and his men to assault the great breach,
-while the 52nd, the 43rd, and the 95th regiments, assisted by two
-battalions of caçadores, assaulted the other. At the same time a
-brigade of Portuguese under General Pack was to make a feint at the
-Santiago gate, at the southern end of the town, and the light company
-of the 83rd regiment with another body of native soldiers were to scale
-the castle walls. As the columns advanced the moon, then in its first
-quarter, revealed their black outline to the enemy. They at once opened
-fire. No reply was vouchsafed by the Allies, who marched with fixed
-bayonets and unloaded muskets. It was not part of their plan to return
-a greeting made by men who were behind ramparts.
-
-The Portuguese under Colonel O’Toole were the first to attack, closely
-followed by the 5th, 94th, and 77th regiments, the last supposed to act
-as a reserve. The Light Division, impatient of delay and not wishing to
-be rivalled in prowess, hurled themselves at the small breach without
-waiting for the bags of hay which were to be thrown in the ditch to
-assist them in crossing. Many of the attacking force literally passed
-over the shot-riddled bodies of the vanguard as they attempted to
-get through. Major George Napier, while leading his men, had his arm
-shattered, but still continued to encourage them; Robert Craufurd,
-the intrepid and cantankerous commander of the Light Division, fell
-mortally wounded; Major-General Mackinnon was blown up by the explosion
-of a magazine. Nine officers and eleven non-commissioned officers and
-drummers gave up their lives for their country during the siege and
-in the assault from the 8th to the 19th, the total loss in killed and
-injured being nearly 1000. The hand-to-hand fighting continued in the
-streets, and the town caught fire.
-
-At dawn 1700 of the enemy surrendered, including the Governor.
-Marmont’s battering train, scores of field guns, and a plentiful supply
-of ammunition fell into the hands of the victors. Wellington had
-“great pleasure” in reporting “the uniform good conduct, and spirit of
-enterprise, and patience, and perseverance in the performance of great
-labor” on the part of the troops who had been engaged. As for the men
-themselves, they got drunk and sacked the place.
-
-Wellington’s rewards for the capture of Ciudad Rodrigo were numerous.
-He became an Earl in Great Britain, a Duke in Spain, and a Marquis in
-Portugal. In addition he was granted an extra annual pension of £2000
-by Parliament. Financial offers were also forthcoming from the two
-Peninsula Powers, but he declined them. “He had only done his duty to
-his country, and to his country alone he would look for his reward.”
-
-Marmont was in ignorance of the siege until the 15th January. He
-then began to make preparations, but when he was ready the fortress
-had fallen, and he moved his army to Valladolid, to the north-east.
-Napoleon then sent orders to the Marshal that if he could not regain
-Ciudad Rodrigo he was to return to Salamanca, cross the frontier, and
-advance on Almeida. He foresaw that perhaps Wellington might turn his
-attention to Badajoz, which, in the Emperor’s opinion, would be a
-“mistake,” and that of necessity he would have to return to succour
-the Portuguese fortress: “You will soon bring him back again.” The
-British Commander also surmised that another attack on Ciudad was quite
-possible. Before setting out on his next bold enterprise he therefore
-put the fortifications in thorough repair, and brought up a reserve
-supply of 50,000 rations in case it should be besieged. Satisfied that
-the place could now offer a bold resistance to the enemy, and having
-also repaired the works of Almeida, he marched the greater part of his
-army to the valley of the Guadiana, and invested Badajoz, which is on
-the left side of that river, on the 16th March 1812.
-
-Wellington fully appreciated the immense value of time, and if he did
-not actually work with his eyes on the clock, he always endeavoured to
-fix a definite date for his operations. Thus as early as the preceding
-January he had written to his brother from Gallegos, a little to the
-north of Ciudad, that it was probable he would be in readiness to
-invest the place “in the second week in March.” “We shall have great
-advantages in making the attack so early if the weather will allow of
-it,” he tells another correspondent. “First, all the torrents in this
-part of the country are then full, so that we may assemble nearly our
-whole army on the Guadiana, without risk to anything valuable here.[71]
-Secondly, it will be convenient to assemble our army at an early period
-in Estremadura, for the sake of the green forage, which comes in
-earlier to the south than here. Thirdly, we shall have advantages, in
-point of subsistence, over the enemy, at that season, which we should
-not have at a later period. Fourthly, their operations will necessarily
-be confined by the swelling of the rivers in that part as well as
-here.” In order to deceive the enemy he remained behind with the 5th
-Division as long as possible and gave instructions for a report to be
-circulated to the effect that he was going to hunt on the banks of the
-Huelbra and Yeltes.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-Badajoz and Salamanca
-
-(1812)
-
- “_I shall not give the thing up without good cause._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-Considerable energy was displayed by the troops in the siege
-operations at Badajoz, notwithstanding the persistent torrents of
-rain which soaked the men to the skin and filled the trenches as they
-worked. A bridge of pontoons was carried away and the flying bridges
-irretrievably injured by the swollen state of the Guadiana. The place
-was by no means an easy one to take, for strong outworks defended it,
-and Philippon, the French Governor, was a most able officer in whom his
-troops placed every confidence. However, good fortune did not attend
-the first sortie made by about 2000 of the enemy on the 19th March.
-They were “almost immediately driven in, without effecting any object,
-with considerable loss, by Major-General Bowes, who commanded the guard
-in the trenches,” to quote from Wellington’s official dispatch.
-
-On the 25th an attack was made on fort Picurina, an advanced post
-separated from Badajoz by the little river called the Rivillas.
-Twenty-eight guns in six batteries were brought to bear upon it, and
-after dark the place was carried by storm, although it was protected
-by three rows of palisades defended by musketry. The garrison of the
-outwork consisted of about 250 men. Of these ninety, including the
-colonel, were taken prisoners, and most of the others were either
-killed or drowned in the swollen stream. An attempt was made to succour
-the brave defenders, but the soldiers were driven back before they
-could come up to the Picurina. The possession of this outwork enabled
-Wellington to place guns within 300 yards of the body of the place,
-and on the following day two breaching batteries began their work of
-destruction, with the result that on the 6th April three breaches were
-declared to be practicable.
-
-At ten o’clock that night the attempt was to be made, the 3rd Division
-under Picton escalading the castle, the 4th Division with General
-the Hon. C. Colville attacking the bastion of La Trinidad, the Light
-Division commanded by Colonel Barnard the bastion of Santa Maria,
-General Leith’s 5th Division the bastion of San Vincente. The attack on
-the bastions was to be made by storming the breaches. Wellington stood
-on rising ground facing the main breach, accompanied by the Prince of
-Orange and Lord March.
-
-“When the head of the Light Division arrived at the ditch of the place
-(the great breach) it was a beautiful moonlight night,” Sir Harry
-Smith relates with the authority of a participant in the action.[72]
-“Old Alister Cameron, who was in command of four Companies of the
-95th Regiment, extended along the counterscarp to attract the enemy’s
-fire, while the column planted their ladders and descended, came up
-to Barnard and said, ‘Now my men are ready; shall I begin?’ ‘No,
-certainly not,’ says Barnard. The breach and the works were full of
-the enemy, looking quietly at us, but not fifty yards off and most
-prepared, although _not firing a shot_. So soon as our ladders were
-all ready posted, and the columns in the very act to move and rush
-down the ladders, Barnard called out, ‘_Now_, Cameron!’ and the first
-shot from us brought down such a hail of fire as I shall never forget,
-nor ever saw before or since. It was most murderous. We flew down
-the ladders and rushed at the breach, but we were broken, and carried
-no weight with us, although every soldier was a hero. The breach was
-covered by a breastwork from behind, and ably defended on the top by
-_chevaux-de-frises_ of sword-blades, sharp as razors, chained to the
-ground; while the ascent to the top of the breach was covered with
-planks with sharp nails in them.... One of the officers of the forlorn
-hope, lieutenant Taggart of the 43rd, was hanging on my arm--a mode we
-adopted to help each other up, for the ascent was most difficult and
-steep. A Rifleman stood among the sword-blades on the top of one of
-the _chevaux-de-frises_. We made a glorious rush to follow, but, alas!
-in vain. He was knocked over. My old captain, O’Hare, who commanded
-the storming party, was killed. All were awfully wounded except, I do
-believe, myself and little Freer of the 43rd. I had been some seconds
-at the _revétement_ of the bastion near the breach, and my red-coat
-pockets were literally filled with chips of stones splintered by
-musket-balls. Those not knocked down were driven back by this hail of
-mortality to the ladders. At the foot of them I saw poor Colonel McLeod
-with his hands on his breast.... He said, ‘Oh, Smith, I am mortally
-wounded. Help me up the ladder.’ I said, ‘Oh, no, dear fellow!’ ‘I am,’
-he said; ‘be quick!’ I did so, and came back again. Little Freer and
-I said, ‘Let us throw down the ladders; the fellows shan’t go out.’
-Some soldiers behind said, ‘... if you do we will bayonet you!’ and
-we were literally forced up with the crowd. My sash had got loose,
-and one end of it was fast in the ladder, and the bayonet was very
-nearly applied, but the sash by pulling became loose. So soon as we got
-on the glacis, up came a fresh Brigade of the Portuguese of the 4th
-Division. I never saw any soldiers behave with more pluck. Down into
-the ditch we all went again, but the more we tried to get up, the more
-we were destroyed. The 4th Division followed us in marching up to the
-breach, and they made a most uncommon noise. The French saw us, but
-took no notice.... Both Divisions were fairly beaten back; we never
-carried either breach (nominally there were two breaches).... There is
-no battle, day or night, I would not willingly react except this. The
-murder of our gallant officers and soldiers is not to be believed.”
-
-The attack on the castle was no less furious. Again and again the
-ladders were hurled back, but they were always put in place again,
-notwithstanding the fearful and continuous fire to which the assailants
-were subjected. Great beams of timber, stones, everything calculated to
-kill or maim a man were regarded as useful weapons by the defenders.
-Nothing came amiss to them in their determined defence. Scores of
-soldiers were flung down, when another minute of safety would have
-enabled them to secure a footing on the ramparts. They fell in the
-ditch, often injuring or killing others besides themselves. At last
-Lieutenant-Colonel Ridge managed to place two ladders at a spot which
-had not been used before, and where the wall was lower. The officer
-scaled one, followed by his men, and reached the rampart. The surprised
-garrison was repulsed, and very soon the castle was in the hands of the
-British. Poor Ridge did not live to reap his richly-deserved reward. He
-was killed before the conclusion of the assault.
-
-[Illustration: Wellington at Badajos congratulating Colonel Watson
-
-R. Caton Woodville]
-
-A little while previous to the successful termination of the attack Dr
-James McGregor and Dr Forbes approached Wellington. “His lordship,”
-says the former, “was so intent on what was going on, that I believe he
-did not observe us. Soon after our arrival, an officer came up with an
-unfavourable report of the assault, announcing that Colonel McLeod and
-several officers were killed, with heaps of men who choked the approach
-to the breach. At the place where we stood we were within hearing of
-the voices of the assailants and the assailed, and it was now painful
-to notice that the voices of our countrymen had grown fainter, while
-the French cry of ‘_Avancez, étrillons ces Anglais_,’ became
-stronger. Another officer came up with still more unfavourable reports,
-that no progress was being made, for almost all the officers were
-killed, and none left to lead on the men, of whom a great many had
-fallen.
-
-“At this moment I cast my eyes on the countenance of Lord Wellington,
-lit up by the glare of the torch held by Lord March. I never shall
-forget it to the last moment of my existence, and I could even now
-sketch it. The jaw had fallen, the face was of unusual length, while
-the torch-light gave his countenance a lurid aspect; but still the
-expression of the face was fair. Suddenly turning to me and putting his
-hand on my arm, he said, ‘Go over immediately to Picton, and tell him
-he must try if he cannot succeed on the castle.’ I replied, ‘My lord,
-I have not my horse with me, but I will walk as fast as I can, and I
-think I can find the way; I know part of the road is swampy.’ ‘No, no,’
-he replied, ‘I beg your pardon, I thought it was De Lancey.’ I repeated
-my offer, saying I was sure I could find the way, but he said ‘No.’
-
-“Another officer arrived, asking loudly, ‘Where is Lord Wellington?’
-He came to announce that Picton was in the castle. He was desired
-instantly to go to the breach, and to request the stormers to renew
-their efforts, announcing what had befallen; and immediately Lord
-Wellington called for his own horse, and followed by the Prince and
-Lord March, rode to the breach.”
-
-General Walker, leading the assault on San Vincente, experienced
-much the same rough treatment as the other divisions, but eventually
-succeeded in forcing his way into the town.
-
-Philippon and a few hundred men managed to cross the Guadiana and found
-refuge in Fort San Christoval, only to surrender the following morning.
-The price paid by the victors in dead and wounded during the siege was
-nearly 5000 men; those of the enemy who laid down their arms numbered
-some 3800. The glory of the triumphant army was unfortunately tarnished
-by the gross misconduct of the men, and it was not until a gallows was
-raised that a stop was put to their evil ways.
-
-Wellington was now anxious to meet Soult as soon as Badajoz was put in
-a state of defence, but when he received the ill news of the defeat of
-the French garrison the Marshal promptly retired to Seville. As Marmont
-was threatening Almeida and Ciudad Rodrigo the British General had
-no alternative but to turn northward. He had to thank the Spaniards
-for this. By neglecting to provision the places they had practically
-placed them at the mercy of the enemy should he appear in considerable
-numbers. They were already blockading the latter place. “If Ciudad
-Rodrigo had been provisioned,” Wellington writes to his brother Henry,
-“as I had a right to expect, there was nothing to prevent me from
-marching to Seville at the head of 40,000 men, the moment the siege of
-Badajoz was concluded.” It was, of course, very important that the line
-of communication between Marmont and Soult should be impeded as much as
-possible, and Hill was given this important task. Failing to surprise
-Almarez, the General pushed on to Fort Napoleon, on the other side of
-the Tagus, which was captured as well as Fort Ragusa. False information
-alone prevented Hill from following up his victories. He was told that
-Soult was in Estremadura, and he withdrew to the Guadiana.
-
-Wellington began his advance, and on the 13th June crossed the
-Agueda. On his approach to Salamanca he at once laid siege to three
-newly-erected forts, “each defending the other.” Marmont, knowing the
-likelihood of such an event, had wisely stored a good supply of food in
-them, so that there was a likelihood of their being able to hold out
-until he could succour them. The Marshal made one or two demonstrations
-to no good effect. He as obstinately declined to begin offensive
-measures as Wellington declined to be enticed to leave his strong
-position on the heights of San Christoval.
-
-It took Wellington some time to secure the forts, which were well
-built and equipped, but on the 27th they fell into his hands, two
-by storm and one by capitulation. The last mentioned was being
-attacked when the flag was hauled down and would doubtless have been
-captured had not the commander given way before the British made good
-their assault. Marmont thereupon retired behind the Douro to await
-reinforcements.
-
-After having destroyed some military works at Alba de Tormes and
-garrisoned the castle of Salamanca with Spaniards, Wellington pushed
-forward and engaged Marmont’s rearguard on the 2nd July. He took up a
-position on the left bank of the Douro, on the opposite side of that
-occupied by the enemy, who was shortly afterwards strengthened by the
-support of Bonnet’s division from the Asturias. Near Tordesillas, which
-with Toro and Tudela was held by the French, the Marshal took courage
-and fought an action with Sir Stapleton Cotton, who was in command of
-Wellington’s right, on the 18th July. To resist him was impossible,
-for he had secured all the bridges and many of the fords. The action
-began at dawn, and Cotton gallantly maintained his post, but the enemy
-managed to turn the left flank of the British position. “The troops,”
-says Wellington in his official report, “retired in admirable order to
-Torrecilla de la Orden, having the enemy’s whole army on their flank,
-or in their rear, and thence to Guareña, which river they passed under
-the same circumstances, and effected their junction with the army.”
-
-Wellington fell back to within two miles of Salamanca, his left resting
-on the Tormes, his right abutting on two hills called Los Aripeles;[73]
-Marmont secured the heights of Nuestra Señora de la Peña.
-
-Many years after the battle of Salamanca, General Alava, a Spanish
-officer at the British headquarters, was at Wellington’s breakfast
-table at Walmer, and he regaled the company with the story of the great
-soldier’s breakfast on the 22nd July 1812. Croker has recorded it for
-us, with the comment that the Duke listened “as quietly as if it
-related to another person.”
-
-“The Duke had been very busy all the morning, and had not thought of
-breakfast, and the staff had grown very hungry; at last, however, there
-was a pause (I think he said about two) near a farmyard surrounded by
-a wall, where a kind of breakfast was spread on the ground, and the
-staff alighted and fell to; while they were eating, the Duke rode into
-the enclosure; he refused to alight, and advised them to make haste;
-he seemed anxious and on the look-out. At last they persuaded him to
-take a bit of bread and the leg of a cold roast fowl, which he was
-eating without knife from his fingers, when suddenly they saw him throw
-the leg of the fowl far away over his shoulder, and gallop out of the
-yard, calling to them to follow him. The fact is, he had been waiting
-to have the French _sighted_ at a certain gap in the hills, and that
-was to be the signal of a long-meditated and long-suspended attack. ‘I
-knew,’ says Alava, with grave drollery, ‘that something _very serious
-was about to happen when an article so precious as the leg of a roast
-fowl was thus thrown away_.’” Croker adds that “the Duke sat by with
-his head inclined, quite silent, but with a quiet smile which seemed to
-say that the narration was a good deal pleasanter than the reality had
-been.”
-
-Wellington was able to seize the nearer hill but the French secured the
-other, while another miniature height named Nuestra Señora de la Peña
-was the centre of a most desperate conflict, which continued through
-the long hours of the day. Marmont made the fatal error of dividing his
-army, sending Thomière’s division to turn the British right flank, with
-intent to cut off all hope of retreat on the part of Wellington, should
-he wish to do so, by means of the Ciudad Rodrigo road. This movement
-separated the French left wing from the centre, and this it was that
-caused the British Commander to fling away the dearly prized leg of a
-chicken.
-
-[Illustration: The End of Breakfast
-
-Thomas Maybank]
-
-After looking through his glass with wrapt attention Wellington
-turned to his Spanish colleague with the words, “My dear Alava, Marmont
-is undone!” His active brain told him at once of his enemy’s mistake.
-Having made his dispositions he ordered Pakenham, his brother-in-law,
-to throw the 3rd Division into line and cross the march of Thomière’s
-columns. “It shall be done; give me your hand,” replied that energetic
-officer. He hurled the Portuguese cavalry, two squadrons of the 14th
-Light Dragoons, and the “Fighting 3rd” at the flank and rear of the
-French left. Other divisions under Cole, Leith, Bradford, and Cotton
-attacked the enemy in front. “No sooner was Pakenham in motion towards
-the heights,” says one who took part in the battle, “than the ridge he
-was about to assail was crowned with twenty pieces of cannon, while
-in the rear of this battery were seen Foy’s division, endeavouring to
-regain its place in the combat. A flat space of 1000 yards in breadth
-was to be crossed before Pakenham could reach the height.
-
-“The French batteries opened a heavy fire, while the two brigades of
-artillery, commanded by Captain Douglas, posted on a rising ground
-behind the 3rd Division, replied to them with much warmth. Pakenham’s
-men may thus be said to have been between two fires, that of our own
-guns firing over their heads, while the French balls passed through
-their ranks, ploughing up the ground in every direction; but the
-veteran troops which composed the 3rd Division were not shaken even by
-this.
-
-“Wallace’s three regiments advanced in open columns, until within 250
-yards of the ridge held by the French infantry. Foy’s column, 5000
-strong, had by this time reached their ground, while in their front the
-face of the hill had been hastily garnished with riflemen. All were
-impatient to engage, and the calm but stern advance of Pakenham’s right
-brigade was received with beating of drums and loud cheers from the
-French, whose light troops, hoping to take advantage of the time which
-the deploying into line would take, ran down the face of the hill in a
-state of great excitement, but Pakenham, who was naturally of a boiling
-spirit and hasty temper, was on this day perfectly cool. He told
-Wallace to form line from open column without halting, and thus the
-different companies, by throwing forward their right shoulders, were in
-a line without the slow manœuvre of deployment.
-
-“Astonished at the rapidity of the movement, the French riflemen
-commenced an irregular and hurried fire, and even at this early stage
-of the battle a looker-on could, from the difference in the demeanour
-of the troops of the two nations, form a tolerably correct opinion
-of what the result would be. Regardless of the fire of the riflemen,
-and the showers of grape and canister, Pakenham continued to press
-forward; his centre suffered, but still advanced; his right and left,
-being less oppressed by the weight of the fire, continued to advance at
-a more rapid pace, and as his wings inclined forward and outstripped
-the centre, his right brigade assumed the form of a crescent. The
-manœuvre was a bold as well as a novel one, and the appearance of
-the brigade imposing and unique; because it so happened that all the
-British officers were in front of their men--a rare occurrence. The
-French officers were also in front, but their relative duties were
-widely different--the latter encouraging their men into the heat of the
-battle--the former keeping their devoted soldiers back--what a splendid
-national contrast!”
-
-When the brow of the hill was reached the men were subjected to a
-murderous hail of fire from Foy’s division. Nearly all of Wallace’s
-first rank, as well as many officers, fell beneath it. But the others,
-urged by their commander, pressed on with fixed bayonets, and the
-French troops were forced backward. Thomière was amongst the killed,
-and many were taken prisoners in the rout which followed.
-
-“Immediately on our left,” the narrative continues, “the 5th Division
-were discharging vollies against the French 4th; and Pack’s brigade
-could be seen mounting the Aripeles height, but disregarding
-everything except the complete destruction of the column before him,
-Pakenham followed it with the brigade of Wallace, supported by the
-reserves of his division.
-
-“The battle at this point would have been decided on the moment,
-had the heavy horse under Le Marchant been near enough to sustain
-him. The confusion of the enemy was so great that they became mixed
-pell-mell together, without any regard to order or regularity, and it
-was manifest that nothing short of a miracle could save Foy from total
-destruction. Sir Edward Pakenham continued to press on at the head of
-Wallace’s brigade, but Foy’s troops outran him. Had Le Marchant been
-aware of this state of the combat, or been near enough to profit by
-it, Pakenham would have settled the business by six o’clock instead
-of seven. An hour, at any period during a battle, is a serious loss
-of time, but in this action every moment was of vital import. Day was
-rapidly drawing to a close: the Tormes was close behind the army of
-Marmont, ruin stared him in the face; in a word, his left wing was
-doubled up--lost; and Pakenham could have turned to the support of the
-4th and 5th Divisions, had our cavalry been ready to back Wallace at
-the moment he pierced the column. This, beyond doubt, was the moment
-by which to profit, that the enemy might not have time to re-collect
-himself; but, while Le Marchant was preparing to take part in the
-combat, Foy, with admirable presence of mind, remedied the terrible
-confusion of his division, and calling up a first brigade to his
-support, once more led his men into the fight, assumed the offensive,
-and Pakenham was now about to be assailed in turn. This was the most
-critical moment of the battle; Boyer’s horsemen stood before us,
-inclining towards our right, which was flanked by two squadrons of
-the 14th Dragoons and two regiments of Portuguese cavalry; but we had
-little dependence upon the Portuguese, and it behoved us to look to
-ourselves.
-
-“Led on by the ardour of conquest, we had followed the column until
-at length we found ourselves in an open plain, intersected with
-cork trees, opposed by a multitude, who, reinforced, again rallied,
-and turned upon us with fury. Pakenham, Wallace, Seton, and Mackie,
-rode along the line from wing to wing, almost from rank to rank, and
-fulfilled the functions of adjutants in assisting the officers to
-reorganise the tellings-off of the men for square. Meanwhile the first
-battalion of the 5th drove back some squadrons of Boyer’s dragoons; the
-other six regiments were fast approaching the point held by Wallace,
-but the French cavalry in our front and upon our right flank caused
-Pakenham some uneasiness.
-
-“The peals of musketry along the centre still continued without
-intermission; the smoke was so thick that nothing to our left was
-distinguishable; some men of the 5th Division got intermingled with
-ours; the dry grass was set on fire by the numerous cartridge papers
-that strewed the field of battle; the air was scorching, and the smoke
-rolling on in huge volumes, nearly suffocated us.
-
-“A loud cheering was heard in our rear--the brigade turned half round,
-supposing themselves about to be attacked by the French cavalry. A few
-seconds passed--the trampling of horse was heard--the smoke cleared
-away, and the heavy brigade of Le Marchant was seen coming forward in a
-line at a canter. ‘Open right and left,’ was an order quickly obeyed;
-the line opened, the cavalry passed through the intervals, and forming
-rapidly in our front prepared for their work.
-
-“The French column, which a moment before held so imposing an attitude,
-became startled at this unexpected sight. A victorious and highly
-excited infantry pressed closely upon them; a splendid brigade of three
-regiments of cavalry, ready to burst through their ill-arranged and
-beaten column, while no appearance of succour was at hand to protect
-them, was enough to appal the boldest intrepidity. The plain was filled
-with the vast multitude; retreat was impossible, and the troopers
-came still pouring in, to join their comrades already prepared for
-the attack. It was too much for their nerves, and they sank under its
-influence, although they bravely made an effort to face the danger.
-
-“Hastily, yet with much regularity, all things considered, they
-attempted to get into the square; but Le Marchant’s brigade galloped
-forward before the evolution was half completed.
-
-“The column hesitated, wavered, tottered, and then stood still! The
-motion of the countless bayonets, as they clashed together, might be
-likened to a forest about to be assailed by a tempest, whose first
-warnings announce the ravage it is about to inflict. Foy’s division
-vomited forth a dreadful volley of fire as the horsemen thundered
-across the flat; Le Marchant was killed,[74] and fell downright in
-the midst of the French bayonets; but his brigade pierced through the
-vast mass, killing or trampling down all before them. The conflict was
-severe, and the troopers fell thick and fast, but their long, heavy
-swords, cut through bone as well as flesh....
-
-“Such as got away from the sabres of the horsemen, sought safety among
-the ranks of our infantry, and scrambling under the horses, ran to
-us for protection, like men who, having escaped the first shock of
-a wreck, will cling to any broken spar, no matter how little to be
-depended on. Hundreds of beings frightfully disfigured, in whom the
-human face and form were almost obliterated--black with dust, worn down
-with fatigue, and covered with sabre cuts and blood--threw themselves
-among us for safety. Not a man was bayoneted--not even molested or
-plundered.”
-
-The battle still raged with unabated fury; “immediately in front of the
-5th Division, Leith fell wounded as he led on his men, but his division
-carried the point in dispute, and drove the enemy before them up the
-hill.
-
-“While these events were taking place on the right, the 4th Division,
-which formed the centre of the army, met with a serious opposition.
-The more distant Aripeles, occupied by the French 122nd, whose numbers
-did not count more than 400, supported by a few pieces of cannon, was
-left to the Portuguese brigade of General Pack, amounting to 2000
-bayonets. Falsely, though with well-founded reliance--their former
-conduct taken into the scale--Cole’s division advanced into the plain,
-confident that all was right with Pack’s troops, and a terrible
-struggle between them and Bonnet’s corps took place. It was, however,
-but of short duration. Bonnet’s troops were driven back in confusion,
-and up to this moment all had gone on well.
-
-“The three British Divisions engaged, overthrew all obstacles, and
-the battle might be said to be won, had Pack’s formidable brigade
-(formidable in numbers, at least) fulfilled their part--but these men
-totally failed in their effort to take the height occupied only by a
-few hundred Frenchmen, and thus gave the park of artillery that was
-posted with them, full liberty to turn its efforts against the rear
-and flank of Cole’s soldiers. Nothing could be worse than the state in
-which the 4th Division was now placed, and the battle, which ought to
-have been and had been in a manner won, was still in doubt.
-
-“Bonnet, seeing the turn which Pack’s failure had wrought in his
-favour, re-formed his men, and advanced against Cole, while the fire
-from the battery and small arms on the Aripeles height completed the
-confusion. Cole fell wounded; half of his division were cut off; the
-remainder in full retreat, and Bonnet’s troops pressing on in a compact
-body, made it manifest that a material change had taken place in the
-battle, and that ere it was gained some ugly up-hill work was yet to be
-done.
-
-[Illustration: Charge of Pakenham’s Third Division at Salamanca
-
-R. Caton Woodville]
-
-“Marshal Beresford, who arrived at this moment, galloped up to the
-head of a brigade of the 5th Division, which he took out of the second
-line, and for a moment covered the retreat of Cole’s troops; but
-this force--composed of Portuguese--was insufficient to arrest the
-progress of the enemy, who advanced in the full confidence of an
-assured victory, and at this moment Beresford was carried off the field
-wounded. Bonnet’s troops advanced, uttering loud cheers, while the
-entire of Cole’s division and Spry’s brigade of Portuguese were routed.
-Our centre was thus endangered. Boyer’s dragoons, after the overthrow
-of the French left, countermarched, and moved rapidly to the support of
-Bonnet; they were also close in the track of his infantry; and the fate
-of this momentous battle might be said to hang by a hair. The fugitives
-of the 7th and 4th French Divisions ran to the succour of Bonnet,
-and by the time they had joined him, his force had, indeed, assumed
-a formidable aspect, and thus reinforced it stood in an attitude far
-different from what it would have done, had Pack’s brigade succeeded in
-its attack.
-
-“Lord Wellington, who saw what had taken place by the failure of Pack’s
-troops, ordered up the 6th Division to the support of the 4th, and the
-battle, although it was half-past 8 o’clock at night, recommenced with
-the same fury as at the outset.
-
-“Clinton’s division, consisting of 6000 bayonets, rapidly advanced to
-occupy its place in the combat, and relieve the 4th from the awkward
-predicament in which it was placed, and essayed to gain what was lost
-by the failure of Pack’s troops, in their feeble effort to wrest the
-Aripeles height from a few brave Frenchmen; but they were received
-by Bonnet’s troops at the point of the bayonet, and the fire opened
-against them seemed to be three-fold more heavy than that sustained by
-the 3rd and 5th Divisions. It was nearly dark, and the great glare of
-light caused by the thunder of the artillery, the continued blaze of
-musketry, and the burning grass, gave to the face of the hill a novel
-and terrific appearance--it was one vast sheet of flame, and Clinton’s
-men looked as if they were attacking a burning mountain, the crater of
-which was defended by a barrier of shining steel. But nothing could
-stop the intrepid valour of the 6th Division, as they advanced with
-desperate resolution to carry the hill.
-
-“The troops posted on the face of it to arrest their advance were
-trampled down and destroyed at the first charge, and each reserve sent
-forward to extricate them met with the same fate.
-
-“Still Bonnet’s reserves having attained their place in the fight, and
-the fugitives from Foy’s division joining them at the moment, prolonged
-the battle until dark.
-
-“These men, besmeared with blood, dust, and clay, half naked, and some
-carrying only broken weapons, fought with a fury not to be surpassed;
-but their impetuosity was at length calmed by the bayonets of Clinton’s
-troops, and they no longer fought for victory, but for safety. After a
-desperate struggle they were driven from their last hold in confusion,
-and a general and overwhelming charge, which the nature of the ground
-enabled Clinton’s troops to make, carried this ill-formed mass of
-desperate soldiers before them, as a shattered wreck borne along by the
-force of some mighty current. The mingled mass of fugitives fled to
-the woods and to the river for safety, and under cover of the night,
-succeeded in gaining the pass of Alba, over the Tormes. It was 10
-o’clock at night--the battle was ended.”
-
-Marmont, who was wounded in the early part of the fight, lost 15,000
-men, of whom 7000 surrendered to the British. The victors had nearly
-700 officers and men killed, and over 4500 returned as wounded and
-missing. Six British Generals, including Wellington, whose thigh was
-grazed by a musket ball which had fortunately passed through his
-holster before it hit him, received injuries, and Le Marchant, as
-already mentioned, was shot. Of the enemy four Generals were wounded
-and three killed, sufficient proof of the sanguinary nature of the
-long-continued contest. The victory would have been even more complete
-had the Spanish garrison at Alba de Tormes remained at their post
-instead of withdrawing without informing the Commander-in-Chief of
-their intention. As a consequence the enemy were enabled to use the
-bridge there and make good their escape.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-The Closing Battles of the Peninsular War
-
-(1812-14)
-
- “_In the whole of my experience I never saw an army so strongly
- posted as the French at the battle of Toulouse. There ought to have
- been an accurate plan and description made of the whole affair as a
- matter of professional science._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-Marmont’s army was not the only one in retreat. King Joseph, with
-15,000 troops, had left Madrid with the set purpose of joining the
-Marshal, but when he received news of the battle of Salamanca he
-retreated on Valencia, where Suchet’s army was posted, and peremptorily
-ordered Soult to evacuate Andalusia. This would enable him to bring
-90,000 men to bear on his victorious enemy. His withdrawal from
-Madrid enabled Wellington to enter the capital on the 12th August
-1812, Marmont, or rather Clausel, who had temporarily succeeded
-him, being driven back upon Burgos. The evacuation of the southern
-province was doubtless very gratifying to the Spaniards, but the
-threatened concentration of such a vast array of troops placed the
-Anglo-Portuguese army in an extremely unhappy position. The force at
-Wellington’s disposal numbered 60,000 men, and although an additional
-6000 had just landed at Alicante, in Valencia, it was evident that
-they would be of little service at the moment. When he became aware
-that Soult was about to abandon Andalusia he left part of his army to
-occupy Madrid, and with the remainder set out in the hope of being able
-to crush Clausel, who was at Valladolid. This he was unable to do, for
-the enemy retired from position to position. He followed him to Burgos,
-which Wellington entered, the French General meanwhile encamping on the
-banks of the Ebro, where he shortly afterwards received substantial
-reinforcements under Caffarelli and Souham the latter of whom arrived
-as Marmont’s successor. Wellington was also joined by some 11,000
-Spanish troops of the army of Galicia. He at once laid siege to the
-castle above the town, which was strongly defended, and although the
-troops worked with praiseworthy ardour and four attempts were made to
-take it by assault, he was eventually forced to abandon the idea, and
-for a very important reason. Soult had joined King Joseph, and the
-combined army was on its way to Madrid. He had wasted a precious month,
-time which the French had used to full advantage.
-
-It is related that one of the Irish regiments incurred his displeasure
-during the siege, and some of its members asked permission for it to
-lead one of the assaults. Their wish was granted, with the result that
-nearly all the men laid down their lives in the desperate undertaking.
-When Wellington passed a little later, a soldier who had lost both
-his legs saluted and cried, “Arrah, maybe ye’r satisfied now, you
-hooky-nosed vagabond!” The Commander could not restrain a smile, and
-promptly sent assistance. The Irishman ended his days in Chelsea
-Hospital.
-
-Sending word to Hill to abandon Madrid and meet him on the Tormes,
-Wellington skilfully withdrew his men from Burgos, and although his
-rear-guard was much harassed by Souham’s troops, he formed a junction
-with his lieutenant near the battlefield of Salamanca. On arrival
-on the Tormes they were almost face to face with the united army,
-but divided counsels reigned, and he skilfully eluded the French,
-although they turned his position. Aided by a dense fog, Wellington
-managed to slip away unperceived. After a sharp engagement at a ford
-of the Huebra, the pursuers abandoned the attempt to secure the roads
-to Ciudad Rodrigo, which place was reached by Wellington on the 18th
-November. Soult retired to Toledo, Souham to Valladolid, and Joseph to
-Segovia.
-
-A pen-sketch of the men during this terrible retreat tells us that
-“such a set of scare-crows never was seen. It was difficult to say what
-they were, as the men’s coats were patched with grey, some had blankets
-over them, and most were barefooted; every step they took was up to
-the knees in mud; women and sick men were actually sticking in it....
-A brigade of cavalry, however, which was covering the rear, had left
-Lisbon but a short time before, and was in high order. The clothing of
-the men scarcely soiled, and the horses sleek and fat, made a strange
-contrast with the others, especially the company of artillery that had
-served in the batteries before Burgos. We at first took the latter for
-prisoners, as they were mostly in French clothing, many of them riding
-in the carriages with the sick and wounded, drawn, some by oxen, and
-some by mules and horses. I never saw British soldiers in such a state.”
-
-Wellington and his men then went into cantonments, the former making
-his headquarters at Freneda. Much was done to improve the _morale_ of
-the troops, who had got into a very insubordinate state. Reinforcements
-came to hand, and Wellington worked hard to reorganize the Spanish
-army, of which he had been appointed Generalissimo after the battle of
-Salamanca. He had also been raised to the rank of Marquis, thanked by
-both Houses of Parliament, and presented with £100,000. He paid a visit
-to the Cortes, made a speech, and wrote a long letter to one of the
-Deputies in which he criticized “the powers that be” in no uncertain
-way, adding, however, a number of measures which would “give your
-Government some chance of standing, and your country some chance of
-avoiding farther revolutions.” The whole communication must be studied
-to be fully appreciated.[75] “The Government and the Assembly,” he says
-in one passage, “instead of drawing together, are like two independent
-powers, jealous and afraid of each other; and the consequence is,
-that the machine of Government is at a stand. To this add that the
-whole system is governed by little local views, as propounded by the
-daily press of Cadiz, of all others the least enlightened and the most
-licentious.” “I will fight for Spain as long as she is the enemy of
-France, whatever may be her system of government,” he adds, “but I
-cannot avoid seeing and lamenting the evils which await the country
-if you do not retrace your steps, let what will be the result of the
-military operations of the war....”
-
-He advised the establishment of a permanent Regency, “with all the
-powers allotted by the constitution to the King, in the hands of one
-person.” He, or she, should be aided by a Council, whose five members
-should superintend the Department de Estado, the Interior and Ultramar,
-Gracia y Justicia, Hacienda, and of War and of Marine respectively,
-each being responsible for the department under his superintendence. He
-suggested either turning “the Council of State into a House of Lords,”
-or making “a House of Lords of the Grandees, giving then concurrent
-powers of legislation with the Cortes; and you should leave the
-patronage now in the hands of the Council of State in the hands of the
-Crown.”
-
-In these days of Socialism the following remarks, which occur in
-the same letter, are of more than passing interest. “The theory of
-all legislation,” he says, “is founded in justice; and, if we could
-be certain that legislative assemblies would on all occasions act
-according to the principles of justice, there would be no occasion
-for those checks and guards which we have seen established under the
-best systems. Unfortunately, however, we have seen that legislative
-assemblies are swayed by the fears and passions of individuals; when
-unchecked, they are tyrannical and unjust; nay, more: it unfortunately
-happens too frequently that the most tyrannical and unjust measures are
-the most popular. Those measures are particularly popular which deprive
-rich and powerful individuals of their properties under the pretence
-of the public advantage; and I tremble for a country in which, as in
-Spain, there is no barrier for the preservation of private property,
-excepting the justice of a legislative assembly possessing supreme
-powers.”
-
-In summing up the result of his operations in the field during 1812,
-Wellington tells the Earl of Liverpool on the 23rd November, that
-notwithstanding adverse criticism in the newspapers, “it is in fact the
-most successful campaign in all its circumstances, and has produced for
-the cause more important results than any campaign in which a British
-army has been engaged for the last century. We have taken by siege
-Ciudad Rodrigo, Badajoz, and Salamanca; and the Retiro surrendered. In
-the meantime the Allies have taken Astorga, Guadalaxara, and Consuegra,
-besides other places taken by Duran and Sir H. Popham. In the months
-elapsed since January this army has sent to England little short of
-20,000 prisoners, and they have taken and destroyed or have themselves
-the use of the enemy’s arsenals in Ciudad Rodrigo, Badajoz, Salamanca,
-Valladolid, Madrid, Astorga, Seville, the line before Cadiz, etc.; and
-upon the whole we have taken and destroyed, or we now possess, little
-short of 3000 pieces of artillery. The siege of Cadiz has been raised,
-and all the countries south of the Tagus have been cleared of the enemy.
-
-“We should have retained still greater advantages, I think, and
-should have remained in possession of Castile and Madrid during the
-winter, if I could have taken Burgos, as I ought early in October, or
-if Ballasteros had moved upon Alcarez as he was ordered, instead of
-intriguing for his own aggrandizement.
-
-“The fault of which I was guilty in the expedition to Burgos was,
-not that I undertook the operation with inadequate means, but that
-I took there the most inexperienced instead of the best troops....
-I see that a disposition already exists to blame the Government for
-the failure of the siege of Burgos. The Government had nothing to say
-to the siege. It was entirely my own act. In regard to means, there
-were ample means both at Madrid and at Santander for the siege of the
-strongest fortress. That which was wanting at both places was means of
-transporting ordnance and military stores to the place where it was
-desirable to use them.
-
-“The people of England, so happy as they are in every respect, so rich
-in resources of every description, having the use of such excellent
-roads, etc., will not readily believe that important results here
-frequently depend upon 50 or 60 mules more or less, or a few bundles
-of straw to feed them; but the fact is so, notwithstanding their
-incredulity....”
-
-When Wellington was ready for his 1813 campaign he had 75,000
-British and Portuguese at his disposal, and some 60,000 Spaniards,
-in addition to the irregular bands which were the bane of the enemy.
-The different French armies totalled some 200,000 troops, but it was
-deemed necessary to send 40,000 of these, under Clausel and Foy, to
-exterminate the _guerilleros_, which was to Wellington’s advantage,
-especially as it was impossible for Napoleon, now deeply involved owing
-to the disastrous Russian campaign, to send further reinforcements.
-Soult was withdrawn, with 20,000 men, to oppose the Russian advance.
-By way of further encouragement, Andalusia, Estremadura, Galacia,
-and the Asturias no longer sheltered the enemy. The British left
-was under Graham, the right under Hill, and the centre under the
-Commander-in-Chief. The first marched upon Valladolid, the French
-retreating before him, and was joined near Zamora on the 1st June
-1813 by Wellington, followed two days later by Hill. The French were
-deceived by these movements, for they expected the main attack to be
-made from Ciudad Rodrigo and Almeida with the object of occupying
-Madrid. This was far from Wellington’s purpose, which was to carry on
-the war in the northern provinces, sever the French communications with
-the homeland, and force them to withdraw to the Pyrenees. King Joseph
-hastily retired from Valladolid and reached Burgos. On the approach of
-Wellington to that town, the fortifications were blown up and the enemy
-fell back beyond the Ebro.
-
-“When I heard and saw this explosion (for I was within a few miles,
-and the effect was tremendous),” Wellington remarks, “I made a sudden
-resolution forthwith--instanter to cross the Ebro, and endeavour to
-push the French to the Pyrenees. We had heard of the battles of Lützen
-and Bautzen and of the armistice,[76] and the affairs of the Allies
-looked very ill. Some of my officers remonstrated with me about the
-impudence of crossing the Ebro, and advised me to take up the line of
-the Ebro, etc. I asked them what they meant by taking up the line of
-the Ebro, a river 300 miles long, and what good I was to do along that
-line? In short, I would not listen to the advice; and that very evening
-(or the very next morning) I crossed the river and pushed the French
-till I afterwards beat them at Vittoria.”
-
-“We continued to advance,” writes a soldier of the 71st Regiment
-who fought in the battle, “until the 20th of June; when reaching
-the neighbourhood of Vittoria, we encamped upon the face of a hill.
-Provisions were very scarce. We had not a bit of tobacco, and were
-smoking leaves and herbs. Colonel Cadogan rode away, and got us half a
-pound of tobacco a man, which was most welcome.
-
-“Next morning we got up as usual. The first pipes played for parade;
-the second did not play at the usual time. We began to suspect all
-was not right. We remained thus until eleven o’clock; then received
-orders to fall in, and follow the line of march. During our march we
-fell to one side, to allow a brigade of guns to pass us at full speed.
-‘Now,’ said my comrades, ‘we will have work to do before night.’ We
-crossed a river, and, as we passed through a village, we saw, on the
-other side of the road, the French camp, and their fires still burning,
-just as they had left them. Not a shot had been fired at this time. We
-observed a large Spanish column moving along the heights on our right.
-We halted, and drew up in column. Orders were given to brush out our
-locks, oil them, and examine our flints. We being in the rear, these
-were soon followed by orders to open out from the centre, to allow the
-71st to advance. Forward we moved up the hill. The firing was now very
-heavy. Our rear had not engaged, before word came for the doctor to
-assist Colonel Cadogan, who was wounded. Immediately we charged up the
-hill, the piper playing, ‘Hey Johnny Cope.’ The French had possession
-of the top, but we soon forced them back, and drew up in column on
-the height; sending out four companies to our left to skirmish. The
-remainder moved on to the opposite height. As we advanced driving them
-before us, a French officer, a pretty fellow, was pricking and forcing
-his men to stand. They heeded him not--he was very harsh. ‘Down with
-him!’ cried one near me; and down he fell, pierced by more than one
-ball.
-
-“Scarce were we upon the height, when a heavy column, dressed in
-great-coats, with white covers on their hats, exactly resembling
-the Spanish, gave us a volley, which put us to the right about at
-double-quick time down the hill, the French close behind, through the
-whins. The four companies got the word the French were on them. They
-likewise thought them Spaniards, until they got a volley that killed
-or wounded almost every one of them. We retired to the height, covered
-by the 50th, who gave the pursuing column a volley which checked their
-speed. We moved up the remains of our shattered regiment to the height.
-Being in great want of ammunition, we were again served with sixty
-rounds a man, and kept up our fire for some time, until the bugle
-sounded to cease firing....
-
-“At this time the Major had the command, our second Colonel being
-wounded. There were not 300 of us on the height able to do duty, out of
-above 1000 who drew rations in the morning. The cries of the wounded
-were most heart-rending.
-
-“The French, on the opposite height, were getting under arms; we could
-give no assistance, as the enemy appeared to be six to one of us. Our
-orders were to maintain the height while there was a man of us. The
-word was given to shoulder arms. The French, at the same moment, got
-under arms. The engagement began in the plains. The French were amazed,
-and soon put to the right about, through Vittoria. We followed, as
-quick as our weary limbs could carry us. Our legs were full of thorns,
-and our feet bruised upon the roots of the trees. Coming to a bean
-field at the bottom of the heights, immediately the column was broke,
-and every man filled his haversack. We continued to advance until it
-was dark, and then encamped on a height above Vittoria.... I had fired
-108 rounds this day.”
-
-According to the official figures the British lost 740 men by death
-and 4174 were wounded, out of a total strength of 80,000. The captures
-included 151 guns, 415 caissons, 14,249 rounds of ammunition, nearly
-2,000,000 musket ball cartridges, 40,668 lbs. of gunpowder, fifty-six
-forage waggons, forty-four forge waggons, treasure to the amount of
-£1,000,000, pictures by Velasquez and other masters, jewellery, public
-and private baggage. King Joseph’s carriage, and Jourdan’s bâton. The
-last-mentioned was given by Wellington to the Prince Regent, who with
-becoming fitness sent the donor a Field-Marshal’s bâton. The French had
-65,000 men engaged in the battle of Vittoria, of whom some 6000 were
-killed and wounded, and 1000 taken prisoners.
-
-The defeated army crossed the Pyrenees and marched to Bayonne, where it
-was joined by the troops under Foy and Clausel, who had been pursued
-by the Allies. “To hustle the French out of Spain before they were
-reinforced,” had been Wellington’s object, and he had carried it out
-completely. As the garrisons of the fortresses of Pampeluna and San
-Sebastian had been strengthened, the former by Joseph and the latter
-by Foy, during their retreat, Wellington now turned his attention to
-them. Although the army under Suchet was the only one now left in
-the Peninsula, it occupied Catalonia and part of Valencia, and might
-therefore attack Wellington’s right flank.
-
-Napoleon was at Dresden when he heard of his brother’s disaster at
-Vittoria, and he was in no mood for soft words. He recalled both
-Joseph and Jourdan, and gave the command to Soult. “It is hard to
-imagine anything so inconceivable as what is now going on in Spain,”
-the Emperor writes to Savary on the 3rd July 1813. “The King could
-have collected 100,000 picked men: they might have beaten the whole of
-England.” He blamed himself for the “mistaken consideration” he had
-shown his brother, “who not only does not know how to command, but does
-not even know his own value enough to leave the military command alone.”
-
-[Illustration: Flight of the French through Vittoria
-
-Robert Hillingford]
-
-Soult reached Bayonne on the 12th July, and thirteen days later had
-marched on Pampeluna with 73,000 troops, bent on relieving one or
-other of the fortresses, perhaps both. He attacked the British right
-at Roncesvalles and turned the position; Hill was attacked at the head
-of the valley of Baztan and was obliged to withdraw. Wellington at
-once raised the siege of San Sebastian, which had been carried on by
-Sir Thomas Graham, and contented himself by blockading the fortress.
-He immediately concentrated his right and centre at Sorauren, near
-Pampeluna. The series of fights which took place at this time is known
-as the battles of the Pyrenees. On the 27th Wellington arrived, and
-a rousing cheer greeted him, which it is said deterred the French
-from making anything but a partial attack. Probably the truth of the
-matter is that Soult hesitated because he was expecting additional
-forces with d’Erlon, for the Marshal was scarcely likely to be overawed
-by a greeting. A corporal, unable to restrain his enthusiasm as the
-Commander-in-Chief rode along the line, shouted out to the intense
-amusement of all, “There goes the little blackguard what whops the
-French!”[77]
-
-Soult was pointed out to the General by a spy. “Yonder,” Wellington
-is reported to have said, “is a great but cautious general; he will
-delay his attack to know the reason of those cheers; that will give
-time for my reinforcements to come up, and I shall beat him.” As a
-matter of fact, the 6th Division of infantry, to which Wellington had
-referred, did arrive, and “bludgeon work,” to use his expression, took
-place on the 28th, the anniversary of Talavera. The reinforcements
-had scarcely secured their position, their right resting on Orcain
-and their left on the heights overlooking the valley of the Lanz,
-than a very determined attack was made by the enemy. They were driven
-back, and made an attempt on the hill occupied by the 7th caçadores
-and Ross’s brigade of the 4th Division. They obtained possession of
-it for a short time until driven down. When the battle became general
-the 10th Portuguese regiment was overpowered, necessitating the
-withdrawal of Ross. Wellington then ordered two regiments to charge
-the enemy on the heights and those on the left, with the result that
-the French were “driven down with immense loss.” “Every regiment,”
-says Wellington, “charged with the bayonet, and the 40th, 7th, 20th,
-and 23rd, four different times.” Of Wellington’s 16,000 troops he lost
-2600 killed and wounded, the French 1800 out of 20,000. The Portuguese
-behaved “admirably,” and the Commander-in-Chief “had every reason to
-be satisfied with the conduct of the Spanish regiments El Principe and
-Pravia.”
-
-By sunset Soult’s attacks had waned, and on the following morning he
-began to retreat, although he received reinforcements to the number
-of 18,000 troops. On the 30th he attacked Hill to no good effect, and
-Wellington forced the French to retire from a strong position they
-had taken up. The pursuit continued until the 1st August, when it was
-discontinued, for the Allies were in possession of the passes and the
-arduous exertion of the troops was beginning to tell upon them.
-
-Wellington again took up his headquarters at Lesaca. Writing to Graham
-he says, “I hope that Soult will not feel any inclination to renew
-his expedition. The French army must have suffered greatly. Between
-the 25th of last month and 2nd of this, they were engaged seriously
-not less than ten times; on many occasions in attacking very strong
-positions, in others beat from them or pursued. I understand that
-their officers say that they have lost 15,000 men. I thought so; but
-as _they_ say so, I now think _more_. It is strange enough that our
-diminution of strength to the 31st does not exceed 1500 men, although,
-I believe, our casualties are 6000.” It was on the 31st that San
-Sebastian fell, the castle capitulating shortly afterwards, and the
-day is also noteworthy for Soult’s attack on San Marcial, which was
-repulsed by Spanish troops, the enemy retiring across the Bidassoa.
-Unfortunately, Sir John Murray made no headway against Suchet in
-the east of Spain, and was superseded by Lord William Bentinck, who
-besieged Tarragona, which his predecessor had evacuated. Although he
-was compelled to retire on the approach of the French Marshal, the city
-was eventually occupied by the British troops. Their entry into Villa
-Franca was marred by the rout of the advanced guard in the pass of
-Ordal, necessitating their retreat towards Tarragona.
-
-It is obviously impossible to unravel with any approach to detail the
-tangled skein of complicated manœuvres which took place at this period,
-perhaps the most trying and exacting of the war in the Peninsula.
-Gleig, however, gives one picturesque touch to an involved picture
-which reveals more of the personality of the great General than many
-pages of military movements, and is infinitely more valuable for
-the purposes of a life story. “Lord Wellington,” he records, “after
-directing a Spanish column to move up a glen towards a specific point,
-looked at his watch, and observed to those about him that it would
-take the men so much time to perform the journey. He added that he was
-tired, and dismounting from his horse, wrapped himself in his cloak
-and went to sleep. A crowd of officers stood round him, and among
-others some Spanish generals, whose astonishment at the coolness of
-their chief was expressed in audible whispers. For the very crisis of
-the struggle was impending, and the French being in greater strength
-upon the spot, seemed to have the ball at their foot. Now, among the
-officers of the headquarters’ staff, there were several who had never
-approved the passage of the Ebro. These began to speak their minds
-freely, and one, the bravest of the brave, the gallant Colonel Gordon,
-exclaimed, ‘I always thought it would come to this. I was sure we
-should make a mess of it, if we got entangled among the Pyrenees, and
-now see if my words don’t come true.’ Lord Wellington happened to awake
-just as Gordon thus unburdened his conscience. He sat up, and without
-addressing himself to anyone in particular, extended his right hand
-open, and said, as he closed it, ‘I have them all in my hand, just
-like that.’ Not another word was spoken. The Spaniards had reached the
-top of the glen; Lord Wellington and his attendants remounted their
-horses, and the battle was renewed.”
-
-On the 7th October 1813 Wellington passed the Bidassoa with the left
-of his army. Soult was attacked and driven back with the loss of eight
-pieces of cannon, taken by the Allies in the captured redoubts and
-batteries. The fighting was continued on the following day, after
-the fog which obscured the enemy’s position had lifted, when a rock
-occupied by the French to the right of their position was carried “in
-the most gallant style” by the Spaniards, who immediately afterwards
-distinguished themselves by carrying an entrenchment on a hill which
-protected the right of the camp of Sarre. Soult withdrew during the
-following night, and took up a series of entrenched positions behind
-the Nivelle, leaving, as Alison so eloquently puts it, “a vast hostile
-army, for the first time since the Revolution, permanently encamped
-within the territory of France. And thus was England, which throughout
-the contest had been the most persevering and resolute of all the
-opponents of the Revolution, and whose government had never yet either
-yielded to the victories or acknowledged the chiefs which it had placed
-at the head of affairs, the first of all the forces of Europe who
-succeeded in planting its victorious standards on the soil of France.”
-
-On the 10th November, a little over a week after the surrender of
-Pampeluna through starvation, for the fall of which he had waited
-before resuming offensive operations, Wellington, with an army of
-about 90,000 men, attacked the enemy’s position, an exceedingly strong
-one, the right extending from the sea to St Jean de Luz, the left from
-Bidarray to St Jean Pied de Port, the centre between Amotz and Ascain.
-The enemy were driven out of the lines and followed over the river,
-with a loss of 4200 men and no fewer than 51 guns, the Allies losing
-about 2500 killed and wounded.
-
-“Our loss,” says Wellington, “although severe, has not been so great as
-might have been expected, considering the strength of the positions
-attacked, and the length of time, from daylight in the morning till
-night, during which the troops were engaged.” The disorders which
-followed the battle were so great that with the exception of a single
-division Wellington sent the whole of the Spaniards--some 25,000--back
-to the Peninsula.
-
-On the 12th the Marshal was in the entrenched camp at Bayonne, and
-six days later the victorious army went into cantonments, where it
-remained until the 9th December, when it was ordered to march towards
-Bayonne. It forced the passage of the Nive, and a series of engagements
-was fought until the 13th, on which date Hill, with one British and
-one Portuguese division, fought and won the battle of Saint Pierre.
-Wellington came up but refrained from interfering, and when he saw
-that his brave colleague had proved victorious, he wrung his hand in a
-hearty grip and exclaimed, “Hill, the day is entirely your own.”
-
-In the battles of the Nive the French lost 5800 killed and wounded,
-and three German regiments by desertion to the Allies, whose losses
-totalled 4600. Soult had now one of two alternatives, either to be
-hemmed in at Bayonne or to retreat. He chose the latter, and marched
-in the direction of Toulouse with less than 40,000 troops, Napoleon,
-now in desperate plight, having withdrawn 10,000 for the defence of the
-eastern frontier of France.
-
-Leaving Sir John Hope to blockade Bayonne, Wellington followed Soult,
-who took up a position at Orthez, on the right bank of the Gave de
-Pau. Early on the morning of the 27th February the battle opened by
-Beresford turning the enemy’s right, but he was driven back, as was
-Picton, who attacked the enemy’s centre. “_Enfin je le tiens!_--At
-last I have him!” exclaimed Soult, but Wellington changed his plan,
-and at once sent Hill to cross the river by the ford above Souars and
-cut off the Marshal’s retreat by the great road to Pau. At the same
-time he ordered two divisions against the right of the enemy’s centre,
-and Colborne cut off the division which had checkmated Beresford. The
-French under Reille were driven from the heights, and at first retired,
-in good order, but Cotton and Lord Edward Somerset charged and spread
-considerable confusion in the ranks, while Hill marched on Aire and
-attacked Clausel. The Portuguese were repulsed, but the British drove
-the enemy from the town with great loss.
-
-Wellington was wounded almost at the end of the battle, which is
-perhaps one reason why the pursuit was not so rapid as it might
-otherwise have been. However, Beresford was sent with two divisions to
-Bordeaux, whose citizens bade them enter, and thereupon proclaimed the
-Duc d’Angoulême, eldest nephew of Louis XVIII, who was now with the
-British army, as Prince Regent.
-
-The last battle of the Peninsular War was fought on Easter Sunday, the
-10th April 1814, at Toulouse, on which Soult’s army had concentrated.
-
-A mistake on the part of an engineer as to the breadth of the Garonne
-above Toulouse prevented Wellington from crossing at the spot he had
-selected because there were not sufficient pontoons. This caused
-considerable delay and a march to a narrower but more difficult
-place below the town. Sir George Napier says that he never saw the
-Commander-in-Chief in such a rage--he was “furious.” On the completion
-of the gangway, Beresford, with a portion of the army, passed over,
-drove in the French outposts, and remained in front of the enemy. There
-they stopped for three days, cut off from the main force and liable to
-attack any moment. This unexpected situation was brought about by a
-storm which flooded the river and swept away the pontoons.
-
-Soult is stated to have given this reason for failing to assail
-Beresford’s force: “You do not know what stuff two British divisions
-are made of; they would not be conquered as long as there was a man of
-them left to stand, and I cannot afford to lose men now.”
-
-When the new bridge was available no time was lost in crossing the
-river, and on the 10th Soult was attacked. An eye-witness thus records
-the event[78]:
-
-“The 4th, 6th, and a Portuguese division under Marshal Beresford’s
-orders, attacked the great fort on the right of the French, and here
-was the brunt of the battle, for the enemy was strongly posted and
-flanked by works, with trenches in their front, and their best troops
-opposed to ours. But nothing could damp the courage of this column; the
-enemy’s guns poured a torrent of fire upon it; still it moved onward,
-when column upon column appeared, crowning the hill and forming lines
-in front and on the flanks of our brave fellows who were near the
-top; and then such a roll of musketry accompanied by peals of cannon
-and the shouts of the enemy commenced, that our soldiers were fairly
-forced to give way and were driven down again. This attack was twice
-renewed, and twice were our gallant fellows forced to retire, when,
-being got into order again and under a tremendous fire of all arms from
-the enemy, they once more marched onward determined ‘_to do or die_’
-(for they were nearly all Scotch) and, having gained the summit of the
-position, they charged with the bayonet, and in spite of every effort
-of the enemy, drove all before them and entered every redoubt and fort
-with such a courage as I never saw before. The enemy lay in _heaps_,
-dead and dying! few, very few, escaped the slaughter of that day; but
-‘victory’ was heard shouted from post to post as that gallant band
-moved along the crown of the enemy’s position taking every work at the
-point of the bayonet.
-
-“While the work of death was going on here, the centre of the French
-position was attacked by the Spanish column of 8000 men, under
-General Freyre, who had _demanded_ in rather a haughty tone that Lord
-Wellington should give the Spaniards the post of honour in the battle.
-He acceded, but took special care to have the Light Division in reserve
-to support them in case of _accidents_. Old Freyre placed himself at
-the head of his column, surrounded by his staff, and marched boldly
-up the hollow way, or road, which led right up to the enemy, under a
-heavy and destructive fire of cannon shot, which plunging into the
-head of his column made great havoc among his men; still they went
-steadily and boldly on, to my astonishment and delight to see them
-behave so gallantly, and I could not help expressing my delight to
-Colonel Colborne. But, alas! he knew them too well, and said to me,
-‘Gently, my friend; don’t praise them too soon; look at yonder brigade
-of French Light Infantry, ready to attack them as soon as the head of
-their column enters the open ground. One moment more and we shall see
-the Spaniards fly! Gallop off, you, and throw the 52nd Regiment (which
-was in line) into open column of companies, and let these fellows
-pass through, or they will carry the regiment off with them.’ He had
-scarcely finished the words when a well-directed fire from the French
-Infantry opened upon the Spanish column, and instantly the words ‘_Vive
-l’Empereur! En avant! en avant!_’ accompanied by a charge, put the
-Spaniards to flight, and down they came upon the 52nd Regiment, and I
-had but just time to throw it into open column of companies when they
-rushed through the intervals like a torrent and never stopped till
-they arrived at the river some miles in the rear. As soon as they had
-passed, and I had formed the regiment into line again, we moved up and
-took the Spaniards’ place, driving before us the enemy’s brigade, who,
-being by this time completely beaten on the right and all his forts and
-trenches carried by Beresford’s troops, had retreated into the town; so
-that we found the fort on that part of the position which we attacked
-quite abandoned, and we entered it without loss.
-
-[Illustration: The French Retreat over the Pyrenees
-
-R. Caton Woodville]
-
-“On our right the 3rd Division, under General Picton, was ordered to
-make a false attack on the canal bridge, which was strongly fortified
-and formed an impracticable barrier to that part of the town; but
-General Picton (who never hesitated at disobeying his orders)
-thought proper to change this false attack into a real one, and after
-repeated and useless attempts to carry it was forced to give it up,
-with an immense loss of officers and men. To our extreme right and on
-the opposite side of the river General Hill was stationed with his
-corps in order to watch the bridge and gates of the town, and either
-prevent any attempt of the enemy to pass over a body of troops during
-the action to cut off our communications with the rear, or, should he
-show any design of retreating that way, to impede him. However, all was
-quiet on that side, and now that every man of the enemy’s army had been
-chased from the position the battle was won, and the roar of cannon,
-the fire of the musketry, and the shouts of the victors ceased. All was
-still; the pickets placed; the sentinels set; and the greatest part of
-the army sleeping in groups round the fires of the bivouac.”
-
-Soult had only been able to bring some 39,000 men into the field, to
-so great an extent had his forces been depleted, while Wellington had
-less than 50,000 available troops. Of the French, 3200 were killed
-or wounded, of the Allies 4600. On the 12th April Soult evacuated
-Toulouse, six days after Napoleon the Great had snatched up a pen and
-scrawled his formal abdication. A moment before he had been full of
-fight, had wanted to rally the corps of Augereau, Suchet and Soult. A
-year later he won back more than these. Wellington entered Toulouse
-on the day Soult left it, and within a few hours of the receipt of
-the news from Paris of the proclamation of Louis XVIII, a monarch as
-incompetent as the fallen Emperor was great. History is oftentimes
-ironic, and Time’s see-saw seldom maintains an even balance for any
-lengthy period.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-The Prelude to the Waterloo Campaign
-
-(1814-15)
-
- “_I work as hard as I can in every way in order to succeed._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-“I march to-morrow to follow Marshal Soult, and to prevent his army
-from becoming the _noyau_ of a civil war in France.” Thus writes
-Wellington to Sir John Hope on the 16th April 1814, when the white flag
-of the Bourbons was flying at Toulouse, and forty-eight hours after
-Hope had been made a prisoner during a sortie on the part of the French
-garrison of Bayonne. Soult extended no right hand of welcome to Louis
-XVIII, and positively refused to submit to the new _regime_ until he
-had received trustworthy information from some of Napoleon’s ministers.
-However, he was speedily convinced of the fall of his former master,
-and both he and Suchet acknowledged the Provisional Government. On the
-19th April a Convention was signed by each party and Wellington for
-the cessation of hostilities and the evacuation of Spain. The British
-infantry were sent either to the homeland or on foreign service; the
-cavalry traversed France and crossed to England from Calais.
-
-Wellington’s work was not yet over, although his military career was
-closed for a time. He was appointed British Ambassador at Paris, and
-while he wrote to a correspondent that recent political and military
-events promised “to restore the blessings of peace permanently to
-the world,” we must not suppose that he believed the abdication of
-Napoleon to be the herald of the millennium. When Castlereagh proposed
-the diplomatic post to him Wellington would have been perfectly
-justified in declining it, but sufficient of his story has been told
-for the reader to appreciate the fact that the Hero of the Peninsula
-was as keenly devoted to the service of his king and country as the
-Hero of Trafalgar. Whatever egotism he possessed was certainly not
-carried to excess. He says that he should never have thought himself
-qualified for the work. “I hope, however,” he adds, and here the
-sterling qualities of the man are revealed, “that the Prince Regent,
-his Government, and your Lordship, are convinced that I am ready to
-serve him in any situation in which it may be thought that I can be of
-any service. Although I have been so long absent from England, I should
-have remained as much longer if it had been necessary; and I feel no
-objection to another absence in the public service, if it be necessary
-or desirable.” He says much the same thing to his brother Henry: “I
-must serve the public in some manner or other; and, as under existing
-circumstances I could not well do so at home, I must do so abroad.”
-
-Those who accuse Wellington of lack of heart will do well to remember
-that before leaving Toulouse for Paris he wrote an appealing letter to
-Earl Bathurst in behalf of Sir Rowland Hill and Sir Robert Kennedy, the
-latter of whom had exerted himself to the utmost in keeping the army
-well supplied with provisions, and to write a letter of condolence to
-Hope, who was a prisoner and wounded.
-
-But he found time to join in a few _fêtes_ in honour of the
-Restoration, including a magnificent ball given by Sir Charles Stewart,
-the British Commissioner to the Army of the Allies, where monarchs were
-plentiful and Society beauties abundant. “It was in the midst of this
-ball,” the Comtesse de Boigne relates, “that the Duke of Wellington
-appeared for the first time in Paris. I can see him now entering the
-room with his two nieces, Lady Burgers[79] and Miss Pole, hanging on
-his arms. There were no eyes for any one else, and at this ball, where
-grandeur abounded, everything gave way to military glory. That of the
-Duke of Wellington was brilliant and unalloyed, and a lustre was added
-to it by the interest that had long been felt in the cause of the
-Spanish nation.”
-
-He had only been in Paris six days before he set out for Madrid, viâ
-Toulouse, “in order to try whether I cannot prevail upon all parties
-to be more moderate, and to adopt a constitution more likely to be
-practicable and to contribute to the peace and happiness of the
-nation.” He had made the proposal, and the Allies had eagerly accepted
-it. When he started on his journey he was the Duke of Wellington,[80]
-and it was additional cause of satisfaction to him to know that
-peerages had been conferred on Beresford, Hill, Cotton, Hope, and
-Graham, “my gallant coadjutors.” He stayed at Toulouse for a couple of
-days, attending to details connected with the army, and again continued
-his journey, writing dispatches, notes of condolence, a letter
-requesting permission to accept the Grand Cross of the Order of St
-George from the Czar, and so on.
-
-Napoleon had released Ferdinand VII on the 13th of the previous
-March, and the king was now back in his capital. “I entertain a
-very favourable opinion of the King from what I have seen of him,”
-Wellington writes from Madrid on the 25th May 1814, “but not of his
-Ministers.” This opinion of Ferdinand must be taken as referring to
-the man and not to his methods, for he had already assumed the part
-of a despot to so alarming an extent that civil war was feared, hence
-the Duke’s journey. “I have accomplished my object in coming here”; he
-says in the same letter, “that is, I think there will certainly be
-no civil war at present.” But seven days later he communicates with
-Castlereagh in a minor key: “I have been well received by the King and
-his Ministers; but I fear that I have done but little good.”
-
-He left a lengthy memorandum in the hands of his Catholic Majesty,
-full of excellent advice, and bereft, as he said, of “all national
-partialities and prejudices.” Commerce, the colonies, domestic
-interests, and finance are all touched upon in a sane, straightforward
-way, obviously with the intention of promoting “a good understanding
-and cementing the alliance with Great Britain,” but valuable quite
-apart from any motive that might be construed as selfish. As Wellington
-says in the preamble, “The Spanish nation having been engaged for six
-years in one of the most terrible and disastrous contests by which any
-nation was ever afflicted, its territory having been entirely occupied
-by the enemy, the country torn to pieces by internal divisions,
-its ancient constitution having been destroyed, and vain attempts
-made to establish a new one; its marine, its commerce, and revenue
-entirely annihilated; its colonies in a state of rebellion, and
-nearly lost to the mother country; it becomes a question for serious
-consideration, what line of policy should be adopted by His Majesty
-upon his happy restoration to his throne and authority.” Had Ferdinand
-taken Wellington’s well-intentioned advice to heart, Spain might have
-risen from her ashes. The old abuses cropped up, the Inquisition was
-re-established in a milder form, and troops were sent across the seas
-to perish in a futile endeavour to recover the Transatlantic colonies
-of a once glorious empire.
-
-After returning to Paris to make arrangements for the embarkation of
-the British cavalry at Calais, the Duke sailed for England. When he
-landed at Dover on the 23rd June 1814, a salute from the batteries of
-the Castle welcomed him home. “About five o’clock this morning,” says
-a contemporary writer, “his majesty’s sloop-of-war, the _Rosario_,
-arrived in the roads, and fired a salute. Shortly afterwards, the
-yards of the different vessels of war were manned; a salute took place
-throughout the squadron, and the launch of the _Nymphen_ frigate was
-seen advancing towards the harbour, with the Duke of Wellington; at
-this time the guns upon the heights and from the batteries commenced
-their thunder upon the boat leaving the ship; and on passing the
-pier-heads his Lordship was greeted with three distinct rounds of
-cheers from those assembled; but upon his landing at the Crosswall,
-nothing could exceed the rapture with which his Lordship was received
-by at least ten thousand persons; and notwithstanding it was so early,
-parties continued to arrive from town and country every minute. The
-instant his Lordship set foot on shore, a proposition was made, and
-instantly adopted, to carry him to the Ship Inn: he was borne on
-the shoulders of our townsmen, amidst the reiterated cheers of the
-populace.”
-
-London went wild with excitement when he arrived, and at Westminster
-Bridge the mob took the horses from his carriage and dragged it along
-in triumph. On the 28th he took his seat for the first time in the
-House of Lords. He must have appeared a fine figure as, clad in his
-Field Marshal’s uniform under a peer’s robes, he was introduced by
-the Dukes of Beaufort and Richmond. The Lord Chancellor expressed
-the sentiments of the House, but refrained from attempting to state
-the “eminent merits” of his military character, “to represent those
-brilliant actions, those illustrious achievements, which have attached
-immortality to the name of Wellington, and which have given to this
-country a degree of glory unexampled in the annals of this kingdom. In
-thus acting, I believe I best consult the feelings which evince your
-Grace’s title to the character of a truly great and illustrious man”;
-and the Duke replied, in a short speech, attributing his success to his
-troops and general officers. A little later a deputation from the Lower
-House waited upon Wellington to offer him the congratulations of the
-Commons, and he attended in person to return thanks. The whole House
-rose as he entered. After a short speech the Speaker made an eloquent
-and touching address.
-
-“It is not ... the grandeur of military success,” he said, “which has
-alone fixed our admiration or commanded our applause; it has been that
-generous and lofty spirit which inspired your troops with unbounded
-confidence, and taught them to know that the day of battle was always
-a day of victory; that moral courage and enduring fortitude which, in
-perilous times, when gloom and doubt had beset ordinary minds, stood
-nevertheless unshaken; and that ascendancy of character which, uniting
-the energies of jealous and rival nations, enabled you to wield at will
-the fate and fortunes of mighty empires....
-
-“It now remains only that we congratulate your Grace upon the high and
-important mission on which you are about to proceed, and we doubt not
-that the same splendid talents, so conspicuous in war, will maintain,
-with equal authority, firmness, and temper, our national honour and
-interests in peace.”
-
-Wellington was made a Doctor of Laws by the University of Oxford, as
-Nelson had been before him,[81] he received the freedom of the City of
-London in a gold casket, and a magnificent sword--in a word, he was the
-country’s Hero.
-
-The time at his disposal was short and fully occupied, for he
-left London on the 8th August for Paris, travelling by way of the
-Netherlands, where he inspected the frontier from Liège along the
-Meuse and the Sambre to Namur and Charleroi, and thence by Mons to
-Tournay and the sea with a view to determining how Holland and Belgium,
-now united into one kingdom, could be placed in an adequate state of
-defence for future service should circumstances dictate. He also noted
-some of the most advantageous positions, including “the entrance of
-the _forêt_ de Soignes by the high road which leads to Brussels from
-Binch, Charleroi, and Namur,”--in one word, Waterloo. He realized
-that there were more disadvantages than advantages, but “this country
-must be defended in the best manner that is possible,” even though it
-“affords no features upon which reliance can be placed to establish any
-defensive system.”[82]
-
-Wellington had no hours of luxurious ease in Paris. The abolition
-of the slave trade, on which Great Britain had at last determined,
-occupied much of his attention, and one has only to refer to his
-dispatches at this period to understand the many difficulties he had
-to contend with in this one particular. Then there were questions of
-compensation for private property destroyed or damaged in the late war
-to be considered, of American vessels of war and privateers fitted
-out in French ports, and what was most important of all, a diagnosis
-of the increasing restlessness in Paris to be made. He believed that
-the sentiments of the people were favourable to the Bourbon king, “but
-the danger is not in that quarter, but among the discontented officers
-of the army, and others, heretofore in the civil departments of the
-service, now without employment.”
-
-It would be incorrect to state that Wellington was popular in Paris,
-for not a few prominent military men regarded the presence of the
-General who had played no small part in tarnishing the glory of France
-as a perpetual reminder of the country’s misfortunes. The people even
-went so far as to resent his coat of arms, in which there was a lion or
-leopard bearing a tricoloured flag. This was construed as the British
-lion trampling on the French national flag. There was an eagle on the
-Duchess’s arms, which was another cause of offence. “My coach was in
-danger of being torn to pieces,” says the Duke, and he was obliged to
-have the innocent bird painted out.
-
-The Congress of Vienna was now sitting, bent on undoing the work of
-the Revolution so far as was possible with a view to upholding the
-Divine right of kings. This is not to be wondered at considering the
-members of the solemn conclave, which included the Czar, the Kings
-of Prussia, Bavaria, Denmark and Würtemberg, the Grand Duke Charles
-of Baden, the Elector William of Hesse, the Hereditary Grand Duke
-George of Hesse-Darmstadt, the Duke of Weimar, and Prince Eugene
-Beauharnais (Napoleon’s step-son). The President was Metternich, the
-Emperor of Austria’s right-hand man, the first representative of
-France was the wily Talleyrand, of Great Britain Castlereagh. A host
-of plenipotentiaries came to put their fingers into the political
-pie, including those of Spain, Portugal, Sweden, Norway, France,
-Great Britain, Prussia, Russia, Switzerland, Italy, the Pope, the
-Netherlands, and the smaller German States.
-
-What with talk of projected attempts on his life and the far from
-pacific doings at Vienna, the Earl of Liverpool was of opinion that it
-would be advisable to get Wellington out of France as soon as possible.
-With this idea in view he was offered the command of the troops in
-North America, an offer he bitterly resented. However, Castlereagh
-solved the difficulty by asking the Duke to take his place at Vienna.
-The proposition was made by the Foreign Secretary in a letter dated
-the 18th December 1814. “I do not hesitate to comply with your
-desire,” the Duke replies. “As I mean to serve the King’s Government
-in any situation which may be thought desirable, it is a matter of
-indifference to me in what stage I find your proceedings.”
-
-When Wellington reached the Austrian capital in January 1815--destined
-to be the greatest year in modern European history--he found that the
-wolves in sheep’s clothing had almost concluded their deliberations.
-Russia, supported by Prussia, was intent upon securing Poland, a plan
-bitterly opposed by Great Britain and Austria. France was wishful for
-Holland and Belgium. The quarrelling suddenly ceased when, on the 7th
-March, Metternich received the most astounding news. Napoleon, King of
-Elba, had left his little island state, landed on the French coast, and
-was marching in the direction of Paris! Wellington heard on the same
-day from another source, and immediately communicated the scanty news
-detailed to him by Lord Burghersh to the Emperor of Austria and the
-Czar.
-
-“I do not entertain the smallest doubt that, if unfortunately it
-should be possible for Buonaparte to hold at all against the King
-of France, he must fall under the cordially united efforts of the
-Sovereigns of Europe.” Thus writes the Duke to Castlereagh, but in a
-dispatch of the same date, namely the 12th March, he shows that he
-entirely failed to appreciate the fascination still exercised by the
-name “Napoleon.” “It is my opinion,” he writes, “that Buonaparte has
-acted upon false or no information, and that the King will destroy him
-without difficulty, and in a short time.” We know that the ex-Emperor’s
-reception was at first somewhat lukewarm, but as he marched towards the
-capital it assumed the form of a triumphal procession, with Ney and the
-6000 men who were “to bring him back in an iron cage” as enthusiastic
-followers. The inhabitants of the south alone refused to recognize the
-former Emperor of the French.
-
-Far from Louis XVIII destroying Napoleon “without difficulty,” that
-brave monarch left France to its own devices on the 19th March, the
-day before his predecessor and successor reached the Tuileries. “What
-did he do in the midst of the general consternation of Paris?” asks
-the Baron de Frénilly. “He acted. A great crowd saw him in the morning
-proceeding in pomp with Monsieur to the Chamber of Deputies; he was
-seen to enter and throw himself into his brother’s arms, with the
-solemn promise to remain in Paris and be buried under the ruins of the
-monarchy; and on the following day the population learnt that he had
-fled in the night by the road to Flanders!” Soult, now Minister of
-War, apparently under the impression that an Army Order would tend to
-dispel any affection the soldiers might feel towards their former Head,
-issued the most stupid of nonsensical proclamations. “Bonaparte,” it
-reads in part, “mistakes us so far as to believe that we are capable
-of abandoning a legitimate and beloved sovereign in order to share the
-fortunes of one who is nothing more than an adventurer. He believes
-this--the idiot!--and his last act of folly is a convincing proof that
-he does so.”
-
-Without loss of time the Fifth Coalition was formed, Great Britain,
-Russia, Austria and Prussia entering into a treaty on the 17th March,
-whereby each of them guaranteed to put 150,000 men in the field against
-“the enemy and disturber of the peace of the world,” Great Britain,
-as usual, financing the Allies, this time to the enormous extent of
-£5,000,000.
-
-With commendable dispatch Napoleon formed a new ministry and began to
-marshal his troops, which at first numbered 200,000 and eventually
-284,000, excluding a quarter of a million of men for internal defence.
-“It was the finest army,” writes Professor Oman, “that Napoleon had
-commanded since Friedland, for it was purely French, and was composed
-almost entirely of veterans; but it was too small for its purpose.”[83]
-Murat, king of Naples, precipitated matters by invading the Papal
-States, and failed at the hands of Austria, thereby robbing his
-brother-in-law of his only possible ally. But this was finished by the
-beginning of May, over a month before Napoleon started for the front,
-leaving 10,000 of his none-too-numerous troops to quell an outburst of
-royalist enthusiasm in La Vendée, ever the most warlike province of
-France and apt to flame into insurrection on the slightest provocation.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-Ligny and Quatre Bras
-
-(1815)
-
- “_I go to measure myself with Wellington._”
-
- NAPOLEON.
-
-
-Napoleon left Paris at dawn on the 12th June, and travelled to Laon.
-His troops were divided into the Army of the North, intended for the
-invasion of Belgium, which totalled a little over 124,000; the Army
-of the Rhine, commanded by Rapp, about 20,000, with a reserve of
-3000 National Guards; Le Courbe’s corps of observation, watching the
-passes of the Jura, about 8000; the Army of the Alps, with Suchet,
-some 23,000; a detachment, under Brune, guarding the line of the
-Var, 6000; the 7th Corps, watching the line of the Pyrenees, 14,000,
-in two sections under Decaen and Clausel. The Army of the North was
-distributed at Lille, Valenciennes, Mézières, Thionville, and Soissons,
-under D’Erlon, Reille, Vandamme, Gérard and Lobau respectively; the
-Imperial Guard near Paris, and the Reserve Cavalry, under Grouchy,
-between the Aisne and the Sambre.[84] Soult was chief of the staff, an
-appointment not particularly happy.[85]
-
-In Belgium there was the nucleus of an army, consisting of some 10,000
-soldiers, mostly British. Wellington arrived at Brussels on the 5th
-April, with the formidable task in hand of organizing a substantial
-body to oppose the returned Exile. He managed it, but the result was
-almost as motley a crowd of fighting men as Napoleon had for his
-disastrous Russian campaign. Wellington bluntly called them “not only
-the worst troops, but the worst-equipped army, with the worst staff
-that was ever brought together.” There were Hanoverians, Belgians,
-Dutch, Brunswickers, and Nassauers, as well as men of his own country.
-The 1st Corps, under the Prince of Orange, totalled 25,000, with
-headquarters at Braine-le-Comte; the 2nd Corps, commanded by Lord Hill,
-numbered 24,000, with headquarters at Ath; the Reserve Corps, with the
-Duke at Brussels, 21,000; the Cavalry, under the Earl of Uxbridge,
-14,000; in the garrisons were 12,000, and the artillery and engineers
-reached 10,000--grand total 106,000.[86] The Prussian Army, commanded
-by Blücher, reached 124,000 men, some few thousands of whom were
-already in Belgium in March. It was made up of four corps stationed
-at Charleroi, Namur, Ciney, and Liége, with headquarters at Namur.
-Both armies were in touch with each other, although distributed over
-a large extent of territory. It was intended that 750,000 men should
-be available for the invasion of France, but none of the other allies
-was ready. Napoleon acted promptly, his idea being to deal with each
-separately and drive them back on their bases before they were able to
-concentrate. He would then turn on the Austrians before the Russians
-were ready.
-
-Napoleon succeeded in concentrating the Army of the North without
-definite particulars of his movements reaching either Wellington or
-Blücher. On the 15th June he was across the frontier and had made a
-preliminary success by driving Ziethen, who commanded Blücher’s first
-corps, from the banks of the Sambre, gaining the bridges, and securing
-Charleroi. The Emperor followed the Prussians to within a short
-distance of Gilly, where the French right wing defeated them with the
-loss of nearly 2000 men. The enemy then fell back in the direction of
-Ligny, and Napoleon made his headquarters at Charleroi. Meanwhile Ney,
-who had only arrived in the afternoon, was given charge of Reille’s
-and D’Erlon’s corps, and it is usually contended that he had told
-Lefebvre-Desnoëttes to reconnoitre towards Quatre Bras, then held by
-some 4500 Nassau troops, commanded by Prince Bernard of Saxe-Weimar.
-
-Lefebvre first encountered the enemy at the village of Frasnes, some
-twenty-three miles from Brussels and covering Quatre Bras, where about
-1500 men were stationed, who fell back towards Quatre Bras. The French
-General occupied the village in the evening after an indecisive action.
-
-When information reached Wellington from Ziethen, vague because it was
-dispatched early in the morning, he ordered the majority of the troops
-at his disposal to be “ready to move at the shortest notice,” and a few
-only were told to change the positions they then occupied. He issued
-his final instructions at 10 p.m., and then went to the ball given by
-the Duchess of Richmond, who had invited some of the non-commissioned
-officers and privates in order “to show her Bruxelles friends the
-_real Highland dance_,” as Wellington afterwards averred. The
-Commander-in-Chief was quite easy in his mind, for he had done all that
-it was possible for him to do, and his appearance at such a festivity
-tended to allay the anxiety of the inhabitants as to Napoleon’s
-movements. Surely the capital was safe if Wellington was so unconcerned
-as to go to a dance?
-
- _There was a sound of Revelry by night;
- And Belgium’s Capital had gather’d then
- Her Beauty and her Chivalry; and bright
- The lamps shone o’er fair women, and brave men:
- A thousand hearts beat happily; and when
- Music arose with its voluptuous swell,
- Soft eyes look’d love to eyes which spake again;
- And all went merry as a marriage-bell:
- But Hush! Hark! a deep sound strikes like a rising knell!_
-
- _Did ye not hear it? No: ’twas but the wind;
- Or the car rattling o’er the stony street:
- On with the dance! let Joy be unconfined:
- No sleep till morn, when Youth and Pleasure meet
- To chase the glowing Hours with flying feet:
- But, Hark! that heavy sound breaks in once more;
- As if the clouds its echo would repeat;
- And nearer, clearer, deadlier than before!
- Arm! Arm! it is; it is; the Cannon’s opening Roar!_
-
-Had Byron pictured the entry of Lieutenant Webster with a dispatch
-for the Prince of Orange he would have been more literally, if not
-artistically, correct. The nineteen words which the Prince read were
-momentous: “Captain Baron von Gagern has just arrived from Nivelles,
-reporting that the enemy had pushed up to Quatre Bras.” It had been
-written at Braine-le-Comte at 10.30 p.m. No further instructions were
-issued by Wellington, for he had already arranged “for a movement
-tending to draw the right of his forces in towards the left.”[87] He
-therefore remained at the ball until about 2 a.m., on the 16th, and
-then went to bed.
-
-He left the city very early and arrived at Quatre Bras about 10
-o’clock. There he found, according to his own statement,[88] “the
-Prince of Orange with a small body of Belgian troops, two or three
-battalions of infantry, a squadron of Belgian dragoons, and two or
-three pieces of cannon which had been at the Quatre Bras--the four
-roads--since the preceding evening. It appeared that the picket of this
-detachment had been touched by a French patrol, and there was some
-firing, but very little; and of so little importance that, after seeing
-what was doing, I went on to the Prussian army, which I saw from the
-ground, was assembling upon the field of St Amand and Ligny, about
-eight miles distant.
-
-“I reached the Prussian army; was at their headquarters; stayed there a
-considerable time; saw the army formed; the commencement of the battle;
-and returned to join my own army assembled and assembling at the Quatre
-Bras. I arrived then at Quatre Bras a second time on that day, as well
-as I recollect, at about two or three o’clock in the afternoon.
-
-“The straggling fire there had continued from morning; the Prince of
-Orange was with the line troops still in the same position. I was
-informed that the army was collecting in a wood in front. I rode
-forward and reconnoitred or examined their position according to my
-usual practice. I saw clearly a very large body of men assembled, and a
-Maréchal reviewing them, according to their usual practice, preparatory
-to an attack. I heard distinctly the usual cries: ‘_En avant! en avant!
-L’Empereur récompensera celui qui s’avancera!_’
-
-“Before I quitted the Prince of Orange, some of the officers standing
-about had doubted whether we should be attacked at this point. I sent
-to the Prince of Orange from the ground on which I was standing, to
-tell him that he might rely upon it that we should be attacked in five
-minutes, and that he had better order the retreat towards the main
-position of the light troops and guns which were in front, and which
-could make no resistance to the fierce attack about to be made upon
-us. These were accordingly withdrawn, and in less than five minutes we
-were attacked by the whole French army under Maréchal Ney. There was
-in fact no delay nor cessation from attack from that time till night.
-The reserves of the British army from Brussels had arrived at the
-Quatre Bras at this time; and the corps of Brunswick troops from the
-headquarters, and a division of Belgian troops from Nivelles, Braine,
-&c.”
-
-Ney did not begin his attack until 2 p.m. He had only Reille’s
-corps at his disposal, and he was uncertain as to the movements
-of the Prussians. But when a move was made against the farm of
-Gémioncourt,[89] the key of the position, the 7000 troops of the Prince
-of Orange were speedily driven back, and the wood of Bossu also fell
-into the enemy’s hands. It was at this precise moment that Wellington
-and reinforcements arrived. Picton with his brave 5th Division,
-although exhausted by a long march on a sultry day, were ordered to
-retake the wood. It was then that Ney hurled his cavalry at them in a
-determined endeavour to save the situation at all costs.
-
-“One regiment,” we are told, “after sustaining a furious cannonade,
-was suddenly, and on three different sides, assailed by cavalry. Two
-faces of the square were charged by the lancers, while the cuirassiers
-galloped down upon another. It was a trying moment. There was a
-death-like silence, and one voice alone, calm and clear, was heard. It
-was their Colonel’s, who called upon them to be ‘steady.’ On came the
-enemy--the earth shook beneath the horses’ feet; while on every side of
-the devoted band, the corn,[90] bending beneath the rush of cavalry,
-disclosed their numerous assailants. The lance-blades approached the
-bayonets of the kneeling front rank--the cuirassiers were within forty
-paces--yet not a trigger was drawn. But when the word ‘Fire!’ thundered
-from the colonel’s lips, each piece poured out its deadly volley, and
-in a moment the leading files of the French lay before the square, as
-if hurled by a thunderbolt to the earth. The assailants, broken and
-dispersed, galloped off for shelter to the tall rye; while a stream
-of musketry from the British square carried death into the retreating
-squadrons.” At length Maitland’s division of the Guards secured
-possession of the wood. The French continued to attack with ardour,
-but with the close of day Ney fell back upon the road to Frasnes. The
-British remained at Quatre Bras.
-
-Many brave incidents are recorded. A soldier of the 92nd was wounded
-in the thigh. After having been attended by a surgeon the medical man
-dismissed him by saying, “There is now no fear of you, get slowly
-behind.” His reply, unpremeditated and instant, was, “The presence of
-every man is necessary,” and calmly went back to his post, from which
-he never returned. Another fellow had his knapsack carried away from
-his shoulders by a cannon-ball. He caught it by a dexterous movement
-before it reached the ground. Wellington happened to be near, and the
-incident afforded him considerable amusement.
-
-The 2nd Battalion of the 69th Regiment of Foot[91] had its flag
-captured, the precious symbol being wrenched from the hands of the
-officer almost at the same time as the attempted capture of another
-colour during a charge of French cuirassiers. The latter was preserved,
-although the bearer received severe wounds. Ensign Christie also saved
-a flag by throwing himself upon it. As the soldier lay on the ground
-a portion of the colour was torn off by the lancer who had made the
-attempt, but before the prize could be taken the captor was shot and
-the piece recovered.
-
-Wellington lost 4600 killed and wounded at Quatre Bras, but although
-he remained in possession of the field, Ney’s grim determination had
-precluded him from sending reinforcements to Blücher, who had been
-contesting Napoleon at Ligny, eight miles distant. On the other hand,
-the Emperor had ordered his Marshal to assist him at Ligny after having
-dispersed the troops at Quatre Bras, which he was far too heavily
-engaged all day to do, although it is conceivable that had he begun
-his attack earlier he might have carried out his Chief’s instructions.
-Napoleon himself delayed his attack because some of his soldiers had
-not arrived, and when he was ready to open fire he totalled 20,000
-men less than the Prussian commander. D’Erlon’s troops, forming Ney’s
-reserve, were sent for, but before they were pressed into service were
-ordered back by Ney to assist him. Had D’Erlon remained, Napoleon would
-have won a decisive victory. As it was, Blücher’s losses reached over
-20,000, and he narrowly averted capture. He was thrown during a cavalry
-charge and badly injured. The Prussians abandoned the field, retiring
-towards Wavre, which enabled them to be in touch with Wellington, and
-where they later formed a junction with the fresh corps of Bülow.
-Napoleon, who had 11,000 men killed or wounded, was convinced that the
-enemy would fall back on Namur and Liége, which would enable him to
-deal with Wellington alone on the morrow.
-
-Napoleon was unusually lethargic on the following day, and squandered
-much precious time until noon in various useless ways. He then ordered
-Grouchy, with 33,000 men, to ascertain the position occupied by the
-Prussians, while he joined Ney. Wellington, hearing of Blücher’s defeat
-and realizing that every moment was of value, had evacuated Quatre
-Bras almost without interference, although Napoleon’s cavalry came
-up with the British rear and the situation was saved by a propitious
-downpour of rain which soon transformed road and field alike into a
-quagmire. Still, Napoleon chased in pursuit to the ridge of Waterloo,
-where a heavy cannonade put an end to his advance. The Emperor made his
-headquarters at the Caillou farm, retiring to rest only after he had
-seen that Wellington’s army was not retreating from the position it had
-taken up at Mont St Jean. Unable to sleep, he again satisfied himself
-that the army he was bent on shattering had not stolen a march on him,
-and when the 18th June dawned he was still gazing in the direction of
-Wellington and his men.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-Waterloo
-
-(1815)
-
- “_The history of a battle is not unlike the history of a ball. Some
- individuals may recollect all the little events of which the great
- result is the battle lost or won; but no individual can recollect
- the order in which, or the exact moment at which they occurred,
- which makes all the difference as to their value or importance._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-The British General had already sent word to Blücher that he was
-prepared to fight Napoleon if the Prussian Commander could see his
-way to send him one army-corps, the assistance of which he deemed
-imperative. He did not receive a reply until the early hours of the
-18th, and it was in the affirmative. He promised Bülow’s corps, which
-would march at daybreak against Napoleon’s right, followed by that of
-Pirch. Those of Thielmann and Ziethen would also be sent provided the
-presence of Grouchy did not prevent. As events turned out, Thielmann’s
-corps was sufficient for this purpose of defending the Dyle against
-the French Marshal. The first report from Grouchy received by Napoleon
-on the 18th was sent from Gembloux, and contained news up to 10
-o’clock on the previous night, namely, that part of the Prussians had
-retired towards Wavre, that Blücher with their centre had fallen back
-on Perwez, and a column with artillery had moved in the direction of
-Namur.[92]
-
-[Illustration]
-
-From another source Napoleon gathered that three bodies of the
-Prussians were concentrating at Wavre, vital information which, for
-some inexplicable reason, he did not dispatch to Grouchy until 10 a.m.
-We have it on the authority of Foy, who had fought in Spain, that at
-daybreak Napoleon was told that the junction of Wellington and Blücher
-was possible. This he refused to believe, stating that such an event
-could not take place before the 20th. Grouchy was ordered to keep up
-his communications with Napoleon, pushing before him “those bodies of
-Prussians which have taken this direction and which may have stopped at
-Wavre.” In addition, he was to “follow those columns which have gone
-to your right.” Dr Holland Rose pronounces these instructions as far
-from clear: “Grouchy was not bidden to throw all his efforts on the
-side of Wavre; and he was not told whether he must attack the enemy at
-that town, or interpose a wedge between them and Wellington, or support
-Napoleon’s right. Now Napoleon would certainly have prescribed an
-immediate concentration of Grouchy’s force towards the north-west for
-one of the last two objects, had he believed Blücher about to attempt
-a flank march against the chief French army. Obviously it had not yet
-entered his thoughts that so daring a step would be taken by a foe whom
-he pictured as scattered and demoralized by defeat.”[93]
-
-As Houssaye, one of the most painstaking of historians, says, “It
-is necessary to walk over the ground, to perceive its constantly
-undulating formation, similar to the billows of a swelling sea.” I
-have followed his advice for the purposes of the present volume. The
-configuration of the land near the ridge, which was at first the right
-centre of the Allies, has been altered somewhat by the excavation
-of earth for the celebrated but unsightly Lion Mound, otherwise the
-field is much the same as it was in 1815. Major Cotton, who fought at
-Waterloo, tells us that on the day of the battle there were “splendid
-crops of rye, wheat, barley, oats, beans, peas, potatoes, tares, and
-clover; some of these were of great height. There were a few patches
-of ploughed ground.” Exactly the same is true now. The soil which
-covers the mouldering bones of many a hero yields a mighty harvest.
-Practically every inch of it is either pasture or under cultivation.
-
-By far the most interesting point is the château and farm-house of
-Hougoumont. The buildings were then over two centuries old, and were
-erected with a view to defence, the garden being strongly walled
-on the south and east sides. In 1815 it was replete with orchard,
-outbuildings, banked-up hedges, and a chapel. Additional loop-holes
-were made by Wellington’s orders, a scaffold was erected so that the
-troops could discharge their muskets over the wall, and the flooring
-over the south gateway hastily taken up “to enable our men to fire
-down upon the enemy should they force the gate which had been blocked
-up.” This strong strategic position before the right flank of the
-allied line was admirably defended by the light companies of the second
-battalions of Coldstream and Foot Guards.
-
-The battle began with a protracted but successful attack by Napoleon’s
-brother, Jerome, on the Nassauer and Hanoverian troops, which held the
-wood in front of the château. Proud of his triumph, and contrary to the
-Emperor’s orders, three attempts to assault the grim building were made
-and failed. At length Napoleon made up his mind to bombard Hougoumont,
-which he did to some effect, the chapel and barn blazing fiercely, but
-its brave defenders never surrendered. Four days after the battle,
-Major W. E. Frye visited the spot. “At Hougoumont,” he says, “where
-there is an orchard, every tree is pierced with bullets. The barns are
-all burned down, and in the courtyard it is said they have been obliged
-to burn upwards of a thousand carcases, an awful holocaust to the
-War-Demon.”
-
-On one of the outside walls of the little chapel, within which many
-gallant soldiers breathed their last, is a bronze tablet erected in
-1907, “to the memory of the brave dead by His Britannic Majesty’s
-Brigade of Guards and by Comte Charles van der Burch.”[94] The sacred
-building has been thoroughly repaired, and the interior white-washed.
-The latter is to be regretted, but was incumbent owing to the vandalism
-of visitors whose one aim in life apparently is to carve or scrawl
-their names upon monuments and buildings.
-
-Within easy distance is the farm of La Haye Sainte, still used for the
-purpose for which it was originally built. If the thick wall which
-abuts the road to the Belgian capital is not so strong as it was--and
-there are signs of recent repair--the most cursory examination is
-sufficient to prove that it offered a strong resistance. La Haye Sainte
-was the key of the allied position. It was Napoleon’s ambition to
-secure it, together with the farm of Mont St Jean, so that the enemy’s
-communications with Brussels and Blücher might be cut off. Wellington
-had unwisely left the defence of La Haye Sainte to a mere handful
-of men, 376 in all, of the King’s German Legion. The buildings were
-attacked on all sides during the eventful day, and it was not until
-6.30 p.m., or thereabouts, when ammunition was exhausted, that the
-place fell. Professor Oman points out that the Emperor should have sent
-the Guard “to the front _en masse_” the moment that happened. This he
-did not do, and a golden opportunity was irretrievably lost.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- 1. Farm of Mont St. Jean
- 2. Château of Hougoumont
- 3. La Belle Alliance Inn
- 4. Farm of La Haye Sainte
-
-Photographs by C. Hamilton, Hornsey]
-
-A little farther up the road, and on the opposite side, is a long,
-white-washed building known as the farm of Mont St Jean, the hamlet
-of that name being the centre of the position. This was the chief
-hospital of the Allies, and once a monastery of the Knights Templar.
-Near here the Iron Duke drew up the second line of his reserve, with
-three reserve batteries. Napoleon’s headquarters were on the Belle
-Alliance height, where he spent the greater part of the day, and where
-he kept the Imperial Guard, nick-named “The Immortals,” in reserve
-until after 7 p.m. It was not until evening had given place to night
-that the French troops were routed.
-
-When you enter La Belle Alliance Inn you are shown “the historical
-chamber of Napoleon.” But let me warn visitors who admire the grotesque
-painting of “Wellington Meeting Blücher,” which is nailed to the
-outside wall, against believing that this is the scene of the memorable
-incident. Mutual congratulations took place before La Belle Alliance
-was reached, the Duke turning off the high road leading to the village
-of Waterloo to meet the rugged old soldier when he descried him
-surrounded by his staff.
-
-Within a few hundred yards of the inn is a memorial “to the last
-combatants of the Grand Army.” It is by far the most artistic and
-apposite of the several monuments on the field. With shattered wings
-the French eagle guards the tattered standard of “The Immortals” on the
-ground where the last square of Napoleon’s famous Guard was cut down.
-“It was a fatality,” said the fallen Emperor of the West, “for in spite
-of all, I should have won that battle.”
-
-Having glanced at the chief objects of interest on the field of
-Waterloo, we must now turn our attention to the leading features of the
-fight. It is not proposed to enter into minute details, or to discuss
-the many vexed points which have been raised from time to time. Sir
-Harry Smith, who took part in the battle, issued a word of warning
-years ago, which we shall endeavour to bear in mind. “Every moment was
-a crisis,” he said, “and the controversialists had better have left the
-discussion on the battle-field.”
-
-The morning of Sunday, the 18th June 1815, was dismal, foggy, and wet.
-No “Sun of Austerlitz” pierced the low clouds that scudded across the
-sky. The state of the weather being then, as now, a universal topic
-of conversation and record, we have abundant documentary evidence on
-the subject. After this uninteresting, but not unimportant, fact, our
-witnesses, to a large extent, break down. It would be much easier to
-detail what we do not know about the battle of Waterloo than to put
-down in black and white what may be regarded as indisputable truth.
-For instance, there is an amazing disparity between the times at which
-eye-witnesses assert the first cannon was fired. The Duke says eleven
-o’clock, Napoleon two hours later. Alava mentions half-past eleven,
-Ney one o’clock. Lord Hill, who used a stop-watch, avers with some
-semblance of authority, 11.50 a.m. The Emperor certainly delayed giving
-battle. Soult issued an order between 4 and 5 a.m. for the army to be
-“ready to attack at 9 a.m.” At 11 o’clock Napoleon stated that the
-soldiers were to be “in battle array, about an hour after noon.” Scores
-of volumes and thousands of pages have been devoted to the subject
-of the conflict which concluded Napoleon’s military career. It seems
-fairly reasonable to suppose that after the lapse of one hundred years
-any further research, although it may throw valuable sidelights on the
-battle, will not solve the problem. We have the Duke’s assurance that
-“it is impossible to say when each important occurrence took place,
-nor in what order.” To a would-be narrator he wrote, “I recommend
-you to leave the battle of Waterloo as it is,” to another, “the Duke
-entertains no hopes of ever seeing an account of all its details which
-shall be true,” and again, “I am really disgusted with and ashamed of
-all that I have seen of the battle of Waterloo.” That being so, it
-is not purposed to view it from a critical standpoint, but merely to
-detail the leading events of the day as these are generally accepted.
-
-The ridge on which Napoleon posted his forces in three lines, with a
-reserve of 11,000 troops behind the centre, was opposite Mont St Jean,
-with the farm of La Belle Alliance, on the high road from Charleroi to
-Brussels, in the centre. The number of troops at his immediate disposal
-was 74,000, and they occupied a front of about two miles. The spectacle
-as the French troops deployed “was magnificent,” Napoleon afterwards
-averred, not without a touch of imagination, “and the enemy, who was so
-placed as to behold it down to the last man, must have been struck by
-it: the army must have seemed to him double in number what it really
-was.”
-
-Just before the conflict began there was scarcely a mile between the
-French and Wellington’s 67,000 troops, who were posted across the high
-roads leading respectively from Charleroi and Nivelles to Brussels,
-just in front of Mont St Jean, where they cross. His right extended to
-Merbe Braine, and his left, which he considered was protected by the
-advancing Prussians, was to the westward of the high road. The army was
-drawn up in two lines, the second of which was composed entirely of
-cavalry under Lord Uxbridge. To the left Wellington held the villages
-of La Haye, Papelotte, and Smohain; Hougoumont was before his right,
-La Haye Sainte in front of the centre, and all were occupied by his
-troops. His reserves, numbering about 17,000, were unseen by the enemy
-owing to the formation of the ground, and were posted behind his
-centre and right. At the rear was the forest of Soignes, through which
-he could retreat if necessary. At Hal, nine miles away, the corps of
-Prince Frederick of Orange and two brigades of Colville’s division,
-some 14,000 men in all, were stationed. They took no part in the
-battle. Their presence at so great a distance was due to the somewhat
-unnecessary anxiety of Wellington, as after events proved, regarding
-the right flank. The Allies’ guns numbered 156, those of the French 246.
-
-Wellington displayed extraordinary activity, and commanded in person.
-Napoleon relied on his subordinates far more than was usual with him,
-and seemed to take little direct interest in the fighting. He sat in
-a chair; his antagonist rode about throughout the day. “It is hardly
-possible,” says Lord William Lennox, one of his aides-de-camp, “to
-describe the calm manner in which the hero gave his orders and watched
-the movements and attacks of the enemy. In the midst of danger, bullets
-whistling close about him, round shot ploughed the ground he occupied,
-and men and horses falling on every side, he sat upon his favourite
-charger, Copenhagen, as collectedly as if he had been reviewing the
-Household Troops in Hyde Park.”
-
-Although it would be foolish to endeavour to accurately divide the
-battle in different parts as one would do a sum, for the simple reason
-that fighting was going on all the time and the entire armies of the
-combatants were not used in any given moment, there were five more or
-less distinct attacks made by the French which may be useful as keys,
-viz.: (1) the diversion against Hougoumont, which opened the battle;
-(2) the attack against Wellington’s left-centre; (3) the cavalry attack
-on the right-centre; (4) a second attempt with infantry and cavalry
-having a similar object, and an infantry attack against the enemy’s
-left; (5) the charge of the Imperial Guard.
-
-[Illustration: The Desperate Stand of the Guards at Hougoumont
-
-R. Caton Woodville]
-
-The main attack was against the British left and centre, but by way
-of diversion an attempt was first made on the wood of Hougoumont,
-which was carried after so determined a resistance that Alison, the
-historian, afterwards counted no fewer than twenty-two shots in a
-tree less than six inches in diameter; fairly conclusive evidence
-of the death-dealing shower faced by the Nassauers and Hanoverians
-defending the copse and of the vigour of the enemy. The château was
-then attacked, contrary to orders, by Jerome Bonaparte, and brilliantly
-repulsed by the light companies of the second battalions of Coldstream
-and Foot Guards.[95] Several attempts were afterwards made to secure
-the place, and dead bodies lay piled in heaps, but those within held
-it from the beginning to the end of the battle, although Wellington
-found it necessary to reinforce the men who were upholding Britain’s
-honour so determinedly. The orchard was captured and regained,
-howitzers battered the stout walls, the building was set on fire,
-the door of the courtyard was burst open and shut in the face of the
-French. These deeds were performed by the fellows of whom Napoleon had
-spoken earlier in the day as “breakfast for us!”
-
-It was not until about half-past one o’clock, when a black, moving mass
-was seen on the wooded heights of St Lambert that the Emperor really
-bestirred himself. Napoleon looked through his glass in the direction
-of the object on which nearly all eyes were strained. Some of his
-officers thought it a body of troops, some suggested Prussians, others
-Grouchy. “I think,” remarked Soult, “it is five or six thousand men,
-probably part of Grouchy’s army.” In reality it was the advanced guard
-of Bülow’s troops, and the Emperor shortly afterwards heard from the
-lips of a prisoner that at least 30,000 men were approaching to assist
-Wellington. However, some light horsemen were sent towards Frischermont
-to observe the Prussians,[96] and a postscript was added to a dispatch
-already penned to Grouchy, begging him to “lose not an instant in
-drawing near and joining us, in order to crush Bülow, whom you will
-catch in the very act.”
-
-Without delay Napoleon launched D’Erlon’s corps in four columns
-totalling nearly 20,000 men against the enemy’s left-centre, Ney in
-command. They were supported by far too few cavalry. The Emperor’s idea
-was to take La Haye Sainte, break through the Allied line, and gain
-Mont St Jean. This operation, if successful, would compel Wellington
-to abandon his communications with the Belgian capital and change his
-formation. In addition, it would place the French between his army and
-the Prussians. Bylandt’s Dutch-Belgians, who were nearest to the enemy
-and consequently more exposed to the covering fire of seventy-eight
-guns and the shots of the skirmishers, took to their heels as D’Erlon’s
-divisions, frantically yelling “_Vive l’Empereur!_” approached the
-front line.[97] The brigades of Pack and Kempt were at once brought
-forward by Picton. They stood firm and poured death into the oncoming
-columns, receiving them, as they appeared on the crest of the ridge,
-with fixed bayonets.
-
-The Earl of Uxbridge, who was in command of the cavalry, realizing
-that the position was still one of considerable danger, then ordered
-Ponsonby’s Union Brigade--the 1st Royal Dragoons, Scots Greys, and
-Inniskillings--to charge. It burst upon the French with tremendous
-force and decided the issue.
-
-Several thousands of the enemy were killed or wounded, 8000 taken
-prisoners, a number of guns silenced, and two eagles captured.
-
-The story of how the colours of the French 45th Regiment were secured
-by Serjeant Ewart, a magnificent specimen of a man, over six feet
-in height, who served in the Greys, is best told in his own modest
-language. “It was in the charge I took the eagle from the enemy,” he
-says; “he and I had a hard contest for it; he made a thrust at my
-groin, I parried it off and cut him down through the head. After this a
-lancer came at me; I threw the lance off by my right side, and cut him
-through the chin and upwards through the teeth. Next, a foot-soldier
-fired at me, and then charged me with his bayonet, which I also had
-the good luck to parry, and then I cut him down through the head; thus
-ended the contest. As I was about to follow my regiment, the General
-said, ‘My brave fellow, take that to the rear; you have done enough
-till you get quit of it.’ I took the eagle to the ridge, and afterwards
-to Brussels.”
-
-We have also the record of Captain Clark Kennedy, of the Royal
-Dragoons, regarding the capture of the eagle of the 105th Regiment.
-“I was,” he relates, “in command of the centre squadron of the Royal
-Dragoons in this charge; while following up the attack, I perceived
-a little to my left, in the midst of a body of infantry, an eagle
-and colour, which the bearer was making off with towards the rear. I
-immediately gave the order to my squadron, ‘Right shoulders forward!’
-at the same time leading direct upon the eagle and calling out to the
-men with me to secure the colour; the instant I got within reach of the
-officer who carried the eagle, I ran my sword into his right side, and
-he staggered and fell, but did not reach the ground on account of the
-pressure of his companions: as the officer was in the act of falling,
-I called out a second time to some men close behind me, ‘Secure the
-colour, it belongs to me.’ The standard coverer, Corporal Styles, and
-several other men rushed up, and the eagle fell across my horse’s head
-against that of Corporal Styles’s. As it was falling, I caught the
-fringe of the flag with my left hand, but could not at first pull up
-the eagle: at the second attempt, however, I succeeded. Being in the
-midst of French troops, I attempted to separate the eagle from the
-staff, to put it into the breast of my coatee, but it was too firmly
-fixed. Corporal Styles said, ‘Sir, don’t break it’; to which I replied,
-‘Very well; carry it off to the rear as fast as you can.’ He did so.”
-
-Unfortunately the victors were too eager, and instead of returning they
-continued until they were in the French lines, thus enabling Napoleon
-to “turn the tables.” His reserve squadrons robbed the British ranks
-of 1000 brave men, including Ponsonby. More would have fallen had not
-Vandeleur’s Light Cavalry Brigade checked the enemy.
-
-Picton was dead, shot at the head of his men. “When you hear of my
-death,” the latter had previously remarked to a comrade, “you will
-hear of a bloody day.” He had “fallen gloriously at the head of his
-division, maintaining a position which, if it had not been kept, would
-have altered the fate of the day.”[98]
-
-The following account of the magnificent charge of Ponsonby’s Union
-Brigade, from the pen of James Armour, Rough-rider to the Scots Greys,
-who took part in it, gives some idea of the work performed:
-
-“Orders were now given that we were to prepare to charge. We gave our
-countrymen in front of us three hearty huzzas, and waving our swords
-aloft in the air, several swords were struck with balls while so doing;
-and I must not forget the piper--
-
- _The piper loud and louder blew,
- The balls of all denominations quick and quicker flew._
-
-The Highlanders were then ordered to wheel back--I think by sections,
-but I am not certain: infantry words of command differ from the
-cavalry. When they had, and were wheeling back imperfectly, we rushed
-through them; at the same time they huzzaed us, calling out, ‘_Now, my
-boys--Scotland for ever!_’ I must own it had a thrilling effect upon
-me. I am certain numbers of them were knocked over by the horses: in
-our anxiety we could not help it. Some said ‘I didna think ye wad hae
-sair’d me sae’--catching hold of our legs and stirrups, as we passed,
-to support themselves. When we got clear through the Highlanders (92nd)
-we were now on the charge, and a short one it was. A cross road being
-in our way, we leaped the first hedge gallantly; crossed the road, and
-had to leap over another hedge. At this time the smoke from the firing
-on both sides made it so that we could not see distinctly. We had not
-charged far--not many yards, till we came to a column. We were pretty
-well together as yet, although a great number fell about that cross
-road. We were in the column in a very short time (making pretty clean
-work). We still pushed forward, at least as many as could--a number had
-dropped off by this time--and soon came to another column. They cried
-out, ‘Prisoners!’ and threw down their arms, and stripped themselves of
-their belts (I think it is part of the French discipline to do so), and
-ran to our rear. Ay, they ran like hares. We still pushed on, and came
-upon another column; and some of them went down on their knees, calling
-out ‘Quarter!’ in a very supplicatory way....
-
-“We now got amongst the guns, the terrible guns, which had annoyed us
-so much. _Such slaughtering!_--men cut down and run through, horses
-houghed, harness cut, and all rendered useless. Some, who were judges
-of such work, reckoned we had made a very good job of it. Amongst the
-guns--I think six or seven in number, all brass--that I was engaged
-with, mostly all the men were cut down, and the horses, most of them,
-if not all, were houghed. While we were at work amongst these guns,
-never thinking but, when we were done with it, we would have nothing
-to do but to return from where we came; but I must own I was very
-much surprised, when we began to retrace our steps, when what should
-we behold coming away across betwixt us and our own army but a great
-number of these cuirassiers and lancers, the first I ever beheld in my
-life, who were forming up in order to cut off our retreat; but, nothing
-daunted, we faced them manfully. We had none to command us now, but
-every man did what he could. ‘Conquer or die!’ was the word. When the
-regiment returned from the charge mentioned, the troops that I belonged
-to did not muster above one or two sound men (unwounded) belonging to
-the front rank. Indeed the whole troop did not muster above a dozen;
-there were upwards of twenty of the front rank killed, and the others
-wounded.”
-
-Meanwhile the farm of La Haye Sainte, held by a detachment of the
-German Legion under Major Baring, had been the object of assault
-by a French division detached for that purpose, and the defenders
-were driven from the orchard. Reinforcements were sent forward by
-Wellington, followed by additional cavalry by Napoleon. The cuirassiers
-were met by Lord Edward Somerset’s Brigade, led by the Earl of
-Uxbridge, and driven back after a furious struggle for supremacy.
-Not until the last pinch of powder was spent and several determined
-attempts had been made to secure the place, did the brave fellows
-vacate their position to D’Erlon’s infantry, between six and seven
-o’clock.
-
-Towards the close of the afternoon Milhaud’s cuirassiers, supported
-by light cavalry and dragoons, attacked the British right-centre.
-Wellington at once formed his troops in squares. When the crash came
-they stood firm and unbroken.
-
-The Commander-in-Chief lost not a moment. The heavy brigade of Lord
-Edward Somerset was flung against the Frenchmen and drove them from the
-ridge.[99] The artillery flamed destruction. Charge followed charge,
-thirteen in all, but the British squares remained steady, although
-continually reduced. Nearly all Wellington’s cavalry were pressed into
-service, and with the exception of a solitary Dutch-Belgian division,
-all his infantry reserve was employed. An officer who served in
-Halkett’s brigade has left a vivid account of this part of the battle.
-
-“Hougoumont and its wood,” he writes, “sent up a broad flame through
-the dark masses of smoke that overhung the field; beneath this cloud
-the French were indistinctly visible. Here a waving mass of long
-red feathers could be seen; there, gleams as from a sheet of steel
-showed that the cuirassiers were moving; 400 cannon were belching
-forth fire and death on every side; the roaring and shouting were
-indistinguishably commixed--together they gave me an idea of a
-labouring volcano. Bodies of infantry and cavalry were pouring down
-on us, and it was time to leave contemplation, so I moved towards
-our columns, which were standing up in square.... As I entered the
-rear face of our square I had to step over a body, and looking down,
-recognised Harry Beere, an officer of our Grenadiers, who about an hour
-before shook hands with me, laughing, as I left the columns.... The
-tear was not dry on my cheek when poor Harry was no longer thought of.
-In a few minutes after, the enemy’s cavalry galloped up and crowned
-the crest of our position. Our guns were abandoned,[100] and they
-formed between the two brigades, about a hundred paces in our front.
-Their first charge was magnificent. As soon as they quickened their
-trot into a gallop, the cuirassiers bent their heads so that the
-peaks of their helmets looked like vizors, and they seemed cased in
-armour from the plume to the saddle. Not a shot was fired till they
-were within thirty yards, when the word was given, and our men fired
-away at them. The effect was magical. Through the smoke we could see
-helmets falling, cavaliers starting from their seats with convulsive
-springs as they received our balls, horses plunging and rearing in the
-agonies of fright and pain, and crowds of the soldiery dismounted,
-part of the squadron in retreat, but the more daring remainder backing
-their horses to force them on our bayonets. Our fire soon disposed of
-these gentlemen. The main body re-formed in our front, and rapidly and
-gallantly repeated their attacks. In fact, from this time (about four
-o’clock) till near six, we had a constant repetition of these brave but
-unavailing charges. There was no difficulty in repulsing them, but our
-ammunition decreased alarmingly. At length an artillery wagon galloped
-up, emptied two or three casks of cartridges into the square, and we
-were all comfortable....
-
-“Though we constantly thrashed our steel-clad opponents, we found
-more troublesome customers in the round shot and grape, which all
-this time played on us with terrible effect, and fully avenged the
-cuirassiers. Often as the volleys created openings in our square would
-the cavalry dash on, but they were uniformly unsuccessful. A regiment
-on our right seemed sadly disconcerted, and at one moment was in
-considerable confusion. Halkett rode out to them, and seizing their
-colour, waved it over his head, and restored them to something like
-order, though not before his horse was shot under him. At the height of
-their unsteadiness we got the order to ‘right face’ to move to their
-assistance; some of the men mistook it for ‘right about face,’ and
-faced accordingly, when old Major M‘Laine, 73rd, called out, ‘No, my
-boys, its “right face”; you’ll never hear the right about as long as a
-French bayonet is in front of you!’”
-
-At Planchenoit, in the rear of the French centre, Lobau and his 10,000
-men were doing their upmost to prevent Bülow with three times that
-number of troops from succouring Wellington. The French held the
-village for two hours, and then saw it fall into the hands of the
-enemy, but only for a time. Some of the Young Guard and three batteries
-of artillery had been sent by the Emperor to support Lobau, and when
-they arrived the scales again turned in favour of the French. While
-this body was held in check, Napoleon’s infantry had suffered near
-Hougoumont, but La Haye Sainte had fallen, as already noticed. Had
-Napoleon sent reinforcements to Ney he might have won the battle, but
-he hesitated to use his remaining reserves. Before anything further was
-done, Wellington had made fresh dispositions, and Ziethen’s men, who
-had marched by way of Ohain, were on the field.
-
-[Illustration: Charge of the Scots Greys at Waterloo
-
-R. Caton Woodville]
-
-Six battalions of the Middle Guard and two battalions of the Old
-Guard were at last sent forward.[101] As they crossed the open ground
-between Hougoumont and the high road the artillery played sad havoc
-with some of them, but behind the crest of the ridge was Maitland’s
-brigade of the Foot Guards, led by Wellington, himself. “Up, Guards,
-and make ready!” he shouted, and ere the first column was upon them the
-British infantry had dealt a deadly fire into its ranks which made it
-pause. The second column was caught in flank by Adam’s Brigade. Then
-two brigades of British cavalry charged, and although the celebrated
-Imperial Guards endeavoured to hold their own they were forced back.
-Blücher, who had arrived at a most opportune moment, carried the
-position occupied by the French right at Papelotte and La Haye with
-Ziethen’s corps. The whole Allied line then advanced, the heights
-were carried, and Napoleon’s last army, on the victory of which he
-had staked his all, was scattered. The battle of Waterloo was won.
-“My plan,” said the Commander-in-Chief, “was to keep my ground until
-the Prussians appeared, and then to attack the French position; and I
-executed my plan.”
-
-Throughout the night the Prussians followed up the defeated legions,
-which got across the Sambre on the 19th. Some 30,000 of Napoleon’s
-men were killed or wounded, and 13,000 of the Allied army, more than
-half of whom were British. On the 22nd June 1815, the fallen Emperor
-abdicated in favour of his son; on the 7th July the Allies entered
-Paris in triumph, and eight days later Napoleon surrendered to Captain
-Maitland, of H.M.S. _Bellerophon_.
-
- _The Desolator desolate!
- The Victor overthrown!
- The Arbiter of others fate
- A Suppliant for his own!_
-
- BYRON.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-Wellington the Statesman
-
-(1815-52)
-
- “_It is the duty of all to look our difficulties in the face and to
- lay the ground for getting the better of them._”
-
- WELLINGTON.
-
-
-While the good folk of London were listening to the guns of the
-Tower and of the Park, which told of the Waterloo victory, and the
-joyful news was percolating to the smallest hamlet, Wellington was
-fighting a battle in which neither sword nor gun was involved. It was
-one of diplomacy, and he proved the conqueror. Blücher, armed with
-the Declaration of the 13th March 1815 to the effect that “Napoleon
-Bonaparte is put beyond the pale of social and civil relations, and
-as enemy and disturber of the repose of the world, he is delivered
-over to public vengeance,” was for seizing the fallen Emperor and
-shooting him as an outlaw at Vincennes, the scene of the Duc d’Enghien
-tragedy.[102] The bloodthirsty Prussian asked for Wellington’s views
-on the matter. He received them without delay, and expressed in such a
-way that Blücher must have felt thoroughly ashamed of himself, if only
-for a passing moment. “They had both acted too distinguished a part in
-the recent transactions to become executioners,” the Duke wrote. This
-single sentence reveals the sterling uprightness of the man and his
-hatred of unnecessary bloodshed. Even supposing that he had received
-authority for the carrying out of such a measure, it is extremely
-doubtful whether Wellington would have concurred in his colleague’s
-wish. Blücher sneered--and accepted the decision. Wellington also found
-himself in disagreement with the Prussian view regarding the bridge
-of Jena at Paris, which commemorated the crushing Prussian defeat
-of October 1806. Blücher, with true patriotic zeal as it seemed to
-him, was for blowing it to pieces. Wellington regarded the idea as
-foolish, and he carried his point. It would have been a bitter day for
-the Capital had Blücher been allowed to work his will. The Prussian
-Commander insisted on levying a contribution on the city of Paris of
-100,000,000 francs. Wellington upset the scheme by insisting that the
-question was one for the Allied sovereigns to arrange. For the third
-time vindictive Blücher had to give in.
-
-When the Provisional Government appealed to the Duke with reference
-to Napoleon’s successor, he bluntly told them that “the best security
-for Europe was the restoration of the King,” namely, Louis XVIII, and
-that he should be recalled “without loss of time, so as to avoid the
-appearance of the measure having been forced upon them by the allies.”
-
-When the Exile King returned to Paris the enormous demands of
-certain of the Powers, particularly of Austria and Prussia, had to
-be discussed. Had it not been for the resistance of Castlereagh,
-Wellington, and Nesselrode, extensive partitions undoubtedly would
-have resulted. As finally settled by the Second Treaty of Paris,
-concluded on the 20th November, the territory of France was reduced
-to practically the limits of 1790, an indemnity of 700,000,000 francs
-was determined for the expenses of the war, and an army of occupation
-not exceeding 150,000 troops under the Duke was to garrison the
-chief frontier fortresses, including Valenciennes, Cambray, Quesnoy,
-Maubeuge, and Landrecy, for a maximum period of five years, the
-expense being met by the French Government. The magnificent art
-treasures, which Napoleon had gloried in plundering, were to be
-returned to their rightful owners. That is why the celebrated bronze
-horses of St Mark may be seen on the great Venetian Cathedral to-day,
-and the wonderful “Descent from the Cross,” by Rubens, admired in the
-Cathedral of Antwerp, from whence it had been taken to find a temporary
-resting-place in the Louvre.
-
-An excellent account of the Army of Occupation is given by a Scotsman
-who visited Paris shortly after the battle of Waterloo. There were
-comparatively few Austrians, the majority of them being in the south
-of France, but those seen by the writer of _Paul’s Letters to his
-Kinsfolk_ were “bulky men” who “want the hardy and athletic look of
-the British, Russians, or Prussians.” The Russian infantry were “fine,
-firm, steady-looking men, clean, handsome, but by no means remarkable
-for stature.” The artillery were “in the highest possible order,”
-the cavalry “remarkably fine men,” the appearance of the Cossacks
-“prepossessing.” The Prussians, while never having been accused of
-“gross violence,” succeeded in wrecking the Château de Montmorency,
-where a large body of them was quartered. Camp-kettles were boiled with
-picture-frames, and the furniture stripped by female camp followers.
-Paul notes that the Prussian officers were the principal customers of
-the expensive restaurants and theatres, but that many British officers
-of rank had gone so far as to decline the quarters appointed them in
-private houses. He bestows much praise on Wellington for his discipline
-and justice: “The strong sense and firmness for which the Duke is as
-much distinguished as for skill in arms and bravery in the field of
-battle, easily saw that the high and paramount part which Britain now
-holds in Europe, that preeminence which, in so many instances, has made
-her and her delegates the chosen mediators when disputes occurred
-amongst the allied powers, depends entirely on our maintaining pure
-and sacred the national character for good faith and disinterested
-honour. The slightest complaint, therefore, of want of discipline or
-oppression perpetrated by a British officer or soldier has instantly
-met with reprehension and punishment, and the result has been the
-reducing the French to the cruel situation of hating us without having
-any complaint to justify themselves for doing so, even in their own
-eyes.... The soldiers, without exception, both British and foreigners,
-conduct themselves in public with civility, are very rarely to be
-seen intoxicated, though the means are so much within reach; and,
-considering all the irritating circumstances that exist, few quarrels
-occur betwixt them and the populace. Very strong precautions are,
-however, taken in case of any accidental or premeditated commotion.”
-
-Wellington threw the whole weight of his influence on the side of
-moderation. Prussia was all for partition, for getting her territorial
-“pound of flesh,” but the calmer statesmanship of the diplomatists
-already mentioned, especially of Wellington, won the day. The Duke’s
-policy is clearly outlined in his dispatch of the 11th August, which,
-in the opinion of Dr Holland Rose, “deserves to rank among his highest
-titles to fame.”
-
-Wellington states that while France has been left “in too great
-strength for the rest of Europe, weakened as all the powers of Europe
-have been by the wars in which they have been engaged with France,”
-his objection to the demand of a “great cession from France upon this
-occasion is, that it will defeat the object which the Allies have held
-out to themselves in the present and the preceding wars.” He then
-proceeds to detail what were, in his opinion, the various causes which
-led to so much bloodshed: “to put an end to the French Revolution, to
-obtain peace for themselves and their people, to have the power of
-reducing their overgrown military establishments, and the leisure
-to attend to the internal concerns of their several nations, and to
-improve the situation of their people. The Allies took up arms against
-Buonaparte because it was certain that the world could not be at peace
-as long as he should possess, or should be in a situation to attain,
-supreme power in France; and care must be taken,” he adds, “in making
-the arrangements consequent upon our success, that we do not leave the
-world in the same unfortunate situation respecting France that it would
-have been in if Buonaparte had continued in possession of his power.”
-
-The Duke then goes on to review the situation. If Louis XVIII were to
-refuse the cession of territory, his people would undoubtedly support
-him, and the Allies “might take the fortresses and provinces which
-might suit them, but there would be no genuine peace for the world,
-no nation could disarm, no Sovereign could turn his attention from
-the affairs of this country.” If the King consented to the partition,
-“which, from all that one hears, is an event by no means probable, the
-Allies must be satisfied, and must retire; but I would appeal to the
-experience of the transactions of last year for a statement of the
-situation in which we should find ourselves.” France was then reduced
-to her limits of 1792, and “the Allies were obliged to maintain each
-in the field half of the war establishment stipulated in the treaty of
-Chaumont, in order to guard their conquests, and what had been ceded to
-them.” In France “the general topic of conversation was the recovery
-of the left bank of the Rhine as the frontier of France.” Wellington
-therefore preferred “the temporary occupation of some of the strong
-places, and to maintain for a time a strong force in France, both at
-the expense of the French Government, and under strict regulation, to
-the permanent cession of even all the places which in my opinion ought
-to be occupied for a time. These measures will not only give us,
-during the period of occupation, all the military security which could
-be expected from the permanent cession, but, if carried into execution
-in the spirit in which they are conceived, they are in themselves the
-bond of peace.”
-
-During the remainder of his stay in France, broken by a short visit
-to England in 1816, Wellington was far from popular, and one or two
-attempts were made on his life. It was scarcely to be expected that
-a man who had been pre-eminently successful in the field against the
-nation’s armies would be lauded as a popular hero, but, as we have
-seen, he had helped to save the country from a bitter and vindictive
-humiliation. He finally returned home in 1818, when the Army of
-Occupation evacuated France with the consent of the Powers at the
-request of its Commander-in-Chief. He never again drew his sword in
-warfare, but he maintained a commanding position in the affairs of
-Great Britain until the close of his long life.
-
-His honours and orders were now varied and many. England and foreign
-countries honoured themselves by honouring him. Parliament voted him
-£200,000 for the erection or purchase of Strathfieldsaye, Hampshire,
-and the estate granted to him as Prince of Waterloo by the King of the
-Netherlands was valued at £4000 per annum. On his return to England
-he became Master of the Ordnance, which entitled him to a seat in the
-Cabinet.
-
-In 1821 Wellington revisited the scene of his most famous battle with
-George IV, and afterwards proceeded to Verona to represent, with Lord
-Strangford, Great Britain at the Congress about to be held there to
-determine the attitude of England, France, Russia, Austria, and Prussia
-regarding various matters, including the insurrection in Greece and
-the relations of Russia and Turkey in the matter, the evacuation of
-Piedmont and Naples by the Austrian troops, the slave trade, and more
-particularly the unhappy state of affairs in Spain, which country
-was then in a state of civil war. Should the five Powers send armed
-assistance to Ferdinand, whom Wellington’s victories in the Peninsula
-had replaced on the throne? Answering for his own country the Duke
-maintained the principle of non-interference excepting in a case of
-necessity. In this matter Great Britain stood alone, and the Duke had
-to run the gauntlet of fierce criticism on his return to England.
-
-His next continental journey was in 1826, when he was sent on a special
-mission to Petersburg on the accession of the Emperor Nicholas, with
-the object of arriving at a satisfactory settlement of the projected
-Russian attack on Turkey over the Greek difficulty. In this he was not
-entirely successful, for after events proved that he had only succeeded
-in staving off the evil day.
-
-On the death of the Duke of York in the following year, Wellington
-was appointed Commander-in-Chief, retaining his other office, which
-controlled merely the artillery and engineers.
-
-A month later Canning became Prime Minister, and the Duke was asked to
-continue as a member of the Cabinet. This request he not only declined,
-but surrendered his two important offices as well. Mutual suspicion
-seems to have been the cause of this unexpected event, certainly not
-jealousy, for Wellington said that he should be “worse than mad if
-he had ever thought of it for a moment,” the “it” referring to his
-possible appointment as First Lord of the Treasury. Canning did not
-live long to enjoy the sweets of office, for he died on the following
-August, and was succeeded by “Prosperity” Robinson, otherwise Lord
-Goderich, who resigned at the beginning of 1828.
-
-The Duke, once again Commander-in-Chief, was sent for by George IV,
-and requested to form a Ministry. He obeyed with the instinct of a
-soldier when ordered by his superior officer, rather than as a keen
-politician about to have his highest ambition gratified. Wellington
-was a Tory, and the political freedom of the Roman Catholics and the
-reform of Parliament were the burning questions of the hour. The
-Duke was uncertain as to the practical utility of either, but he was
-not prepared to go against the known wishes of the nation so far
-as the religious question was concerned. After navigating a sea of
-difficulties, the Roman Catholic Relief Bill passed both Houses in
-the early days of 1829. One of his opponents, the Earl of Winchilsea,
-charged Wellington with “breaking in upon the Constitution of 1688
-in order that he might the more effectively, under the cloak of
-some outward show of zeal for the Protestant religion, carry on his
-insidious designs for the infringement of our liberties, and the
-introduction of Popery in every department of the State.” The Premier
-requested an apology, which was not forthcoming, whereupon the former
-demanded “satisfaction,” in other words, a duel. Sir Henry Hardinge for
-Wellington and Lord Falmouth for Winchilsea were the respective seconds.
-
-The meeting took place in Battersea Fields.[103] “Now then, Hardinge,”
-said the Duke, “look sharp and step out the ground. I have no time
-to waste. Don’t stick him up so near the ditch. If I hit him he will
-tumble in.” The signal was given to fire. Noting that his opponent did
-not level his pistol on the command being given, the Duke purposely
-fired wide, and an instant afterwards Winchilsea fired in the air.
-The latter then produced a written sheet which he called an apology,
-which had to be altered before it met with Wellington’s approval. “Good
-morning, my Lord Winchilsea; good morning, my Lord Falmouth,” cried the
-Duke as he saluted with two fingers, and, mounting his horse, cantered
-off.
-
-The Duke had a most thankless task during his administration, so much
-so that we find him writing, “If I had known in January 1828, one
-tithe of what I do now, and of what I discovered one month after I
-was in office, I should never have been the King’s Minister, and so
-have avoided loads of misery. However, I trust God Almighty will soon
-determine that I have been sufficiently punished for my sins and will
-relieve me from the unlucky lot which has befallen me. I believe there
-never was a man who suffered so much for so little purpose.”
-
-He had almost as much trouble with the King as had Pitt with George
-III, and many of his old supporters were indignant with him over the
-Relief Bill. Wellington vehemently opposed Parliamentary Reform in the
-face of public opinion, with the result that his Ministry rode to a
-fall in November 1830.
-
-Two months before he had taken part in the opening ceremony of the
-Manchester and Liverpool Railway, the first line to cater for passenger
-traffic in the British Empire. He rode in one of the two trains which
-made the initial journey, and the fact that they both went in the same
-direction was the cause of a lamentable accident which deprived one of
-Wellington’s friends of his life. The incident occurred at Parkside,
-where the engines stopped to obtain a supply of water. While the trains
-were at a standstill, Mr Huskisson, formerly President of the Board
-of Trade, got out of the carriage in which he had been travelling and
-sought Wellington. A minute or two later the train on the opposite
-line started. One of the open doors knocked him down, and his right
-leg was crushed by the locomotive. The Duke and several others ran to
-the injured man’s assistance, but his injuries were such that he only
-survived a few hours.
-
-Wellington was succeeded as First Lord of the Treasury by Earl Grey,
-whose Government was speedily defeated by the Reform Bill which it
-introduced being rejected by the Lords. Riots broke out in London
-and the provinces; William IV “was frightened by the appearance of
-the people outside of St James’s”; the celebrated Dr Arnold wrote
-that his “sense of the evils of the times, and to what purpose I am
-bringing up my children, is overwhelmingly bitter.” The King implored
-the Ministers not to hand in their resignation, the House of Commons
-carried by a large majority a vote of confidence in the Government, and
-the nation showed that it bitterly resented the action of the Lords.
-There was an attempt at compromise, but the concessions were so trivial
-from Wellington’s point of view that he declined to take part in the
-negotiations. After further angry scenes in the following session Grey
-resigned on the 9th May 1832. It was during this trying period of our
-national history that the window-panes of Apsley House were stoned and
-the Duke’s life was threatened.[104]
-
-Once again the King requested Wellington to form a new administration,
-and several meetings were held with that idea in view, but to no
-purpose. He had to confess that the task was absolutely impossible:
-“I felt that my duty to the King required that I should make a great
-sacrifice of opinion to serve him, and to save his Majesty and the
-country from what I considered a great evil. Others were not of the
-same opinion. I failed in performing the service which I intended to
-perform....” Several resident members of Oxford University, including
-Professor the Rev. John Keble, impressed by the Duke’s devotion,
-raised funds for the purpose of a bust to commemorate his self-denying
-conduct. This appreciation of approval greatly pleased Wellington,
-who announced his intention of sitting for Chantrey, the celebrated
-sculptor, or whoever else the committee might choose, “with the
-greatest satisfaction.” When Grey resumed office the Reform Bill was
-read for a third time and passed, a number of peers having declared
-“that in consequence of the present state of affairs they have come
-to the resolution of dropping their further opposition to the Reform
-Bill, so that it may pass without delay as nearly as possible in its
-present shape.” Wellington quietly left the House. He was no more
-kindly disposed towards the Irish Reform Bill, and subjected it to a
-fire of criticism which did not, however, preclude it from passing.
-
-One of the most remarkable events of the Duke’s crowded life occurred
-in November 1834. When Earl Grey resigned in July 1834, on which
-occasion his opponent made a graceful speech to the effect that
-there had been no personal hostility in his opposition, the retiring
-statesman recommended Lord Melbourne as his successor. This suggestion
-met with the King’s approval, but the reign of the new Administration
-lasted only until the middle of the following November. His Majesty
-sent for Wellington at six in the morning. The latter refused to form
-a Cabinet, and recommended Sir Robert Peel, who was then in Rome. The
-Duke promised to carry on the Government during the interim, with the
-result that he held the offices of First Lord of the Treasury, Home
-Secretary, Foreign and Colonial Secretary, and Secretary at War for
-nearly a month. On Peel’s return he appointed his industrious ally
-Foreign Secretary, a position he held until the following April, when
-the Government resigned. In 1841, in Peel’s second Administration, he
-occupied a seat in the Cabinet, without office, and in the following
-year he was created Commander-in-Chief for life by patent under the
-great seal.
-
-During the Chartist agitation Wellington was asked who was to command
-the forces in London, where a riot was expected. He answered, “I
-can name no one except the Duke of Wellington.” He organized the
-arrangements with his usual thoroughness, disposing his troops to keep
-them out of sight, and taking prompt measures to protect important
-public buildings. Fortunately the excitement died down, and armed force
-was not required.
-
-The Duke frequently spent several hours a day at the Horse Guards.
-“Speaking from the experience which I had of him,” says General Sir
-George Brown, G.C.B., “I should say that the Duke was a remarkably
-agreeable man to do business with, because of his clear and ready
-decision. However much I may have seen him irritated and excited,
-with the subjects which I have repeatedly had to bring under his
-notice, I have no recollection of his ever having made use of a harsh
-or discourteous expression to me, or of his having dismissed me
-without a distinct and explicit answer or decision in the case under
-consideration. Like all good men of business, who consider well before
-coming to a decision, his Grace was accustomed to adhere strictly to
-precedent; to the decisions he may have previously come to on similar
-cases. This practice greatly facilitated the task of those who had to
-transact business with him, seeing that all we had to do in concluding
-our statement of any particular case was to refer to his decision or
-some similar one.”
-
-“Everybody writes to me for everything,” he once remarked to Stanhope.
-“They know the Duke of Wellington is said to be a good-natured man,
-and so at the least they will get an answer.” The Earl, astonished at
-the amount of the Duke’s correspondence, ventured to say that his host
-might expect to be allowed some rest and recreation while he was at
-Walmer. “Rest!” cried the Duke. “Every other animal--even a donkey--a
-costermonger’s donkey--is allowed some rest, but the Duke of Wellington
-never! There is no help for it. As long as I am able to go on, they
-will put the saddle upon my back and make me go.”
-
-Georgiana, Lady De Ros, who was a frequent visitor at Walmer Castle and
-at Strathfieldsaye, relates an incident which has a direct bearing on
-this point. “Wellington,” she says, “would tell a story against himself
-sometimes, and amused us all quite in his latter days by the account
-of various impostures that had been practised upon him; for years he
-had helped an imaginary officer’s daughter, paid for music lessons for
-her, given her a piano, paid for her wedding trousseau, for her child’s
-funeral, etc., etc. At last it came out that _one man_ was the author
-of these impostures, ‘and then,’ the Duke said, ‘an Officer from the
-Mendicity Society called on me and gave me such a scolding as I never
-had before in my life!’”
-
-In a book inscribed as “A Slight Souvenir of the Season 1845-6” we find
-a delightful little glimpse of “the hero of a hundred fights” as a
-country gentlemen. “What can be a finer sight than to see the Duke of
-Wellington enter the hunting field?” the author asks. “Not one of those
-gorgeous spectacles, it is true, such as a coronation, a review, the
-Lord Mayor’s Show, or a procession to the Houses of Parliament--not one
-of those pompous Continental exhibitions called a _chasse_, where armed
-menials keep back the crowd, and brass bands proclaim alike the find
-and finish; but what can be a finer sight--a sight more genial to the
-mind of a Briton--than the mighty Wellington entering the hunting field
-with a single attendant, making no more fuss than a country squire?
-Yet many have seen the sight, and many, we trust, may yet see it. The
-Duke takes the country sport like a country gentleman--no man less the
-great man than this greatest of all men; affable to all, his presence
-adds joy to the scene. The Duke is a true sportsman, and has long been
-a supporter of the Vine and Sir John Cope’s hounds. He kept hounds
-himself during the Peninsular War, and divers good stories are related
-of them and their huntsman (Tom Crane), whose enthusiasm used sometimes
-to carry him in the enemy’s country, a fact that he used to be reminded
-of by a few bullets whizzing about his ears.”
-
-Wellington was now the trusted friend of Queen Victoria, who ever held
-him in the highest esteem. He was one of the first persons, perhaps
-actually the first,[105] outside the Royal family and the medical
-attendants to see the baby who afterwards became Edward VII. According
-to one account he was met outside Buckingham Palace by Lord Hill, who
-was informed “All over--fine boy, very fine boy, almost as red as you
-Hill.”
-
-Two days after the first anniversary of the birthday of Edward Albert,
-Prince of Wales, the Queen and the Prince Consort, accompanied by the
-Royal children, journeyed to Walmer Castle to pay the Duke a visit. An
-even greater honour was reserved for the veteran warrior, for on the
-birth of her Majesty’s third son on the 1st May 1850, it got noised
-abroad that the infant was to be called Arthur, “in compliment to the
-Hero of Waterloo.” The present Duke of Connaught is thus a living link
-with Wellington. “I must not omit to mention,” the Queen writes exactly
-a year later, “an interesting episode of this day, viz., the visit of
-the good old Duke on this his eighty-second birthday, to his little
-godson, our dear little boy. He came to us both at five, and gave him a
-golden cup and some toys, which he had himself chosen, and Arthur gave
-him a nosegay.”
-
-The day was also that on which the great Exhibition at the Crystal
-Palace was opened. “The Royal party,” says Queen Victoria, “were
-received with continued acclamation as they passed through the Park and
-round the Exhibition house, and it was also very interesting to witness
-the cordial greeting given to the Duke of Wellington. I was just behind
-him and Anglesey [on whose arm he was leaning], during the procession
-round the building, and he was accompanied by an incessant running fire
-of applause from the men, and waving of handkerchiefs and kissing of
-hands from the women, who lined the pathway of the march during the
-three-quarters of an hour that it took us to march round....”
-
-Although the Duke never courted popularity, seemed indeed to shun it
-and to regard the satisfaction shown by some of his colleagues in the
-plaudits of the multitude as a sign of weakness, there can be little
-doubt that he felt a glow of inward pleasure, however slight, when he
-reflected on the good feeling displayed towards him in the closing
-years of his long and well-filled life. Apt to be somewhat cynical on
-occasion, and to think that the times were “like sweet bells jangled,
-out of tune and harsh,” he was neither censorious nor vindictive.
-Nelson preached the gospel of Duty, but Wellington lived it and
-sacrificed everything to it.
-
-Brougham, as champion of Parliamentary Reform, was an opponent of
-Wellington, but in middle age he took up an independent position, and
-has left in his “Historical Sketches of Statesmen who flourished in the
-Time of George III” a magnificent testimony of the Duke’s worth.
-
-“The peculiar characteristic of this great man,” he writes, “and which,
-though far less dazzling than his exalted genius, and his marvellous
-fortune, is incomparably more useful for the contemplation of the
-statesman, as well as the moralist, is that constant abnegation of
-all selfish feelings, that habitual sacrifice of every personal,
-every party consideration to the single object of strict duty--duty
-rigorously performed in what station soever he might be called to act.
-This was ever perceived to be his distinguishing quality; and it was
-displayed at every period of his public life, and in all matters from
-the most trifling to the most important.”
-
-Regarding the Reform Bill, Brougham says that Wellington’s conduct
-“during the whole of the debates in both sessions upon that measure was
-exemplary. Opposing it to the utmost of his power, no one could charge
-him with making the least approach to factious violence, or with ever
-taking an unfair advantage.... After the Bill had passed, the same
-absence of all factious feelings marked his conduct.”
-
-The Duke’s modesty, his good sense, candour and fairness, love of
-justice, hatred of oppression and fraud are touched upon by Brougham,
-who closes his brief acknowledgment of his subject’s virtues by quoting
-a remark made by Lord Denman, “the greatest judge of the day.” It is
-that of all Wellington’s “great and good qualities, the one which
-stands first, is his anxious desire ever to see justice done, and the
-pain he manifestly feels from the sight of injustice.”
-
-On the morning of the 14th September 1852 the victor of Waterloo had a
-paralytic stroke at Walmer Castle. At six o’clock his valet entered the
-Duke’s room to call him, but he complained of not feeling quite well
-and sent for an apothecary. In the evening he was lying dead on his
-camp bedstead. We are apt to use the phrase “full of years and honour”
-rather too glibly perhaps, but it is intensely apposite when applied
-to the great Duke. He was eighty-three years of age, and as for honour
-a glance at the following list of distinctions bestowed upon Arthur
-Wellesley will make the fact self evident:
-
-He was Duke of Wellington, Marquis of Wellington, Earl of Wellington
-in Somerset, Viscount Wellington of Talavera, Marquis of Douro, Baron
-Douro of Wellesley, Prince of Waterloo in the Netherlands, Duke of
-Ciudad Rodrigo in Spain, Duke of Bennoy in France, Duke of Vittoria,
-Marquis of Torres Vedras, Count of Vimiero in Portugal, a Grandee of
-the First Class in Spain, a Privy Councillor, Commander-in-Chief of
-the British Army, Colonel of the Grenadier Guards, Colonel of the
-Rifle Brigade, a Field Marshal of Great Britain, a Marshal of Russia,
-Austria, Prussia, Spain, Portugal, and the Netherlands; a Knight of the
-Garter, the Holy Ghost, the Golden Fleece; a Knight Grand Cross of the
-Bath and of Hanover, a Knight of the Black Eagle, the Tower and Sword,
-St Fernando, of William of the Low Countries, Charles III, of the
-Sword of Sweden, St Andrew of Russia, the Annunciado of Sardinia, the
-Elephant of Denmark, of Maria Theresa, of St George of Russia, of the
-Crown of Rue of Saxony; a Knight of Fidelity of Baden, of Maximilian
-Joseph of Bavaria, of St Alexander Newsky of Russia, of St Hermenegilda
-of Spain, of the Red Eagle of Bradenburg, of St Januarius, of the
-Golden Lion of Hesse Cassel, of the Lion of Baden; and a Knight of
-Merit of Würtemburg. In addition, Wellington was Lord High Constable of
-England, Constable of the Tower and of Dover Castle, Warden, Chancellor
-and Admiral of the Cinque Ports, Lord-Lieutenant of Hampshire and
-of the Tower Hamlets, Ranger of St James’s Park and of Hyde Park,
-Chancellor of the University of Oxford, Commissioner of the Royal
-Military College, Vice-President of the Scottish Naval and Military
-Academy, the Master of Trinity House, a Governor of King’s College, a
-Doctor of Laws, and a Fellow of the Royal Society.
-
-The motto on Wellington’s escutcheon, _Virtutis fortuna
-comes_--“Fortune is the companion of valour”--was exemplified in his
-long and eventful career, and perhaps the following words, once used by
-him in a dispatch, suggest how keen was his sense of responsibility:
-“God help me if I fail, for no one else will.” With true British
-inconsistency the nation spent £100,000 on the funeral of him whose
-habits were of Spartan simplicity, but with more appropriateness the
-body of the Conqueror of Napoleon was placed next to that of the Hero
-of Trafalgar in the crypt of St Paul’s Cathedral.
-
-And so these two great Warriors sleep together. They were worthy of
-England; may England be worthy of them.
-
-
-
-
-Index of Proper Names
-
-
- Abbé Siéyès, 21
-
- Abercromby, General, 30, 47
-
- Abrantes, 109, 125
-
- d’Abrantès, Duc, 103
-
- Acland, General, 90, 91
-
- Adam, Sir Frederick, 235
-
- Addington, Henry, 65
-
- Agraça, Mount, 131
-
- Agueda, River, 148, 158, 161, 170
-
- Ahmednuggur, 53, 66
-
- Aire, 196
-
- Alava, General, 171, 172, 173
-
- Alba de Tormes, 124, 171, 180, 182
-
- Alberche, 112, 117
-
- Albergaria, 106
-
- Albert, Edward, Prince of Wales, 249
-
- Albuera, 152, 153, 154
-
- Albuquerque, Duke of, 125
-
- Alcarez, 186
-
- Alcobaço, 88, 138
-
- Aldea da Ponte, 159
-
- Alemtejo, 147, 158
-
- Alexander, Emperor, 71, 75
-
- Alhandra, 131
-
- Alicante, 181
-
- Alison, 29, 149
-
- Almarez, 120, 170
-
- Almeida, 129, 132, 143, 145, 147, 148, 150, 151, 152, 159, 163, 164,
- 170, 187
-
- Almonacid, 120
-
- Alps, the, 210
-
- Amarante, Convent of, 107
-
- America, North, 207
-
- Amiens, Peace of, 68
-
- Amotz, 194
-
- Amrut Rao, 52
-
- Andalusia, 181, 182, 186
-
- Angers, 20, 21
-
- d’Angoulême, Duc, 196
-
- Anselme, 25
-
- Anstruther, General, 90
-
- Antwerp, 25, 29, 30
-
- Antwerp, Cathedral of, 238
-
- Apsley House, 245
-
- Aragon, 80, 127, 161
-
- Areizaga, General, 124, 125
-
- Argaum, Battle of, 60, 66
-
- Armia, 131
-
- Armour, James, 230
-
- Arnold, Dr, 245
-
- Arzobispo, 120
-
- Ascain, 194
-
- Assaye, Battle of, 54, 56, 66
-
- Asseerghur, Fortress, 57, 66
-
- Astorga, 185
-
- Asturias, 103, 171, 186
-
- Augereau, 199
-
- Austerlitz, 18, 69
-
- Austria, 101, 127, 237, 241
-
- Austrians, the, 24, 25, 26, 29
-
- Aviella, River, 140
-
-
- Badajoz, 106, 109, 122, 125, 140, 142, 145, 147, 152, 155, 156, 163,
- 164, 165, 170, 185
-
- Baird, General, 40, 41, 48, 49, 50, 64, 65, 100, 101
-
- Baji Rao, 51
-
- Balasore, 61
-
- Ballasteros, 148, 152, 185
-
- Bappoo, Manoo, 58
-
- Barcelona, Fortress of, 79
-
- Baring, Major, 231
-
- Barnard, Colonel, 166
-
- Barrington, Sir Jonah, 22, 70
-
- Bassein, Subsidiary Treaty of, 51
-
- Batavia, Island of, 45, 47, 48
-
- Batavia, Expedition to, 65
-
- Bathurst, Earl, 201
-
- Battersea Fields, 243
-
- Bautzen, 187
-
- Baylen, 79
-
- Bayonne, 160, 190, 195, 200
-
- Baztan, 190
-
- Beckwith, 144
-
- Beere, Harry, 233
-
- Belgium, 25, 205, 207, 210
-
- Belle Alliance, La, 223
-
- _Bellerophon_, H.M.S., 235
-
- Belvedere, 100
-
- Bentinck, Lord William, 192
-
- Beresford, Marshal Sir W. C., 104, 106, 121, 125, 143, 147, 148,
- 152, 153, 154, 157, 178, 195, 196, 197, 198, 202
-
- Bessières, 100, 103
-
- Bhonsla Rájá of Berar, 51, 53, 54, 58, 61
-
- Bidarray, 194
-
- Bidassoa, River, 192
-
- Blake, General, 80, 100, 125, 148, 152, 160
-
- Blakeney, Robert, 83
-
- Blücher, 211, 216, 217, 218, 220, 235, 236, 237
-
- Boialva, Pass of, 137
-
- Boigne, Comtesse de, 201
-
- Bombay, 48, 52, 53, 65
-
- Bonaparte, Jerome, 221, 226
-
- Bonaparte, Joseph, 79, 99, 110, 113, 116, 117, 120, 124, 181, 182,
- 187, 190
-
- Bonaparte, Letizia, 18
-
- Bonnet, 178, 179, 180
-
- Bordeaux, 196
-
- Bowes, Major-General, 165
-
- Boxtel, Village, 30
-
- Boyer, 175, 176, 179
-
- Bradford, 173
-
- Braganza, House of, 78
-
- Braine-le-Comte, 211, 213
-
- Brazil, 78
-
- Bremen, 31
-
- Brienne, 21
-
- Brissac, Duc de, 21
-
- Brougham, 250
-
- Brown, Sir George, 129, 247
-
- Bruges, 25
-
- Brune, Marshal, 210
-
- Brussels, 20, 25, 205, 211, 225
-
- Bucellas, 131
-
- Bülow, General, 217, 218, 227, 234
-
- Burghersh, Lady, 202, 208
-
- Burgos, 181, 182, 185, 186, 187
-
- Burrampur, 56, 57, 66
-
- Burrard, Sir Harry, 87, 90, 91, 93, 94, 97, 100
-
- Busaco, 134
-
- Bylandt, 227
-
-
- Caçadores, the, 105
-
- Cadiz, 80, 88, 125, 132, 184, 185
-
- Cadogan, Colonel, 188
-
- Caffarelli, 182
-
- Caillou, Farm, 217
-
- Calcutta, 33, 35, 52
-
- Cambray, 237
-
- Camden, Lord, 33
-
- Cameron, Alister, 166
-
- Campbell, Captain, 61
-
- Canada, 17
-
- Canning, 71, 74, 75, 126, 242
-
- Cantabrian Hills, 160
-
- Carnatic, the, 53
-
- Casserbarry Ghaut, 57
-
- Castaños, General, 80, 100, 148, 152
-
- Castilian Mountains, 116
-
- Castile, 125, 185
-
- Castlereagh, Lord, 22, 23, 64, 70, 87, 88, 96, 97, 101, 102, 108,
- 109, 126, 201, 207, 237
-
- Catalonia, 80, 103, 127, 190
-
- Cathcart, Lord, 68, 72
-
- Cawnpore, 52
-
- Cazal Nova, 142
-
- Ceylon, 48
-
- Châlons, 24
-
- Chantrey, 245
-
- Charlemagne, 127
-
- Charleroi, 29, 212, 225
-
- Charles IV, 79
-
- Chasseurs Britanniques, the, 156
-
- Château de Montmorency, 238
-
- Chateaubriand, 21
-
- Chaves, 103
-
- Chelsea, 19
-
- Chelsea Hospital, 97, 182
-
- Chesterford, 96
-
- Choiseul, Duc de, 17
-
- “Christian’s Storm,” 33
-
- Cinco Villas, 143
-
- Cintra, Convention of, 94, 96
-
- Ciudad Real, 103
-
- Ciudad Rodrigo, 123, 124, 128, 132, 140, 145, 147, 148, 157, 158,
- 159, 160, 161, 163, 164, 170, 172, 183, 185, 187
-
- Clausel, 181, 182, 190, 196, 210
-
- Clerfait, 29
-
- Clinton, 179, 180
-
- Clive, Lord, 38, 45
-
- Coa, River, 129, 144, 145, 149, 159
-
- Coalition, Fifth, 209
-
- Coburg, 25
-
- Coimbra, 86, 125, 133, 137, 139
-
- Colborne, Colonel, 195, 198
-
- Cole, Major-General, 178
-
- Collingwood, Vice-Admiral, 80
-
- Colville, Hon. C., 166, 225
-
- Comorin, Cape, 48
-
- Conahgull, 44
-
- Conception, Fort, 150
-
- Condé, 26
-
- Consuegra, 185
-
- Cope, Sir John, 248
-
- Copenhagen, 73, 74, 76
-
- Cork, 84
-
- Cornwallis, Marquis, 69
-
- Corsica, Island, 18
-
- Cortes, the, 183
-
- Coruña, 80, 85, 101, 106
-
- Costello, Edward, 104, 110
-
- Cotton, Sir Stapleton, 150, 171, 173, 196, 202, 220
-
- Cox, Colonel, 129
-
- Cradock, Sir John, 100
-
- Crane, Tom, 248
-
- Craufurd, General, 119, 129, 151, 163
-
- Croker, John Wilson, 55, 85, 171, 172
-
- Crystal Palace, 249
-
- Cuesta, General, 103, 109, 110, 111, 112, 119, 120, 121
-
- Cuttack, Province, 52, 61
-
-
- Danes, the, 72, 74
-
- Dangan Castle, 18
-
- Dalrymple, Sir Hew, 87, 94, 95, 97, 100
-
- D’Archambault, 21
-
- Daulat Rao, 51
-
- Decaen, Count, 210
-
- Deccan, the, 53, 62, 66
-
- Delaborde, General, 88, 90
-
- Deleytosa, 120, 121, 123
-
- Denman, Lord, 251
-
- Denmark, 71, 72, 75
-
- D’Erlon, 210, 212, 216, 227, 228, 232
-
- Despeña Perros, Pass of, 125
-
- Don Carlos d’España, 152
-
- Dorsenne, 158, 159
-
- Dos Casas, River, 150
-
- Douro, River, 106, 171
-
- Douro of Wellesley, Baron, 122
-
- Dresden, 190
-
- Dublin, 18, 69
-
- Dumouriez, 25
-
- Dundas, Sir David, 31, 97
-
- Dungannon, Viscount, 19, 20
-
- Dunkirk, 26
-
- Dupont, 79, 100
-
- Duran, 185
-
-
- East India Company, 36
-
- Ebro, River, 79, 182, 187, 193
-
- Edinburgh Castle, 92
-
- Edward VII, 249
-
- Eguia, 120, 121, 123
-
- Egypt, 47, 48
-
- Elba, 208
-
- Ellichpúr, 58, 60
-
- Elvas, 129, 153, 155, 156
-
- d’Enghien, Duc, 236
-
- England, 21, 25, 68, 70, 71, 72, 73, 74, 96, 103, 132, 186, 190,
- 241, 242, 252
-
- Essling, Prince of, 127
-
- Estremadura, 80, 109, 123, 124, 127, 132, 139, 156, 164, 170, 186
-
- Eton, 19, 20
-
- Europe, 23, 24, 27, 156, 157, 194, 237, 238, 239
-
- Ewart, Serjeant, 228
-
-
- Falmouth, Lord, 243
-
- Ferdinand VII, 79, 122, 202, 203, 242
-
- Ferguson, 91
-
- Ferrol, 80
-
- Figueras, Fortress of, 79
-
- Finisterre, Cape, 86
-
- Flanders, 25, 29, 208
-
- Fleurus, Plains of, 29, 113
-
- Fontainebleau, Treaty of, 78
-
- Forbes, Dr, 168
-
- Foy, General, 174, 175, 177, 180, 190, 220
-
- Foz d’Aronce, 142
-
- France, 24, 26, 27, 71, 94, 101, 113, 128, 194, 195, 239, 240, 241
-
- Francis II., Emperor, 208
-
- Frasnes, 212, 215
-
- Frazer, Mackenzie, 87
-
- Freer, 167
-
- Freire, Bernardino, 86
-
- Freneda, 151, 159, 183
-
- Frénilly, Baron de, 99, 208
-
- Freyre, General, 197, 198
-
- Frischermont, 227
-
- Fuente Guinaldo, 158
-
- Fuentes de Oñoro, 148, 150, 151
-
-
- Gagern, Captain Baron von, 213
-
- Gaikwár of Baroda, 51
-
- Galicia, 79, 80, 103, 106, 108, 110, 111, 118, 123, 124, 127, 158,
- 182, 186
-
- Gallegos, 164
-
- Galluzzo, General, 80
-
- Gambier, Admiral, 72
-
- Garonne, the, 196
-
- Gave de Pau, the, 195
-
- Gawilghur, Fort, 60
-
- Gémioncourt, Farm of, 215
-
- George III, 68, 244, 250
-
- George IV, 241, 242
-
- Georgiana, Lady De Ros, 247
-
- Gérard, 210
-
- Germany, 69
-
- Ghent, 25
-
- Gleig, George Robert, 23, 69, 193
-
- Goderich, Lord, 242
-
- Godoy, Duke of Alcudia, 78
-
- Good Hope, Cape of, 34
-
- Gordon, Colonel, 193
-
- Graham, Sir Thomas, 186, 191, 192, 202
-
- Great Britain, 25, 68, 75, 76, 102, 163, 238, 241, 242
-
- Greece, 241
-
- Grey, Earl, 244, 245, 246
-
- Grouchy, General, 210, 217, 220, 227
-
- Guadalaxara, 185
-
- Guadiana, the, 103, 164, 165, 169
-
- Guareña, 171
-
-
- Hal, 225
-
- Halkett, 232, 234
-
- Hampshire, 241
-
- Handel, 19
-
- Hanover, 68
-
- Hanoverians, the, 25, 26, 226
-
- Hardinge, Colonel Sir Henry, 153, 243
-
- Harris, General, 38, 39, 40
-
- Hastings, 69
-
- Herrasti, Governor, 128
-
- Hessians, the, 25, 26
-
- Hill, Lord, 104, 125, 130, 134, 158, 170, 182, 186, 187, 190, 192,
- 195, 196, 199, 201, 202, 211, 249
-
- Hockrill, 96
-
- Holkar of Indore, 51, 52, 62
-
- Holland, 25, 29, 30, 53, 205, 207
-
- Holy Roman Empire, 24, 25, 28
-
- Hood, 27
-
- Hope, Sir John, 195, 200, 201, 202
-
- Hope, the Hon. J., 87
-
- Hostalrich, 127
-
- Houchard, General, 26
-
- Hougoumont, 221, 225, 226, 232, 234
-
- Houssaye, 220
-
- Houstoun, Major-General, 150, 151
-
- Huebra, River, 164, 183
-
- Hughes, 20
-
- Hungary, 49
-
- Huskisson, Mr, 244
-
- Hyde Park, 226
-
- Hyder Ali, 36
-
- Hyderabad, 38, 53, 66
-
-
- Iberian Peninsula, 78, 127
-
- Imperialists, the, 25, 29
-
- India, 17, 66, 69, 70, 71
-
- Indore, 53
-
- Inglis, Colonel, 153
-
- Inniskillings, the, 228
-
- Ireland, 18, 22, 70, 71, 76
-
- Irish Reform Bill, 246
-
- Isle of Wight, 103
-
-
- Jackson, Mr F. J., 72
-
- Jaraicejo, 120, 121
-
- Jaucourt, Marquis de, 21
-
- Jemappes, 25
-
- Jena, Bridge of, 237
-
- Jerome, 221
-
- Jesuits, the, 17
-
- Jeswant Rao, 51
-
- John, King, 21
-
- Joseph, 79, 99, 110, 113, 116, 117, 120, 124, 181, 182, 187, 190
-
- Jourdan, Marshal, 26, 29, 113, 115, 190
-
- Junot, General, 78, 79, 81, 88, 90, 94, 96, 100
-
- Jura Mountains, the, 210
-
-
- Keble, John, 245
-
- Kellermann, Marshal, 103, 120
-
- Kempt, Sir James, 228
-
- Kennedy, Captain Clark, 228
-
- Kennedy, Sir Robert, 201
-
- Kincaid, 148
-
- Kiöge, Battle of, 74
-
- Kléber, 128
-
- Kray, General, 49
-
-
- Labada, 60
-
- La Carolina, 103, 120
-
- La Haye, 225, 235
-
- La Haye Sainte, 222, 225, 227, 231, 234
-
- Lake, General, 52, 53
-
- La Mancha, 120, 123, 124
-
- Lamego, 106
-
- Landrecy, 237
-
- Langlands, Lieutenant, 60
-
- Lannes, Marshal, 128
-
- Lanz, the, 191
-
- Lapisse, 116
-
- La Romana, Marquis, 100, 103, 123, 132, 139
-
- La Trinidad, 166
-
- La Vendée, 26, 209
-
- Le Courbe, 210
-
- Lefebvre, Marshal, 100
-
- Lefebvre-Desnoëttes, General, 212
-
- Leiria, 88
-
- Leith, General, 134, 166, 173, 177
-
- Le Marchant, General, 175, 176, 177, 180
-
- Lennox, Lord William, 226
-
- Leon, 80, 160
-
- Lerida, 127
-
- Lesaca, 192
-
- Ligny, 212, 214, 216
-
- Lion Mound, 220
-
- Lisbon, 78, 88, 90, 91, 100, 101, 103, 104, 105, 119, 123, 128, 130,
- 131, 132, 183
-
- Liverpool, Earl of, 125, 126, 138, 142, 154, 155, 157, 185
-
- Lobau, General, 210, 234
-
- Loison, General, 88, 90, 143
-
- London, 17, 80, 236
-
- Longford, Baron, 23
-
- Los Aripeles, 171, 175, 178, 179
-
- Los Santos, 103
-
- Louis XV, 17
-
- Louis XVIII, 21, 196, 199, 200, 208, 237, 240
-
- Lourinhão, 91
-
- Lützen, 187
-
- Lyons, 26, 27
-
-
- Mack, General, 29, 69
-
- Mackay, Piper, 92
-
- Mackie, 176
-
- Mackinnon, Major-General, 163
-
- Madras, 35, 52
-
- Madrid, 79, 101, 109, 111, 118, 124, 160, 181, 182, 185, 186, 187,
- 202
-
- Maes, the, 29
-
- Maestricht, 25
-
- Mafra, 131
-
- Maitland, Captain Frederick Lewis, 235
-
- Maitland, General Sir Peregrine, 215
-
- Malavelly, 39
-
- Malcolm, Sir John, 49
-
- Malines, 25, 29
-
- Malpurda, River, 44
-
- Manilla, 35
-
- March, Lord, 169
-
- Marchand, Jean Gabriel, Comte, 124
-
- Marhattás, the, 51, 53, 54, 56
-
- Marion Street, 18
-
- Marmont, Marshal, 152, 156, 158, 159, 162, 163, 170, 171, 172, 173,
- 175, 181
-
- Masséna, Marshal, 127, 128, 129, 130, 134, 135, 137, 139, 140, 143,
- 145, 148, 149, 150, 151, 152
-
- Maubeuge, 26, 27, 237
-
- Mauritius, 47
-
- Maxwell, Colonel, 55
-
- Maxwell, Sir Herbert, 50, 97
-
- Mayence, 26
-
- Meath, County, 22
-
- Medellin, 103, 109
-
- Medina de Rio Seco, 85
-
- Meer Allum, 42
-
- Melbourne, Lord, 246
-
- Mequinenza, Castle of, 127
-
- Merbe Braine, 225
-
- Merida, 122
-
- Metternich, Prince, 207, 208
-
- Metz, 27
-
- McGregor, Dr James, 168
-
- Middlesex, 17
-
- Milhaud, 232
-
- Mina, General, 160
-
- M‘Laine, Major, 234
-
- McLeod, Colonel, 167, 168
-
- Moira, Lord, 28, 29, 97
-
- Monasterio, 103
-
- Moncey, Marshal, 81, 100
-
- Mondego, River, 123, 125, 132, 137
-
- Mons, 25
-
- Mont St Jean, 217, 222, 225
-
- Montbrun, 151
-
- Montealegre, 108
-
- Montechique, 131
-
- Montesquiou, 25
-
- Moore, Sir John, 75, 81, 87, 90, 94, 100, 101, 109
-
- Moreau, General, 128
-
- Mornington, Baron, 19
-
- Mornington, Countess of, 18, 20
-
- Mornington, Earl of, 19, 33, 34, 35, 36, 39, 64, 65
-
- Mornington House, 18
-
- Mortago, 134
-
- Mortier, Marshal, 100, 103, 119, 120, 123
-
- M‘Quade, Serjeant Robert, 129
-
- Munro, Sir Thomas, 45
-
- Murat, Marshal, 79, 99, 209
-
- Murcia, 80
-
- Murray, Lieutenant-Colonel George, 74
-
- Murray, General Sir John, 107, 192
-
- Mysore, Presidency of, 36, 38, 42, 43, 50, 52
-
-
- Namur, 25, 218
-
- Napier, Major Sir George, 73, 83, 121, 163, 196
-
- Naples, 25, 79, 209, 241
-
- Napoleon, 18, 20, 21, 24, 27, 38, 46, 47, 71, 78, 79, 80, 81, 94,
- 101, 106, 121, 125, 127, 130, 131, 133, 158, 199, 201, 202,
- 208, 217, 218, 224, 225, 227, 229, 234, 235, 236
-
- Napoleon, Fort, 170
-
- Nassauers, the, 226
-
- Nava d’Aver, 150
-
- Naval Moral, 120
-
- Navarre, 160
-
- Neerwinden, 25
-
- Nelson, 22, 69, 80, 250, 252
-
- Nesselrode, 237
-
- Ney, Marshal, 100, 101, 103, 110, 119, 120, 129, 134, 135, 208, 212,
- 214, 216, 217, 234
-
- Nice, 25
-
- Nicholas, Emperor, 242
-
- Nive, River, 195
-
- Nivelles, 213, 225
-
- Nizám of Hyderabad, the, 36, 38, 39, 43, 52, 57, 66
-
- Nuestra Señora de la Peña, 171, 172
-
-
- Obidos, 88
-
- Ocaña, Battle of, 124
-
- O’Donnell, 127
-
- Ohain, 234
-
- O’Hare, Captain, 167
-
- Old Castile, 80, 123
-
- Oman, Professor, 88, 109, 159, 222
-
- Oporto, 86, 101, 103, 106, 108, 130, 134, 142, 147
-
- Orange, Prince of, 29, 30, 166, 211, 213, 214, 215, 225
-
- Orcain, 191
-
- Ordal, 193
-
- Orense, 108
-
- Oropesa, 110, 120
-
- Orthez, 195
-
- Ostend, 25, 29
-
- O’Toole, Colonel, 162
-
- Oude, 70
-
- Oxford University, 245
-
-
- Pack, General, 162, 174, 178, 179, 228
-
- Paget, Sir E., 87, 107
-
- Pakenham, Major-General, 173, 174, 175, 176
-
- Pakenham, Hon. Catherine, 23, 69
-
- Palafox, General, 80, 100
-
- Pampeluna, Fortress of, 79, 190, 191, 194
-
- Papelotte, 225, 235
-
- Paris, 24, 101, 202, 235, 237
-
- Parkside, 244
-
- Parque, Duque del, 123, 124
-
- Pasquier, Duc de, 128
-
- Pau, 195
-
- Peel, Sir Robert, 246
-
- Penafiel, 108
-
- Penang, 35
-
- Perar, 66
-
- Perceval, Spencer, 126
-
- Pero Negro, 131
-
- Perron, 51
-
- Perwez, 218
-
- Peshwá of Poona, the, 43, 51, 53, 57, 65
-
- Philippine Islands, 35
-
- Philippon, General, 165, 169
-
- Pichegru, General, 29, 30, 128
-
- Picton, General, 134, 162, 166, 169, 195, 198, 215, 229
-
- Picurina, Fort, 165, 166
-
- Piedmont, 241
-
- Pignerol, Marquis of, 21
-
- Pirch, 218
-
- Pitt, William, the Younger, 22, 28, 244
-
- Planchenoit, 234
-
- Plasencia, Vera de, 111, 119, 120, 157
-
- Poço Velho, 150
-
- Poland, 25, 28, 207
-
- Pole, Miss, 202
-
- Pombal, 142
-
- Ponsonby, Major-General Sir William, 228, 229, 230
-
- Pont-à-chin, 29
-
- Poona, 51, 65
-
- Popham, Sir Home, 74, 185
-
- Porlier, 160
-
- Portland, Duke of, 70
-
- Portugal, 25, 71, 72, 76, 84, 94, 95, 100, 102, 103, 104, 106, 111,
- 114, 118, 121, 123, 126, 127, 129, 146, 148, 152, 157, 163
-
- Praslin, Duc de, 21
-
- Prince Consort, 249
-
- Prussia, 24, 25, 28, 29, 71, 237, 241
-
- Prussians, the, 24, 26, 227, 238
-
- Puerto de Baños, 120
-
- Puerto del Rey, Pass of, 125
-
- Pyrenees, the, 100, 187, 190, 193, 210
-
-
- Quatre Bras, 212, 213, 214, 215, 216, 217
-
- Quesnoy, 237
-
- Quinta de Granicha, 155
-
- Quinta de St João, 156
-
- Quintella, 131
-
-
- Ragusa, Fort, 170
-
- Rainier, Admiral, 45
-
- Ramsay, Captain Norman, 150
-
- Rao, Amrut, 52
-
- Rapoula de Coa, 143
-
- Rapp, Count, 210
-
- Reding, General, 80
-
- Redinha, 142
-
- Red Sea, 50
-
- Reille, 196, 210, 212, 214
-
- Reynier, General, 134, 144
-
- Rhine, the, 26, 27, 28, 210, 240
-
- Richmond, Duchess of, 212
-
- Richmond, Duke of, 70, 161
-
- Ridge, Lieutenant-Colonel, 168
-
- Rio Mayor, River, 140
-
- Rivillas, River, 165
-
- Roberts, Earl, 31, 66
-
- Robinson, 242
-
- Rocca, Captain M. de, 112, 133, 134
-
- Roliça, 88, 89, 97
-
- Roman Catholic Relief Bill, 243, 244
-
- Rome, 127, 246
-
- Rose, Dr J. Holland, 74, 220, 239
-
- Roskilde, 73
-
- Ross, Major-General Robert, 191
-
- Ross-Lewin, Major, 92
-
- Rubens, 238
-
- Ruffin, Count, 116
-
- Runa, Ravine of, 131
-
- Russia, 25, 71, 75, 241
-
- Rye, 69
-
-
- Sabugal, 143, 149, 150, 159
-
- Sagunto, Battle of, 160
-
- Sahagun, 101
-
- Salamanca, 100, 103, 120, 124, 145, 148, 159, 163, 170, 171, 181,
- 182, 183, 185
-
- Salamonde, 108
-
- San Antonio de Cantaro, 133
-
- Sanchez, Don Julian, 150, 151, 160
-
- San Christoval, Fort of, 155, 169, 170
-
- San Francisco, 161
-
- San Juan, General, 80
-
- San Marcial, 192
-
- San Sebastian, Fortress of, 79, 190, 191
-
- Santa Cruz, 161
-
- Santa Maria, 166
-
- Santander, 186
-
- Santarem, 140, 141
-
- San Vincente, 166, 169
-
- Sardinia, 25
-
- Savanore, 43
-
- Savary, General, 190
-
- Savoy, 25
-
- Sax-Weimar, Prince Bernard of, 212
-
- Scheldt, 29
-
- Schwartzenberg, Prince, 29
-
- Scindia, 66
-
- Sebastiani, General, 103, 106, 110, 115, 116, 117, 119, 120
-
- Sedasser, 39
-
- Segovia, 183
-
- Seringapatam, 38, 39, 40, 42, 49, 50
-
- Serra, the, 107, 135
-
- Sersooly, 58
-
- Seton, 176
-
- Seven Years’ War, the, 17
-
- Seville, 106, 109, 125, 147, 157, 170, 185
-
- Shaw, Colonel, 40
-
- Sherbrooke, General, 40
-
- Sherer, Captain, 62
-
- Shore, Sir John, 35
-
- Sierra Catalina, 108
-
- Sierra de Busaco, 133
-
- Sierra Morena, 103, 124, 125
-
- Simon, General, 133
-
- Sindhia of Gwalior, 51, 53, 54, 55, 56, 58, 59
-
- S. Lourenço, River, 132
-
- Smith, Robert, 19, 20
-
- Smith, Sir Harry, 81, 130, 166, 167, 223
-
- Smith, Sydney, 19
-
- Soignes, Forest of, 225
-
- Somerset, Lord Edward, 196, 232
-
- Sorauren, 191
-
- Souars, 195
-
- Souham, 182, 183
-
- Soult, Marshal, 101, 103, 106, 107, 108, 110, 118, 119, 120, 123,
- 125, 140, 147, 156, 170, 181, 182, 191, 192, 195, 196, 197,
- 199, 200, 210, 227
-
- Southampton, 33
-
- Spain, 23, 25, 71, 78, 79, 95, 99, 100, 102, 104, 127, 160, 190
-
- Spencer, General Sir Brent, 87, 147, 148
-
- Spry, 179
-
- St Amand, 214
-
- Stanhope, 247
-
- St Cyr, General, 81, 100, 103
-
- Stevenson, Colonel, 52, 54, 57, 58, 60
-
- Stewart, General Sir Charles, 108, 138, 149, 201
-
- Stewart, Major-General the Hon. W., 125
-
- St Jean de Luz, 194
-
- St Jean Pied de Port, 194
-
- St Julian, Fort of, 132
-
- St Ledger, General, 35
-
- St Peter’s, Dublin, 18
-
- Strangford, Lord, 78, 241
-
- Strathfieldsaye, 241, 247
-
- Stuart, General, 39
-
- Styles, Corporal, 229
-
- Suchet, Marshal, 127, 157, 181, 190, 199, 200, 210
-
- Surat, 52
-
- Sweden, 71, 75
-
-
- Taggart, Lieutenant, 167
-
- Tagus, the, 106, 110, 112, 119, 123, 124, 125, 131, 132, 140, 157,
- 159, 170, 185
-
- Talavera, 109, 111, 112, 115, 119, 120, 121, 122, 157, 191
-
- Talleyrand, 21
-
- Tamames, 124
-
- Tarragona, 157, 192, 193
-
- Thielmann, General, 218
-
- Thomière, 172, 173
-
- Tilsit, Peace of, 71, 75
-
- Tipú Sultan, 36, 38, 39, 41, 42, 43, 65
-
- Toledo, 120, 183
-
- Tordesillas, 171
-
- Toro, 171
-
- Torrecilla de la Orden, 171
-
- Torres Vedras, 91, 123, 130, 131, 133, 139
-
- Toulon, 26, 27
-
- Toulouse, 195, 196, 199, 200
-
- Tournay, 25, 29
-
- Trafalgar, 69, 80, 201
-
- Trant, Colonel, 139, 143
-
- Tras os Montes, Province of, 86
-
- Trim, 22
-
- Trincomalee, 48
-
- Troisville, 29
-
- Tudela, 171
-
- Turkey, 241
-
- Turones, River, 150, 151
-
-
- Ulm, 69
-
- Uxbridge, Earl of, 225, 232
-
-
- Valencia, 80, 161, 181, 190
-
- Valenciennes, 26, 237
-
- Valladolid, 103, 120, 127, 163, 182, 183, 185, 186, 187
-
- Vallée, 105
-
- Valmy, 24
-
- Vandal, Count, 74
-
- Vandamme, General, 210
-
- Vandeleur, 229
-
- Vedras, 91
-
- Velasquez, 189
-
- Veldbeck, 73
-
- Vellore, 53
-
- Vendas Novas, 106
-
- Venegas, General, 103, 110, 111, 118, 120
-
- Verona, 241
-
- Victor, General, 81, 100, 103, 106, 109, 110, 111, 115, 116, 117,
- 119, 120, 124
-
- Victoria, Queen, 248
-
- Vienna, Congress of, 206, 207
-
- Villa Franca, 193
-
- Villatte, 116
-
- Villiers, Rt. Hon. John, 126
-
- Vimiero, 90, 91, 92, 94, 97, 98
-
- Vincennes, 236
-
- Viseu, 126
-
- Vittoria, 187, 189, 190
-
- Vives, General, 80, 100
-
- Vouga, River, 106
-
-
- Walcheren, Expedition, 126
-
- Walker, General, 169
-
- Wallace, Lieutenant-Colonel, 174, 175, 176
-
- Walmer Castle, 171, 247, 248, 249, 251
-
- Warre, Sir William, 92
-
- Waterloo, 18, 19, 111, 217, 223, 235
-
- Waterloo, Prince of, 241
-
- Waters, Colonel, 107
-
- Wattignies, 26
-
- Waugh, Dhoondia, 43, 44, 45, 47
-
- Wavre, 217, 218, 220
-
- Webster, Lieutenant, 213
-
- Wellesley, Henry, 48, 70
-
- Wellesley, Lord, 19
-
- Wellesley, Richard, 22, 28
-
- Wellington of Talavera, Viscount, 122
-
- Wesley, Garret, 19
-
- West India Islands, 156
-
- Westleys, 19
-
- West Meath, 18
-
- Westmorland, Lord, 22, 28
-
- Wilkes, John, 17
-
- William IV, 244
-
- Wilson, Sir Robert, 73, 101, 120, 123, 143
-
- Winchilsea, Earl of, 243
-
- Windham, 96
-
-
- Yeltes, the, 164
-
- York, Duke of, 25, 26, 28, 29, 30, 31, 92, 242
-
-
- Zamora, 187
-
- Zaragoza, 103
-
- Zibreira, 131
-
- Ziethen, General, 211, 212, 218, 234, 235
-
- Zizandre, River, 131
-
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTES
-
-
-[1] Sir Herbert Maxwell in his “Life of Wellington” (p. 2) suggests
-that the confusion arose owing to the then comparatively recent
-alteration of the calendar. Supposing Arthur Wellesley was born on the
-1st May (new style), that date would be the 18th April (old style), and
-the 30th April (old style) the 12th May according to the present way of
-reckoning.
-
-[2] It must be remembered that Barrington wrote from the point of view
-of a “patriot,” and that Castlereagh had much to do with the Union of
-Great Britain and Ireland. Castlereagh entered the Irish Parliament in
-1790, served in the Pitt, Addington, Perceval, and Portland ministries,
-was present at the Congress of Vienna, and died by his own hand in 1822.
-
-[3] Dumouriez was in London from the 12th June until the 22nd, 1793. He
-lived in England from October 1803 until his death on the 14th March
-1823.
-
-[4] Similar incidents occurred during the Peninsular War.
-
-[5] At Arnheim, on the Rhine, less than twenty-five miles distant.
-According to the de Ros MS., consulted by Sir Herbert Maxwell, Dundas
-paid a visit to Wellesley “about once a fortnight.”
-
-[6] Lord-Lieutenant of Ireland, 1794-8.
-
-[7] Letter to Sir Chichester Fortescue, dated 20th June 1796, cited by
-Sir Herbert Maxwell, vol. i. p. 19 n.
-
-[8] Sir Herbert Maxwell, p. 35.
-
-[9] Gleig (p. 26) says £7000, Roberts (p. 11) £7000 in money and £1200
-in jewels. Sir Herbert Maxwell (p. 39) calls attention to a letter,
-dated the 14th June 1799, in which Wellesley “gives it as 3000 pagodas
-in jewels, and 7000 in money; in all, 10,000 pagodas, equal to about
-£4000.”
-
-[10] In later years Wellington offered to provide for the unfortunate
-Spanish general, Alava, and gave him a small house in the park of
-Strathfieldsaye.
-
-[11] Created 20th December 1800.
-
-[12] The Austrian general, Kray, had succeeded Archduke Charles as
-Commander-in-Chief of the army in Germany in the campaign of 1800, but
-owing to his ill-success he was superseded in a few months by Archduke
-John, hence Wellesley’s reference.
-
-[13] “The Life of Wellington,” pp. 45-6.
-
-[14] “Dispatches,” vol. ii. p. 312.
-
-[15] “The Life of Arthur Duke of Wellington,” by G. R. Gleig, M.A.,
-F.R.G.S. (London Ed. 1864), pp. 33-4.
-
-[16] 79 officers and 1778 soldiers were killed and wounded.--Sir
-Herbert Maxwell, p. 58.
-
-[17] Gleig, pp. 37-8.
-
-[18] Envoy.
-
-[19] Alison in his “Lives of Lord Castlereagh and Sir Charles Stewart”
-(vol. i. p. 175), says that it generally took six months to make the
-voyage. When Sir James Mackintosh sailed from Portsmouth for Bombay in
-1804 his vessel only occupied three months and thirteen days (see his
-“Memoirs,” vol. i. p. 207).
-
-[20] “His relationship to the Governor-General naturally lent much
-weight to his views with Lord Clive and General Harris, but,” Sir
-Herbert Maxwell adds (p. 24), “it is remarkable how freely and
-frequently the elder brother sought the younger’s advice.”
-
-[21] “The Life and Correspondence of the Right Honble. Henry Addington,
-first Viscount Sidmouth,” by the Honble. George Pellew, D.D. (London,
-1847), vol. ii. p. 242. In this connection see also “Wellington’s
-Dispatches,” vol. ii. pp. 335-36 n., and “Despatches, Minutes, and
-Correspondence of the Marquess Wellesley, K.G.,” vol. iii. p. 543.
-
-[22] “The Rise of Wellington,” by Earl Roberts, V.C., p. 26.
-
-[23] “Personal interest was as much recognized in those days as
-the chief motor in military promotion, as seniority and merit are
-now.”--Sir Herbert Maxwell, vol. i. p. 67.
-
-[24] Shortly after his return from India Wellesley had his only
-interview with Nelson, an account of which is given in the author’s
-companion work, “The Story of Nelson,” pp. 113-4.
-
-[25] See _ante_, p. 23.
-
-[26] “Personal Reminiscences of the first Duke of Wellington”
-(Edinburgh 1904), p. 274.
-
-[27] Lord-Lieutenant of Ireland.
-
-[28] At Copenhagen.
-
-[29] Flat-bottomed boats, usually armed with small guns.
-
-[30] Sir Herbert Maxwell, vol. i. p. 87.
-
-[31] Wilson is wrong in some of his facts. The Danish troops numbered
-some 14,000, and 1100 prisoners were taken. See Sir Herbert Maxwell,
-vol. i. p. 87.
-
-[32] “The Croker Papers,” vol. ii. pp. 120-21.
-
-[33] H. W. Wilson, B.A., in “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 236.
-
-[34] “The Life of Napoleon I,” vol. ii. p. 143.
-
-[35] See Oman’s “Peninsular War,” vol i. pp. 1-11.
-
-[36] Oman, vol. i. pp. 631-639. Returns of October-November 1808.
-
-[37] Succeeded by Soult in November 1808.
-
-[38] Oman, vol. i. pp. 640-45.
-
-[39] “The Autobiography of Sir Harry Smith,” 1787-1819. Edited by G. C.
-Moore Smith, M.A. (London Ed. 1910).
-
-[40] “A Boy in the Peninsular War,” edited by Julian Sturgis (London,
-1899), p. 313.
-
-[41] _Ibid._ p. 311.
-
-[42] Vol. i. p. 235 n.
-
-[43] The total loss of the regiment was 190, by far the heaviest of
-those engaged.
-
-[44] The case of Peter Findlater at Dargai is almost an exact parallel.
-
-[45] See also some remarks in “The Croker Papers,” vol. ii. pp. 121-22.
-
-[46] As to the merits and demerits of national resistance, see some
-wise remarks in Arnold’s “Introductory Lectures on Modern History,” pp.
-158-64.
-
-[47] See also some pregnant remarks in Wellesley’s dispatch dated
-Badajoz, 21st November 1809. It will be remembered that at the time
-of the Russian-Japanese war, newspaper men were wisely precluded from
-publishing particulars of proposed movements and similar intelligence
-likely to be of service to the enemy. During the recent conflict
-between Italy and Turkey the most rigid censorship was exercised by the
-former Power.
-
-[48] “I rather think that Mortier had removed from Zaragoza; but some
-time elapsed before he arrived in Old Castile.”--Note by Wellesley.
-
-[49] “The Adventures of a Soldier,” by Edward Costello.
-
-[50] Oman, vol. ii. p. 334. This disposes of the often-repeated story
-that Waters discovered the little craft in the reeds. Brailmont, for
-instance, says that the Colonel “suddenly darted off from the throng,”
-and half an hour later the skiff “shot out into the deep” with six men
-on board.
-
-[51] At the approach of the enemy no fewer than 6000 Spaniards took to
-their heels and played no part in the battle.
-
-[52] Napoleon made a similar error of judgment at Waterloo by keeping
-the Imperial Guard in reserve until after 7 p.m. (See _post_, p. 222).
-
-[53] Sir Herbert Maxwell, vol. i. p. 165, says 6268; Professor Oman
-(“Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 452) gives 5300, the Spanish
-casualties “trifling.” The latter authority states that 7200 Frenchmen
-were killed or wounded.
-
-[54] “Passages in the Early Military Life of General Sir George T.
-Napier, K.C.B.” (London, 1884), pp. 111-12.
-
-[55] See _post_, p. 130.
-
-[56] “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 455. This authority gives
-the date of the battle of Tamames as the 18th October, but Wellington
-states that it occurred on the 19th.--See “Dispatches,” vol. v. pp. 261
-and 350.
-
-[57] Its object was to destroy the ships and dockyards at Antwerp.
-
-[58] General Sir George T. Napier, pp. 120-21.
-
-[59] Really his two reserve divisions, consisting of some 8000 men. See
-Oman, vol. iii. p. 432, and _post_, p. 139.
-
-[60] September 1810.
-
-[61] On the 27th September 1910, the centenary of the battle, an
-anniversary banquet was given at Busaco, which was attended by
-Wellington’s grandson. King Manoel--now dethroned--signed a decree
-reaffirming the duke’s Portuguese titles of Duke of Vittoria, Marquis
-of Torres Vedras, and Count of Vimiero. Celebrations were also held on
-the site of the battle.
-
-[62] The writer is speaking literally.
-
-[63] The usual French mode of attack.
-
-[64] Not Marshal Soult, but his nephew.
-
-[65] The Proclamation is printed in full in Gurwood’s edition of
-“Wellington’s Dispatches,” vol. vii. pp. 455-7.
-
-[66] Lady Butler’s picture, “Steady, the Drums and Fifes,” represents
-this regiment drawn up on the ridge.
-
-[67] He had recently received reinforcements from England.
-
-[68] Napoleon dominated practically the whole of Northern Europe.
-He was then planning a confederacy which was to consist of Sweden,
-Denmark, and the Grand Duchy of Warsaw.
-
-[69] Wellington’s instructions to Hill will be found in “Dispatches,”
-vol. viii. pp. 180-82.
-
-[70] “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 469.
-
-[71] _i.e._ The province of Leon, in which Ciudad Rodrigo is situated.
-
-[72] “Autobiography,” pp. 64-5.
-
-[73] Sir Herbert Maxwell, vol. i. p. 280.
-
-[74] A monument to the memory of Major-General Gaspard Le Marchant is
-in St Paul’s Cathedral.
-
-[75] It is given in Gurwood, vol. x. pp. 61-66.
-
-[76] Lützen was fought on the 3rd May 1813, and Bautzen on the 20th
-and 21st May. In both battles the Prussians and Russians, who at the
-opening of the Leipzig campaign bore all the fighting for the Allies,
-were defeated. The only result of the armistice was that Austria threw
-in her lot with Russia, Prussia, and Sweden.--See the author’s “Story
-of Napoleon,” pp. 296-299.
-
-[77] “Personal Reminiscences of the Duke of Wellington by Francis, the
-first Earl of Ellesmere,” p. 129. (London, 1903.)
-
-[78] General Sir George T. Napier, pp. 255-260.
-
-[79] Lady Burghersh.
-
-[80] Parliament also granted to him the sum of £400,000.
-
-[81] See the author’s “Story of Nelson,” p. 195.
-
-[82] The complete Memorandum will be found in Gurwood, vol. xii., pp.
-125-9.
-
-[83] “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 619.
-
-[84] “The Campaign of 1815, chiefly in Flanders,” by Lieut.-Colonel
-W. H. James, P.S.C., pp. 14-15.
-
-[85] “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 625. See also “The Life of
-Napoleon I” by J. Holland Rose, Litt.D., vol. ii. p. 455.
-
-[86] James, p. 27.
-
-[87] James, p. 100.
-
-[88] Croker, vol. iii. p. 173.
-
-[89] This interesting relic still exists.
-
-[90] Rye.
-
-[91] Disbanded in 1816.
-
-[92] Rose’s “Napoleon,” vol. ii. p. 487-8.
-
-[93] Rose’s “Napoleon,” vol. ii. p. 488.
-
-[94] Comte Charles van der Burch is the present owner of Hougoumont.
-
-[95] Now the Grenadier Guards.
-
-[96] Rose, vol. ii. p. 496.
-
-[97] “Some of this brigade, particularly the 5th Military, had behaved
-with great gallantry on the 16th, at Quatre Bras.”--Cotton’s, “A Voice
-from Waterloo,” p. 56.
-
-[98] General Gascoigne in the House of Commons, the 29th June 1815.
-
-[99] “Some one asked whether the French Cuirassiers had not come up
-very well at Waterloo? ‘Yes,’ he (Wellington) said, ‘and they went down
-very well too.’”--Croker, vol. i. p. 330.
-
-[100] _I.e._ the guns were not removed, the artillerymen working them
-till the last moment and then seeking refuge in the nearest square, to
-resume their former position when the enemy began to retire.
-
-[101] “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 639.
-
-[102] See the author’s “Story of Napoleon,” p. 135.
-
-[103] Not at Wimbledon, as Mr Asquith said in a speech at the Guildhall
-in 1911.
-
-[104] See Foreword.
-
-[105] The point is somewhat obscure owing to conflicting evidence.--See
-“The Boyhood of a Great King,” by A. M. Broadley, pp. 99-100.
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber’s Notes
-
-
-Punctuation, hyphenation, and spelling were made consistent when a
-predominant preference was found in this book; otherwise they were not
-changed. Spelling variants in quoted passages were not changed.
-
-Simple typographical errors were corrected; occasional unbalanced
-quotation marks retained.
-
-Ambiguous hyphens at the ends of lines were retained.
-
-Index not checked for proper alphabetization or correct page references.
-
-Page 172: “wrapt attention” was printed that way.
-
-Page 177: “downright” was printed that way, rather than as “down right”.
-
-Page 200: Opening quotation mark added before “I march”.
-
-Page 234: “doing their upmost” was printed that way.
-
-Footnote 9 (originally on page 42): Missing closing quotation mark
-added at the end of the footnote.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's The Story of Wellington, by Harold F. B. Wheeler
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF WELLINGTON ***
-
-***** This file should be named 50434-0.txt or 50434-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/0/4/3/50434/
-
-Produced by Shaun Pinder, Charlie Howard, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/50434-0.zip b/old/50434-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 5d14f99..0000000
--- a/old/50434-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h.zip b/old/50434-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index f6fee4c..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/50434-h.htm b/old/50434-h/50434-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 32ae4de..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/50434-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,12631 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Story of Wellington, by Harold F. B. Wheeler.
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 40px;
- margin-right: 40px;
-}
-
-h1,h2 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- margin-top: 2.5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
-}
-
-h1 {line-height: 1; text-align: left;}
-
-h2+p {margin-top: 1.5em;}
-h2 .subhead {display: block; margin-top: .75em; margin-bottom: .75em;}
-
-.transnote h2 {
- margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
-}
-
-.subhead {
- text-indent: 0;
- text-align: center;}
-.subhead+.subhead {font-size: smaller; margin-top: -.25em;}
-
-p {
- text-indent: 1.75em;
- margin-top: .51em;
- margin-bottom: .24em;
- text-align: justify;
-}
-.caption p {text-align: center; text-indent: 0;}
-p.center {text-indent: 0;}
-
-.p0 {margin-top: 0em;}
-.p1 {margin-top: 1em;}
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-.up1 {margin-top: -1.4em;}
-.vspace {line-height: 1.5;}
-
-.in0 {text-indent: 0;}
-.in2 {padding-left: 2em;}
-.in8 {padding-left: 7em;}
-.l2 {padding-right: 2em;}
-
-.small {font-size: 70%;}
-.smaller {font-size: 85%;}
-.larger {font-size: 125%;}
-.large {font-size: 150%;}
-.xxlarge {font-size: 300%;}
-
-p.drop-cap {text-indent: 0; margin-bottom: 1.1em;}
-p.drop-cap:first-letter {
- float: left;
- margin: .13em .2em 0 0;
- font-size: 400%;
- line-height:0.6em;
- text-indent: 0;
- clear: both;
-}
-p.drop-cap.i .smcap1 {margin-left: -.3em;}
-p.drop-cap .smcap1 {margin-left: -.7em;}
-p.drop-cap.b .smcap1 {margin-left: -.95em;}
-p .smcap1 {font-size: 110%;}
-.smcap1 {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.rightx {text-align: right; margin-right: -2em; margin-top: 0;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-.smcap.smaller {font-size: 75%;}
-
-.notbold {font-weight: normal;}
-em {font-style: italic;}
-em.upright {font-style: normal; font-weight: normal;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 4em;
- margin-bottom: 4em;
- margin-left: 33%;
- margin-right: auto;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- max-width: 80%;
- border-collapse: collapse;
-}
-
-.tdl {
- text-align: left;
- vertical-align: top;
- padding-right: 1em;
- padding-left: 1.5em;
- text-indent: -1.5em;
-}
-
-.tdc {text-align: center;}
-
-.tdr {
- text-align: right;
- vertical-align: bottom;
- padding-left: 0;
- padding-right: 0em;
- white-space: nowrap;
-}
-.tdr.top{vertical-align: top; padding-right: .5em; padding-left: 0;}
-#toc td.tdl, #toc td.tdr, #loi td.tdl, #loi td.tdc, #loi td.tdr {padding-bottom: .75em;}
-#loi td.tdl.group, #loi td.tdc.group, #loi td.tdr.group {padding-bottom: 0;}
-.tdl.in2 {padding-left: 3em;}
-.tdl.mid, .tdr.mid {vertical-align: middle;}
-.tdr.l2 {padding-right: 2em;}
-.bl {border-left: thin solid black; padding-left: .33em;}
-.br {border-right: thin solid black; padding-right: .33em;}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- right: 4px;
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: right;
- font-size: 70%;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
- font-style: normal;
- letter-spacing: normal;
- line-height: normal;
- color: #acacac;
- border: 1px solid #acacac;
- background: #ffffff;
- padding: 1px 2px;
-}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: 2em auto 2em auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-img {
- padding: 1em 0 .25em 0;
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-.caption {
- font-weight: bold;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 0;
-}
-.caption p {margin-top: .25em; margin-bottom: 0;}
-
-.captionl {
- text-align: left;
-}
-.in20pct {padding-left: 20%;}
-
-ul {margin-left: 3em; padding-left: 0;}
-li {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 2em; text-indent: -2.5em; text-align: left;}
-
-.footnotes {
- border: thin dashed black;
- margin: 4em 5% 1em 5%;
- padding: .5em 1em .5em 1.7em;
-}
-
-.footnote {font-size: .95em;}
-.footnote p {text-indent: 1em;}
-.footnote p.in0 {text-indent: 0;}
-.footnote p.fn1 {text-indent: -.7em;}
-.footnote p.fn2 {text-indent: -1.1em;}
-.footnote p.fn3 {text-indent: -1.5em;}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: 80%;
- line-height: .7;
- font-size: .75em;
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-.footnote .fnanchor {font-size: .8em;}
-
-.index {margin-left: 1em;}
-ul.index {padding-left: 0;}
-ul, li {list-style-type: none;}
-li.indx, li.ifrst {
- text-align: left;
- padding-left: 1.5em;
- text-indent: -1.5em;
- padding-top: .2em;
-}
-li.ifrst {padding-top: 1em;}
-
-blockquote {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 5%;
- font-size: 95%;
-}
-h2+blockquote {font-size: 100%; margin-bottom: 1.5em;}
-h2+blockquote p {margin-top: 0; margin-bottom: 0;}
-
-.poem-container {
- margin-top: 1.5em; margin-bottom: 1.5em;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 98%;
-}
-
-.poem {
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
- margin-left: 0;
-}
-
-.poem br {display: none;}
-.poem .stanza{padding: 0.5em 0;}
-.poem .attrib {margin-right: -2em; text-align: right;}
-
-.poem span.i0 {display: block; margin-left: 0em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-.poem span.i2 {display: block; margin-left: 1em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-.poem span.i4 {display: block; margin-left: 2em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-.poem span.i8 {display: block; margin-left: 4em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-
-.transnote {
- background-color: #EEE;
- border: thin dotted;
- font-family: sans-serif, serif;
- color: #000;
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 5%;
- margin-top: 4em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- padding: 1em;
-}
-
-.sigright {
- margin-right: 2em;
- text-align: right;}
-
-.gesperrt1 {letter-spacing: .11em; margin-right: -.11em;}
-
-.wspace {word-spacing: .3em;}
-.wspace1 {word-spacing: .6em;}
-
-span.locked {white-space:nowrap;}
-
-.hideme {visibility: hidden;}
-.ad {max-width: 20em; font-size: 95%;}
-.ad p {margin-left: 0; padding-left: 2em; text-indent: -2em;}
-
-@media print, handheld
-{
- h1, .chapter, .newpage {page-break-before: always;}
- h1.nobreak, h2.nobreak, .nobreak {page-break-before: avoid; padding-top: 0;}
- .newpage.p4 {margin-top: 1em;}
-
- p {
- margin-top: .5em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .25em;
- }
-
- table {width: 100%; max-width: 100%;}
-
- .tdl {
- padding-left: .5em;
- text-indent: -.5em;
- padding-right: 0;
- }
-
- p.drop-cap {text-indent: 1.75em; margin-bottom: .24em;}
- p.drop-cap:first-letter {
- float: none;
- font-size: 100%;
- margin-left: 0;
- margin-right: 0;
- text-indent: 1.75em;
- }
-
- p.drop-cap.i .smcap1, p.drop-cap .smcap1,
- p.drop-cap.b .smcap1 {margin-left: 0;}
- p .smcap1 {font-size: 100%;}
- .smcap1 {font-variant: normal;}
-
- .up1 {margin-top: .01em;}
-
-}
-
-@media handheld
-{
- body {margin: 0;}
- h2 {margin-top: 1em;}
-
- hr {
- margin-top: .1em;
- margin-bottom: .1em;
- visibility: hidden;
- color: white;
- width: .01em;
- display: none;
- }
-
- ul {margin-left: 0; padding-left: 0;}
- li {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 1em; text-indent: -1.5em;}
- .rightx {text-align: right; margin-right: 0; margin-top: 0;}
- .index {margin-left: 0;}
-
- blockquote {margin: 1.5em 3% 1.5em 3%;}
-
- .poem-container {text-align: left; margin-left: 5%;}
- .poem {display: block;}
- .poem .attrib {max-width: 25em; margin-right: 0;}
- .poem .stanza {page-break-inside: avoid;}
-
- #loi td.tdl {min-width: 58%;}
- #loi td.tdc, #loi td.tdr {max-width: 20%;}
-
- .footnotes {
- margin: 2em 1em 1em 1em;
- padding: .5em 1em .5em 1.7em;
- }
-
-
- .transnote {
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- margin-left: 2%;
- margin-right: 2%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- padding: .5em;
- }
-}
- </style>
- </head>
-
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-Project Gutenberg's The Story of Wellington, by Harold F. B. Wheeler
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Story of Wellington
-
-Author: Harold F. B. Wheeler
-
-Release Date: November 11, 2015 [EBook #50434]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF WELLINGTON ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Shaun Pinder, Charlie Howard, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 566px;">
- <img src="images/cover.jpg" width="566" height="800" alt="front cover" />
-</div>
-
-<h1 class="wspace">THE STORY OF<br />
-<span class="gesperrt1">WELLINGTON</span>
-</h1>
-
-<hr />
-<div class="ad p4">
-<h2><i>Uniform with this Volume</i></h2>
-
-<p>THE STORY OF NAPOLEON<br />
-<span class="smaller">By <span class="smcap">Harold F.&nbsp;B. Wheeler</span>,
-F.R.Hist.S. With 16 full-page Illustrations.</span></p>
-
-<p>THE STORY OF NELSON<br />
-<span class="smaller">By <span class="smcap">Harold F.&nbsp;B. Wheeler</span>,
-F.R.Hist.S. With 16 full-page Illustrations.</span></p>
-
-<p>FAMOUS VOYAGES OF THE GREAT<br /><span class="in2">DISCOVERERS</span><br />
-<span class="smaller">By <span class="smcap">Eric Wood</span>. With 16 full-page
-Illustrations.</span></p>
-
-<p>THE STORY OF THE CRUSADES<br />
-<span class="smaller">By <span class="smcap">E.&nbsp;M. Wilmot-Buxton</span>,
-F.R.Hist.S. With 16 full-page Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">M. Meredith Williams</span>.</span></p>
-
-<p>STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER<br />
-<span class="smaller">By Mr and Mrs <span class="smcap">William Platt</span>.
-With 16 full-page Illustrations by
-<span class="smcap">M. Meredith Williams</span>.</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div id="i_frontis" class="figcenter" style="width: 449px;">
- <img src="images/i_004.jpg" width="449" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">The Duke writing his Waterloo Despatch</div>
- <p class="in0 notbold"><i>Fr.</i></p>
- <div class="up1 center">Lady Burghersh</div></div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="newpage p4 center xxlarge wspace1">
-THE STORY OF<br />
-<span class="larger">WELLINGTON</span></p>
-
-<p class="center larger vspace"><i>BY</i><br />
-<span class="larger"><span class="smcap">Harold F.&nbsp;B. Wheeler</span> F.R.Hist.S.</span></p>
-
-<p class="p1 center smaller vspace">MEMBER OF THE HISTORICAL ASSOCIATION<br />
-JOINT-AUTHOR OF<br />
-‘NAPOLEON AND THE INVASION OF ENGLAND’ ETC.<br />
-AUTHOR OF<br />
-‘THE MAXIMS OF NAPOLEON’ ‘THE MIND OF NAPOLEON’<br />
-‘THE STORY OF NAPOLEON’ AND ‘THE STORY OF NELSON’
-</p>
-
-<div class="p2 poem-container">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza"><i>
-<span class="i2">‘For this is England’s greatest son,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">He that gain’d a hundred fights,<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Nor ever lost an English gun’<br /></span></i>
-</div>
-<div class="attrib">TENNYSON
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="p2 center vspace wspace">
-LONDON<br />
-<span class="larger">GEORGE G. HARRAP &amp; COMPANY</span><br />
-3 PORTSMOUTH STREET KINGSWAY W.C.<br />
-<span class="smaller">MCMXII</span>
-</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p class="newpage p4 center"><i>
-Illustrations by Ballantyne &amp; Co., Ltd., London<br />
-Printed by Turnbull &amp; Spears, Edinburgh</i>
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p class="newpage p4 center vspace">
-<span class="smaller">DEDICATED TO<br />
-<span class="smcap large">C. ALFRED HAMILTON, Esq</span><br />
-MY LIFE-LONG FRIEND<br />
-<br />
-“<i xml:lang="la" lang="la">Vera amicitia sempiterna est</i>”</span>
-</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_7">7</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="Foreword"></a>Foreword</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">In</span> this, the last of a trio of volumes dealing with
-three great contemporary men of action, I have
-attempted to tell the story, in its main lines, of
-the crowded life of Wellington. The narrative provides
-as substantial a view of Wellington as is possible within
-the limits of my space, but I hope that readers of my
-book will be so interested that they will go on to the
-perusal of its companions, for the careers of Napoleon,
-Nelson, and Wellington should be studied together.
-They are the three sides of a triangle of which Napoleon
-is the base.</p>
-
-<p>The Duke’s career, when compared to the others,
-is “a plain, unvarnished tale,” not altogether devoid
-of romance, certainly not of adventure, but lacking in
-many of the qualities which have endeared less notable
-men. It would be obviously untrue to state that
-Wellington lacked humanity, but he was certainly
-deficient in that attractive personal magnetism so
-evident in Nelson. Speaking broadly, he did not
-repose that confidence in his subordinates which was
-one of the great sea-captain’s most marked characteristics,
-and he often said hard things of the men
-under him. Nelson is “the darling Hero of England”;
-Wellington will always be known as the Iron Duke.
-If it ever became the fashion to canonize military and
-naval men, Nelson’s nimbus would be of rosemary,
-Wellington’s of steel. The mob never broke the
-windows of Merton Place, but it shattered every exposed
-pane in Apsley House. The incident arose from<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_8">8</a></span>
-his conscientious opposition to reform, and occurred in
-1831, sixteen years after the battle of Waterloo. A
-little over a decade later, an immense mob cheered
-him as he proceeded up Constitution Hill. His acknowledgment
-was to point to the iron shutters of his house
-when he reached Hyde Park Corner. They had been
-put up after the bombardment by brickbats, and were
-never taken down during his lifetime.</p>
-
-<p>In a way, Wellington is the typical John Bull of our
-fancy. He gloried in an open-air life, he enjoyed sport,
-he was a man wedded to duty, stern and uncompromising
-once his mind was made up. We love to imagine that
-the average Briton displays the same characteristics,
-although we know at heart that he does not do so, and
-that the secret of our material success as a nation is
-our extraordinary power of absorption, of “setting
-our sail to every passing breeze,” of compromising
-provided we get the best of the bargain.</p>
-
-<p>This is how the Duke appeared to a foreigner, the
-Duchesse de Dino, Talleyrand’s niece: “He has a very
-exact memory, and never quotes incorrectly. He
-forgets nothing, and exaggerates nothing, and if his
-conversation is a little dry and military, it attracts by
-its fairness and perfect propriety. His tone is excellent,
-and no woman has ever to be on her guard against
-the turn that the conversation may take.” In later
-years Wellington’s memory failed somewhat. He was
-invariably precise, always a soldier, and never given
-to what is generally known as small talk. In a word,
-he commanded.</p>
-
-<p>A more intimate and less familiar view of Wellington
-is afforded us in the diary of Benjamin Robert Haydon,
-who painted the Duke’s portrait at Walmer Castle in
-the autumn of 1839. During breakfast, he tells us,
-“six dear, healthy, noisy children were brought to the
-windows. ‘Let them in,’ said the Duke, and in they
-came, and rushed over to him, saying, ‘How d’ye do,
-Duke? How d’ye do, Duke?’ One boy, young Grey,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_9">9</a></span>
-roared, ‘I want some tea, Duke!’ ‘You shall have
-it if you promise not to slop it over me, as you did
-yesterday.’ Toast and tea were then in demand.
-Three got on one side, and three on the other, and he
-hugged ’em all. Tea was poured out, and I saw little
-Grey try to slop it over the Duke’s frock coat. Sir
-Astley [Cooper] said, ‘You did not expect to see this.’</p>
-
-<p>“They all then rushed out on the leads, by the cannon,
-and after breakfast I saw the Duke romping with the
-whole of them, and one of them gave his Grace a
-tremendous thump. I went round to my bedroom.
-The children came to the window, and a dear little
-black-eyed girl began romping. I put my head out
-and said, ‘I’ll catch you.’ Just as I did this the Duke,
-who did not see me, put his head out at the door close
-to my room, No. 10, which leads to the leads, and said,
-‘I’ll catch ye! Ha, ha, I’ve got ye!’ at which they
-all ran away. He looked at them and laughed and
-went in.”</p>
-
-<p>That is a very human picture of the grim warrior
-when the sword had been put aside for ever and the
-smoke of battle was cleared. “I hit his grand, upright,
-manly expression,” Haydon adds. “He looked like
-an eagle of the gods who had put on human shape, and
-had got silvery with age and service.... His colour
-was fresh. All the portraits are too pale.... ’Twas
-a noble head. I saw nothing of that peculiar expression
-of mouth the sculptors give him, bordering on simpering.
-His colour was beautiful and fleshy, his lips
-compressed and energetic.”</p>
-
-<p>From this passive scene in the evening of his days
-let us turn to the more stirring days of the storming of
-Badajoz for our final portrait of the Duke, for it is in
-the field that we like to remember him. The glimpse is
-afforded us by Robert Blakeney, one of the boy heroes
-of the Peninsular War. “I galloped off,” he writes,
-“to where Lord Wellington had taken his station:
-this was easily discerned by means of two fireballs<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_10">10</a></span>
-shot out from the fortress at the commencement of the
-attack, which continued to burn brilliantly along the
-water-cut which divided the 3rd from the other divisions.
-Near the end of this channel, behind a rising mound,
-were Lord Wellington and his personal staff, screened
-from the enemy’s direct fire, but within range of shells.
-One of his staff sat down by his side with a candle to
-enable the general to read and write all his communications
-and orders relative to the passing events. I stood
-not far from his lordship. But due respect prevented
-any of us bystanders from approaching so near as to
-enable us to ascertain the import of the reports which
-he was continually receiving; yet it was very evident
-that the information which they conveyed was far
-from flattering; and the recall on the bugles was again
-and again repeated. But about half-past eleven o’clock
-an officer rode up at full speed on a horse covered with
-foam, and announced the joyful tidings that General
-Picton had made a lodgment within the castle by
-escalade, and had withdrawn the troops from the
-trenches to enable him to maintain his dearly purchased
-hold. Lord Wellington was evidently delighted, but
-exclaimed, ‘What! abandon the trenches?’ and
-ordered two regiments of the 5th Division instantly
-to replace those withdrawn. I waited to hear no more,
-but, admiring the prompt genius which immediately
-provided for every contingency, I mounted my horse.”</p>
-
-<p>I shall not attempt to enumerate the lengthy list of
-authorities I have consulted in writing this volume,
-but special mention must be made of Professor Oman’s
-monumental “History of the Peninsular War,” which
-corrects Napier in many important points. Four
-volumes have now been published, and I am under
-obligation to the eminent scholar whose name appears
-on the title-pages for his kindness in allowing me to
-use without reserve the labour of many years. The
-“Cambridge Modern History” (vol. ix.), Rose’s
-“Napoleon,” Croker’s “Correspondence and Diaries,”<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_11">11</a></span>
-Siborne’s “Waterloo Letters,” the “Lives” of
-Wellington by Sir Herbert Maxwell, W.&nbsp;H. Maxwell,
-Gleig, Hooper, Yonge, and many others have been laid
-under contribution, as well as contemporary works
-by soldiers who fought with the Iron Duke. As I have
-endeavoured to let Wellington speak for himself whenever
-possible, Gurwood’s “Dispatches” have been
-frequently consulted, and for sidelights I have had
-access to a large number of volumes of correspondence,
-autobiography, and biography in which he plays a
-part, however insignificant.</p>
-
-<p>Finally, I must express the hope that my readers,
-as they progress over the field which I have endeavoured
-to open up to them, will share the love of the strong,
-silent Man of Duty which has grown upon me as I have
-become more intimate with the story of his life.</p>
-
-<div class="poem-container">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza"><i>
-<span class="i0">The path of duty was the way to glory.<br /></span>
-<span class="i8">His work is done.<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">But while the races of mankind endure,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Let his great example stand<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Colossal, seen of every land.</span></i>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="sigright larger">
-HAROLD F.&nbsp;B. WHEELER
-</p>
-
-<p class="smaller"><span class="smcap">Northwood, Middlesex</span>.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_13">13</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="Contents"></a>Contents</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
-<table id="toc" summary="Contents">
- <tr class="small">
- <td class="tdr">CHAP.</td>
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdr">PAGE</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">I.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Fool of the Family</span> (1769&ndash;93)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_17">17</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">II.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Wellington’s Baptism of Fire</span> (1794&ndash;97)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_28">28</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">III.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Campaign of Seringapatam</span> (1797&ndash;1800)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_35">35</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">IV.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">War with the Marhattás</span> (1801&ndash;3)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_47">47</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">V.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Last Years in India</span> (1803&ndash;5)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_58">58</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">VI.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Service in England, Ireland, and Denmark</span> (1805&ndash;7)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_68">68</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">VII.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The First Battles of the Peninsular War</span> (1808)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_76">76</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">VIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Victory Abroad and Displeasure at Home</span> (1808&ndash;9)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_90">90</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">IX.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Sir Arthur’s Return to Portugal</span> (1809)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_99">99</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">X.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Talavera</span> (1809)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_110">110</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XI.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Wellesley’s Defence of Portugal</span> (1809&ndash;10)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_119">119</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XII.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Lines of Torres Vedras</span> (1810)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_128">128</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Masséna beats a Retreat</span> (1810&ndash;11)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_137">137</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XIV.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Siege of Ciudad Rodrigo</span> (1811&ndash;12)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_154">154</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XV.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Badajoz and Salamanca</span> (1812)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_165">165</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XVI.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Closing Battles of the Peninsular War</span> (1812&ndash;14)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_181">181</a><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_14">14</a></span></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XVII.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Prelude to the Waterloo Campaign</span> (1814&ndash;15)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_200">200</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XVIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Ligny and Quatre Bras</span> (1815)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_210">210</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XIX.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Waterloo</span> (1815)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_218">218</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XX.</td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Wellington the Statesman</span> (1815&ndash;52)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_236">236</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Index</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_253">253</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Maps</span>&mdash;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdl in2">(1) <span class="smcap">Wellington’s Campaigns in India</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_37">37</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdl in2">(2) <span class="smcap">Wellington’s Peninsular Campaigns</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_77">77</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdl in2">(3) <span class="smcap">The Battle of Waterloo</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_219">219</a></td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_15">15</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="Illustrations"></a>Illustrations</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
-<table id="loi" summary="Illustrations">
- <tr class="small">
- <td> </td>
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdr">PAGE</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Duke writing his Waterloo Dispatch</span></td>
- <td class="tdr l2">(<i>Lady Burghersh</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_frontis"><i>Frontis&shy;piece</i></a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Arthur and the Marquis de Pignerol</span></td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>George W. Joy</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_20">20</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">“<span class="smcap">The Full Force of the Blast</span>”</td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>Thomas Maybank</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_32">32</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">“<span class="smcap">He was hurled down by the Defenders</span>”</td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>Thomas Maybank</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_54">54</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Sir Harry Smith and the Spanish Patriot</span></td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>Thomas Maybank</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_82">82</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Gallant Piper at Vimiero</span></td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>Thomas Maybank</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_92">92</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">“<span class="smcap">You are too young, Sir, to be killed!</span>”</td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>Thomas Maybank</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_128">128</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Retreat from Coimbra</span></td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>Thomas Maybank</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_138">138</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Wellington at Badajoz congratulating Colonel Watson</span></td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>R. Caton Woodville</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_168">168</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The End of Breakfast</span></td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>Thomas Maybank</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_172">172</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Charge of Pakenham’s Third Division at Salamanca</span></td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>R. Caton Woodville</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_178">178</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Flight of the French through Vittoria</span></td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>Robert Hillingford</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_190">190</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The French Retreat over the Pyrenees</span></td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>R. Caton Woodville</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_198">198</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl group"><span class="smcap">Farm of Mont St Jean</span></td>
- <td class="tdc mid group bl br" rowspan="4">(<i>Photographs by<br />C.&nbsp;A. Hamilton</i>, <i>Hornsey</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr mid group" rowspan="4"><a href="#ip_222">222</a><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_16">16</a></span></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl group"><span class="smcap">Château of Hougoumont</span></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl group"><span class="smcap">La Belle Alliance Inn</span></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Farm of La Haye Sainte</span></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Desperate Stand of the Guards at Hougoumont</span></td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>R. Caton Woodville</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_226">226</a></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Charge of the Scots Greys at Waterloo</td>
- <td class="tdr">(<i>R. Caton Woodville</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_234">234</a></td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_17">17</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="wspace"><span class="large">The<br /><span class="larger">Story of Wellington</span></span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-<h2 class="nobreak"><a id="CHAPTER_I"></a>CHAPTER I<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">The Fool of the Family</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1769&ndash;93)</span></h2>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p class="in0">“<i>I don’t know what I shall do with my awkward son Arthur.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="p0 rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Lady Mornington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap b"><span class="smcap1">Gathering</span> clouds, dark and ominous, obscured
-the political horizon in the year 1769. The
-habitués of London coffee-houses discussed
-one of three things&mdash;“The Letters of Junius,” the most
-remarkable series of political exposures ever penned;
-the election of the notorious John Wilkes for Middlesex;
-and the rebellious conduct of the North American
-colonists. On the other side of the Channel the Duc
-de Choiseul was skilfully planning ways and means of
-fanning into a fierce outburst the flames of discontent
-now flickering in the West. To heap coals of fire on
-the country which, during the Seven Years’ War
-(1756&ndash;63), had enforced her claims to Canada and India,
-would be a triumph worthy of the statesman who had
-banished the Jesuits from the hereditary possessions
-of Louis XV.</p>
-
-<p>Had the people who lived in those stirring times been
-gifted with the power of penetrating the future, their
-eyes would have turned in the eventful year of 1769
-from the larger stages to the comparatively insignificant<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_18">18</a></span>
-islands of Corsica and Ireland, for the former was the
-birthplace of Napoleon and the latter of Wellington,
-and both were born in 1769.</p>
-
-<p>There are other remarkable coincidences connected
-with the childhood of Napoleon and Wellington. Their
-respective fathers were easy-going, unpractical men,
-their mothers were women of marked force of character,
-left widows early in life with large families. In addition,
-the hero of Austerlitz was the fourth child of Letizia
-Bonaparte, his conqueror at Waterloo the fourth son
-of the Countess of Mornington.</p>
-
-<p>A certain amount of obscurity is associated with
-their juvenile days. Although the date of the entrance
-into the world of “the little Corporal” is now fairly
-well established, it was long before historians ceased to
-discuss it. There is still much uncertainty as to that of
-Wellington. The Duke was always vague on the point,
-and celebrated his birthday on the 1st May, which is the
-day following that on which he was baptized at St Peter’s,
-Dublin, presuming the parish register to be correct.<a id="FNanchor_1" href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">1</a>
-Lady Mornington announced that Arthur was a Mayday
-boy, but her nurse as stoutly maintained that the
-event took place on the 6th March. Dangan Castle,
-West Meath, and Mornington House, Marion Street,
-Dublin, contest the honour of being his birthplace.
-The witness for the country home is the afore-mentioned
-nurse; a prescription of the physician who attended
-Lady Mornington about the period was sent to a chemist
-in Ireland’s capital, and attests the claim of the town
-mansion. The matter is not of prime importance, but
-serves to show the somewhat casual habits of a less
-practical generation than our own.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_19">19</a></span>
-The real family name of the Westleys, Wesleys, or
-Wellesleys&mdash;the different forms were all used&mdash;was
-Colley or Cowley, but the Duke’s grandfather inherited
-the estates of his kinsman, Garret Wesley, on condition
-that he assumed that surname. He became Baron
-Mornington in 1747. It was the son of this fortunate
-individual, also a Garret, who was created the first
-Earl of Mornington in the year previous to his marriage
-to the eldest daughter of Viscount Dungannon. They
-became the parents of the future Duke of Wellington
-as well as of several other children.</p>
-
-<p>Of Arthur Wellesley’s scholastic career little can be
-ascertained with certainty. We know that he spent
-a little while at a preparatory school in Chelsea, then
-a very different place from what it is now, and that he
-and his eldest brother, Lord Wellesley, who had succeeded
-his father on his sire’s death in 1781, were at the
-same house at Eton. Unfortunately the two rooms
-which they occupied are now demolished. While it
-would be incorrect to call Arthur a dull boy, he certainly
-displayed little interest in learning. Indeed, his
-mother was so cynical regarding his ability, or want of
-it, that she called him “the fool of the family.”</p>
-
-<p>The dictum that Waterloo was won on the playing
-fields of Eton may have been true so far as other officers
-were concerned, but the younger Wellesley showed not
-the slightest interest in games. He preferred the
-fiddle to cricket, for he inherited his father’s passion
-for music. “I was a player on the violin once myself,
-sir,” he mentioned to an acquaintance in after years,
-“but I soon found that fiddling and soldiering didn’t
-agree&mdash;so I gave it up, sir! I gave it up!” He was a
-great admirer of Handel’s compositions.</p>
-
-<p>One precious anecdote regarding his life at the
-famous public school has been spared to posterity, and
-appropriately enough it is a record of his first serious
-fight&mdash;not with a sword, but with fisticuffs. Robert
-Smith, brother of Sydney Smith, the witty divine and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_20">20</a></span>
-essayist, happened to be bathing in the river when
-Wellesley was passing. Prompted by some evil or
-jocular spirit the latter picked up a handful of small
-stones and began to pelt his fellow student. Smith
-yelled that he would thrash him if he did not stop.
-Wellesley defiantly dared him to do so. The enraged
-“Bobus” promptly waded out and accepted the
-challenge, which he regretted before many rounds had
-been fought.</p>
-
-<p>Although Wellesley was by no means of a pugnacious
-disposition, a second fight, in which he was not victorious,
-took place during a holiday spent at the Welsh home
-of his maternal grandfather, Lord Dungannon. His
-opponent was a young blacksmith, named Hughes,
-who lived to hear of the mighty exploits of the Iron
-Duke. He was never tired of telling how he once
-conquered the vanquisher of Napoleon. It was his
-one title to fame.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_20" class="figcenter" style="width: 441px;">
- <img src="images/i_023.jpg" width="441" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>Arthur and the Marquis de Pignerol</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">George W. Joy</p></div></div>
-
-<p>After leaving Eton, Wellesley was taken to Brussels
-in 1784 by his mother, who found the many attractions
-of London society a heavy tax on a slender purse, for
-she had removed to the Metropolis on the death of her
-husband. As her son seemed to take little or no interest
-in anything but the army, and as that service was then
-considered a desirable alternative to the Church for
-the fool of the family, Lady Mornington accepted the
-offer of some friends to provide for his military education.
-Whatever ability her fourth son displayed seems to
-have been less obvious to her than to others, as frequently
-happens. “They are all,” she writes with reference
-to her family, “I think, endowed with excellent abilities
-except Arthur, and he would probably not be wanting,
-if only there was more energy in his nature; but he is
-so wanting in this respect, that I really do not know
-what to do with him.” However, the youth whom she
-described as being “food for powder and nothing more”
-was packed across the frontier to Angers. She herself
-returned to London in 1785, Wellesley proceeding to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_21">21</a></span>
-the quaint old town associated with King John of
-England. Here he had his first encounter with the
-French, and there is a celebrated picture showing him
-in conversation with the Marquis of Pignerol.</p>
-
-<p>Pignerol, who presided over an Academy, not exclusively
-devoted to the training of would-be soldiers
-as some writers have assumed, was an engineer officer,
-and did his best to initiate the Irish lad into some of
-the mysteries of the science of war. As his pupil only
-remained at Angers for about twelve months, he cannot
-have learned more than the rudiments, but he assimilated
-French with comparative ease. Unlike Napoleon,
-who was never happier than when he was poring over
-military books at Brienne, Wellesley enjoyed much
-good society. He made the acquaintance of the Duc
-de Brissac, who seems to have been a delightful foster-father
-of the scholars, for he frequently entertained
-them at his château. The Duc de Praslin, the Abbé
-Siéyès, later one of the French Consuls, D’Archambault,
-Talleyrand’s brother, Jaucourt, who afterwards
-became Secretary for Foreign Affairs under
-Louis XVIII, were all on his visiting list. It is quite
-probable that among his schoolmates was Chateaubriand,
-destined to fill an honoured place in the world
-of letters, but of this, said the Duke, he was not absolutely
-certain.</p>
-
-<p>The British army was not then the skilfully organised
-fighting-machine it has since become. Entrance into
-its ranks as an officer was not difficult, provided one
-had financial support and influence. This explains the
-rapid promotion of Wellesley. At the age of seventeen
-he began his military career as an ensign in a Foot
-regiment, his gazette being dated the 7th March 1787.
-Nine months later he was promoted lieutenant into the
-76th. By successive steps he rose to be captain (1791),
-major (1793), lieutenant-colonel (1793), and colonel
-(1796). A colonel at twenty-seven is beyond the
-dreams of mortal men to-day, and this advancement<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_22">22</a></span>
-contrasts oddly with the slow progress of Nelson,
-Wellesley’s great naval contemporary, who had to
-depend upon his own unaided merits for promotion.
-In 1793, six years following his first appointment, he was
-placed in command of the 33rd Foot, after having
-experience of the cavalry by serving in both the 12th
-and 18th Light Dragoons.</p>
-
-<p>A little influence went a long way in those casual
-times; there was nothing so valuable as “a friend
-at court.” Unlike many aristocratic nobodies who
-secured high position, Wellesley afterwards proved his
-worth, but he scarcely would have ascended the military
-ladder with such astonishing quickness had not his
-brother Richard held office under the younger Pitt.
-Lord Westmorland, Lord-Lieutenant of Ireland, also
-took a fancy to him and made him one of his <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">aides-de-camp</i>.</p>
-
-<p>In 1790, when he was still in his twenty-first year,
-he entered the Irish House of Commons as Member of
-Parliament for Trim, County Meath, a “pocket
-borough” of the Wellesley family. We are told by
-Sir Jonah Barrington, who made his acquaintance
-some three years later, that the young soldier “was
-then ruddy-faced and juvenile in appearance, and
-popular enough among the young men of his age and
-station. His address was unpolished; he occasionally
-spoke in Parliament, but not successfully, and never
-on important subjects; and evinced no promise of that
-unparalleled celebrity and splendour which he has
-since reached, and whereto intrepidity and decision,
-good luck, and great military science have justly combined
-to elevate him.” The same authority then
-proceeds to introduce us to Lord Castlereagh, and adds:
-“At the period to which I allude, I feel confident nobody
-could have predicted that one of those young gentlemen
-would become the most celebrated English general of
-his era, and the other one of the most mischievous
-statesmen and unfortunate ministers that has ever<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_23">23</a></span>
-appeared in modern Europe.<a id="FNanchor_2" href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">2</a> However, it is observable
-that to the personal intimacy and reciprocal friendship
-of those two individuals they mutually owed the
-extent of their respective elevation and celebrity: Sir
-Arthur Wellesley never would have had the chief command
-in Spain but for the ministerial manœuvring
-and aid of Lord Castlereagh; and Lord Castlereagh
-never could have stood his ground as a minister, but
-for Lord Wellington’s successes.”</p>
-
-<p>Another contemporary tells quite a different story
-of Wellesley’s ability, and as he also heard him in 1793
-it is printed here in order that the reader may not be
-prejudiced by Barrington’s opinion. So much is determined
-by the point-of-view of the witness. The
-occasion was a debate on the perennial question of the
-Roman Catholics. Captain Wellesley’s remarks, we
-are told, “were terse and pertinent, his delivery
-fluent, and his manner unembarrassed.” Gleig, who
-was intimately acquainted with the Duke, says that he
-“seems to have spoken but rarely, and never at any
-length. His votes were of course given in support of
-the party to which he belonged, but otherwise he
-entered very little into the business of the House.” He
-mentions but one incident connected with this period,
-namely, Wellesley’s attachment to the Hon. Catherine
-Pakenham, an acknowledged Society beauty and a
-daughter of Baron Longford. His Lordship, possessing
-a keen eye for the practical affairs of life, objected to
-the match on the score of lack of money, but there
-is little doubt that the couple came to a mutual
-understanding.</p>
-
-<p>That Wellesley took more than a casual interest in his<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_24">24</a></span>
-military duties is evident, and if he did not display
-the inherent genius of Napoleon he certainly went
-about his duties in a highly commendable and workmanlike
-manner. For instance, he had scarcely donned
-the uniform of his first regiment before he entered
-into calculations regarding the weight of the accoutrements,
-ammunition, and other paraphernalia carried
-by a private when in marching order. For this purpose
-he ordered a soldier to be weighed both with and without
-his trappings.</p>
-
-<p>“I wished,” he says, “to have some measure of the
-power of the individual man compared with the weight
-he was to carry and the work he was expected to do.
-I was not so young as not to know that since I had
-undertaken a profession I had better endeavour to
-understand it.” He adds, “It must always be kept
-in mind that the power of the greatest armies depends
-upon what the individual soldier is capable of doing
-and bearing,” a maxim which still holds good, notwithstanding
-the many changes effected in the course
-of a century and a quarter. However excellent the
-gun, it is the man behind it which determines the
-issue.</p>
-
-<p>It was not until 1794 that Wellesley underwent the
-hardships of active service. Before that phase of his
-career is detailed we must make a hasty and general
-survey of the wide and scattered field of action. The
-occasion was the second year of the great strife which
-occupied the attention of Europe, with little intermittance,
-for over twenty years. The gauntlet had been
-flung down by France in 1792, when war was declared
-against the Holy Roman Empire, with which Prussia
-made common cause. The campaign was an eye-opener
-to all Europe, for although the Prussians and
-Austrians began well they did not follow up their
-advantages, particularly when the road to Châlons
-and Paris lay open to the former. At Valmy the
-Prussians were defeated, and subsequently withdrew<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_25">25</a></span>
-across the frontier in a deplorable condition of dearth
-and disease. Dumouriez then invaded Flanders, and
-was victorious over the Austrians at Jemappes, a
-success followed by the fall of Mons, Malines, Ghent,
-Brussels, Antwerp, and Namur, while smaller towns,
-such as Tournay, Ostend, and Bruges welcomed the
-victorious troops with open arms as the heralds of a
-new era.</p>
-
-<p>In Savoy the scanty Sardinian forces were routed by
-Montesquiou, and the country annexed, as was Nice by
-Anselme. With the dawning of 1793 Belgium shared
-a similar fate, and the occupation of Dutch territory
-was decided on. This latter was an extremely foolish
-move, as events soon proved.</p>
-
-<p>England and Holland became involved in the second
-month of the new year, when the French Convention
-announced hostile intentions to both Powers. Previous
-to this, Great Britain had maintained a strict neutrality.
-She now commenced proceedings by sending 10,000
-troops to Holland under the incompetent Duke of York,
-where they united with a similar force of Hessians and
-Hanoverians, whose expenses were met by English
-gold, a plentiful supply of which also found its way
-into the coffers of other Powers. The Island Kingdom
-and Russia had already allied themselves, although the
-Czarina’s designs on Poland precluded immediate
-co-operation, and during the next few months Sardinia,
-Spain, Naples, Prussia, the Holy Roman Empire, and
-Portugal joined in mutual support.</p>
-
-<p>Dumouriez duly appeared on Dutch territory, but
-was compelled to retreat on Flanders by the defeat
-of the general engaged in besieging Maestricht. On
-resuming offensive operations he himself lost the battle
-of Neerwinden. Within a fortnight the French had
-abandoned all their conquests in Belgium, which again
-passed into the possession of Austria. Dumouriez
-took refuge in the camp of the Imperialists after
-negotiating with Coburg, the commander of the “White<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_26">26</a></span>
-Coats,” to place the frontier fortresses into his hands
-and to unite the two armies. Neither arrangement
-was carried through, for the defeated general found it
-more prudent to fly the country.<a id="FNanchor_3" href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">3</a> Mayence, on the
-Rhine, was invested by the Prussians, to whom it
-eventually capitulated, and Valenciennes and Condé
-were successfully besieged by the Austrians and British.
-All three fortresses fell during July 1793.</p>
-
-<p>The tide was beginning to turn even in France, for
-Toulon and Lyons openly revolted, and civil war broke
-out in La Vendée. Had the Allies made a concerted
-effort, the defeat of the Republican cause could scarcely
-have failed to follow, but they quarrelled amongst
-themselves instead of following up their advantage.
-They squandered their strength by dividing their army
-into detachments, and much precious time was wasted
-by the diversion on Dunkirk made by the English,
-Hanoverian, Hessian, and some of the Austrian forces,
-about 37,000 strong.</p>
-
-<p>The Revolutionary Government, augmenting its
-fighting body, instructed General Houchard to attack
-the enemy before the historic seaport. As a sequel to
-this movement the Duke of York was forced to retreat
-and abandon forty guns and much of his baggage.
-Houchard’s triumph was short-lived. He met with
-disaster at the hands of the Austrians, and paid the
-price of failure with his head. With the Convention
-defeat spelt death. Professing the Cause of Humanity,
-it refused to be humanitarian.</p>
-
-<p>By the middle of September all the important fortresses
-which blockaded the way of the Allies to the Capital
-had fallen, with the exception of Maubeuge. The
-victory of Jourdan, the successor of Houchard, over
-the covering force at Wattignies saved the situation,
-and on the 17th October the French marched into<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_27">27</a></span>
-Maubeuge. On the Upper Rhine the Allies found
-themselves in possession of Metz only, at the end of
-1793. In the south-west of Europe the campaign made
-no further progress, and the Republican cause gained
-fresh impetus by the crushing of the royalist risings
-at Lyons and Toulon. It will be remembered that
-Napoleon won his first laurels in helping to subjugate
-the great arsenal in the south of France, and in forcing
-the withdrawal of the British fleet under Hood which
-had gone to support the rebellious inhabitants.</p>
-
-<p>These facts, dry as dust though they may be, are
-essential to a correct understanding of the part played
-by Wellington in the early days of the Great War
-detailed in the following chapter.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_28">28</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_II"></a>CHAPTER II<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Wellington’s Baptism of Fire</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1794&ndash;97)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>I learnt what one ought not to do, and that is always something.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">The</span> pages of military romance teem with references
-to the disappointed lover who seeks
-to assuage his sorrow by active service. In
-actual life one doubts whether such things often happen,
-but it appears that it was true of Arthur Wellesley.
-He asked his eldest brother to use his influence with
-Pitt to persuade Lord Westmorland to send him “as
-major to one of the flank corps,” his own regiment
-being “the last for service.” The request was refused,
-and the young officer had to wait until May 1794.
-Orders were then issued for the 33rd to proceed on
-foreign service as part of a contingent under Lord
-Moira which was urgently required to reinforce the
-Duke of York.</p>
-
-<p>The Allies had not only experienced a series of defeats,
-but Prussia had withdrawn many of her forces on the
-Rhine for service in Poland, the dismemberment of
-which seemed to offer more tangible advantages than
-the protracted warfare against “armed opinions.” As
-a member of the Holy Roman Empire she had of
-necessity to supply 20,000 troops&mdash;a mere handful&mdash;and
-she announced her intention of merely fulfilling this
-obligation. Again British gold came to the rescue,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_29">29</a></span>
-and Prussia, by a treaty signed on the 19th April 1794,
-agreed to keep 62,000 men at the disposal of the Allies
-in return for a handsome subsidy. The unfortunate
-Austrian general, Mack, was then given command of
-the new campaign. The fatal mistake was repeated
-of dividing the army, with the result that while
-the Imperialists under Clerfait were forced to retreat
-on Tournay, the Duke of York, aided by Prince
-Schwartzenberg, secured an advantage at Troisville.
-A series of actions around Tourcoing followed on the
-16th to the 18th May, during which his Highness
-narrowly escaped being made a prisoner, owing partly
-to his having been left isolated by the cutting off of his
-communications, and partly to a praiseworthy determination
-to hold the positions his troops had gained.
-At Pont-à-chin, near Tournay, the repeated attempts
-of Pichegru to secure the village ended in disaster.
-On the 26th June the Austrians, in their endeavour to
-relieve Charleroi, which had surrendered to the growing
-forces of the French under Jourdan a few hours before,
-were forced to retreat from the plains of Fleurus. “The
-loss of Flanders,” says Alison, “immediately followed
-a contest which an enterprizing general would have
-converted into the most decisive triumph.” The Duke
-of York, having sustained a reverse at Oudenarde, was
-also retreating, intent upon covering Antwerp and
-Holland.</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley arrived at Ostend with his regiment in
-June 1794, from whence he was sent to Antwerp, on
-which the Duke of York and the Prince of Orange
-shortly afterwards fell back, while Moira marched to
-Malines. The Colonel held that his senior officer
-would have been better advised had he and his troops
-proceeded up the Scheldt or the Maes in boats, an
-opinion subsequently confirmed by events.</p>
-
-<p>After settling necessary matters Wellesley carried
-out his instructions and reached the Duke of York
-several days before Moira was in touch with him. It<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_30">30</a></span>
-was a moral victory for the young officer, and doubtless
-served the very useful purpose of stimulating his ambition.</p>
-
-<p>For three months the Duke of York and the Prince
-of Orange remained at Antwerp. The Commander of
-the Dutch troops then retired towards the Rhine, and
-the former moved towards Holland. During the march
-General Abercromby was told to secure the village of
-Boxtel, captured on the previous evening by one of
-Pichegru’s divisions. A desperate affray ensued, and
-notwithstanding the intrepid bravery of the British
-infantry, cavalry, and artillery, it ended in disaster.
-It is extremely probable that the entire force would
-have been annihilated but for Wellesley’s promptitude
-in covering the retreat. No opposition was offered
-until the British were passing through a wood, when a
-masked battery opened fire. A little later there was
-considerable confusion, and a body of French Hussars
-charged forward only to meet Wellesley’s battalion
-drawn across the road. They were repulsed, thanks to
-the valour of the young commander.</p>
-
-<p>Throughout an extremely severe winter the British
-were continually pressed by the ardent Republicans.
-From October to January 1795 Wellesley held a post
-on the Waal, and the arduous nature of his duties is
-described by him in letters written at the time. “At
-present,” he says on the 20th December 1794, “the
-French keep us in a perpetual state of alarm; we turn
-out once, sometimes twice, every night; the officers
-and men are harassed to death, and if we are not relieved,
-I believe there will be very few of the latter
-remaining shortly. I have not had the clothes off my
-back for a long time, and generally spend the greatest
-part of the night upon the bank of the river, notwithstanding
-which I have entirely got rid of that disorder
-which was near killing me at the close of the summer
-campaign. Although the French annoy us much at
-night, they are very entertaining during the daytime;
-they are perpetually chattering with our officers and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_31">31</a></span>
-soldiers,<a id="FNanchor_4" href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">4</a> and dance the <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">carmagnol</i> upon the opposite
-bank whenever we desire them; but occasionally the
-spectators on our side are interrupted in the middle of
-a dance by a cannon ball from theirs.”</p>
-
-<p>It is a genial, good-natured message, but Wellesley
-always held his feelings well under control. In the
-above he chose to reveal the humorous aspect of the
-long-drawn-out agony. There was plenty to complain
-about had he desired. The food supply was deficient;
-the wounded had to bear their agonies with the patience
-of Stoics, because the stock of medicines ran short;
-and the general privation was terrible. A pitiful lack
-of foresight characterised the whole campaign. What
-could be expected of a Commander-in-Chief who gave
-preference to the pleasures of the table if a dispatch
-arrived during a meal, and contemptuously remarked,
-“That will keep till the morning”? During the time
-of his sojourn on the Waal, Wellesley “only saw once
-one general from the headquarters,<a id="FNanchor_5" href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">5</a> which was old Sir
-David Dundas.... We had letters from England,
-and I declare that those letters told us more of what
-was passing at headquarters than we learnt from the
-headquarters ourselves.... It has always been a
-marvel to me how any of us escaped.”</p>
-
-<p>That “old Sir David Dundas” thought very highly
-of the young officer’s conduct is evident. When he
-succeeded as Commander-in-Chief of the British forces,
-on the recall of the Duke of York in the following
-December, Wellesley was appointed Brigadier and given
-command of the rear guard. By a series of retreats
-the tattered army eventually reached Bremen. It
-embarked for England early in 1795.</p>
-
-<p>In summing up Wellesley’s first experience of field
-service, Earl Roberts states that it was, “no doubt,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_32">32</a></span>
-extremely valuable to Wellington in after years. It
-must have taught him that soldiers even of the best
-quality, well drilled, disciplined and equipped, cannot
-hope to be successful unless proper arrangements are
-made for their supply and transport; and unless those
-who direct the operations have formed some definite
-plan of action, and have sufficient zeal and professional
-knowledge to carry it out. If the French generals had
-taken full advantage of the opportunities which the
-incapacity of the English and German commanders
-threw in their way, the British force must have been
-annihilated.”</p>
-
-<p>One is inclined to doubt whether the troops were
-“well drilled, disciplined and equipped” at this
-period. The gross incompetence of many of the
-highest officers is abundantly proved, and continued
-lack of success speedily reduces the vital strength of
-any regiment.</p>
-
-<p>As already noted, the commissariat was execrable.
-We have it on the authority of one who was present
-that during the retreat hundreds of invalids succumbed,
-“whilst the shameful neglect that then pervaded the
-medical department, rendered the hospitals nothing
-better than slaughter-houses for the wounded and the
-sick.”</p>
-
-<div id="ip_32" class="figcenter" style="width: 404px;">
- <img src="images/i_037.jpg" width="404" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>“The full force of the blast”</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">Thomas Maybank</p></div></div>
-
-<p>Shortly after Wellesley reached England he decided
-to leave the Army. The cause is unknown, but it seems
-highly probable that either his recent experience had
-disgusted him with the service as constituted, or he
-wished to obtain more remunerative employment so
-that he might be in a position to marry the lady of his
-choice. He also owed money to his brother, who had
-made advances for his promotion. This sum could
-be repaid by the sale of his commission. Although
-Wellesley was always scrupulous in money matters,
-the reason seems scarcely credible. We are therefore
-forced to accept one of the other alternatives, perhaps
-both, for mention is made of the miserable state of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_33">33</a></span>
-Army in his letter to Lord Camden<a id="FNanchor_6" href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">6</a> regarding the
-desired appointment. He consulted Mornington on
-the matter, and it was decided that a position under
-the Revenue or Treasury Boards would serve his purpose.
-“If your Excellency,” he writes to the Viceroy,
-“is of opinion that the offices at these boards are too
-high for me, of course you will say so; and as I am
-convinced that no man is so bad a judge of a claim as
-he who makes it, I trust you will not believe that I shall
-feel otherwise towards you than as I have always felt,
-with sentiments of the greatest regard.... You will
-probably be surprised at my desiring a civil instead of
-a military office. It is certainly a departure from the
-line which I prefer, but I see the manner in which the
-military offices are filled, and I don’t want to ask you
-for that which I know you cannot give me.”</p>
-
-<p>Research has failed to discover what answer, if any,
-was vouchsafed this communication. Wellesley remained
-in the Army. In October 1795 he and his
-regiment sailed from Southampton as part of an expedition
-against the French settlements in the West
-Indies. The vessels encountered a terrible gale, still
-known as “Christian’s Storm,” after the name of the
-admiral who commanded the fleet. While it might be
-untrue to say that the ships were in an unseaworthy
-condition, their sanitary state was deplorable, for they
-had but recently returned from a long voyage as hospital
-and prison transports. Scarcely forty-eight hours after
-they had sailed, and when they were off Weymouth,
-the full force of the blast struck them. One vessel
-foundered with all hands, half-a-dozen or more were
-totally dismasted, and hundreds of soldiers went to
-their death in a battle with the elements against which
-all the drill in the world was ineffectual. Fortunately
-Wellesley escaped, but when he received orders, in
-April 1796, to embark his men for India he was too ill
-to accompany them. However, he set sail for Calcutta<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_34">34</a></span>
-in June, and overtaking the 33rd Regiment at the Cape
-of Good Hope, duly reached his destination in February
-1797. “The station is so highly advantageous to him
-that I could not advise him to decline it,” says Lord
-Mornington.<a id="FNanchor_7" href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">7</a> The good-natured Earl little knew what
-advantage, both to Wellesley and the Empire, was to
-accrue as the result of the failure of his brother’s civil
-ambitions.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_35">35</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_III"></a>CHAPTER III<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">The Campaign of Seringapatam</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1797&ndash;1800)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p><i>India, “a country fertile in heroes and statesmen.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Canning.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">The</span> proverb to the effect that “History repeats
-itself” is not strictly true. The further we
-study the subject, the more we find that like
-causes do not necessarily bring about similar effects.
-The ill success which attended the expedition to the
-West Indies, ere it left the English Channel, has a fitting
-parallel so far as its practical utility is concerned in the
-force placed at General St Leger’s disposal to attack
-Manilla, the Philippine Islands then being in the possession
-of Spain, with whom Great Britain was now at
-war. Fortunately it did not meet with disaster, but
-neither expedition reached its destination. Wellesley
-accepted the offer of Sir John Shore, the Governor-General
-of India, to command a brigade, and the troops
-were embarked. They had not proceeded farther than
-Penang before an order was issued for their recall owing
-to troubles brewing in India itself.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after his return to Calcutta the Colonel was
-placed in command of the forces in Madras. He also
-heard that his eldest brother had been offered the
-extremely responsible and difficult post of Governor-General
-in succession to Sir John Shore. It was now
-his turn to feed the flames of Mornington’s ambition.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_36">36</a></span>
-He writes: “I strongly advise you to come out. I
-am convinced that you will retain your health; nay,
-it is possible that its general state may be improved,
-and you will have the fairest opportunity of rendering
-material service to the public and of doing yourself
-credit.” Mornington lacked self-confidence, and a
-thousand and one doubts and fears possessed his mind.
-The Colonel reminded him that if he refused so advantageous
-a position on account of his young family, “you
-forego both for yourself and them what will certainly
-be a material and lasting advantage.”</p>
-
-<p>Mornington accepted, and arrived at Calcutta with
-his youngest brother, Henry, as private secretary in
-the middle of May 1798. He speedily found an antidote
-for home-sickness in endeavouring to unravel the
-tangled skein of affairs in Mysore, where Tipú Sultan
-was intriguing with the French Republic for assistance
-in attacking the possessions of the East India Company
-in Southern India. The pugnacious character of the
-son of Hyder Ali was typified by the tiger’s stripes
-on his flag. He possessed the fanaticism and barbarity
-of the Oriental at his worst, and when opportunity
-occurred would feed a beast of prey with an English
-prisoner.</p>
-
-<p class="hideme"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_37">37</a></span></p>
-
-<div id="ip_37" class="figcenter" style="width: 850px;">
- <img src="images/i_043.jpg" width="850" height="611" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">WELLINGTON’S CAMPAIGN IN INDIA.</div></div>
-
-<p>To secure either the friendship or the neutrality of
-the Nizám, whose territory abutted that of the bloodthirsty
-Tipú, now became of paramount importance.
-His army was officered by Frenchmen, which was proof
-positive that in the event of war it would assist Britain’s
-enemy, although the Nizám had a distinct leaning
-towards the English. As it happened, the native troops
-mutinied against their officers, and, seizing his opportunity,
-the Nizám dismissed them. They were sent to
-England as prisoners, and subsequently allowed to
-return to their own country, a most humane consideration,
-for which Mornington was largely responsible.
-The military positions they formerly occupied were
-promptly filled by our own officers. A new treaty was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_38">38</a></span>
-made to preclude the Marhattás from allying themselves
-with Tipú, and a force of 6000 British troops was maintained
-by the Nizám at Hyderabad.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Wellesley had proceeded with his regiment
-to Madras, and, owing to the death of the senior officer,
-was placed in temporary command of the troops. In
-communication with Lord Clive, the Governor of the
-Presidency, and General Harris, the Commander-in-Chief,
-he busied himself with the multitudinous arrangements
-necessary for an advance upon Seringapatam,
-the capital of the Mysore Dominions. Horses, bullocks,
-and elephants had to be provided for the purpose of
-transport; forts equipped and provisioned; the siege
-train properly organized. He drew up a plan of campaign,
-and bent himself to the task with exacting
-energy. Notwithstanding the preparations for war,
-he still hoped that a resort to arms would prove unnecessary.
-Those who are apt to think that all military
-men delight in strife for the mere love of it will do
-well to remember this fact and judge less harshly, for
-Wellington is the typical representative of the British
-Army. But he believed in being ready, and hated
-nothing so much as “muddling through.”</p>
-
-<p>There was still a possibility, though scarcely a probability,
-that Tipú would repent. He had received word
-that Napoleon, then on his famous Egyptian expedition,
-was coming to his aid with an “invincible army.” So
-far he had refused a definite statement of policy. Not
-until it was abundantly evident that the protracted
-negotiations of the Sultan of Mysore with the Government
-were merely to gain time, was a declaration of
-war issued on the 22nd February 1799. According to
-Wellesley, General Harris “expressed his approbation
-of what I had done, and adopted as his own all the
-orders and regulations I had made, and then said that
-he should mention his approbation publicly, only that
-he was afraid others would be displeased and jealous.
-Now as there is nothing to be got in the army except<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_39">39</a></span>
-credit, and as it is not always that the best intentions
-and endeavours to serve the public succeed, it is hard
-that when they do succeed they should not receive the
-approbation which it is acknowledged by all they
-deserve. I was much hurt about it at the time, but I
-don’t care now, and shall certainly do everything to
-serve General Harris, and to support his name and
-authority.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley never feared to speak his mind, as his
-voluminous dispatches abundantly testify. In a letter
-to Mornington he admits that he had “lectured” the
-Commander-in-Chief because he allowed the Madras
-Military Board too much license in the matter of appointments.
-On the other hand, he had “urged publicly
-to the army (in which I flatter myself I have some
-influence) the necessity of supporting him, whether he
-be right or wrong.” In his opinion it was “impossible”
-to hold the General “too high, if he is to be the head
-of the army in the field.”</p>
-
-<p>Harris certainly compensated Wellesley to some
-extent by placing him in command of thirteen regiments,
-including the Nizám’s contingent, with the rank of
-brigadier. The strength of this force was about 16,000
-men, that of the whole army 35,000, excluding 120,000
-camp followers, the bugbear of the old-time commander.
-The Bombay corps under General Stuart attacked a
-portion of the enemy, commanded by the wily Tipú,
-in the vicinity of Sedasser, on the 6th March. This success
-augured well, for the Sultan was forced to retire.</p>
-
-<p>Harris’s first serious engagement took place near
-Malavelly on the 27th, Wellesley advancing to the
-attack and turning Tipú’s right flank. After an
-engagement lasting three hours the enemy withdrew,
-with the loss of some 2000 men by death or wounds
-against the British 7 killed and 53 wounded.
-Tipú was a skilful soldier, and had not neglected to
-throw up a line of entrenchments before Seringapatam,
-into which city he now withdrew. To drive in the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_40">40</a></span>
-advanced outposts before definitely besieging the place
-was Harris’s first object. This duty was intrusted to
-Wellesley and Colonel Shaw respectively, each having
-charge of a detachment. It was the task of the former
-to carry a tope, or thicket, and a village called Sultanpettah.
-He failed, for reasons explained in the following
-letter:</p>
-
-<p>“On the night of the 5th, we made an attack on the
-enemy’s outposts, which, at least on my side, was not
-quite so successful as could have been wished. The
-fact is, that the night was very dark, that the enemy
-expected us, and were strongly posted in an almost
-impenetrable jungle. We lost an officer, killed, and
-nine men of the 33rd wounded, and at last, as I could
-not find out the post which it was desirable I should
-occupy, I was obliged to desist from the attack, the
-enemy also having retired from the post. In the
-morning they re-occupied it, and we attacked it again
-at day-light, and carried it with ease and with little
-loss. I got a slight touch on the knee, from which I
-have felt no inconvenience, and I have come to the
-determination never to suffer an attack to be made by
-night upon an enemy who was prepared and strongly
-posted, and whose posts had not been reconnoitred by
-daylight.” It should be added that twelve soldiers
-were taken prisoner and executed by the brutal method
-of nails being driven through their heads, and that
-Wellesley had previously given it as his opinion that
-the projected attack on the thicket would be a mistake.
-The operation undertaken by Colonel Shaw was
-successful.</p>
-
-<p>The siege now proceeded in earnest, but a breach
-was not made in the solid walls surrounding Seringapatam
-for three days. On the 4th May the place
-was stormed by General Baird. General Sherbrooke’s
-right column was the first to ford the Cauvery River.
-His men speedily scaled the ramparts, and engaged
-that part of the Sultan’s 22,000 troops stationed in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_41">41</a></span>
-the immediate vicinity. The defenders fought with the
-fatalistic energy and determination so characteristic
-of the natives of India. The left column followed,
-but found the way more difficult. Tipú, mounting the
-ramparts, fired at the oncoming red-coats with muskets
-handed to him by his attendants. It was his last
-battle; his body was afterwards discovered in a covered
-gateway, together with hundreds of others. Wellesley,
-with his corps, occupied the trenches as a first reserve.</p>
-
-<p>“About a quarter past one p.m.,” says an eye-witness,
-“as we were anxiously peering, telescope in
-hand, at the ford, and the intermediate ground between
-our batteries and the breach, a sharp and sudden discharge
-of musquetry and rockets, along the western
-face of the fort, announced to us that General Baird
-and the column of assault were crossing the ford; and
-immediately afterwards, we perceived our soldiers,
-in rather loose array, rushing towards the breach.
-The moment was one of agony; and we continued,
-with aching eyes, to watch the result, until, after a
-short and appalling interval, we saw the acclivity of the
-breach covered with a cloud of crimson,&mdash;and in a
-very few minutes afterwards, observing the files passing
-rapidly to the right and left at the summit of the breach,
-I could not help exclaiming, ‘Thank God! the business
-is done.’</p>
-
-<p>“The firing continued in different parts of the place
-until about two o’clock, or a little afterwards; when,
-the whole of the works being in the possession of our
-troops, and the St George’s ensign floating proudly
-from the flagstaff of the southern cavalier, announced
-to us that the triumph was completed.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 5th, Wellesley took over the command from
-Baird, who had requested temporary leave of absence,
-and without delay began to restore some kind of order
-among the British troops, whose one object after
-victory was plunder, in which matter they showed
-little delicacy of feeling. The city was on fire in several<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_42">42</a></span>
-places, but the flames were all extinguished within
-twenty-four hours, and the inhabitants were “retiring
-to their homes fast.” Having stopped, “by hanging,
-flogging, etc.,” the insubordination of the troops and
-the rifling of the dead by the camp followers who had
-flocked in, Wellesley proceeded to bury those who had
-fallen.</p>
-
-<p>During the four weeks of the siege the British lost
-22 officers and 310 men, and no fewer than 45 officers
-and 1164 men were reported as wounded and missing.<a id="FNanchor_8" href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">8</a>
-The Commander mentions that jewels of the greatest
-value, and bars of gold, were obtained. As the prize agents
-assessed the treasure taken at £1,143,216, the wealth of
-Seringapatam must have been astounding. Wellesley’s
-share came to about £4000.<a id="FNanchor_9" href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">9</a> Hundreds of animals
-were required to carry the rich stuffs, plate, and richly-bound
-books from this city of opulence. A little
-humorous relief to so much sordidness is afforded by
-Wellesley’s difficulties regarding some of the late Sultan’s
-pets. “There are some tigers here,” he writes, “which
-I wish Meer Allum would send for, or else I must give
-orders to have them shot, as there is no food for them,
-and nobody to attend to them, and they are getting
-violent.” Tipú’s 650 wives gave less trouble than the
-wild beasts. They were removed to a remote region
-and set at liberty.</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley’s next appointment was as Commander
-of the Forces in Mysore. He proved himself to be
-particularly well fitted for the post, which obviously
-required a man of infinite tact, who could be lenient or
-severe as circumstances demanded. It was Wellesley’s
-testing-time, and he did not fail either in administration<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_43">43</a></span>
-or the rough and tumble of the “little war” so soon to
-fall to his lot. He had already served on a commission
-appointed to go into the question of the partition of the
-conquered Dominions, a small part of which was made
-over to the Peshwá, and larger shares to the Nizám
-and the East India Company respectively. The dynasty
-overturned by Tipú’s father was restored. As the new
-Rájá of Mysore was only five years of age, he was
-scarcely able to appreciate the fact that his territory
-was so greatly diminished.</p>
-
-<p>We now come to a story worthy of a place in the
-Arabian Nights. It concerns an adventurer who, later,
-assumed the truly regal title of King of the World.
-Dhoondia Waugh, to give him the name by which
-those who were unfortunate enough to make his
-acquaintance first knew him, was the chief of a band
-of robbers whom Tipú had captured and thrown into
-prison. Recognizing in him a brave man, the Sultan
-remitted the sentence of death and gave him a military
-appointment, thus turning his acknowledged abilities
-into a less questionable channel, for a thief must needs
-be fearless and daring if he is to succeed. For some
-reason not altogether clear, Dhoondia Waugh was
-again imprisoned, and he did not regain his liberty
-until the fall of Seringapatam, when he was liberated,
-together with a number of other gaol-birds. The old
-thieving instinct reasserted itself, and as he encountered
-no difficulty in collecting a band of the late Tipú’s
-cavalry, he speedily resorted to means and measures
-which alarmed the inhabitants of every place he
-visited. When pressed by the troops sent after them
-the horde took refuge in the territory of the Peshwá,
-the nominal head of the Marhattá confederacy.
-There they received anything but a cordial welcome,
-although it seems probable that reinforcements were
-obtained among the malcontents. However that may
-be, Dhoondia Waugh duly appeared near Savanore.
-Having the safety of the Mysore Dominions very much<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_44">44</a></span>
-at heart, for he had supreme civil and military control,
-Wellesley started in pursuit of the freebooter. Several
-fortresses held by Dhoondia’s unlawful bands were
-stormed, his baggage taken, and a number of guns
-captured.</p>
-
-<p>An affray which took place near the Malpurda River
-at the end of July 1800, not only reduced the chief’s
-forces, but caused many of his followers to forsake the
-cause, although their strength in the following September
-was considerably more than that at Wellesley’s
-command; in actual figures, some 5000 against 1200.
-The operation on the 10th of that month, which proved
-decisive, was extremely difficult, for the enemy was
-strongly posted at a village called Conahgull. The
-Colonel charged with such cool daring and so determined
-a front, that after having stood firm for some
-time the enemy made off, closely pursued for many
-miles by the British cavalry. A dire and just retribution
-was exacted; those who were not killed “were
-scattered in small parties over the face of the country.”
-The King of the World had fought his last battle.
-He was found among the slain.</p>
-
-<p>It is frequently asserted that Wellesley held but a
-low opinion of the troops which he commanded, and
-he certainly passed harsh judgment on those who
-shared his later campaigns. Not so in this particular
-instance, however. In the dispatch detailing “the
-complete defeat and dispersion” of the forces of
-Dhoondia, he expressly remarks on the “determined
-valour and discipline” of the soldiers, the patience and
-perseverance displayed in “a series of fatiguing services,”
-and the excellent organization of the commissariat
-department.</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley also showed that a kind heart is not
-necessarily the attribute of a weak nature. With a
-humanity entirely worthy so great a man, he had
-Dhoondia’s “supposed or adopted son” cared for,
-and afterwards placed £400 in the hands of trustees<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_45">45</a></span>
-for his future use.<a id="FNanchor_10" href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">10</a> “Had you and your regicide
-army been out of the way,” writes Sir Thomas Munro
-to Wellesley, “Dhoondia would undoubtedly have
-become an independent and powerful prince, and the
-founder of a new dynasty of cruel and treacherous
-Sultauns.”</p>
-
-<p>This short campaign likewise furnishes us with one
-of the secrets of the success of our national military
-hero. Just before he set out on the long chase after
-the King of the World, he was offered a position particularly
-rich in prospects, namely, the military command
-of an expedition for the surrender of the Dutch
-island of Batavia. The sole condition was that Lord
-Clive, the Governor of Madras, to whom he was responsible,
-could spare him. A man who was moved
-by purely personal ambition would have had no hesitation
-in bringing all his influence to bear on the Governor
-in order to secure so good an opening. Wellesley,
-however, recognizing that he had already begun preparations
-for the running to earth of the bloodthirsty
-and cruel Dhoondia&mdash;an end much to be desired&mdash;asked
-Clive to accept or decline for him as he thought
-best. He neither pleaded for nor against, although
-he hoped that if Admiral Rainier were not starting at
-once he might be able to join him when the work on
-hand was finished. “I am determined that nothing shall
-induce me to desire to quit this country, until its tranquillity
-is ensured. The general want of troops, however,
-at the present moment, and the season, may induce
-the Admiral to be desirous to postpone the expedition
-till late in the year. In that case it may be convenient
-that I should accompany him....”</p>
-
-<p>The Governor of Madras refused his permission, and
-there the matter ended. Months afterwards, when there
-seemed a probability of operations in the Marhattá<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_46">46</a></span>
-Territory, Wellesley wrote a lengthy Memorandum on
-the means of carrying such a campaign to a successful
-issue. “The experience,” he notes in his opening remarks,
-“which has been acquired in the late contest
-with Dhoondia Waugh, of the seasons, the nature of
-the country, its roads, its produce, and its means of
-defence, will be of use in pointing them out.”</p>
-
-<p>Thus it will be seen that the knowledge gained by
-Wellesley during the performance of an individual duty
-was stored up for future use. A march or a campaign
-was not simply carried out and then dismissed. It was
-a lesson learned and to be remembered. In military
-matters he was to a very appreciable extent self-taught.
-No drill-book in existence can furnish skill or assure
-victory, and genius itself is valueless on the battle-field
-without a clear perception based on things ascertained&mdash;“the
-experience which has been acquired” referred to
-in the above communication. Napoleon, against whom
-Wellesley was to fight in the years to come, early recognized
-the supreme importance of this principle. “The
-adroit man,” he says, “profits by everything, neglects
-nothing which can increase his chances.”</p>
-
-<p>The “Sepoy General” was such a man.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_47">47</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_IV"></a>CHAPTER IV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">War with the Marhattás</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1801&ndash;3)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>We must get the upper hand, and if once we have that, we shall keep it
-with ease, and shall certainly succeed.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">That</span> disappointments are frequently blessings
-in disguise had already been proved by Arthur
-Wellesley. Unfortunately, it is easier to forget
-such a precept than to practise it, and each apparent
-failure to climb another rung of ambition’s ladder is
-apt to be regarded as a definite set back. It was so
-with Wellesley, and a time of trial and perplexity
-followed the campaign of Seringapatam and the defeat
-of Dhoondia.</p>
-
-<p>He eventually weathered the storm of depression
-which pressed upon him, as he weathered many another,
-but it must be admitted that he bent before it. It
-came about in this way. The French army in Egypt
-was still very active, although Napoleon had long since
-left it. He was now First Consul, and gradually preparing
-himself and the nation for the assumption of
-the Imperial crown. The Governor-General, henceforth
-to be known as Marquis Wellesley,<a id="FNanchor_11" href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">11</a> was of opinion
-that a small expedition should be sent either to Batavia
-or the Mauritius, or to assist Sir Ralph Abercromby
-in his attempt to drive the French out of Egypt.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_48">48</a></span>
-With one of these desirable objects in view his
-brother Arthur was given 5000 troops. He at once
-set off for Trincomalee, in the island of Ceylon, the
-headquarters of the little army, intent on personally
-superintending the arrangements. Shortly afterwards
-instructions came to hand from the Home Government
-that 3000 men were to be sent to Egypt. Colonel
-Wellesley was informed of this decision, and determined
-to lose no time in forwarding the project. Without
-receiving official word to do so, and still believing he
-held the premier post, he embarked the men and sailed
-for Bombay, where he had ordered an ample supply of
-provisions to be ready.</p>
-
-<p>When off Cape Comorin, Wellesley received a letter
-from his brother, stating that he had appointed Major-General
-Baird to the command of the troops destined
-for the island of Batavia, which made it clear that the
-Governor-General had not then received the dispatches
-of the Secretary of State. Knowing that some at least
-of the troops on the transports would be required for
-Egypt, he proceeded on his way, and wrote to Baird
-of his intention. A little later a further letter came to
-hand from another source; but the fleet was in want of
-water, some of the troops had died, and “I was induced
-to adhere to my original plan.”</p>
-
-<p>Baird, who, on arriving at Trincomalee, found “the
-cupboard was bare,” was deeply incensed at Wellesley’s
-high-handed behaviour. The “culprit’s” feelings as
-to the Governor-General’s new appointment were also
-far from pacific. That he acted in perfect good faith
-is evident from the preceding, which is borne out in a
-lengthy dispatch in which he sought to justify his
-action in the eyes of his brother.</p>
-
-<p>“I have not been guilty of robbery or murder,” he
-writes to Henry Wellesley from Bombay on the 23rd
-March 1801, “and he has certainly changed his mind;
-but the world, which is always good-natured towards
-those whose affairs do not exactly prosper, will not, or<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_49">49</a></span>
-rather does not, fail to suspect that both, or worse,
-have been the occasion of my being banished, like
-General Kray, to my estate in Hungary.<a id="FNanchor_12" href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">12</a> I did not
-look, and did not wish, for the appointment which was
-given to me; and I say that it would probably have been
-more proper to give it to somebody else; but when it
-was given to me, and a circular written to the governments
-upon the subject, it would have been fair to allow
-me to hold it till I did something to deserve to lose it.</p>
-
-<p>“I put private considerations out of the question,
-as they ought and have had no weight in causing either
-my original appointment or my supercession. I am
-not quite satisfied with the manner in which I have
-been treated by Government upon the occasion. However,
-I have lost neither my health, spirits, nor temper
-in consequence thereof. But it is useless to write any
-more upon a subject of which I wish to retain no remembrance
-whatever.”</p>
-
-<p>Baird would have been scarcely human had he not
-felt hurt by finding himself head of a force which had
-disappeared, especially as the Colonel had already
-superseded him as Governor of Seringapatam. But he
-forgave, if he did not forget, and so did Wellesley. Some
-thirty years afterwards, when Baird’s days of active
-soldiering were over, he remarked, during the course
-of a chat with Sir John Malcolm, who had himself done
-good service in India: “Time’s are changed. No one
-knows so well as you how severely I felt the preference
-given on several occasions to your friend Wellesley,
-but now I see all these things from a far different point
-of view. It is the highest pride of my life that anybody
-should ever have dreamed of my being put in the
-balance with him. His name is now to me joy, and I
-may almost say glory.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_50">50</a></span>
-It is satisfactory to know that Arthur Wellesley was
-not foolish enough to allow the iron to enter into his soul
-to such an extent as to prevent him from co-operating
-with Baird, into whose hands he placed a “Memorandum
-on the Operations in the Red Sea,” accompanied
-by a letter acknowledging “the kind, candid, and handsome
-manner in which you have behaved towards me.”
-When the expedition was ready, Arthur Wellesley was
-laid low with a fever, consequently the Commander-in-Chief
-was obliged to sail without his lieutenant, not
-altogether to his discomfiture one would surmise.</p>
-
-<p>An attack of the dreaded Malabar itch did not tend
-to a speedy recovery of the invalid, but he was sufficiently
-well in May 1801 to resume his former duties
-at Seringapatam, where he had been reinstated by his
-brother. By living moderately, drinking little or no
-wine, avoiding much medicine, taking exercise, and
-keeping his mind employed, he eventually recovered.
-As Baird saw no fighting, his rival lost nothing by
-remaining in India.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Herbert Maxwell<a id="FNanchor_13" href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">13</a> assumes that Arthur Wellesley’s
-fever was caused by disappointment, but as the latter
-expressly states that Baird’s “conduct towards me has
-by no means occasioned this determination (namely,
-to resign the appointment), but that it has been perfectly
-satisfactory,”<a id="FNanchor_14" href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">14</a> the statement is obviously based
-on a surmise that the Colonel was diplomatically lying.
-Everybody fully appreciates the influence of mind over
-matter, and thwarted desire may have weakened
-Wellesley’s health, but surely the facts of the case
-scarcely justify so definite an assertion.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Wellesley remained in Mysore for nearly two
-years, during which he did his work both wisely and
-well, showing favour to none and justice to all. It was
-in February 1803 that the future Wellington, now a
-Major-General, received news that he was required for<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_51">51</a></span>
-active service against the Marhattás. The war-like
-intentions of this powerful confederacy, which alone
-could challenge British supremacy, had not escaped
-the notice of Government. The nominal head of the
-five native princes who constituted it was Baji Rao,
-the Peshwá of Poona, the others being Daulat Rao,
-Sindhia of Gwalior; Jeswant Rao, Holkar of Indore;
-the Gaikwár of Baroda, and the Bhonsla Rájá of Berar.
-Sindhia was the most powerful, and possessed a fine
-army drilled by French officers and commanded by
-Perron, a deserter from the French Marine.</p>
-
-<p>Holkar had at his disposal no fewer than 80,000
-splendidly-equipped men, mostly cavalry, likewise
-organized by European soldiers. Intense rivalry
-existed between these princes, and when, in October
-1802, the latter invaded Poona, the armies of Sindhia
-and the Peshwá met with disaster. The Peshwá sought
-refuge with the British, and forthwith entered into an
-offensive and defensive alliance with Lord Wellesley
-as the only means of saving his territory. The chief
-clauses were that 6000 British troops should be kept
-at Poona, the expense being met by the assignment to
-the East India Company of certain territory; that
-the Peshwá would not make war with the other princes
-or allow them to prey on each other without the consent
-of Government; and that he should be reinstated in
-his capital. This arrangement, known as the Subsidiary
-Treaty of Bassein, soon had the effect of drawing together
-the remaining members of the Marhattá confederacy,
-cementing a friendship between Sindhia and
-Holkar, and an alliance between Sindhia and the
-Bhonsla Rájá. It is clear that the continued acknowledgment
-of the Peshwá as head of the confederacy,
-now that he was under the ægis of the British, would
-have been to admit the supremacy of the conquering
-Power they so much resented. Lord Wellesley had
-already signed a defensive alliance with the Gaikwár
-of Baroda, and in order to be ready for eventualities,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_52">52</a></span>
-men from the armies of the three Presidencies, namely,
-Madras, Bombay, and Calcutta, were concentrated at
-various points, the first for operation on the north-west
-frontier of Mysore, the second for action about Surat
-and Broach, and the third for the occupation of Cuttack.
-A large force was also ordered to assemble at Cawnpore
-under General Lake, the Commander-in-Chief in India,
-while three corps were held in reserve. Major-General
-Wellesley was placed in command of a detachment of
-some 10,600 troops, to which must be added the Nizám’s
-contingent of 8400 men under Colonel Stevenson,
-making 19,000 in all. His orders were to secure Poona,
-now held by a small garrison of Holkar’s soldiers totalling
-not more than 1500. He was already on the march
-when he heard of the intention of the Governor, acting
-on Holkar’s instructions, to burn the town on the
-approach of the British.</p>
-
-<p>“We were within forty miles of the place”&mdash;Wellesley
-himself tells the story<a id="FNanchor_15" href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">15</a>&mdash;“when this resolution of
-Holkar’s lieutenant was communicated to me. My
-troops had marched twenty miles that day under a
-burning sun, and the infantry could no more have gone
-five miles farther than they would have flown. The
-cavalry, though not fresh, were less knocked up, so I
-got together 400 of the best mounted among them,
-and set off. We started after dark on the night of the
-19th of April, and in the afternoon of the 20th we got
-close to the place. There was an awful uproar, and I
-expected to see the flames burst out, but nothing of
-the kind occurred. Amrut Rao&mdash;that was the Marhattá’s
-name&mdash;was too frightened to think of anything
-except providing for his own safety, and I had the
-satisfaction of finding, when I rode into the town,
-that he had gone off with his garrison by one gate as
-we went in by another. We were too tired to
-follow, had it been worth while to do so, which it<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_53">53</a></span>
-was not. Poona was safe, and that was all I cared
-for.” In the following month the Peshwá returned to
-his capital.</p>
-
-<p>Sindhia and the Rájá of Berar now busied themselves
-with gathering a large army at Burhanpur, ready
-to threaten the Deccan, Holkar retiring to Indore.
-Wellesley was no less active at Poona; his experience
-in Holland had taught him the all-important lesson
-that an efficient organization is a powerful ally. In
-addition, he was busy endeavouring to come to terms
-with Sindhia and the Rájá, for which purpose he had
-been given chief command of the British forces in the
-Marhattá states, with the fullest political authority.
-Similar powers were vested in General Lake in Northern
-India. After wasting as much time as possible in the
-negotiations so as to gain it for military preparations,
-Wellesley anticipated the inevitable. “I offered you
-peace on terms of equality,” he writes on the 6th August
-1803, “and honourable to all parties: you have chosen
-war, and are responsible for all consequences.” On
-the following day hostilities were declared against
-Sindhia and the Rájá of Berar.</p>
-
-<p>The stone-built fortress of Ahmednuggur, the capture
-of which would safeguard his communications with
-Poona and Bombay and prevent reinforcements from
-Southern India reaching the enemy, was his first object
-of attack. The main body of Sindhia’s men was
-threatening Hyderabad, but the place was well garrisoned
-and so solidly constructed that it looked as though it
-would defy whatever artillery could be brought to bear
-on it. Wellesley said that with the exception of Vellore,
-in the Carnatic, it was the strongest country fort he had
-ever seen. However, he began operations against the
-outworks on the 8th, after having made proposals for
-its surrender without favourable result. “The Arabs,”
-we are told, “defended their posts with the utmost
-obstinacy,” but towards evening were forced to quit
-the wall. On the following day the ground in the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_54">54</a></span>
-neighbourhood of the fort was reconnoitred and a
-commanding position seized, on which a battery of four
-guns was constructed for use during the attack. The
-first shots were fired on the 10th at dawn, and the storming
-party speedily began its work. Three times an
-officer ascended a scaling ladder propped against one
-of the walls, and thrice he was hurled down by the
-defenders. The fourth attempt was successful, and,
-followed by some of his men, the gallant soldier literally
-hewed a way into the town. The remaining troops,
-pressing on, took the place of those who fell. At length
-the Commander of the enemy’s forces surrendered, “on
-condition that he should be allowed to depart with his
-garrison, and that he should have his private property.”
-His fourteen hundred men marched out of the fort, and
-Wellesley’s troops took possession.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_54" class="figcenter" style="width: 401px;">
- <img src="images/i_061.jpg" width="401" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>“He was hurled down by the defenders”</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">Thomas Maybank</p></div></div>
-
-<p>On the 23rd September the General found himself
-and his small contingent of some 8000 soldiers face to
-face with the whole combined army of Sindhia and
-the Rájá of Berar, a state of affairs brought about
-by unreliable information, causing the separation of
-Wellesley and Stevenson. At least 50,000 of the enemy
-were posted in a strong position behind the river
-Kaitna, near the village of Assaye. As Wellesley had
-received no reinforcements, and had only 17 guns compared
-with 128 commanded by skilful French officers at the
-disposal of the Marhattás, the disproportion of the forces
-was sufficiently obvious. To a general less experienced
-or daring the situation would have been considered
-sufficient cause for an instant retreat; even he called
-the attack “desperate.” The problem for him to
-settle was, should he wait a few hours for Stevenson,
-or begin immediately with the scanty resources at his
-disposal? Although only 1500 of his men were British,
-the Commander-in-Chief decided on the latter alternative,
-ignoring the information vouchsafed by his guides
-that the river was absolutely impassable. Yet it was
-only by crossing the stream that he could take advantage<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_55">55</a></span>
-of the opportunity to attack. Here Wellesley’s
-native wit and acute intelligence&mdash;he himself called it
-“common sense”&mdash;assisted him. His telescope merely
-revealed a village on either side of the stream. This
-fact suggested the probability of a neighbouring ford.
-On investigation such proved to be the case, and if the
-passage was difficult the General was at least fortunate
-in being able to carry out the operation without severe
-molestation by the enemy, who had foolishly neglected
-to guard this point. They repaired the omission so
-far as was possible by firing upon the oncoming army
-as it slowly waded across, but the losses were comparatively
-trivial. “All the business of war,” Wellesley
-once told Croker, “and indeed all the business of life,
-is to endeavour to find out what you don’t know by
-what you do.”</p>
-
-<p>The battle began well by the routing of some of the
-infantry and artillery by the Highlanders and Sepoys.
-This advantage was almost immediately counterbalanced
-by the mistaken zeal of the officer commanding the
-pickets, supported by the 74th Regiment. He foolishly
-led his men against the village, thereby exposing them
-to the concentrated fire of the enemy’s artillery and
-musketry stationed there. Had he taken a less direct
-route, this could not have happened, but his enthusiasm
-overruled his caution. Men dropped down like ninepins
-in a skittle-alley when the ball is thrown by a skilful
-player. They fell by the dozen as they came within the
-zone of fire. Their comrades filled up the tell-tale gaps
-and continued to push on with a dogged tenacity entirely
-worthy their intrepid commander. Meanwhile what
-few British guns remained pounded away, and were
-silenced one by one as the men who worked them fell
-dead at their post. The enemy’s cavalry then proceeded
-to decimate the already sorely depleted ranks
-of the 74th.</p>
-
-<p>At this moment the 19th Light Dragoons, under
-Colonel Maxwell, were hurled at Sindhia’s troops.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_56">56</a></span>
-The charge turned the fate of the day. What remained
-of the 74th rallied under the support thus given, and
-when Wellesley led the 78th into action the village fell.
-An attempt was made by the enemy to rally, but it
-was too late. Men who, with true Oriental cunning,
-had fallen as though killed in order to avoid the oncoming
-British cavalry as they charged, and had escaped
-the iron-shod hoofs of the horses, rejoined the ranks,
-only to find that the day had been lost. The whole
-body was soon flying helter-skelter from the blood-stained
-field towards Burrampur, abandoning artillery,
-baggage, ammunition&mdash;everything that precluded swift
-movement. Twelve hundred of the Marhattás breathed
-their last on this memorable day.</p>
-
-<p>In fighting this battle&mdash;“the hardest-fought affair
-that ever took place in India”&mdash;o’er again in the twilight
-of his days, the Duke of Wellington made light of the
-indiscretions of the officers at Assaye and remembered
-only their bravery. “I lost an enormous number of
-men: 170 officers were killed and wounded, and upwards
-of 2000 non-commissioned officers and privates;<a id="FNanchor_16" href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">16</a>
-but we carried all before us. We took their guns,
-which were in the first line, and were fired upon by the
-gunners afterwards, who threw themselves down, pretending
-to be dead, and then rose up again after our
-men had passed; but they paid dearly for the freak.
-The 19th cut them to pieces. Sindhia’s infantry
-behaved admirably. They were in support of his
-cannon, and we drove them off at the point of the
-bayonet. We pursued them as long as daylight lasted
-and the exhausted state of the men and horses would
-allow; and slept on the field.”<a id="FNanchor_17" href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">17</a></p>
-
-<p>Wellesley himself, although not wounded, lost two
-horses. An eye-witness has recorded that he had never
-seen “a man so cool and collected as he was the whole<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_57">57</a></span>
-time.” Stevenson arrived on the following evening,
-and set out almost immediately to follow the enemy,
-Wellesley being forced to remain owing to his lack of
-transport for the wounded, whom he refused to leave.
-The Colonel seconded Wellesley’s magnificent victory by
-reducing the fortress of Burrampur on the 16th October,
-and that of Asseerghur on the 21st. Wellesley covered
-Stevenson’s operations and defended the territories of
-the Nizám and the Peshwá. “I have been like a man
-who fights with one hand and defends himself with the
-other,” he notes on the 26th October. “I have made
-some terrible marches, but I have been remarkably
-fortunate: first, in stopping the enemy when they
-intended to press to the southward, through the Casserbarry
-ghaut; and afterwards, by a rapid march to the
-northward, in stopping Sindhia, when he was moving
-to interrupt Colonel Stevenson’s operations against
-Asseerghur; in which he would otherwise have undoubtedly
-succeeded.”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_58">58</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_V"></a>CHAPTER V<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Last Years in India</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1803&ndash;5)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>Time is everything in military operations.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap b"><span class="smcap1">Bhonsla Rájá</span> now became the immediate
-object of Wellesley’s attention. While proceeding
-in quest of him the General received
-envoys from Sindhia requesting an armistice. This
-was granted on the 23rd November 1803, the principal
-condition imposed by Wellesley being that the enemy’s
-army should retire forty miles east of Ellichpúr. This
-clause was not fulfilled, the cavalry of the wily Sindhia
-encamping at Sersooly, some four miles from the position
-occupied by Manoo Bappoo, brother of the Rájá, ready
-for immediate co-operation. Having again united their
-divisions, Wellesley and Stevenson pushed towards
-them. “A confused mass” about two miles beyond
-Sersooly proved to be the enemy’s armies on the march.
-A little later the General made out “a long line of
-infantry, cavalry, and artillery, regularly drawn up
-on the plains of Argaum, immediately in front of that
-village.”</p>
-
-<p>“Although late in the day,” says Wellesley in describing
-the events of the 29th November, “I immediately
-determined to attack this army. Accordingly, I
-marched on in one column, the British cavalry leading
-in a direction nearly parallel to that of the enemy’s line;<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_59">59</a></span>
-covering the rear and left by the Mogul and Mysore
-cavalry. The enemy’s infantry and guns were in the
-left of their centre, with a body of cavalry on their left.
-Sindhia’s army, consisting of one very heavy body of
-cavalry, was on the right, having upon its right a body
-of pindarries and other light corps. Their line extended
-above five miles, having in their rear the village
-and extensive gardens and enclosure of Argaum; and
-in their front a plain, which, however, was much cut
-by watercourses, etc.</p>
-
-<p>“I formed the army in two lines; the infantry in
-the first, the cavalry in the second, and supporting the
-right; and the Mogul and Mysore cavalry the left,
-nearly parallel to that of the enemy; with the right
-rather advanced in order to press upon the enemy’s
-left. Some little time elapsed before the lines could be
-formed, owing to a part of the infantry of my division
-which led the column having got into some confusion.
-When formed, the whole advanced in the greatest order;
-the 74th and 78th regiments were attacked by a large
-body (supposed to be Persians), and all these were
-destroyed. Sindhia’s cavalry charged the 1st battalion,
-6th regiment, which was on the left of our line, and
-were repulsed; and their whole line retired in disorder
-before our troops, leaving in our hands 38 pieces of
-cannon and all their ammunition.</p>
-
-<p>“The British cavalry then pursued them for several
-miles, destroyed great numbers, and took many elephants
-and camels and much baggage. The Mogul and
-Mysore cavalry also pursued the fugitives, and did
-them great mischief. Some of the latter are still
-following them; and I have sent out this morning
-all of the Mysore, Mogul, and Marhattá cavalry, in
-order to secure as many advantages from this victory
-as can be gained, and complete the enemy’s confusion....
-The troops conducted themselves with their usual
-bravery....”</p>
-
-<p>One of the bravest deeds performed during the battle<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_60">60</a></span>
-of Argaum was that of Lieutenant Langlands, of the
-74th. Wounded in the fleshy part of the leg by a
-spear, he promptly pulled out the weapon and thrust
-it through the body of the Arab who had thrown it.
-A Sepoy who witnessed this extraordinary display of
-self-possession, forgetting all discipline, rushed from
-the ranks and patted the young officer on the back,
-yelling in his native tongue, “Well done, sir; very well
-done!”</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley next marched on the mountain fort of
-Gawilghur, strongly garrisoned by the Rájá’s troops.
-This defence consisted of an outer and inner fort, the
-former protected by strongly-built walls, and the
-whole by ramparts and towers. Admittance was
-gained only by three gates, all extremely difficult of
-access by an invading army owing to the roads leading
-to them. That to the south, communicating with the
-inner fort, was long and steep, and could only be
-negotiated on foot; the second was exposed to the
-guns mounted on the west side and was extremely
-narrow and scarped by rock; the third, or north gate,
-communicated with the village. Wellesley chose the last
-as being the most practicable for his purpose, although
-he did not blind his eyes to the fact that “the difficulty
-and labour of moving ordnance and stores from Labada
-would be very great.”</p>
-
-<p>From the 7th December, when the corps under
-Wellesley and Stevenson marched from Ellichpúr by
-different routes, till the 12th, “on which Colonel
-Stevenson broke ground near Labada, the troops in
-his division went through a series of laborious services,
-such as I never before witnessed, with the utmost
-cheerfulness and perseverance. The heavy ordnance
-and stores were dragged by hand over mountains, and
-through ravines, for nearly the whole distance, by
-roads which it had been previously necessary for the
-troops to make for themselves.”</p>
-
-<p>On the night of the 12th, Stevenson erected two<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_61">61</a></span>
-batteries in front of the north face of the fort, and
-Wellesley one on the mountain, “under the southern
-gate.” Although firing was begun on the following
-morning, the breaches in the walls of the outer fort
-were not sufficiently large for practical purposes until
-the 14th. Next day, while the storming party was
-getting to work, Wellesley made two attacks from the
-southward so as to draw the enemy’s fire upon himself
-as much as possible. The north-west gate was carried,
-and a detachment entered without difficulty. Captain
-Campbell, with the light infantry of the 94th, then
-succeeded in fixing ladders against the wall of the inner
-fort. They “escaladed the wall, opened the gate for the
-storming party, and the fort was shortly in our possession.”
-In a later communication Wellesley mentions
-that he never knew a place taken by storm which was
-so little plundered, “and it is but doing justice to the
-corps to declare that in an hour after having stormed
-that large place, they marched out with as much
-regularity as if they had been only passing through it.”</p>
-
-<p>Bhonsla Rájá had already sent his vakeel<a id="FNanchor_18" href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">18</a> to sue for
-peace. This was granted by his ceding to the Company
-the province of Cuttack, with the district of Balasore,
-and dismissing the European officers who had played
-so important a part in the drilling of his army. Sindhia
-also “began to be a little alarmed respecting his own
-situation,” and shortly afterwards concluded hostilities,
-handing over all the country between the Jumna and
-the Ganges, and several important fortresses. These
-happenings did not relieve Wellesley from active
-service. Several bands of freebooters, “the terror of
-the country,” consisting mainly of fugitive soldiers
-from the defeated armies, were carrying on lawless
-practices in the West Deccan. After crossing the
-Godavery, he and some of his troops marched many
-weary miles along bad roads, often at accelerated speed,
-in order to attack them, only to find that the enemy<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_62">62</a></span>
-had received intelligence of their approach, probably
-from a traitor in Wellesley’s own ranks. With set
-purpose the General continued to follow where the
-marauders led, and eventually broke up the bands,
-securing the whole of their guns, ammunition, and
-baggage, thus depriving them of their means of warfare:
-“they have lost every thing which could enable them
-to subsist when collected.” Wellesley afterwards
-asserted that his chase of the freebooters was the greatest
-march he ever made.</p>
-
-<p>Towards the end of May 1804 Wellesley received
-instructions from the Governor-General to break up
-the army in the Deccan, the task of running to earth
-Holkar, the sole remaining enemy of the confederacy,
-being given to Lake. In the following month he relinquished
-his command, and after a short visit to
-Calcutta returned to Seringapatam. He had already
-requested that he might be allowed to leave India
-“when circumstances will permit it,” and the Commander-in-Chief
-had given him the necessary permission.
-He was dissatisfied because he had not been promoted
-since he became Major-General, “and I think that
-there appears a prospect of service in Europe, in which
-I should be more likely to get forward.” In addition,
-he was suffering from rheumatism, “for which living
-in a tent during another monsoon is not a very good
-remedy.” He sailed for the Homeland on the 10th
-March 1805, after six years of hard work, and still harder
-fighting, in the interests of British rule in India.</p>
-
-<p>The following contemporary pen-portrait of “the
-Sepoy General,” sketched for us by Captain Sherer,
-will enable us to visualize him as he appeared at this
-time:</p>
-
-<p>“General Wellesley was a little above the middle
-height, well limbed, and muscular; with little incumbrance
-of flesh beyond that which gives shape and
-manliness to the outline of the figure; with a firm
-tread, an erect carriage, a countenance strongly patrician,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_63">63</a></span>
-both in feature, profile, and expression, and an appearance
-remarkable and distinguished: few could approach
-him on any duty, or on any subject requiring his serious
-attention, without being sensible of a something strange
-and penetrating in his clear light eye. Nothing could
-be more simple and straightforward than the matter
-of what he uttered; nor did he ever in his life affect any
-peculiarity or pomp of manner, or rise to any coarse,
-weak loudness in his tone of voice. It was not so that
-he gave expression to excited feeling.”</p>
-
-<p>To what extent did the Governor-General influence
-his brother’s career in India? First of all we must
-understand the position of the Marquis Wellesley. It
-was naturally one of tremendous power and responsibility.
-The glamour attached to the post was sufficiently
-evident to the general public. There it ended, for it
-was glitter rather than gold to its holder. The Directors
-of the East India Company, ever on the side of rigid
-economy and large dividends, expressly forbade the
-costly system of conquest and annexation, yet this was
-necessarily the sheet anchor of Wellesley’s policy, as
-former chapters have shown. When pacific measures
-were tried and failed, it would have been disastrous to
-continue them. As it usually took over three months<a id="FNanchor_19" href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">19</a>
-for a communication from India to reach England, it
-follows that the same period was necessary for a reply.
-The consequences of indecision on the part of the
-Viceroy, of waiting for advice from home in matters
-requiring urgency, were therefore fraught with dire peril.
-On the other hand, if he showed too despotic tendencies
-he ran a grave risk of incurring displeasure. Indeed,
-this is exactly what happened, for Lord Wellesley was
-recalled in 1805 and censured by the Court of Proprietors.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_64">64</a></span>
-When, after thirty years, it became evident
-that his administration had been wise and not foolish,
-that he had carried out what would have had
-to be done eventually to establish British influence,
-the Directors relented and voted him a grant of
-£20,000.</p>
-
-<p>Fortunately there was “a barrier state” in London
-between the Governor-General and the Directors in the
-person of the President of the Board of Control, the
-said Board consisting of Cabinet Ministers. This
-position had been occupied since July 1802 by Lord
-Castlereagh, who, on taking office, found that Wellesley
-had come to the conclusion that resignation was better
-than humiliation. He did much to smooth over the
-difficulties, and from that time until Wellesley’s return
-to England Castlereagh loyally supported the Viceroy
-on every possible occasion. For instance, when the
-reduction of the Indian establishment to 10,000 troops
-was seriously mooted by the Directors and the Cabinet at
-home, notwithstanding the threatening attitude of the
-Marhattá confederacy, it was largely due to Castlereagh’s
-support of Lord Wellesley’s demands that so absurd a
-policy was prevented.</p>
-
-<p>The President of the Board of Control never interfered
-in the matter of patronage, knowing full well that the
-Governor-General on the spot was better able to recognize
-merit for the special requirements of the service
-than a man thousands of miles away. This brings us
-back to our proper subject.</p>
-
-<p>We have noted how Lord Mornington discerned the
-opportunity awaiting his brother in India, and how
-that brother reciprocated when the former was diffident
-in the matter of accepting the chief official post there.
-It is true that Wellesley was made Governor of
-Seringapatam over the head of Baird, his senior officer,
-but whether this appointment was due to the fact that
-Mornington influenced General Harris in the matter
-of his choice is not sufficiently evident. There is a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_65">65</a></span>
-strong suspicion that it was,<a id="FNanchor_20" href="#Footnote_20" class="fnanchor">20</a> because Arthur Wellesley
-had only served as commander of the reserve, whereas
-Baird was the leader of the assault, and as such military
-tradition unquestionably favoured his appointment.</p>
-
-<p>Again, in the matter of the Batavian expedition,
-the Governor-General offered Wellesley the appointment
-as military commander: “The King has given
-me the power of selecting the persons who are to conduct
-this expedition; ... and a conscientious sense of
-duty induces me to think that you are the most fit
-person to be selected for that service, provided you
-can safely be spared from Mysore for the period of the
-expedition....” In Mornington’s opinion, “the
-expedition will be very advantageous to the naval
-and military commanders.” On the other hand, we
-know that when the project was abandoned for a
-diversion on the coasts of the Red Sea, he superseded
-his brother. One wonders what would have happened
-when Wellesley set off for Bombay without instructions,
-had he not been closely related to the Governor-General.
-The Marquis certainly did not minimize Arthur’s successes
-to those at home. Writing to Addington, then
-Speaker of the House of Commons, in October 1800,
-he says, “My brother Arthur has distinguished himself
-most brilliantly in an expedition against an insurgent,
-who had collected a great force of predatory cavalry&mdash;the
-wreck of Tippú’s army.” Three years later, when
-Addington was Prime Minister, he again drew attention
-to his brother’s achievements, as <span class="locked">follows:&mdash;</span></p>
-
-<p>“My public duty will not permit me to be silent
-respecting Major-General Wellesley. His march from
-Mysore to Poona, his able conduct of the measures
-adopted for restoring the Peishwah, for conciliating
-the feudatory Mahratta chiefs who maintained their<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_66">66</a></span>
-allegiance to the Peishwah, for preserving the dominions
-of the Nizám, and our interests at Hyderabad, combined
-with his sieges of Ahmednuggur, Burrampur, and
-Asseerghur, his glorious and splendid victories at Assaye
-and on the plains of Argaum, with the entire ruin of
-Sindhia’s French troops and powerful artillery in the
-Deccan, must place the name of General Wellesley
-among the most bright and distinguished characters
-that have adorned the military history of the British
-power in India. He is now employed in reducing the
-main fortress of Perar, and in negotiating, with the
-utmost judgment and skill, the conditions of peace.
-I leave his merits to your justice, and to the judgment
-of his King and country. The pride and honour of
-being allied by the nearest ties of blood to such an
-officer cannot absolve me from the obligations of my
-public station, as the representative of the supreme
-civil and military authority in India; and I cannot,
-therefore, omit this testimony to the merits of
-General Wellesley without a positive violation of my
-duty.”<a id="FNanchor_21" href="#Footnote_21" class="fnanchor">21</a></p>
-
-<p>Whatever may be thought of such glowing praise
-from a brother on the score of good taste, it evidently
-achieved its purpose, for before he left India, Arthur
-Wellesley was appointed an extra Knight Companion
-of the Bath and received the thanks of the King and
-Parliament.</p>
-
-<p>Earl Roberts,<a id="FNanchor_22" href="#Footnote_22" class="fnanchor">22</a> in summing up this phase of the future
-Duke’s career, remarks: “On his arrival in India
-he found himself in a country where in almost every
-matter the power and influence of the Governor-General
-were supreme, and the Governor-General being his<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_67">67</a></span>
-brother, he was quickly placed in a position of responsibility,
-which gave him the opportunity of developing
-his talents as a soldier and statesman in the best of all
-schools&mdash;the school of practice. It cannot be denied
-that in early life Wellington owed much to family
-influence,<a id="FNanchor_23" href="#Footnote_23" class="fnanchor">23</a> and to a system of promotion which would
-now be stigmatized as jobbery. On the other hand,
-he took full advantage of every chance that was thrown
-in his way, and by his industry and capacity fully
-justified the exceptional favour with which he was
-treated.”</p>
-
-<p>With this conclusion the present writer heartily
-agrees; whatever Sir Arthur gained from his relative’s
-assistance was amply repaid in his achievements.
-British India owes much to the brothers Wellesley.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_68">68</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_VI"></a>CHAPTER VI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Service in England, Ireland, and Denmark</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1805&ndash;7)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>I am not afraid of responsibility, God knows, and I am ready to incur
-any personal risk for the public service.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">When</span>, in 1803, the short-lived Peace of Amiens
-came to an end, and Great Britain and France
-again resorted to the sword, Napoleon’s first
-feat of arms was the conquest of Hanover. Thus, at the
-very beginning of the second phase of the Great War,
-George III found himself not only minus his hereditary
-continental possessions, but deprived of a very useful
-base for those futile military excursions so beloved of
-the British Government.</p>
-
-<p>That His Majesty received the tidings of his loss “with
-great magnanimity, and a real kingliness of mind,” may
-or may not be true. His ministers asserted that such
-was the case; considerations of policy would have precluded
-them from saying otherwise.</p>
-
-<p>However this may be, two months after Sir Arthur
-Wellesley landed in England, that is to say, in November
-1805, he was given the command of a brigade in an
-expedition to Hanover about to be undertaken by Lord
-Cathcart. The object was to rout the comparatively
-few French troops left to garrison the country, and to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_69">69</a></span>
-co-operate with Russian, Swedish, and Danish troops in
-ridding Germany of the common enemy. The surrender
-of Mack at Ulm, and Napoleon’s wonderful victory at
-Austerlitz, although it followed within a few weeks
-of Nelson’s signal triumph at Trafalgar,<a id="FNanchor_24" href="#Footnote_24" class="fnanchor">24</a> completely
-shattered this desirable object, just as the negotiations
-that followed put an end to the ambitious hopes of the
-Third Coalition. The recall of the troops before they had
-been able to carry out any of the objects of the diversion,
-beyond gaining some thousands of adherents to the rank
-and file, therefore became imperative, and was duly
-effected.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Arthur Wellesley now spent a short time in command
-of his brigade at Hastings, and he was gazetted
-colonel of the famous 33rd Regiment, which post had
-become vacant on the death of the venerable Marquis
-Cornwallis, his brother’s successor in India. The next
-important event in his life, if not in his career, was his
-marriage to the Hon. Catherine Pakenham, thus consummating
-a romance begun many years before,<a id="FNanchor_25" href="#Footnote_25" class="fnanchor">25</a> and his
-single ambition apart from the Army. The ceremony
-was performed in Dublin on the 10th April 1806, the
-bridegroom being nearly thirty-seven years of age. One
-wishes it were possible to add that “they lived happy
-ever after.” Biography, the twin sister of History, tells
-us that it was not so, and Gleig suggests that a broken
-engagement with a second suitor, of which Wellesley
-was not informed on his return from India, was partly the
-cause.<a id="FNanchor_26" href="#Footnote_26" class="fnanchor">26</a> Two days after the wedding Wellesley was
-elected Member of Parliament for Rye, his main object
-in seeking political distinction being that he might defend
-his brother’s administration in India, where his system<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_70">70</a></span>
-of making recalcitrant States subsidiary to England,
-whilst retaining their own rulers, was the subject of
-an embittered attack. The “high crimes and misdemeanours”
-alleged against Lord Wellesley were referred
-to from time to time, but on the 17th March 1808,
-the following motion was carried by 182 votes against
-31: “That it appears to this House that the Marquis
-Wellesley, in his arrangements in the province of Oude,
-was actuated by an ardent zeal for the service of his
-country, and an anxious desire to promote the safety,
-interests, and prosperity of the British Empire in India.”
-This did not altogether end the unsavoury affair, for
-another unsuccessful attempt to incriminate the statesman
-was made some time later.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Arthur was by this time Chief Secretary for Ireland,
-having been appointed in the previous year. Once again
-we see two members of this distinguished family holding
-prominent appointments, for Henry Wellesley became
-one of the Secretaries to the Treasury in the newly-appointed
-Portland ministry.</p>
-
-<p>Barrington, whose acquaintance we have already made,
-relates an interesting anecdote of the soldier at this time.
-He met Lord Castlereagh, accompanied by a gentleman,
-in the Strand. “His lordship stopped me,” he writes,
-“whereat I was rather surprised, as we had not met for
-some time; he spoke very kindly, smiled, and asked if
-I had forgotten my old friend, Sir Arthur Wellesley?
-whom I discovered in his companion, but looking so
-sallow and wan, and with every mark of what is called a
-worn-out man, that I was truly concerned at his appearance.
-But he soon recovered his health and looks, and
-went as the Duke of Richmond’s<a id="FNanchor_27" href="#Footnote_27" class="fnanchor">27</a> secretary to Ireland,
-where he was in all material traits still Sir Arthur
-Wellesley, but it was Sir Arthur Wellesley judiciously
-improved. He had not forgotten his friends, nor did
-he forget himself. He said that he had accepted the
-office of secretary only on the terms that it should not<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_71">71</a></span>
-impede or interfere with his military pursuits; and
-what he said proved true....”</p>
-
-<p>Obviously his duties in Ireland bear no comparison with
-those he so successfully undertook in India, but following
-his own maxim, “to do the business of the day in the
-day,” he got through a vast amount of routine labour,
-frequently important, sometimes trivial. Under the
-former head we must put his investigation of the military
-defences of the island. It must not be forgotten that
-although the invasion of the United Kingdom by
-Napoleon was no longer a standing menace, there was
-always a likelihood of its resurrection, and Ireland was
-the danger zone.</p>
-
-<p>The Peace of Tilsit, signed between France and
-Russia on the 7th July 1807, and between France
-and Prussia on the 9th of the same month, was a most
-serious blow to British interests. By a secret treaty the
-Emperor Alexander undertook to aid Napoleon against
-England if that Power refused to make peace within a
-certain period, to recognize the equality of all nations at
-sea, and to hand back the conquests made by her since
-1805. As a bait&mdash;it really savoured of insult&mdash;Great
-Britain was to be offered Hanover. Should she refuse
-these terms the Autocrats of France and of Russia agreed
-to compel Denmark, Sweden, and Portugal to join them
-in a vast naval confederacy against Great Britain, and to
-close their ports against her. In addition, the reigning
-monarchs of Spain and Portugal were to be deposed in
-favour of the Bonaparte family. For his connivance in
-the matter Alexander was to be handsomely compensated
-in the Ottoman Empire and by territorial acquisitions in
-Western Europe.</p>
-
-<p>Fortunately, or otherwise, according to the point of
-view, the British Cabinet was put in possession of certain
-facts regarding these plans. Canning, who was
-Minister for Foreign Affairs, realizing the responsibilities
-of his unenviable position, as also of that of
-his country, determined to forestall the plotters. He<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_72">72</a></span>
-felt that some kind of arrangement with Denmark was
-essential, especially as the Prince Regent of Portugal
-had communicated news to the effect that Napoleon
-purposed to invade England with the Portuguese and
-Danish fleets. Canning suggested to Denmark that her
-fleet should be put in the safe custody of England until
-peace was restored. In addition, he promised a subsidy
-of £100,000, and the assistance of troops should Denmark
-be attacked. Mr F.&nbsp;J. Jackson was sent to open negotiations;
-the Prince Royal promptly vetoed them. “I
-stated plainly,” says Jackson, “that I was ordered to
-demand the junction of the Danish fleet with that of
-England, and that in case of refusal it was the determination
-of His Majesty to enforce it.”</p>
-
-<p>Lord Cathcart was put in command of an army of
-27,000 troops, the naval portion of the expedition being
-placed in the hands of Admiral Gambier. No sooner
-had Sir Arthur Wellesley heard of the project than he
-communicated with Castlereagh, then at the War Office
-and ever his staunch supporter, for an opportunity to
-take part. He was given charge of a division. On the
-3rd August a formidable array of twenty-five sail-of-the-line
-and over fifty gunboats and transports appeared off
-Elsinore. Gambier and Cathcart were told by Jackson
-“that it now rested with them to carry out the measure
-prescribed by the British Government.” In a letter to
-his brother the diplomatist adds, “The Danes must, I
-think, soon surrender, for they are without any hopes of
-succour, are unfurnished with any effectual means of
-resistance, and are almost in total want of the necessaries
-of life, as far as I could learn or was able to see for myself
-during my few hours’ stay there.<a id="FNanchor_28" href="#Footnote_28" class="fnanchor">28</a> There were no droves
-of cattle or flocks of sheep; no provisions of any sort being
-sent in the direction of the city. No troops marching
-towards the town; no guns mounted on the ramparts;
-no embrasures cut, in fact, no preparations of any sort.
-What the Danes chiefly rely on is the defence by water.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_73">73</a></span>
-They brought out this morning several <i xml:lang="nl" lang="nl">praams</i><a id="FNanchor_29" href="#Footnote_29" class="fnanchor">29</a> and
-floating batteries, and cut away one or two of the
-buoys.</p>
-
-<p>“The garrison of Copenhagen does not amount to
-more than four thousand regular troops. The <i xml:lang="de" lang="de">landwehr</i>
-is a mere rabble, as indeed all <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">levées en masse</i> must be.</p>
-
-<p>“The people are said to be anxious to capitulate before
-a conflagration takes place, which must happen soon
-after a bombardment begins, when, not improbably,
-the fleet as well as the city will become a prey to the
-flames.”</p>
-
-<p>Jackson’s prophecy came true, but against his statement
-that the army disembarked at Veldbeck “in grand
-style,” we must set that of Captain Napier: “I never
-saw any fair in Ireland so confused as the landing; had
-the enemy opposed us, the <em>remains</em> of the army would
-have been on their way to England.”<a id="FNanchor_30" href="#Footnote_30" class="fnanchor">30</a> Wellesley’s first
-affray&mdash;it can scarcely be termed a battle&mdash;took place at
-Roskilde. Like almost everything connected with the
-expedition, Jackson has something to say about it, and
-that “something” in this particular instance is anything
-but complimentary. “Sir Arthur Wellesley,” he tells
-his wife, “has had an affair which you will probably see
-blazoned forth in an extraordinary <em>Gazette</em>. With about
-four thousand men he attacked a Danish corps of armed
-peasantry, and killed and wounded about nine hundred
-men, besides taking upwards of fifteen hundred prisoners,
-amongst whom were sixty officers. One was a General
-officer. I spoke to him this morning, for he and his
-officers are let off on their parole. The men are on board
-prison ships, and miserable wretches they are, fit for
-nothing but following the plough. They wear red and
-green striped woollen jackets, and wooden <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">sabots</i>. Their
-long lank hair hangs over their shoulders, and gives to
-their rugged features a wild expression. The knowing ones
-say that after the first fire they threw away their arms,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_74">74</a></span>
-hoping, without them, to escape the pursuit of our troops.
-In fact, the <em>battle</em> was not a very glorious one, but this
-you will keep for yourself.”<a id="FNanchor_31" href="#Footnote_31" class="fnanchor">31</a></p>
-
-<p>Wellesley himself afterwards referred to the event
-as “the little battle at Kiöge,” and mentioned that
-“the Danes had made but a poor resistance; indeed,
-I believe they were only new raised men&mdash;militia.”<a id="FNanchor_32" href="#Footnote_32" class="fnanchor">32</a></p>
-
-<p>The bombardment of Copenhagen began on the 2nd
-September 1807, and concluded three days later, when an
-armistice was granted in order that terms might be discussed.
-On the 7th, Copenhagen capitulated. The conditions
-imposed by Sir Arthur Wellesley, Sir Home
-Popham, and Lieutenant-Colonel Murray were that the
-British should occupy the citadel and dockyards for
-six weeks, and take possession of the ships and naval
-stores. Their troops would then evacuate Zealand.
-“I might have carried our terms higher ... had not
-our troops been needed at home,” Wellesley writes to
-Canning. The various clauses were carried out, and
-fifteen sail-of-the-line, fifteen frigates, and thirty-one
-smaller vessels of the Danish fleet, as well as 20,000 tons
-of naval stores, were escorted to England. “That the
-attack was necessary,” says a recent historian, “no one
-will now deny. England was fighting for her existence;
-and, however disagreeable was the task of striking a
-weak neutral, she risked her own safety if she left in
-Napoleon’s hand a fleet of such proportions. In Count
-Vandal’s words, she ‘merely broke, before he had
-seized it, the weapon which Napoleon had determined
-to make his own.’”<a id="FNanchor_33" href="#Footnote_33" class="fnanchor">33</a> Dr J. Holland Rose disapproves,
-and points out that “In one respect our action was
-unpardonable: it was not the last desperate effort of a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_75">75</a></span>
-long period of struggle: it came after a time of selfish
-torpor fatal alike to our reputation and the interests of
-our allies. After protesting their inability to help them,
-Ministers belied their own words by the energy with
-which they acted against a small State.”<a id="FNanchor_34" href="#Footnote_34" class="fnanchor">34</a></p>
-
-<p>Canning’s hope for an alliance with Sweden, in order to
-keep open the Baltic, was destined never to be fulfilled.
-Sir John Moore was sent to assist Gustavus in his efforts
-to resist the attacks of Russia, but the nation deserted the
-King, deposed him, and joined Napoleon. War speedily
-broke out between Sweden and Denmark, and also
-between the latter and Great Britain. The Czar’s overtures
-to England on behalf of France, as arranged at
-Tilsit, came to nothing. He was not anxious for them
-to have any other ending, so enraptured was he with
-Napoleon’s grandiloquent schemes. Enraptured? Yes,
-but only for a few short years.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_76">76</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_VII"></a>CHAPTER VII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">The First Battles of the Peninsular War</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1808)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>In war <em class="upright">men</em> are nothing: it is a <em class="upright">man</em> who is everything.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Napoleon.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap b"><span class="smcap1">On</span> his return from Copenhagen, Wellesley, never
-happy unless his mind was fully occupied,
-resumed his duties as Chief Secretary for
-Ireland. Special mention of the services he had
-rendered to his country was made in the House of
-Commons, and there was some talk of a second period
-in India, where affairs were far from settled. Before
-long, however, it became increasingly evident that
-his knowledge and ability would be required nearer
-home.</p>
-
-<p class="hideme"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_77">77</a></span></p>
-
-<div id="ip_77" class="figcenter" style="width: 850px;">
- <img src="images/i_085.jpg" width="850" height="574" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">WELLINGTON’S PENINSULAR CAMPAIGNS.</div></div>
-
-<p>Portugal, our old ally, had been forced by Napoleon
-to declare war against Great Britain on the 20th October
-1807. Bent on pursuing the rigid restrictions on
-trade imposed by his Continental System, he had also
-peremptorily ordered the confiscation of the property
-of the British merchants. Fortunately for those most
-concerned, the Prince Regent remembered past friendship
-and may have discerned future possibilities.
-He temporized, and this enabled many of the English
-residents to settle their affairs and sail for home before
-the Dictator could enforce obedience. The sequel was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_78">78</a></span>
-the overrunning of the kingdom by French troops
-under the intrepid Junot, who met with no resistance,
-and the desertion of their subjects by the Royal Family,
-who sailed for Brazil.</p>
-
-<p>Although this plan was carried out at the earnest
-request of the British Government, as represented by
-Lord Strangford, the Ambassador at the Portuguese
-Capital, it cannot be regarded as a pleasing example
-of patriotism on the part of the House of Braganza.</p>
-
-<p>In October 1807, Junot, in command of the French
-Army, and strengthened by a few regiments of the
-Spanish corps placed at Napoleon’s disposal for the
-dismemberment of the western portion of the Iberian
-Peninsula, began his march on Lisbon. He concluded
-it on the 30th November with only 1500 troops, the
-remainder following slowly by reason of the terrible
-sufferings they had endured during a forced march
-made at Napoleon’s urgent behest.</p>
-
-<p>Here it should be mentioned that the presence of the
-Spanish troops was due to the infamous Treaty of
-Fontainebleau, signed the previous October. In this
-arrangement the Emperor had promised Godoy, the
-real ruler of Spain and an intensely ambitious man,
-a large slice of territory in the country about to be
-conquered in return for favours rendered. It is more
-than probable that Napoleon never intended this particular
-clause to be taken seriously by anyone but his
-dupe; the gift was so much dust thrown in the eyes of
-the favourite for the purpose of securing the entry of
-French troops into Spain.<a id="FNanchor_35" href="#Footnote_35" class="fnanchor">35</a> In this he was pre-eminently
-successful. Once in Lisbon Junot speedily removed
-any fear of the national army by breaking up many of
-the regiments and sending the remainder on service
-outside the kingdom. The flames of rebellion were not
-yet kindled. So far so good.</p>
-
-<p>Unhappily the chief prizes which the Emperor had
-hoped to secure at Lisbon were beyond his reach.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_79">79</a></span>
-Even the squadron which was to have seized the
-Portuguese and British shipping in the harbour was
-held in check by the hated English.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon, pretending to be the friend of Spain, was
-in reality her worst enemy. He merely used her as a
-useful tool to pick Portuguese locks, and then pursued
-the same course with his friend’s lockers. He began
-his unwelcome attentions by seizing the important
-frontier fortresses of Pampeluna, Barcelona, San
-Sebastian, and Figueras, and invading the country
-by a force which speedily numbered 116,000 men,
-mostly conscripts, for he thought the country easy
-prey. Murat entered Madrid as Junot had entered
-Lisbon. By the most unscrupulous methods, namely,
-the enforced abdication of Charles IV and his son
-Ferdinand, the Emperor secured the throne, permanently
-as he fondly imagined, for his brother Joseph,
-King of Naples.</p>
-
-<p>In July 1808 the eldest Bonaparte was proclaimed
-King, and entered his capital. Within a month he
-found it desirable to retire behind the Ebro; his
-subjects had not only broken into open revolt, but a
-French army of over 17,000 troops under Dupont had
-been forced to capitulate at Baylen, in Andalusia.
-Riots, assassinations, and massacres made it evident
-that the Spanish temper was considerably more dangerous
-than that of the Portuguese; it soon became obvious,
-moreover, that the people had employed some of their
-time in organizing, on a necessarily rough and ready
-principle, such forces as they possessed.</p>
-
-<p>The inhabitants of the Asturias, in the north, were the
-first of the provincials to apply the torch to the tinder
-of revolt, after a riot in Madrid on the 2nd May 1808,
-and its Junta General called into being a levy of 18,000
-men to protect the principality. It sent two deputies
-to England for assistance, which was readily given in
-money and military stores. Other provinces likewise
-selected Juntas, and Galicia also dispatched representatives<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_80">80</a></span>
-to plead its cause in London. Galicia,
-adjoining the Asturias on the west, lost little time in
-following the warlike example of its neighbours, and
-the arsenals of Coruña and Ferrol, made memorable
-by the Trafalgar campaign, threw in their lot against
-Napoleon and contributed no fewer than thirty-two
-battalions of regulars and militia to the general forces.
-Leon and Old Castile also rose in rebellion, though with
-less energy. There were too many French in the Basque
-Provinces and Navarre for much to be attempted there.
-Coming still farther to the east, Catalonia sheltered
-16,000 regulars and many irregular levies, but Aragon,
-Valencia, and Murcia were very weak. Andalusia,
-in the extreme south of the country, was almost as
-fortunately placed with regard to troops as Galicia,
-and the remains of the French fleet which had escaped
-Nelson and Collingwood were taken as they rode in
-Cadiz harbour.</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing approaching united action, provinces
-and towns often vieing in more or less friendly
-rivalry. They did not understand, or if they understood
-they did not realize, that patriotic cliques do
-not make for strength. They fought for themselves
-rather than for the nation as a whole. Throughout
-the struggle we find a lack of cohesion.</p>
-
-<p>When we come to look at the earliest available
-statistics<a id="FNanchor_36" href="#Footnote_36" class="fnanchor">36</a> of the various Spanish armies which formed
-the front line, we find that their total strength in
-regulars, militia battalions, and newly-raised corps
-was 151,248. They were divided into five chief armies,
-namely, of Galicia, Aragon, Estremadura, the Centre,
-and Catalonia, under Generals Blake, Palafox, Galluzzo,
-Castaños, and Vives respectively. The troops of the
-second line numbered about 65,000, and included the
-Army of Granada, under Reding, the Army of Reserve
-of Madrid, commanded by San Juan, the Galician,
-Asturian, Estremaduran, Andalusian, Murcian and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_81">81</a></span>
-Valencian reserves, and the 3000 odd men in garrison
-in the Balearic Isles.</p>
-
-<p>The gross total of the French Army of Spain at this
-period dwarfs the above figures for all their brave
-show; it reached 314,612. From this must be deducted
-32,643 detached troops and 37,844 in hospital
-or missing, making the “effective” no fewer than
-244,125. Of the eight corps, Victor commanded the
-1st, Bessières<a id="FNanchor_37" href="#Footnote_37" class="fnanchor">37</a> the 2nd, Moncey the 3rd, Lefebvre
-the 4th, Mortier the 5th, Ney the 6th, St Cyr the 7th,
-and Junot the 8th. There were also Reserve Cavalry
-and Infantry, the Imperial Guard, troops marching
-from Germany, and National Guards inside the French
-frontier.<a id="FNanchor_38" href="#Footnote_38" class="fnanchor">38</a></p>
-
-<p>When we consider that on the 31st May 1808 Napoleon
-had only 116,000 men in Spain and that within six
-months he had found it necessary to more than double
-that number, the desperate nature of the undertaking
-becomes plain.</p>
-
-<p>To enter fully into the doings of the various armies
-throughout the war would deflect us far out of our
-proper course, but we shall hear of them whenever
-Wellesley was involved.</p>
-
-<p>If you would know the ferocious spirit of the patriots,
-the hate they cherished for Napoleon and the French,
-you have only to turn to any one of the many Memoirs
-of men who fought in the Peninsular War. Captain,
-later Sir Harry, Smith, who was with Sir John Moore
-in 1808 and remained with Wellesley until March 1814,
-gives many instances in his vivacious “Autobiography,”<a id="FNanchor_39" href="#Footnote_39" class="fnanchor">39</a>
-but the following must suffice. Smith’s
-guide happened to be the owner of the house in which
-his wife and baggage were quartered in the village of
-Offala:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_82">82</a></span>
-“After I had dressed myself,” he relates, “he
-came to me and said, ‘When you dine, I have some
-capital wine, as much as you and your servants like;
-but,’ he says, ‘come down and look at my cellar.’
-The fellow had been so civil, I did not like to refuse
-him. We descended by a stone staircase, he carrying
-a light. He had upon his countenance a most sinister
-expression. I saw something exceedingly excited him:
-his look became fiend-like. He and I were alone, but
-such confidence had we Englishmen in a Spaniard, and
-with the best reason, that I apprehended no personal
-evil. Still his appearance was very singular. When
-we got to the cellar-door, he opened it, and held the
-light so as to show the cellar; when, in a voice of
-thunder, and with an expression of demoniacal hatred
-and antipathy, pointing to the floor, he exclaimed,
-‘There lie four of the devils who thought to subjugate
-Spain! I am a Navarrese. I was born free from
-all foreign invasion, and this right hand shall plunge
-this stiletto in my own heart as it did into theirs, ere I
-and my countrymen are subjugated!’ brandishing his
-weapon like a demon. I see the excited patriot as I
-write. Horror-struck as I was, the instinct of self-preservation
-induced me to admire the deed exceedingly,
-while my very frame quivered and my blood was
-frozen, to see the noble science of war and the honour
-and chivalry of arms reduced to the practices of midnight
-assassins. Upon the expression of my admiration,
-he cooled, and while he was deliberately drawing
-wine for my dinner, which, however strange it may be,
-I drank with the gusto its flavour merited, I examined
-the four bodies. They were Dragoons&mdash;four athletic,
-healthy-looking fellows. As we ascended, he had
-perfectly recovered the equilibrium of his vivacity
-and naturally good humour. I asked him how he,
-single-handed, had perpetrated this deed on four
-armed men (for their swords were by their sides).
-‘Oh, easily enough. I pretended to love a Frenchman’<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_83">83</a></span>
-(or, in his words, ‘I was an Afrancesado’), ‘and
-I proposed, after giving them a good dinner, we should
-drink to the extermination of the English.’ He then
-looked at me and ground his teeth. ‘The French
-rascals, they little guessed what I contemplated. Well,
-we got into the cellar, and drank away until I made
-them so drunk, they fell, and my purpose was easily,
-and as joyfully, effected.’ He again brandished his
-dagger, and said, ‘Thus die all enemies to Spain.’
-Their horses were in his stable. When the French
-Regiment marched off, he gave these to some guerrillas
-in the neighbourhood. It is not difficult to reconcile
-with truth the assertion of the historian who puts down
-the loss of the French army, during the Spanish war,
-as 400,000 men, for more men fell in this midnight
-manner than by the broad-day sword, or the pestilence
-of climate, which in Spain, in the autumn, is excessive.”</p>
-
-<div id="ip_82" class="figcenter" style="width: 411px;">
- <img src="images/i_091.jpg" width="411" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>Sir Harry Smith and the Spanish Patriot</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">Thomas Maybank</p></div></div>
-
-<p>That there was considerable cause for complaint on
-the part of the Spaniards is also borne out by other
-eye-witnesses. Napier records that a captain and his
-company came across a peasant’s hut and demanded
-provisions, as was their wont. The father explained
-that his children were half-starving, and he had but
-little food left. He was told that he would be hanged
-to a beam. Should he give a sign that he repented of
-his decision he would be cut down, but not otherwise.
-He was strung up without further ado. Then the cries
-of his wife and children overcame his noble act of self-sacrifice,
-and he was released. The soldiers then took
-every scrap of food in the miserable dwelling and
-departed. A similar method was adopted by a second
-body of plunderers, and when they could find nothing
-they spitefully killed the poor fellow, doubtless on the
-charge that he was hiding his stock.</p>
-
-<p>Robert Blakeney, in noticing that most writers
-have referred to the Spanish army as “ragged, half-famished
-wretches,” cautions us that the men themselves
-must not be blamed for their unkempt appearance.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_84">84</a></span>
-“The scandal and disgrace,” he writes, “were
-the legitimate attributes of the Spanish Government.
-The members of the Cortez and Juntas were entirely
-occupied in peculation, amassing wealth for themselves
-and appointing their relatives and dependents to all
-places of power and emolument, however unworthy
-and unqualified; and although it was notorious that
-shiploads of arms, equipments, clothing, and millions
-of dollars were sent from England for the use and
-maintenance of the Spanish troops, yet all was appropriated
-to themselves by the members of the general or
-local governments or their rapacious satellites, while
-their armies were left barefoot, ragged and half-starved.
-In this deplorable state they were brought into the
-field under leaders, many of whom were scarcely competent
-to command a sergeant’s outlying piquet; for
-in the Spanish army, as elsewhere, such was the undue
-influence of a jealous and covetous aristocracy, that,
-unsupported by their influence, personal gallantry
-and distinction, however conspicuous, were but rarely
-rewarded.”<a id="FNanchor_40" href="#Footnote_40" class="fnanchor">40</a> The same officer, who joined the 28th
-Regiment as a boy of fifteen and saw much service in
-the Peninsular War, assures us that “Courage was
-never wanting to the Spanish soldiers; but confidence
-in their chiefs was rare.”<a id="FNanchor_41" href="#Footnote_41" class="fnanchor">41</a></p>
-
-<p>An expedition against the American colonies of
-Spain had been mooted several times by the British
-Cabinet, and Sir Arthur Wellesley had reported on
-ways and means. The scheme had developed sufficiently
-for some 8000 troops to be assembled at Cork preparatory
-to embarking for the voyage. It was finally
-decided that the troops should be used for a descent on
-Portugal, with the immediate intention of expelling the
-French and raising the enthusiasm of the population
-against Napoleon.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_85">85</a></span>
-The force sailed on the 12th July 1808 with Wellesley,
-now a Lieutenant-General, in command.</p>
-
-<p>John Wilson Croker, who served his country as
-Secretary to the Admiralty from 1809 to 1830, dined
-with Sir Arthur and Lady Wellesley in Harley Street
-on the evening before the General set out for Cork.
-After settling some business connected with Ireland,
-Wellesley “seemed to lapse into a kind of reverie,” his
-guest informs us, “and remained silent so long that
-I asked him what he was thinking of. He replied,
-‘Why, to say the truth, I am thinking of the French
-that I am going to fight. I have not seen them since
-the campaign in Flanders, when they were capital
-soldiers, and a dozen years of victory under Buonaparte
-must have made them better still. They have besides,
-it seems, a new system of strategy, which has out-manœuvred
-and overwhelmed all the armies of Europe.
-’Tis enough to make one thoughtful; but no matter:
-my die is cast, they may overwhelm me, but I don’t
-think they will out-manœuvre me. First, because I
-am not afraid of them, as everybody else seems to be;
-and secondly, because if what I hear of their system of
-manœuvres be true, I think it a false one as against
-steady troops. I suspect all the continental armies
-were more than half beaten before the battle was begun.
-I, at least, will not be frightened beforehand.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley made the voyage to Portugal in a fast
-frigate, and landed at Coruña on the 20th July 1808,
-ahead of his troops. This gave him sufficient time to
-make a preliminary study of the situation at first
-hand, and to be ready for immediate operations on the
-arrival of his men.</p>
-
-<p>The first news he received was not encouraging, for
-it told of the battle of Medina de Rio Seco, which
-Bessières had won against the Army of Galicia on the
-14th July. A little relief was afforded by rumours of
-success elsewhere, and “the arrival of the British
-money,” speedily renewed the flagging spirits of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_86">86</a></span>
-patriots who were fighting under such adverse
-conditions.</p>
-
-<p>The Junta of Galicia, while keenly appreciative of
-gold, ammunition, and arms, showed no disposition
-to avail themselves of the Commander’s services, and
-suggested his landing in the north of Portugal as the
-government of Oporto was collecting native troops
-in that neighbourhood. “The difference between any
-two men,” Wellesley writes on the 21st July, the day
-before he sailed from Coruña, “is whether the one is
-a better or a worse Spaniard, and the better Spaniard
-is the one who detests the French most heartily. I
-understand that there is actually no French party in
-the country; and at all events I am convinced that no
-man now dares to show that he is a friend to the French.”</p>
-
-<p>To sum up the situation was not an arduous task
-for Wellesley. He came to the conclusion without
-further ado that the only reasonable way to assist the
-Spaniards was “to get possession of and organize a
-good army in Portugal.” He proceeded to the fleet
-off Cape Finisterre, spent a few hours there, and then
-went to Oporto, where he had an important conference
-with the Bishop, who was also head of the Portuguese
-Junta, and a number of military officers. It was
-eventually decided that about 5300 troops, chiefly
-infantry, stationed at Coimbra under Bernardino
-Freire, should be used to co-operate with Wellesley,
-and that the remaining forces, namely, 12,000 peasants,
-should either be employed in the neighbourhood or
-in the province of Tras os Montes, where a French
-attack seemed probable. Finally a spot in Mondego
-Bay was chosen as the most suitable point for disembarkation,
-especially as it had the additional advantage
-of being near Coimbra. On the 1st August the
-business commenced, tiresome, and not unattended
-by danger because of the heavy surf.</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley had much to think about while this was
-proceeding. He had just received the amazing news<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_87">87</a></span>
-that he had been superseded by Sir Hew Dalrymple,
-with Sir Harry Burrard as second in command, that
-Sir John Moore was on his way with 10,000 men, and
-that he (Wellesley) and Lieut.-Generals the Hon. J.
-Hope, Sir E. Paget, and Mackenzie Frazer were to
-command divisions. Whatever agitation the new
-arrangements may have occasioned Wellesley, he did
-not allow it to shake his purpose or lessen his enthusiasm
-for the cause he had now so much at heart. He writes
-to Castlereagh, “Whether I am to command the army
-or not, or am to quit it, I shall do my best to insure its
-success; and you may depend upon it that I shall not
-hurry the operations, or commence them one moment
-sooner than they ought to be commenced, in order
-that I may acquire the credit of the success. The
-Government will determine for me what way they will
-employ me hereafter, whether here or elsewhere.” He
-then goes on to sketch a campaign suitable for an army
-“of 30,000 Portuguese troops, which might be easily
-raised at an early period; and 20,000 British, including
-4000 or 5000 cavalry.”</p>
-
-<p>“The weather was so rough and stormy,” writes one
-of the soldiers of the 71st Regiment, “that we were
-not all landed until the 5th. On our leaving the ship,
-each man got four pound of biscuit, and four pound of
-salt beef cooked on board. We marched, for twelve
-miles, up to the knees in sand, which caused us to
-suffer much from thirst; for the marching made it
-rise and cover us. We lost four men of our regiment,
-who died of thirst. We buried them where they fell.
-At night we came to our camp ground [Lugar], in a
-wood, where we found plenty of water, to us more
-acceptable than anything besides on earth. We here
-built large huts, and remained four days. We again
-commenced our march alongst the coast, towards Lisbon.
-In our advance, we found all the villages deserted,
-except by the old and destitute....”</p>
-
-<p>On the night of the 8th, General Spencer and his<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_88">88</a></span>
-corps of 4500 men joined Wellesley from Cadiz, where
-he had landed at the request of the Junta of Seville.
-By the 11th the whole army had arrived at Leiria,
-and on the following day it was augmented by 2300
-of Freire’s Portuguese troops, their commander refusing
-point blank to march with his remaining forces unless
-certain impossible demands were met. “My object,”
-writes Wellesley, “is to obtain possession of Lisbon,
-and to that I must adhere, whatever may be the consequences,
-till I shall have attained it, as being the first
-and greatest step towards dispossessing the French
-of Portugal.”</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, Junot had sent instructions to Generals
-Loison and Delaborde to effect a junction and attack
-Wellesley. This was prevented by the timely arrival
-of the British troops at Leiria, for the former was some
-sixteen miles to the south-east and the latter about the
-same distance to the south-west. Wellesley was consequently
-between them. This necessitated Loison’s return
-to the southward if he wished to join Delaborde, and
-the British General determined to prevent the operation.
-On the 14th, Wellesley was at Alcobaço, from whence
-the French had retreated but a few hours before.</p>
-
-<p>Although a small engagement took place near Obidos,
-Wellesley did not offer battle until two days later
-because his whole force had not yet come up. The
-conflict occurred at Roliça, where Delaborde’s army
-was awaiting him on a hill. We know that the allied
-force totalled 15,000; the strength of the enemy is
-uncertain, Wellesley believing it to be 6000, while
-Professor Oman<a id="FNanchor_42" href="#Footnote_42" class="fnanchor">42</a> gives the figure as “about 4350
-men,” basing his conclusion on known official returns
-previous to the fight and making allowance for probable
-losses by sickness.</p>
-
-<p>“On the morning of the 17th,” says the eye-witness
-already quoted, “we were under arms an hour before
-day. Half an hour after sunrise, we observed the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_89">89</a></span>
-enemy in a wood. We received orders to retreat.
-Having fallen back about two miles, we struck to the
-right, in order to come upon their flank, whilst the
-9th, 29th, and 5th battalion of the 60th, attacked
-them in front. They had a very strong position on
-a hill. The 29th advanced up the hill, not perceiving
-an ambush of the enemy, which they had placed on
-each side of the road. As soon as the 29th was right
-between them, they gave a volley, which killed, or
-wounded, every man in the grenadier company, except
-seven. Unmindful of their loss, the regiment drove
-on, and carried the entrenchments.<a id="FNanchor_43" href="#Footnote_43" class="fnanchor">43</a> The engagement
-lasted until about four o’clock, when the enemy gave
-way. We continued the pursuit, till darkness put a
-stop to it. The 71st had only one man killed and one
-wounded. We were manœuvring all day, to turn their
-flank; so that our fatigue was excessive, though our
-loss was but small.”</p>
-
-<p>Such was the battle of Roliça, Wellesley’s first victory
-over the French. He was perfectly satisfied with the
-fighting and moral qualities of his men as displayed
-in this engagement.</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot sufficiently applaud the conduct of the
-troops throughout this action,” he tells Castlereagh.
-Although he had a superiority of strength, the number
-of soldiers “actually employed in the heat of the
-action,” namely, 4635, was, “from unfavourable circumstances
-... by no means equal to that of the enemy.”
-The returns showed 479 British killed, wounded, and
-missing, and the French about 600.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_90">90</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_VIII"></a>CHAPTER VIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Victory Abroad, and Displeasure at Home</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1808&ndash;9)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>From the sublime to the ridiculous is but a step.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Napoleon.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">With</span> a mere handful of soldiers, Junot, big
-with ideas of a future kingship, and underestimating
-the strength and fighting powers
-of the enemy, left Lisbon and entered the field against
-Wellesley, whose troops were now encamped at Vimiero
-to cover the landing of 4000 additional men under
-Generals Anstruther and Acland. Having joined forces
-with the unfortunate Loison and Delaborde and thereby
-brought up the total strength of his army to 13,056
-men, the Marshal prepared to attack.</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley, who had over 18,000 troops, including
-2000 Portuguese, was well prepared, nay eager, for
-the encounter, but, unfortunately for him, Burrard
-arrived on the evening of the 20th August. When
-Wellesley explained to him his scheme of operations
-he showed no disposition to fall in with it. Wellesley
-had wished Sir John Moore to proceed to Lisbon by
-land in order to cut off Junot’s retreat, but the less-active
-Burrard would have none of it, and ordered him
-to wait until Moore’s arrival. “Whether we advance
-or not,” replied the General, “we shall have to fight.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_91">91</a></span>
-For the French will certainly attack us if we do not
-attack them.”</p>
-
-<p>This prophecy was fulfilled about 8 o’clock on the
-morning of the 21st August 1808, when squadrons of
-the enemy’s cavalry appeared. An attack was made
-on the British advanced guard. The French were
-driven back at the point of the bayonet, while other
-troops, stationed in the churchyard of Vimiero, prevented
-them from reaching the village of that name, and
-Acland’s brigade attacked them in flank. “A most
-desperate contest” was necessary before the enemy
-recoiled in confusion, during which they lost heavily
-in killed and wounded, and in <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">material</i> seven pieces of
-cannon. Other French troops, supported by a large
-body of cavalry, turned their attention to the heights
-on the road to Lourinhão, where Ferguson’s brigade
-was stationed. The latter charged with praiseworthy
-coolness, and again there was a tale of disaster to tell
-when the enemy fell back, while half a dozen guns were
-captured. An attempt to recover part of the lost
-artillery resulted in the French being obliged to retire
-“with great loss.”</p>
-
-<p>Burrard, who had slept on the vessel which had
-brought him out, did not arrive on the field till late in
-the day, and took no part in the direction of the battle
-until Wellesley wished to pursue the enemy to Torres
-Vedras and cut them off from Lisbon. “Sir Harry,”
-he said, “now is your time to advance, the enemy is
-completely beaten, and we shall be in Lisbon in three
-days.” This his senior officer absolutely forbade.
-Had the former been allowed to follow his own wishes
-he believed that, “in all probability, the whole would
-have been destroyed.” As it was, at least 1800 of the
-enemy were rendered <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">hors de combat</i>, including 300 or
-400 troops who were made prisoners. The British lost
-in killed and missing 186 men, and 534 were wounded.
-The General was again delighted with the behaviour
-of his men, and in communicating with the Duke of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_92">92</a></span>
-York, he averred that “this is the only action I have
-ever been in, in which every thing passed as it was
-directed and no mistake was made by any of the
-Officers charged with its conduct.”</p>
-
-<p>One splendid incident, one altogether human touch,
-affords relief to the story of the battle of Vimiero. A
-piper of the gallant 71st Highlanders, severely wounded
-in the thigh and deeply in need of surgical aid, continued
-to blow his pibroch for the encouragement of
-his colleagues, until exhaustion finally conquered his
-determined spirit. Seated on the ground he declared
-that “the lads should nae want music to their wark,”
-and went on with his weird music as though parading
-within the walls of Edinburgh Castle.</p>
-
-<p>“I afterwards saw him,” relates Lieut.-General
-Sir William Warre, “in a hovel, where we collected
-the wounded ... both French and English. I
-shook him by the hand, and told him I was very sorry
-to see so fine a fellow so badly hurt; he answered,
-‘Indeed, captain, I fear I am done for, but there are
-some of those poor fellows,’ pointing to the French,
-‘who are very bad indeed.’”</p>
-
-<p>Such coolness, typified in successive instances,
-although not always under such conditions,<a id="FNanchor_44" href="#Footnote_44" class="fnanchor">44</a> has made
-our Empire what it is to-day. The “common”
-British soldier, sowing the highway with his bones,
-enables a later generation to reap a golden harvest.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_92" class="figcenter" style="width: 402px;">
- <img src="images/i_103.jpg" width="402" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>The Gallant Piper at Vimiera</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">Thomas Maybank</p></div></div>
-
-<p>It is due to the French to record that they were not
-without men equally as cool as Piper Mackay. A
-typical example is furnished by Major Ross-Lewin,
-who fought in the 32nd, and it occurred immediately
-after the battle of Vimiero:</p>
-
-<p>“An officer of my regiment,” he relates, “happened
-to pass near an old French soldier, who was seated
-by the roadside, covered with dust, and desperately
-wounded; a cannon-shot had taken off both his feet
-just above the ankles, but his legs were so swollen<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_93">93</a></span>
-that his wounds bled but little. On seeing the officer,
-the poor fellow addressed him, saying, ‘<i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">Monsieur,
-je vous conjure donnez moi mes pieds</i>.’ and at the same
-time pointed to his feet, which lay on the road beyond
-his reach. His request met with a ready compliance.
-The pale, toilworn features of the veteran brightened
-up for an instant on receiving these mutilated members,
-which had borne him through many a weary day, and
-which it grieved him to see trampled on by the victorious
-troops that passed; and then, as if prepared to meet
-his fast-approaching fate becomingly, by the attainment
-of this one poor wish, he laid them tranquilly
-beside him, and, with a look of resignation, and the
-words, ‘<i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">Je suis content</i>,’ seemed to settle himself for
-death.”</p>
-
-<p>Many years afterwards, when in a reminiscent mood,
-the Duke of Wellington recapitulated the events of
-the 21st August 1808. “The French,” he told his
-guests, “came on at Vimiero with more confidence,
-and seemed to <em>feel their way</em> less than [smiling] I always
-found them to do <em>afterwards</em>. They came on in their
-usual way, in a very heavy column, and I received them
-in line, which they were not accustomed to, and we repulsed
-them there several times, and at last they went
-off beaten on all points, while I had half the army
-untouched and ready to pursue; but Sir H. Burrard&mdash;who
-had joined the army in about the middle of the
-battle, but seeing all doing so well, had desired me to
-continue in the command now that he considered the
-battle as won, though I thought it but half done&mdash;resolved
-to push it no further. I begged very hard
-that he would go on, but he said enough had been
-done. Indeed, if he had come earlier, the battle would
-not have taken place at all, for when I waited on him
-on board the frigate in the bay the evening before,
-he desired me to suspend all operations, and said he
-would do nothing till he had collected all the force
-which he knew to be on the way. He had heard of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_94">94</a></span>
-Moore’s arrival, but the French luckily resolving to
-attack us, led to a different result. I came from the
-frigate about nine at night, and went to my own quarters
-with the army, which, from the nearness of the enemy,
-I naturally kept on the alert. In the dead of the night
-a fellow came in&mdash;a German sergeant, or quartermaster&mdash;in
-a great fright&mdash;so great that his hair seemed
-actually to stand on end&mdash;who told me that the enemy
-was advancing rapidly, and would be soon on us. I
-immediately sent round to the generals to order them
-to get the troops under arms, and soon after the dawn
-of day we were vigorously attacked. The enemy were
-first met by the (50th ?), not a good-looking regiment,
-but devilish steady, who received them admirably,
-and brought them to a full stop immediately, and soon
-drove them back; they then tried two other attacks ...
-one very serious, through a valley on our left; but
-they were defeated everywhere, and completely repulsed,
-and in full retreat by noon, so that we had time
-enough to have <em>finished them</em> if I could have persuaded
-Sir H. Burrard to go on.”</p>
-
-<p>On the day following the battle of Vimiero, Dalrymple
-arrived. While pondering over the situation he received
-a proposal for an armistice from Junot, which developed
-into the Convention of Cintra, preliminarily
-signed on the 30th August 1808. The most important
-conditions were&mdash;the surrender of all places and forts
-in Portugal occupied by the French troops, the evacuation
-of the country, and the transport of the army, its
-munitions and “property,” to France in British ships.
-By a strange oversight the important question of
-future service was overlooked, consequently there
-was nothing to prevent an early return of the troops
-to the Peninsula should Napoleon think fit for them
-to do so.</p>
-
-<p>We have now to consider Wellesley’s part in this
-much discussed transaction. The Convention was
-definitely signed on the 30th August 1808, but previous<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_95">95</a></span>
-to this a meeting of the General Officers was called to
-deliberate upon it. “The result of the meeting,”
-Wellesley writes on the 29th inst., “was a proposal
-to make certain alterations, which I acknowledge I
-do not think sufficient, although the treaty will answer
-in its amended form.... At the same time I must
-say that I approve of allowing the French to evacuate
-Portugal, because I see clearly that we cannot get them
-out of Portugal otherwise, under existing circumstances,
-without such an arrangement; and we should be
-employed in the blockade or siege of the places which
-they would occupy during the season in which we
-ought and might be advantageously employed against
-the French in Spain. But the Convention, by which
-they should be allowed to evacuate Portugal, ought
-to be settled in the most honorable manner to the army
-by which they have been beaten; and we ought not to
-be kept for 10 days on our field of battle before the
-enemy (who sued on the day after the action) is brought
-to terms.</p>
-
-<p>“I am quite annoyed on this subject.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley signed the preliminary Memorandum at
-the request of Dalrymple, but had nothing to do
-with the final settlement. “I lament the situation of
-our affairs as much as you do,” he writes on the 5th
-September, “and I did every thing in my power to
-prevent it; but my opinion was overruled. I had
-nothing to do with the Convention as it now stands;
-and I have never seen it to this moment.... I have
-only to regret that I put my name to an agreement of
-which I did not approve, and which I did not negotiate:
-if I had not done it, I really believe that they would not
-have dared to make such a Convention as they have
-made: notwithstanding that that agreement was never
-ratified, and is now so much waste paper.”<a id="FNanchor_45" href="#Footnote_45" class="fnanchor">45</a></p>
-
-<p>His letters at this period teem with allusions to the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_96">96</a></span>
-unfortunate treaty. He tells Castlereagh that “It is
-quite impossible for me to continue any longer with
-this army; and I wish, therefore, that you would allow
-me to return home and resume the duties of my office,
-if I should still be in office, and it is convenient to the
-Government that I should retain it; or if not, that I
-should remain upon the Staff in England; or, if that
-should not be practicable, that I should remain without
-employment. You will hear from others of the various
-causes which I must have for being dissatisfied, not
-only with the military and other public measures of
-the Commander-in-Chief, but with his treatment of
-myself. I am convinced it is better for him, for the
-army, and for me, that I should go away; and the
-sooner I go the better.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 6th October Wellesley was in London, and
-at once resumed his office as Chief Secretary for Ireland.
-The newspapers teemed with unsavory references to
-the unpopular Convention; the caricaturists, not to
-be rivalled by their journalistic brethren, produced the
-grossest lampoons for the benefit of the indignant
-public. In one of them Wellesley and his colleagues
-are hanging on gibbets, in another the former is shown
-urging his troops to glory:</p>
-
-<div class="poem-container">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza"><i>
-<span class="i0">This is Sir Arthur (whose valour and skill, began so well, but ended so ill)<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Who beat the French, who took the Gold, that lay in the City of Lisbon.</span></i>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Windham, writing in his Diary under date of the
-16th September, probably sums up the thoughts of
-most British statesmen of the time: “At Chesterford
-heard report of news; said to be excellent, but without
-particulars. Feasted upon the hopes of what I should
-meet at Hockrill. Alas! <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">quanti de spe decidi!</i> it was
-the news of the convention with Junot. <em>There never
-was surely such a proceeding in the history of wars or
-negotiations.</em> There is no bearing the thought of it.”</p>
-
-<p>A Court of Inquiry was instituted. Dalrymple and
-Burrard were recalled, and together with Wellesley,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_97">97</a></span>
-were examined before a board of officers, which included
-General David Dundas and Lord Moira, at Chelsea
-Hospital. The finding of the Court was non-committal
-“respecting the fitness of the Convention in the relative
-situation of the two armies,” doubtless because a
-unanimous “verdict” could not be arrived at, but the
-members definitely declared “that unquestionable
-zeal and firmness appear throughout to have been
-exhibited by Lieut.-Generals Sir Hew Dalrymple,
-Sir Harry Burrard, and Sir Arthur Wellesley....”
-In commenting on the judgment thus expressed, Sir
-Herbert Maxwell notes that the two senior officers
-were never employed again, adding, “Similar eclipse
-might have fallen upon Sir Arthur, but for the efforts
-of Castlereagh and other powerful friends, whose confidence
-in their General was never shaken.”</p>
-
-<p>In the following January (1809) the House of Lords
-and the House of Commons expressed their thanks
-to General Wellesley for the victories of Roliça and
-Vimiero.</p>
-
-<p>“It is your praise,” said the Speaker in the Commons,
-“to have inspired your troops with unshaken confidence
-and unbounded ardour; to have commanded, not the
-obedience alone, but the hearts and affections of your
-companions in arms; and, having planned your operations
-with the skill and promptitude which have so
-eminently characterized all your former exertions, you
-have again led the armies of your country to battle,
-with the same deliberate valour and triumphant success
-which have long since rendered your name illustrious
-in the remotest parts of this Empire.</p>
-
-<p>“Military glory has ever been dear to this nation;
-and great military exploits, in the field or upon the
-ocean, have their sure reward in Royal favour and the
-gratitude of Parliament. It is, therefore, with the
-highest satisfaction, that, in this fresh instance, I now
-proceed to deliver to you the thanks of this House....”</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley’s reply was made in three well-chosen<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_98">98</a></span>
-sentences, without the slightest attempt at rhetoric.
-In the House of Lords Vimiero was spoken of as “a
-signal victory, honorable and glorious to the British
-arms.” The resolutions of the peers, which included
-high appreciation of the behaviour of the non-commissioned
-officers and privates, were conveyed to Sir
-Arthur by the Lord Chancellor, and acknowledged by
-their recipient in a short letter, the most important
-paragraphs of which are as follows:</p>
-
-<p>“I have received the mark of distinction which the
-House of Lords have conferred upon me with sentiments
-of gratitude and respect proportionate to the high sense
-I entertain of the greatness of the honor which it carries
-with it; and I shall have great pleasure in communicating
-to the Officers and the troops the distinguished reward
-of their exemplary conduct which their Lordships have
-conferred upon them.</p>
-
-<p>“I beg leave, at the same time, to express to their
-Lordships my thanks for the expressions of personal
-civility with which your Lordship has conveyed to me
-the commands of the House.”</p>
-
-<p>These signs of approval must have been entirely satisfactory
-to Sir Arthur after the bitter criticisms of the
-previous months, but what he particularly valued was
-a handsome service of plate, worth intrinsically £1000,
-but sentimentally beyond price, presented to him by
-the brigadier and field officers who were associated
-with him in the victory at Vimiero. They, at any rate,
-had implicit faith in their General.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_99">99</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_IX"></a>CHAPTER IX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Sir Arthur’s Return to Portugal</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1809)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>We are not naturally a military people; the whole business of an
-army upon service is foreign to our habits, and is a constraint upon them,
-particularly in a poor country like this.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="sigright">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap b"><span class="smcap1">Baron</span> de Frénilly, travelling to Paris in
-December 1808, notes that “the roads along
-which we passed were crowded with splendid
-troops who were on their way to find a grave in the
-Peninsula.” Napoleon, in the Constitution he granted
-to Spain, assumes for himself not only the so-called
-“divine right of kings,” but the special favour of
-Providence. “God,” he says, “has given me the power
-and the will to overcome all obstacles.” Frénilly,
-writing after the Emperor’s death, merely states an
-historical fact; Napoleon, at the height of his stupendous
-power, regards himself as omnipotent, and proves
-within a few years that he is not.</p>
-
-<p>Yet it must be conceded that the Dictator of Europe&mdash;apart
-from moral considerations, which never troubled
-him to any extent&mdash;had a certain right to infer from
-his past experience that the Almighty was on his side.
-It was not for him to foresee that the Peninsula was
-to prove a running sore of the Imperial body politic.
-To be sure, Joseph had not been particularly successful
-on the throne of the Spanish Bourbons, Murat had displayed<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_100">100</a></span>
-many foolish qualities, Dupont had surrendered,
-Junot had evacuated Portugal, and eleven millions had
-rebelled either practically or theoretically against
-French domination, but there was still himself, and
-God was “on the side of the heaviest battalions!”
-“I may find in Spain the Pillars of Hercules, but not
-the limits of my power.” Thus he endeavoured to
-encourage his brother, and there is no reason to suspect
-that he imagined otherwise. He announced that he
-would pour between 300,000 and 400,000 troops across
-the Pyrenees&mdash;he actually began the new campaign
-with over 200,000, which compared more than favourably
-with the 120,000 ill-organized patriots under
-Castaños, Palafox, Vives, Belvedere, Blake, and La
-Romana, who usually acted without any idea of the
-value of co-operation.</p>
-
-<p>The number of those ready and willing to engage in
-a guerilla warfare cannot be given.<a id="FNanchor_46" href="#Footnote_46" class="fnanchor">46</a> Statistics fail in
-such a matter as this. Names indelibly associated
-with Napoleon’s greatness were either present or coming&mdash;Victor,
-Bessières, Moncey, Lefebvre, Ney, St Cyr,
-Mortier, and Junot.</p>
-
-<p>When Dalrymple, Burrard, and Wellesley sailed
-from Portugal the British command devolved upon
-Sir John Moore. This being a biography of Wellington,
-Moore’s astounding campaign can only be referred to
-in the briefest way, but it is necessary to mention the
-more important incidents if we are to understand the
-various phases of the war. Leaving 9000 men at
-Lisbon with Lieutenant-General Sir John Cradock,
-and taking with him 14,000 troops, Moore advanced
-into Spain to co-operate with the Spaniards according
-to his instructions. His own columns reached Salamanca,
-the point of concentration, in November 1808, but
-Baird, who, with a reinforcement of 13,000 men, was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_101">101</a></span>
-to effect a junction with him, found it impossible to
-do so. There was much delay in consequence.</p>
-
-<p>In the first week of the following month the Emperor
-was at Madrid, and the Spanish capital once again in
-the hands of the French. Disaster after disaster had
-followed hard in the tracks of the national forces.</p>
-
-<p>It was Moore’s hope that by slowly retreating
-northward the enemy would follow, and thus enable
-his allies in the south to recover. Having united with
-Baird, and learned that Soult, with not more than
-20,000, was near Sahagun, Moore was on the eve of
-combat when the startling intelligence reached him
-that Napoleon was in pursuit. The Emperor had told
-the Senate, “I am determined to carry on the war
-with the utmost activity, and to destroy the armies
-that England has disembarked in that country.” With
-wonderful promptitude Moore turned towards Coruña,
-where he believed the British fleet awaited him.
-Napoleon, hearing disconcerting news from Paris,
-made off for his capital, leaving Soult, “the Iron Duke
-of France,” and Ney to pursue the red-coats.</p>
-
-<p>On the 16th January 1809, the battle in which
-Moore received his death-wound was fought. Within
-twenty-four hours the victorious troops embarked for
-the homeland. Not a British soldier, other than
-deserters or stragglers, was left in Spain. In the sister
-kingdom there were some 12,000, of whom 9000 had
-been left at Lisbon by Moore when he had set out for
-Salamanca; the remainder had arrived from England
-in the previous November and December. In addition,
-Sir Robert Wilson had succeeded in equipping some 1300
-men at Oporto for his Loyal Lusitanian Legion.</p>
-
-<p>It soon became evident that war would shortly
-break out between France and Austria, thus precluding
-any thought on Napoleon’s part of going back to
-the Peninsula. Castlereagh, notwithstanding previous
-experiences, was as enthusiastic as ever. Baird and
-his ragged troops were no sooner home than it was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_102">102</a></span>
-remarked that the Secretary for War and Wellesley
-were very frequently together. Wiseacres foretold an
-early return of the latter to Spain and Portugal.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Arthur prepared a lengthy Memorandum on the
-defence of Portugal, which was placed in the hands of
-the Cabinet for careful consideration. “I have always
-been of opinion,” it begins, “that Portugal might be
-defended, whatever might be the result of the contest
-in Spain; and that in the meantime the measures
-adopted for the defence of Portugal would be highly
-useful to the Spaniards in their contest with the French.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley suggested the thorough reorganization of
-the native Portuguese troops, part of the expense being
-borne by Great Britain, and the employment of not less
-than 30,000 British troops, including 4000 or 5000
-cavalry and a large body of artillery. The entire
-army was to be commanded by British officers. Riflemen
-and 3000 British or German cavalry should be
-sent as additional reinforcements as soon as possible,
-in addition to a corps of engineers for an army of 60,000.
-He perfectly understood that the French would not
-be caught napping, for “it may be depended upon that
-as soon as the newspapers shall have announced<a id="FNanchor_47" href="#Footnote_47" class="fnanchor">47</a> the
-departure of Officers for Portugal, the French armies
-in Spain will receive orders to make their movements
-towards Portugal, so as to anticipate our measures for
-its defence. We ought therefore to have every thing
-on the spot, or nearly so, before any alarm is created
-at home respecting our intentions.”</p>
-
-<p>Thanks in no small measure to Castlereagh, Wellesley
-was appointed to the supreme command of the new<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_103">103</a></span>
-expedition. He left England on the 14th April 1809,
-a few weeks after Soult’s vanguard had crossed the
-Portuguese frontier, and landed at Lisbon on the 22nd,
-after a most eventful voyage, having encountered
-terrible weather off the Isle of Wight which threatened
-to drive his vessel ashore. The Commander-in-Chief
-thus sums up the situation in the Peninsula: “At that
-time,” he says, “the French had got possession of
-Zaragoza, Marshal Soult held Oporto and the northern
-provinces of Portugal. The battle of Medellin had
-been fought on the 29th March; and General Cuesta
-was endeavouring to recover from its effects, and to
-collect an army again at Monasterio, in the mountains
-of the Sierra Morena. The French, under Marshal
-Victor, were in possession of the Guadiana, and had their
-advanced posts as forward as Los Santos. Sebastiani
-was at Ciudad Real, and held in check the army of La
-Carolina, at that time under the command of General
-Venegas, consisting of about 12,000 men. Ney was in
-possession of Galicia; Salamanca was held by a small
-detachment of French troops; St Cyr was at Catalonia
-with his corps of 25,000 men; and Kellermann, who
-had succeeded to Bessières in the command of the
-6th corps, was at Valladolid. Mortier, with his corps,<a id="FNanchor_48" href="#Footnote_48" class="fnanchor">48</a>
-and the Duc d’Abrantès (Junot), with the 8th corps,
-at Zaragoza. The Portuguese army was totally disorganized,
-and nearly annihilated; and the Spanish
-troops were scarcely able to hold their positions in the
-Sierra Morena. The Marquis de la Romana, who had
-been with his corps on the frontiers of Portugal, near
-Chaves, from the period of the embarkation of the
-British army at Coruña, in the month of January, till
-the month of March, had moved from thence when
-Soult invaded Portugal by Chaves, and afterwards
-moved towards the Asturias with his army, and went
-himself into that province.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_104">104</a></span>
-The greeting the Commander-in-Chief received at
-the hands of the populace of Lisbon would have been
-embarrassing to one possessing a less cool head, but
-Wellesley knew perfectly well that applause to-day is
-apt to become condemnation to-morrow. He was
-appointed Marshal-General in the Portuguese Army,
-which was now placed in the capable hands of General
-Beresford by the British Cabinet, Wellesley’s one
-second-in-command being Major-General Rowland
-Hill. According to his instructions, “the defence of
-Portugal you will consider as the first and immediate
-object of your attention. But, as the security of
-Portugal can only be effectually provided for in connection
-with the defence of the Peninsula in the larger
-sense, his Majesty on this account, as well as from
-the unabated interest he takes in the cause of Spain,
-leaves it to your judgment to decide, when your army
-shall be advanced on the frontier of Portugal, how your
-efforts can be best combined with the Spanish, as well
-as the Portuguese troops, in support of the common
-cause. In any movements you may undertake, you
-will, however, keep in mind that, until you receive
-further orders, your operations must necessarily be
-conducted with especial reference to the protection of
-that country.”</p>
-
-<p>Of British troops the Commander-in-Chief now had
-at his disposal 23,455, namely, 18,935 infantry, 4270
-cavalry, and 250 attached to the wagon train; Portugal
-contributed 16,000 men. Costello, a non-commissioned
-officer of the 95th Rifles, and later a Captain in the
-British Legion, has nothing good to say of the Portuguese
-troops. In his record of the Peninsular War<a id="FNanchor_49" href="#Footnote_49" class="fnanchor">49</a> he gives
-several instances of their unreliability and treacherous
-nature. One example must suffice:</p>
-
-<p>“The sanguinary nature of the Portuguese,” he says,
-“during the whole period of the war was notorious.
-When crossed or excited, nothing but the shedding of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_105">105</a></span>
-blood could allay their passion. It was always with
-the greatest difficulty that we could preserve our
-French prisoners from being butchered by them, even
-in cold blood. They would hang upon the rear of
-a detachment with prisoners, like so many carrion
-birds, waiting every opportunity to satiate their love
-of vengeance, and it required all the firmness and
-vigilance of our troops to keep them in check. It
-was well known that even our men fell in stepping
-between them and the French whom they had marked
-out as victims. Indeed, it was not unfrequent for our
-men to suffer from the consequences of their ferocity,
-and I myself, while at Vallée, had a narrow escape. I
-had crossed the hills to purchase some necessaries at
-the quarters of the 52nd Regiment, and on my return
-fell in with several of the soldiers of the 3rd Caçadores.
-One of them, a fierce-looking scoundrel, evinced a great
-inclination to quarrel, the more particularly as he
-perceived that I was unarmed and alone. Having
-replied rather sharply to some abuse they had cast
-upon the English, by reflecting on their countrymen
-in return, he flew into a rage, drew his bayonet, and
-made a rush at me, which I avoided by stepping aside,
-and tripping him head foremost on the ground. I was
-in the act of seizing his bayonet, when a number of his
-comrades came up, to whom he related, in exaggerated
-terms, the cause of our disagreement. Before he had
-half concluded, a general cry arose of ‘Kill the English
-dog’; and the whole, drawing their bayonets, were
-advancing upon me when a party of the 52nd came up,
-the tables were turned, and the Caçadores fled in all
-directions.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley at once prepared to advance, and had not
-been at Lisbon a week before representations were
-made to him by the Junta of Spanish Estremadura for
-aid in behalf of the southern provinces. He replied
-that until “the enemy who has invaded Portugal shall
-have been removed” he could not hope to lend them<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_106">106</a></span>
-the requisite assistance. “The enemy” consisted of
-the corps under Soult and Victor. The army of the
-former, which had left Coruña and invaded Portugal
-by Napoleon’s imperative orders, now occupied Oporto.
-This, the second city in the kingdom and the centre of
-the most prosperous district, fell after a gallant if
-unscientific resistance on the part of the inhabitants
-under the Bishop. The Marshal took dire vengeance
-on the insurgents during the journey from Galicia,
-perhaps because he had suffered from the guerilla
-warfare, now almost universal throughout the Peninsula.
-Victor’s army was to take Badajoz and afterwards
-Seville, while Sebastiani held the south in check.
-Wellesley decided to attack Soult, which necessitated
-a march of over eighty miles of difficult country.
-Leaving two small detachments of his own and of
-Portuguese troops upon the Tagus to watch the movements
-of Victor, he set out with 13,000 British, 9000
-Portuguese, and 3000 Germans&mdash;25,000 in all.</p>
-
-<p>The right column, consisting of 9000 men under
-Beresford, was sent to Lamego, on the Douro, so as
-to be ready to cut off Soult’s retreat, the left making
-for Oporto with Wellesley. On the 10th May
-the cavalry and advanced guard of the latter crossed
-the Vouga, hoping to surprise the French troops at
-Albergaria and the neighbouring villages, but the
-movement was not completely successful, although a
-number of prisoners and cannon were taken.</p>
-
-<p>The advanced guard reached Vendas Novas on the
-following day, and drove in the outposts of the French
-advanced guard. The latter were vigorously attacked
-in the woods and village, and defeated with considerable
-loss. All this augured well for the ensuing operations,
-and on the 12th the vanguard reached the southern
-bank of the Douro. The French were stationed on the
-opposite bank, having taken the precaution to burn
-the bridge after crossing, and to withdraw all the boats
-they could discover.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_107">107</a></span>
-Unfortunate in this matter, Wellesley was favoured
-in another. His army was screened by cliffs and a
-hill called the Serra. This bold rock was surmounted
-by a Franciscan convent, where the Commander posted
-batteries and made his observations. As the river
-winds a great deal, his movements were unobserved
-by those on the look-out at the French headquarters,
-to the left of Wellesley as he peered through his glass
-across the wide waterway. He had already perceived an
-extensive building, known as the Seminary, surrounded
-by high walls with but one entrance on the landward
-side, and open to the river. This he knew would be an
-excellent position to secure, especially as it was almost
-opposite to him.</p>
-
-<p>There was in the army a certain Colonel Waters, a
-keen-eyed officer with an infinite amount of resource
-and a ready wit. He contended that it was scarcely
-probable that Soult could have secured every boat,
-and interrogated a refugee on the point. He found
-that the man had crossed in a small skiff.<a id="FNanchor_50" href="#Footnote_50" class="fnanchor">50</a> With the
-aid of the prior of Amarante, the fugitive, and several
-peasants, he heaved the boat out of the mud, and,
-crossing the stream, brought back a number of barges.
-In these three companies of the Buffs, under Lieut.-General
-Paget, effected a landing on the opposite side.
-This excellent officer was seriously wounded almost
-immediately afterward, but the passage of the Douro
-had been secured.</p>
-
-<p>General Murray, who had been ordered to cross at
-Barca d’Avintas, also managed to get over, and signally
-failed to check the retiring columns after the
-battle. As additional troops gained the opposite
-shore the French made repeated attempts to hurl<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_108">108</a></span>
-them back, but were ultimately obliged to retreat
-“in the utmost confusion” towards Amarante. According
-to a letter from General Stewart to his brother,
-Lord Castlereagh, the French fled with such haste that
-“Sir Arthur Wellesley dined at their headquarters on
-the dinner which had been prepared for Marshal
-Soult.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 19th May, Soult was across the frontier,
-having been compelled to abandon over fifty guns and
-his baggage. In making his way across the Sierra
-Catalina to escape the pursuing troops, his rear-guard
-was defeated at Salamonde, with severe loss. He
-eventually reached Orense, in Galicia, minus some 5000
-men, including the sick and wounded he had left behind
-him in Oporto.</p>
-
-<p>“The road from Penafiel to Montealegre,” says
-Wellesley, “is strewed with the carcases of horses and
-mules, and of French soldiers, who were put to death
-by the peasantry before our advanced guard could
-save them. This last circumstance is the natural effect
-of the species of warfare which the enemy have carried
-on in this country. Their soldiers have plundered and
-murdered the peasantry at their pleasure; and I have
-seen many persons hanging in the trees by the sides of
-the road, executed for no reason that I could learn,
-excepting that they have not been friendly to the
-French invasion and usurpation of the government of
-their country; and the route of their column, on their
-retreat, could be traced by the smoke of the villages
-to which they set fire.”</p>
-
-<p>Within a fortnight Wellesley was writing of the
-defects of his own men. “I have long been of opinion,”
-he says, “that a British army could bear neither
-success nor failure, and I have had manifest proofs of
-the truth of this opinion in the first of its branches in
-the recent conduct of the soldiers of this army. They
-have plundered the country most terribly, which has
-given me the greatest concern....</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_109">109</a></span>
-“They have plundered the people of bullocks, among
-other property, for what reason I am sure I do not
-know, except it be, as I understand is their practice,
-to sell them to the people again. I shall be very much
-obliged to you if you will mention this practice to the
-Ministers of the Regency, and bid them to issue a
-proclamation forbidding the people, in the most positive
-terms, to purchase any thing from the soldiers of the
-British army.”</p>
-
-<p>The Commander-in-Chief relates the same terrible
-facts to Castlereagh. “The army behave terribly ill,”
-is his expression. “They are a rabble who cannot
-bear success any more than Sir J. Moore’s army could
-bear failure. I am endeavoring to tame them; but,
-if I should not succeed, I must make an official complaint
-of them, and send one or two corps home in
-disgrace. They plunder in all directions.”</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Victor, far from taking Badajoz and
-marching on Seville as the Emperor wished, had found
-it necessary to move in the direction of Madrid, where
-he could secure much needed assistance. He therefore
-took up his position at Talavera. Wellesley, intent
-upon crushing him, arrived at Abrantes about the same
-time as the Marshal was evacuating Estremadura and
-consequently abandoning the fruits of his victory over
-Cuesta at Medellin. For Wellesley to have followed
-Victor with the relatively few men at his disposal would
-have been to court disaster, and he therefore acquiesced
-in a new plan of operations suggested by Cuesta, in
-which the Spaniards were to be given an opportunity
-of showing their capabilities or proving their incapacity.
-This, says Professor Oman, was “the first and only
-campaign which he ever undertook in company with a
-Spanish colleague and without supreme control over
-the whole conduct of affairs.”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_110">110</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_X"></a>CHAPTER X<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Talavera</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1809)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>The battle of Talavera was the hardest fought of modern times.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">The</span> potentialities of the new project were
-distinctly promising. After uniting with
-Cuesta, Wellesley was to follow the course of
-the Tagus and cut off Victor’s army of 33,000 troops
-while the attention of Sebastiani and Joseph Bonaparte,
-who had but 17,000 men all told, was occupied by
-Venegas.</p>
-
-<p>When last heard of Soult and Ney were in Galicia
-busily engaged in suppressing an insurrection, so no
-opposition was anticipated from them. In this matter
-after events proved the facts to be far different from
-the surmise. There seemed every likelihood of a successful
-issue provided there was no snapping of individual
-links of the chain of operations. Wellesley did not
-find Cuesta a particularly affable colleague, but he was
-not the man to assert his own opinion unless he thought
-it imperative. He characterized him as having “no
-military genius,” which is certainly more favourable
-than “that deformed-looking lump of pride, ignorance,
-and treachery,” which is the description given to us
-by Costello. “He was,” the latter adds, “the most
-murderous-looking old man I ever saw.” They came
-together at Oropesa on the 20th July, their forces<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_111">111</a></span>
-totalling 55,000, of which 35,000 were Spanish. It was
-the task of Venegas and his 26,000 men to approach
-Madrid from the south, and, by a demonstration in force,
-distract the attention of Sebastiani. He proved far too
-slow, and ere he was able to interfere, Victor, Sebastiani,
-and Joseph concentrated in the neighbourhood of
-Toledo. On the 26th July the last batch of their 50,000
-troops came together.</p>
-
-<p>Had Wellesley been allowed to attack on the 23rd July,
-as he wished, it is probable that he would have crushed
-Victor, whose reinforcements did not begin to arrive
-until the following day. Cuesta had already shown
-his incompetency, and some of his advanced guard
-had been roughly handled by a French cavalry division.
-It was Wellesley’s opinion that the psychological
-moment had arrived, but the Spanish commander
-objected. “Had we fought then,” Wellesley afterwards
-averred, “it would have been as great a battle as
-Waterloo, and would have cleared Spain of the French
-for that time.” The formidable task before him was
-not made lighter by the knowledge that the commissariat
-and transport arrangements had utterly broken down.</p>
-
-<p>At Talavera, evacuated by Victor, who moved a few
-miles to the east, Wellesley was obliged to halt, and
-even threatened to withdraw from Spain because of
-the ill-treatment accorded his famishing troops. “I
-have never seen an army,” he says, “so ill-treated in
-any country, or, considering that all depends upon its
-operations, one which deserved good treatment so much.
-It is ridiculous to pretend that the country cannot
-supply our wants. The French army is well fed, and
-the soldiers who are taken in good health, and well
-supplied with bread, of which indeed they left a small
-magazine behind them. This is a rich country in corn,
-in comparison with Portugal, and yet, during the whole
-of my operations in that country, we never wanted
-bread but on one day on the frontiers of Galicia. In the
-Vera de Plasencia there are means to supply this army<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_112">112</a></span>
-for 4 months, as I am informed, and yet the alcaldes
-have not performed their engagements with me. The
-Spanish army has plenty of every thing, and we alone,
-upon whom every thing depends, are actually starving.”</p>
-
-<p>After considerable trouble Cuesta consented to
-Wellesley assuming supreme command of the combined
-forces. On the afternoon of the 27th the British General
-mounted his horse and, accompanied by his staff, rode
-out of the town to an old château, known as the Casa de
-Salinas. His object was to obtain a bird’s-eye view
-from the roof of the movements of the enemy on the
-Alberche. He apprehended no danger, because Spanish
-troops occupied the adjacent woods. In this he was
-deceived, for a number of French <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">tirailleurs</i> suddenly
-appearing, the troops beat a hasty retreat. The
-Commander-in-Chief jumped from the wall and regained
-his horse not a moment too soon. Had it not been for
-the near presence of a body of English infantry, who
-immediately opened fire, it is extremely probable that
-Wellington and his staff would have been captured.</p>
-
-<p>At five o’clock the opposing forces were within touch,
-the French having crossed the river and driven in the
-British piquets, who lost about 400 men.</p>
-
-<p>One of the finest descriptions of the ensuing battle&mdash;or
-more correctly, series of battles&mdash;is that of Captain
-M. de Rocca, a French officer of Hussars, which has the
-advantage of giving the point of view of the enemy, and
-how Wellesley was regarded by one at least of his combatants.</p>
-
-<p>“The Spaniards,” he says, “were posted in a situation
-deemed impregnable, behind old walls and garden-fences,
-which border and encompass the city of
-Talavera.<a id="FNanchor_51" href="#Footnote_51" class="fnanchor">51</a> Their right was defended by the Tagus,
-and their left joined the English, near a redoubt constructed
-on an eminence. The ground in front of the
-Anglo-Spanish armies was very unequal, and intersected<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_113">113</a></span>
-here and there by ravines, formed by the rains of winter.
-The whole extent of their position was covered by the
-channel of a pretty deep torrent, at that time dry. The
-English left was strengthened by a conical eminence that
-commanded the greater part of the field of battle, and
-which was separated by a deep extensive valley from
-the Castilian chain of mountains.</p>
-
-<p>“This eminence was thus in a manner the key to the
-enemy’s position, and against this decisive point of
-attack, an experienced general, possessed of that intuitive
-glance which insures success, would immediately
-have led the principal part of his disposable force, to
-obtain possession of it. He would either have taken it
-by assault, or have turned it by the valley. But King
-Joseph, when he should have acted, was seized with an
-unfortunate spirit of indecision and uncertainty. He
-attempted only half measures, he distributed his forces
-partially, and lost the opportunity of conquering while
-feeling the way for it. Marshal Jourdan, the second in
-command, had not that spur of patriotism in the Spanish
-war, which inspired him when he fought in the plains
-of Fleurus, to achieve the independence of France.</p>
-
-<p>“The French commenced the engagement by a
-cannonade and rifle-fire in advance of their right; and
-they despatched a single battalion only, and some
-sharp-shooters, by the valley, to take the eminence
-which defended the English left, never thinking they
-would do otherwise than yield. This battalion, however,
-having to contend with superior numbers, was
-repulsed with loss, and compelled to retire. A division
-of dragoons, which had gone to reconnoitre Talavera,
-found the approaches to that city strongly fortified
-with artillery, and could not advance.</p>
-
-<p>“At nightfall, the French made another attempt to
-gain the hill. A regiment of infantry, followed at a
-short distance by two others, attacked the extreme left
-of the English with unexampled ardour, arrived at the
-summit of the hill, and took possession of it. But having<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_114">114</a></span>
-been fiercely assaulted, in its turn, by an entire division
-of the English, just, when having conquered, it was
-breathless with exertion, it was immediately obliged
-to give way. One of the two regiments, commanded
-to assist in this attack, had lost its way in a wood on
-account of the darkness; the other not getting soon
-enough over the ravine, which covered the enemy’s
-position, had not arrived in time.</p>
-
-<p>“Both these attacks had miscarried, though conducted
-with intrepid bravery, because they had been
-made by an inadequate number of troops. A single
-battalion had been sent, and then one division, when a
-great proportion of the whole army should have been
-despatched. These unsuccessful attempts revealed to
-the English what we designed next day; and still
-more evidently demonstrated the importance of the
-station they held. They passed the greater part of the
-night in fortifying it with artillery.</p>
-
-<p>“The sun rose next morning on the two armies drawn
-up in battle order, and again the cannonade commenced.
-The defence of Portugal being entrusted to the English
-army, the fate of that country, and, perhaps, of all the
-Peninsula, was now to be decided by this contest. The
-veterans of the first and fourth French corps, accustomed
-for years to conquer throughout Europe, and always to
-witness their ardour seconded by the combined skill of
-their chiefs, burned with impatience for orders to
-engage, and thought to overthrow all before them by
-one well conjoined assault.</p>
-
-<p>“One division alone, of three regiments of infantry,
-was sent by the valley to storm the position, of which
-we had, for a moment, obtained possession the preceding
-evening. After considerable loss, this division reached
-the top of the eminence, and was just about taking it.
-One of the regiments had already advanced as far as
-the artillery, when their charge was repulsed, and the
-whole division was forced to retire. The English,
-apprehending by this renewed attack that the French<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_115">115</a></span>
-designed to turn their left by the valley, stationed their
-cavalry there; and caused a division of the Spaniards
-to occupy the skirts of the high Castilian mountains
-beyond it. The French receded to the ground they
-first occupied. The cannonade continued for another
-hour, and then became gradually silent. The overpowering
-heat of mid-day obliged both armies to suspend
-the combat, and observe a kind of involuntary truce,
-during which the wounded were removed.</p>
-
-<p>“King Joseph, having at last gone himself to reconnoitre
-the enemy’s position, gave orders, at four o’clock,
-for a general attack against the army of England. A
-division of dragoons was left to observe the Spaniards
-in the direction of Talavera. General Sebastiani’s
-corps marched against the right of the English, while
-Marshal Victor’s three divisions of infantry, followed
-by masses of cavalry, charged against their left, to
-attack the eminence by the valley. King Joseph and
-Marshal Jourdan took part with the reserve, in the rear
-of the 4th division. The artillery and musketry were
-not long in being heard.</p>
-
-<p>“The English Commander, stationed on the hill
-which overlooked the field of battle, was present always
-where danger demanded his presence. He could
-survey, at a glance, every corps of his army, and perceive
-below him the least movement of the French. He
-saw the line of battle formed, the columns disposed for
-the conflict; he penetrated their designs by their
-arrangements, and thus had time to order his plans,
-so as to penetrate and prevent those of his foes. The
-position of the English army was naturally strong and
-difficult of approach, both in front and flank; but in
-the rear it was quite accessible, and gave ample freedom
-to their troops to hasten to the quarter threatened.</p>
-
-<p>“The French had a ravine to pass before they could
-reach the enemy. They had to advance over ground
-much intersected, very rugged and unequal, obliging
-them frequently to break their line; and the positions<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_116">116</a></span>
-they attacked had been previously fortified. The left
-could not see the right, or know what was passing there,
-for the rising ground between them. Every corps of the
-army fought apart, with unparalleled bravery, and
-ability too, but there was no co-operation in their efforts.
-The French were not then commanded by a General-in-chief,
-the resources of whose genius might have compensated
-for the advantages which the nature of the
-ground denied them and yielded to their enemies.</p>
-
-<p>“The division of Lapisse first passed the ravine,
-attacked the fortified eminence, ascended it in defiance
-of a fire of grape-shot which mowed down its ranks, but
-was repulsed with the loss of its General and a great
-number of officers and soldiers. In retreating, it left
-the right of the fourth corps uncovered, which the British
-artillery took in flank, and forced for a moment to retire.
-The left of General Sebastiani’s corps advanced under a
-most intense fire of artillery to the fort of a redoubt on
-the right of the English, and between the combined
-armies. It was too far advanced, and too soon forward&mdash;it
-was encountered and driven back by the united
-corps of the English right and the Spanish left. Assistance
-came, and the combat was renewed. In the centre,
-Marshal Victor rallied the division of Lapisse at the foot
-of the hill, and abandoned all further attempt to gain
-possession of it. The French then tried to turn it either
-by the right or left. Villatte’s division advanced in the
-valley, and Ruffin’s moved to the right of this by the
-foot of the Castilian mountains. The cavalry, forming a
-second line, were in readiness to debouch into the plain
-in the rear of the enemy whenever the infantry could
-open a passage.</p>
-
-<p>“Just as the French began to move, the English, with
-two regiments of cavalry, made a charge against their
-masses. They engaged in the valley, passed onwards
-regardless of the fire of several battalions of infantry,
-between the divisions of Villatte and Ruffin, and fell
-with impetuosity never surpassed on the 10th and 26th<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_117">117</a></span>
-regiments of our chasseurs. The 10th could not resist
-the charge. They opened their ranks, but rallied
-immediately, and nearly the whole of the 23rd regiment
-of light dragoons at the head of the English cavalry was
-either destroyed or taken captive.</p>
-
-<p>“A division of the English Royal Guards, stationed
-on the left and centre of their army, being charged by the
-French, at first repulsed them vigorously; but one of
-its brigades, being too far advanced, was in its turn
-taken in flank by the fire of the French artillery and
-infantry, sustained considerable loss, and retreated with
-difficulty behind their second line. The French took
-advantage of this success; they again moved forward,
-and but one other effort was necessary to break through
-into the plain, and combat on equal ground. But King
-Joseph thought it was too late to advance with the
-reserve, and the attack was delayed till the following
-day.<a id="FNanchor_52" href="#Footnote_52" class="fnanchor">52</a> Night again closed over us, and the conflict ceased
-from exhaustion, without either side having won such a
-decided advantage as to entitle it to claim the victory.</p>
-
-<p>“The corps of Marshals Victor and Sebastiani withdrew
-successively during the night towards the reserve,
-leaving an advanced guard of cavalry on the scene of the
-engagement, to take care of the wounded. The English,
-who expected a new attack in the morning, were greatly
-surprised when day dawned to see that their enemies,
-leaving twenty pieces of cannon, had retreated to their
-old position on the Alberche. The English and Spaniards,
-according to their own accounts, lost 6,616 men.<a id="FNanchor_53" href="#Footnote_53" class="fnanchor">53</a> The
-French had nearly 10,000 slain.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellesley characterizes the battle as “a most desperate
-one ... we had about two to one against us; fearful<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_118">118</a></span>
-odds! but we maintained all our positions, and gave the
-enemy a terrible beating.” Very few of the Spanish
-troops were engaged in any real sense, although those
-who took an active part behaved well, and one of the
-cavalry regiments “made an excellent and well-timed
-charge.” The majority of them were in a “miserable
-state of discipline” and “entirely incapable of performing
-any manœuvre, however simple.” There was
-a sad lack of <em>morale</em>, qualified officers were few, and
-seemed either unable or unwilling to follow their allies in
-the matter of subjecting their men to definite regulations.
-When the British soldiers were engaged in removing the
-wounded and in burying the dead after Talavera, “the
-arms and accoutrements of both were collected and
-carried away by the Spanish troops.”</p>
-
-<p>The exhausted condition of his army prevented
-Wellesley from following the enemy, but as Venegas was
-on the move and threatening Madrid, this was not
-regarded as of consummate importance. Of more
-immediate concern was the alarming intelligence received
-by the Commander-in-Chief a few hours later that
-Soult’s army was no longer in Galicia, but marching to
-intercept the British communications with Portugal.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_119">119</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_XI"></a>CHAPTER XI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Wellesley’s Defence of Portugal</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1809&ndash;10)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>If I fail, God will, I hope, have mercy upon me, for nobody else will.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellesley.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap b"><span class="smcap1">Soult</span>, joined by Mortier and Ney, had some
-50,000 men with which to face the victor of
-Talavera. Had Cuesta guarded the mountain
-passes as he was supposed to do, Wellesley would not
-have found himself in so awkward a predicament. Both
-his front and rear were threatened, the former by Victor
-and Sebastiani and the latter by Soult. While his ranks
-were sadly depleted, those of the French were augmented.
-By great good fortune General Craufurd and his celebrated
-Light Division arrived on the morning of the 29th
-July, the day following the conclusion of the battle.</p>
-
-<p>Rumour proved on this occasion a powerful ally of the
-Commander-in-Chief, for had not Craufurd heard of the
-supposed death of Sir Arthur, it is scarcely likely that he
-would have urged his men, each loaded with forty pounds
-weight on his back, to march forty-three English miles
-in twenty-two hours. Wellesley made up his mind to
-advance against Soult, but was forced to abandon the
-idea when he heard that the enemy had entered Plasencia
-in great force, thereby severing the British communications
-with Lisbon. A retreat “to take up the defensive
-line of the Tagus” became eminently necessary. “We
-were in a bad scrape,” he writes on the 8th August,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_120">120</a></span>
-“from which I think I have extricated both armies;
-and I really believe that, if I had not determined to
-retire at the moment I did, all retreat would have been cut
-off for both.” “Both,” of course, includes the Spaniards,
-whose “train of mismanagement,” added to Soult’s
-advance, were contributing causes of his withdrawal.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniards promised to remain at Talavera to
-watch the movements of the enemy and to assist the
-wounded. No sooner was Wellesley out of the way
-than Cuesta felt that the position was untenable, with
-the result that many British soldiers, rendered unable to
-keep up with the Spanish troops by reason of their
-wounds, were made prisoners by Victor, who soon afterwards
-took possession of the town.</p>
-
-<p>The Tagus was crossed at Arzobispo, and a rearguard
-of 8000 Spaniards, under Cuesta, left to defend
-the passage. At Almarez the bridge of boats was
-broken to arrest Soult’s advance from Naval Moral, no
-great distance away, and on the high road. As it
-happened, the French Marshal was able to cross the
-river at Arzobispo by means of a ford. He promptly
-defeated the Spanish force there and captured their
-guns. Not a few of the defenders fled, throwing away
-their arms and clothing, a very usual device. This was
-followed by the defeat of Venegas by Joseph and
-Sebastiani at Almonacid, near Toledo, where several
-thousand men were either killed, wounded, or captured,
-and of a Portuguese and Spanish column which had been
-detached from the main army, under Sir Robert Wilson,
-by Ney at the Puerto de Baños.</p>
-
-<p>In the middle of August 1809 the various armies
-were occupying the following positions: British,
-Jaraicejo; Eguia, Deleytosa; Vanegas, La Carolina;
-Ney, Salamanca; Kellermann, Valladolid; Soult,
-Plasencia; Mortier, Oropesa and Arzobispo; Victor,
-Talavera and Toledo; Sebastiani, La Mancha.</p>
-
-<p>The storm was followed by a lull, for the contesting
-armies were all but worn out and required rest. Wellesley<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_121">121</a></span>
-made his headquarters first at Deleytosa, and, when that
-place was vacated on the 11th, at Jaraicejo; the Spanish
-made the former town their headquarters, and the
-Portuguese army, under Beresford, withdrew within their
-home frontier.</p>
-
-<p>“While the army remained in this position,” namely,
-Deleytosa, General Sir George T. Napier records: “We
-suffered dreadfully from want of food; nothing but a
-small portion of unground wheat and (when we could
-<em>catch them</em>) about a quarter of a pound of old goats’ flesh
-each man; no salt, bread, or wine; and as the Spaniards
-had plundered the baggage of the British army during
-the battle of Talavera, there was nothing of any kind to
-be procured to help us out, such as tea or sugar.”<a id="FNanchor_54" href="#Footnote_54" class="fnanchor">54</a> These
-defects the General determined to remedy, for “no troops
-can serve to any good purpose unless they are regularly
-fed,” a maxim equivalent to that of Napoleon that “an
-army moves on its stomach.”</p>
-
-<p>Cuesta resigned his command, which was given to
-Eguia, but from henceforth the British Commander
-placed his sole reliance on his own forces. The lack of
-co-operation in the combined army was also evident in
-that of the French, for the various marshals had separated,
-and, to Napoleon’s disgust, lost a golden opportunity of
-crushing the hated English, which was never again
-vouchsafed to them. “Force Wellesley to fight on
-every possible occasion,” was his frequent cry. “Win
-if you can, but lose a battle rather than deliver none. We
-can afford to expend three men for every one he loses,
-and you will thus wear him out in the end.” Wellesley
-preferred to conserve his energy, not to squander it.</p>
-
-<p>After repeated requests for provisions and means of
-transport, all more or less evasively answered by the
-Spanish authorities, Wellesley carried out his threat and
-fell back upon the frontiers of Portugal. Not without a
-certain suggestion of irony, he was at this time appointed<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_122">122</a></span>
-a Captain-General in the Spanish service, and received
-six Andalusian horses “in the name of King Ferdinand
-the VIIth.” Shortly afterwards he was notified that
-he had been elevated to the Peerage, with the titles
-of Baron Douro of Wellesley, and Viscount Wellington
-of Talavera. From henceforth we shall style him
-Wellington, a signature he first adopted on the 16th
-September 1809.</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing,” he writes from Merida, on the 25th August,
-to Castlereagh, “can be worse than the officers of the
-Spanish army; and it is extraordinary that when a
-nation has devoted itself to war, as this nation has, by
-the measures it has adopted in the last two years, so
-little progress has been made in any one branch of the
-military profession by any individual, and that the
-business of an army should be so little understood.
-They are really children in the art of war, and I cannot
-say that they do any thing as it ought to be done, with
-the exception of running away and assembling again in
-a state of nature.” In his opinion the Portuguese, under
-English officers, were better than the Spaniards, but
-both “want the habits and spirit of soldiers&mdash;the habits
-of command on one side, and of obedience on the other&mdash;mutual
-confidence between officers and men; and,
-above all, a determination in the superiors to obey the
-spirit of the orders they receive, let what will be the
-consequence, and the spirit to tell the true cause if they
-do not. In short, the fact is, there is so much trick in
-the Portuguese army....”</p>
-
-<p>At the beginning of September he was at Badajoz, on
-the frontier, the advantage being, as Wellington says,
-“that the British army was centrically posted, in
-reference to all the objects which the enemy might have
-in view; and at any time, by a junction with a Spanish
-corps on its right, or a Portuguese or Spanish corps on
-its left, it could prevent the enemy from undertaking
-any thing, excepting with a much larger force than they
-could allot to any one object.” Here he heard that<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_123">123</a></span>
-there was a likelihood of Soult attacking Ciudad Rodrigo.
-This information he obtained from an intercepted letter
-to Joseph. “The success of this scheme,” he avers,
-“would do them more good, and the allies more mischief,
-than any other they could attempt; and it is most likely
-of all others to be successful.” For this reason he ordered
-Wilson to stay north of the Tagus so as to watch Soult’s
-movements.</p>
-
-<p>In the middle of the month the Spanish army of
-Estremadura, stationed at Deleytosa, was reduced to
-6000 soldiers, the remainder, with Eguia, marching
-towards La Mancha. About the same time an army
-of some 13,000 men, under La Romana, whom Wellington
-describes as “more intelligent and reasonable” than
-most of his countrymen, moved from Galicia to the
-neighbourhood of Ciudad Rodrigo. La Romana himself
-proceeded to Seville and was succeeded by the Duque
-del Parque, who marched towards Salamanca.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington watched del Parque’s forward movements
-with dismay, and ordered magazines to be prepared upon
-the Douro and Mondego “to assist in providing for these
-vagabonds if they should retire into Portugal, which I
-hope they will do, as their only chance of salvation.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 10th October Wellington was at Lisbon to
-arrange future operations, and where he studied “on
-the ground” the possibility of defending Portugal.
-This reconnaissance resulted in the defence known as
-the “Lines of Torres Vedras,” of which particulars will
-be given as the story proceeds.<a id="FNanchor_55" href="#Footnote_55" class="fnanchor">55</a></p>
-
-<p>By the end of the month he was back at Badajoz,
-writing endless dispatches relative to the thousand and
-one concerns&mdash;military, political and financial&mdash;of the
-two armies. By the beginning of November del Parque
-was obliged to retire owing to the arrival from
-Estremadura of some 36,000 men under Mortier in
-Old Castile. Eguia’s entry into La Mancha from
-Estremadura two months before had been followed by the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_124">124</a></span>
-arrival of 30,000 of the enemy’s troops under Victor in that
-province, whereupon the Spanish commander had withdrawn
-to the Sierra Morena, and the French to the Tagus.</p>
-
-<p>The Spanish Government now entertained the hope
-of gaining the complete possession of Madrid. Two
-forces were to be honoured with the carrying out of this
-ambitious project. The army of La Mancha, now under
-the inexperienced General Areizaga, joined by the greater
-part of the army of Estremadura, and consisting of 50,000
-men, was to march from the Sierra Morena. Del Parque,
-with the army of Galicia, 20,000 strong, was to take
-Salamanca and then present himself before the capital.
-Areizaga met with some temporary success, but on the
-19th November some 4000 of his men were either lying
-dead or wounded on the bloody field of Ocaña, within
-easy distance of Madrid. No fewer than 18,000 were
-taken prisoners by King Joseph’s troops. When the
-distressed General gathered together the fragments of
-his shattered army in the Sierra Morena, only a half of
-the original number were present, which means that
-3000 had deserted. He must have been sadly deficient
-in cannon, for the French had captured over fifty pieces.</p>
-
-<p>Del Parque was scarcely more successful. He was
-attacked at Tamames on the 19th October by troops
-under Marchand, whom he defeated. Thus encouraged,
-he advanced to Salamanca, which the French had occupied,
-and taken possession of. In the last week of November
-he was beaten at Alba de Tormes, to which he had
-retreated, with a loss of 3000 men. Some of his troops
-retired on Galicia, the remainder on Ciudad Rodrigo.<a id="FNanchor_56" href="#Footnote_56" class="fnanchor">56</a></p>
-
-<p>With the object of giving the Spanish Government time
-to repair their losses in southern Spain, and surmising
-that whatever reinforcements the French might receive
-would be for use against the British now that the armies<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_125">125</a></span>
-under Blake, Areizaga, and del Parque were scattered,
-Wellington prepared to move the greater part of his
-army north of the Tagus, towards the frontiers of
-Castile, but leaving a body of troops under Lieutenant-General
-Hill at Abrantes, so that the Lower Tagus
-might not be left unguarded. Early in January 1810,
-Wellington made his headquarters at Coimbra, on the
-Mondego, and within comparatively easy distance of the
-sea, conceivably a useful ally now that Napoleon was
-sending additional reinforcements, and Soult had 70,000
-men at his disposal.</p>
-
-<p>The passes of Despeña Perros, and Puerto del Rey
-through the Sierra Morena, but weakly defended by
-Spanish troops under Areizaga, were forced by the French
-without difficulty. On the last day of January 1810,
-Seville capitulated. That Wellington anticipated this
-is proved by a letter he wrote on that date to Lord
-Liverpool. Cadiz was saved from a similar fate by the
-Duke of Albuquerque, who reached the city in the nick
-of time, although Victor’s outposts had been seen on
-the banks of the Guadalquivir. Major-General the
-Hon. W. Stewart was sent to assist in the defence of the
-place, and arrived towards the end of February with some
-5000 British and Portuguese troops, while a British fleet
-lay in the Bay.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Wellington was able to report considerable
-progress in some of the regiments in the Portuguese army,
-thanks very largely to the exertions of Marshal Beresford.
-Fifteen regiments he had seen while marching from
-Badajoz to Coimbra showed decided improvement in
-discipline, and he had “no doubt that the whole will
-prove an useful acquisition to the country.” They were
-“in general unhealthy.” The conduct of his own troops
-was “infamous” when not under the inspection of officers.
-“They have never brought up a convoy of money that
-they have not robbed the chest; nor of shoes, or any
-other article that could be of use to them, or could
-produce money, that they do not steal something.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_126">126</a></span>
-The failure of the Walcheren Expedition<a id="FNanchor_57" href="#Footnote_57" class="fnanchor">57</a> not only
-led to a duel between Canning and Castlereagh and the
-fall of Portland’s administration, but caused the British
-public to lose faith in things military. It seemed not
-at all improbable that the new Ministry formed by
-Perceval, in which Lord Wellesley became Foreign
-Secretary, and Lord Liverpool Secretary for War and the
-Colonies, would withdraw the British army from the
-Peninsula, especially as Talavera had aroused little or
-no enthusiasm, and a retreat was regarded by the man
-in the street as scarcely better than a defeat. In this
-connexion it is interesting to note that when Wellington
-was asked what was the best test of a great general, he
-gave as his answer, “To know when to retreat; and to
-dare to do it.” Aware of the state of public opinion, he
-did not press for further reinforcements.</p>
-
-<p>In a letter to the Rt. Hon. John Villiers, dated
-Viseu, 14th January 1810, the Commander-in-Chief
-definitely states “that in its present state” the army
-was “not sufficient for the defence of Portugal.” He
-anticipated having 30,000 effective British troops when
-the soldiers then on their way from England and those
-in hospital were available: “I will fight a good battle
-for the possession of Portugal, and see whether that
-country cannot be saved from the general wreck.”</p>
-
-<p>“I conceive,” he concludes, “that the honor and
-interests of the country require that we should hold our
-ground here as long as possible; and, please God, I will
-maintain it as long as I can; and I will neither endeavor to
-shift from my own shoulders on those of the Ministers
-the responsibility for the failure, by calling for means
-which I know they cannot give, and which, perhaps,
-would not add materially to the facility of attaining our
-object; nor will I give to the Ministers, who are not
-strong, and who must feel the delicacy of their own
-situation, an excuse for withdrawing the army from a
-position which, in my opinion, the honor and interest<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_127">127</a></span>
-of the country require they should maintain as long as
-possible.</p>
-
-<p>“I think that if the Portuguese do their duty, I shall
-have enough to maintain it; if they do not, nothing that
-Great Britain can afford can save the country; and if
-from that cause I fail in saving it, and am obliged to
-go, I shall be able to carry away the British army.”</p>
-
-<p>The war in Spain still continued see-saw fashion. A
-province would be apparently conquered by Napoleon’s
-troops when no sooner did the troops march on than the
-trouble began again. This happened more especially
-with Suchet in Aragon. In Catalonia the intrepid
-O’Donnell and his men flitted about like a will-o’-the-wisp
-and worked sad havoc whenever they came across a
-detached force, though Hostalrich fell and Lerida surrendered
-in May, as well as the castle of Mequinenza a
-little later.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon had not been sleeping. In the previous
-year he had been too occupied in humbling Austria
-and annexing Rome and the Ecclesiastical States to give
-much attention to the Peninsula. He now placed
-Marshal Masséna, Prince of Essling, who by reason of his
-success was known as “the spoilt child of victory”&mdash;incidentally
-he was the son of an inn-keeper&mdash;in command
-of 180,000 troops, for which purpose he arrived at
-Valladolid in the middle of May 1810. Within a month
-the French forces in Spain were raised to no fewer than
-366,000 men of all ranks and arms.</p>
-
-<p>Surely “the heir of Charlemagne,” as Napoleon termed
-himself, was on the point of crushing the resistance
-of the Iberian Peninsula, and with it insignificant
-Portugal and Wellington? Was it feasible that 60,000
-British, Germans, and Portuguese, sometimes aided but
-more often hindered by an “insurgent” rabble, and
-indirectly by the two remaining Spanish armies in Galicia
-and Estremadura, could contest with any likelihood of
-success more than a third of a million of trained troops?
-The law of probability answered in the negative.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_128">128</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_XII"></a>CHAPTER XII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">The Lines of Torres Vedras</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1810)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>France is not an enemy whom I despise, nor does it deserve I should.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">Pasquier</span>, who had the privilege of knowing
-most of the generals of the Revolution and of the
-Empire, says of Masséna that he was “France’s
-first military commander after Napoleon.” Neither
-Pichegru, Moreau, Kléber, nor Lannes gave the
-Chancellor “as completely as Masséna, the idea of a born
-warrior, possessing a genius for war, and endowed with
-all the qualities which render victory certain. His
-eagle eye seemed made to scan a field of battle. One
-could understand, on seeing him, that the soldier
-under his command never believed it was possible to
-retreat.”</p>
-
-<div id="ip_128" class="figcenter" style="width: 411px;">
- <img src="images/i_141.jpg" width="411" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>“You are too young, sir, to be killed!”</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">Thomas Maybank</p></div></div>
-
-<p>Masséna’s first important operation in the Peninsula
-was the siege of the Spanish fortress of Ciudad Rodrigo.
-Although Wellington was in the neighbourhood he was
-not to be enticed away from his immediate objects,
-which were the defence of Lisbon and the thorough
-organization of the army for service when action became
-absolutely imperative. Notwithstanding a splendid
-defence for over two months on the part of Governor
-Herrasti, the garrison of Ciudad Rodrigo was compelled
-to surrender on the 10th July. In August, Masséna
-crossed the frontier preparatory to beginning the siege of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_129">129</a></span>
-Almeida, near the river Coa, next to Elvas the strongest
-place in Portugal.</p>
-
-<p>On the 24th July, Craufurd and his famous Light
-Division&mdash;not Light Brigade as some would have it&mdash;had
-a fierce tussle with Ney’s corps of 24,000 men.
-Craufurd, who had only 4000 troops at his disposal,
-entertained no wild notion of preventing the investment
-of the place, but as he was suddenly attacked he was
-obliged to fight. Had he been a more cautious soldier
-he would have crossed the Coa before Ney came up, as
-Wellington had suggested on the 22nd. Indeed, so early
-as the 11th, the Commander-in-Chief had said, “I would
-not wish you to fall back beyond that place (<i>i.e.</i> Almeida),
-unless it should be necessary. But it does not appear
-necessary that you should be so far, and it will be safer
-that you should be nearer, at least with your infantry.”
-He delayed too late, and thereby lost over 300 men.
-While the last of the soldiers were crossing the bridge
-which spanned the swollen river, for it had rained in
-torrents the previous night, a lanky Irish lad of nineteen
-years, named Stewart, and known by the 43rd as
-“The Boy,” positively refused to pass over. “So this
-is the end of our boasting! This is our first battle, and
-we retreat! The Boy Stewart will not live to hear that
-said,” he cried, and turning back he slashed at the
-oncoming French until he fell dead. Even more
-courageous was the conduct of Sergeant Robert M‘Quade,
-five years Stewart’s senior. He happened to catch sight
-of two French soldiers with levelled muskets awaiting
-the British to ascend a bank. A boy of sixteen, afterwards
-famous as Sir George Brown (Colonel-in-Chief of
-the Rifle Brigade) was on the verge of being shot by them
-when the sergeant pulled him back from the fatal spot.
-“You are too young, sir, to be killed,” he cried as his
-own body received two bullets and fell in a lifeless heap
-at the feet of the youth.</p>
-
-<p>That Colonel Cox, who was in charge of the fortress,
-would have stayed Masséna’s advance for a considerable<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_130">130</a></span>
-time is extremely likely, but unfortunately he was
-not given the opportunity to display his prowess. The
-powder-magazine blew up, almost destroying the town
-and necessitating immediate surrender. The pursuit
-of Wellington, “to drive him into the sea,” seemed a
-comparatively easy task until the advance showed that
-the British General had caused the country to be stripped
-almost entirely of provisions. Thus Napoleon’s policy
-of making “war support war” by plundering and
-raiding the enemy’s country, completely broke down.
-“In war all that is useful is legitimate,” he says, and
-Wellington had followed the maxim, after having
-obtained permission for the destruction of provisions
-from the Portuguese Regency, which included Mr
-Charles Stuart, the British Minister at Lisbon.
-What Wellington’s measures meant to Masséna’s army
-is summed up in a single sentence by Sir Harry Smith,
-who carried a dispatch to Lord Hill through territory
-occupied by the enemy. “The spectacle,” he says, “of
-hundreds of miserable wretches of French soldiers on
-the road in a state of <em>starvation</em> is not to be described.”
-Nor was this all. Not only did the place resemble a
-desert in the difficulty of obtaining means of sustenance,
-but the majority of the inhabitants had fled, some seeking
-the fastnesses of the mountains, others the larger
-cities such as Lisbon and Oporto.</p>
-
-<p>As Masséna advanced so Wellington retreated towards
-the celebrated lines of Torres Vedras, upon the construction
-of which thousands of peasants, under the direction
-of British engineers, had been busy for six months.</p>
-
-<p>These magnificent defences are thus described by one
-who knew them.<a id="FNanchor_58" href="#Footnote_58" class="fnanchor">58</a> They “consisted of redoubts and
-field-works of various kinds; according to the ground
-they were to defend, and all connected with each other
-by entrenchments, etc., so that, when occupied by the
-army, it would almost be impossible to force them.
-But, even supposing this first line of defence should be<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_131">131</a></span>
-carried by the enemy, there was another, much more
-contracted, to retreat upon, where a very small force
-could hold out against the French army and cover the
-embarkation of the British, should Lord Wellington be
-at last forced to quit Portugal. I cannot help considering
-this retreat to the lines, and the pertinacity with
-which he held them in spite of every difficulty, and the
-remonstrances of the Government at home, which was
-seized with alarm, as the greatest proof of a master mind
-and genius that could be given, and proved Lord
-Wellington to be superior to any general the French
-had, except Napoleon; in short, that he was, next to
-Buonaparte himself, the first general of the day. And I
-am further convinced that, had he the same opportunities
-that Napoleon had, he would have proved as great a
-general, as his capacity and powers of mind would have
-strengthened and expanded in proportion to the vastness
-of his views and the obstacles to be surmounted.”</p>
-
-<p>An officer of the 60th Rifles, who served behind them,
-furnishes a more detailed pen-sketch. “The line of
-defence was double,” he writes. “The first, which was
-twenty-nine miles long, began at Alhandra, on the Tagus,
-crossed the valley of Armia, which was rather a weak
-point, and passed along the skirts of Mount Agraça,
-where there was a large and strong redoubt; it then
-passed across the valley of Zibreira, and skirted the
-ravine of Runa to the heights of Torres Vedras, which
-were well fortified; and from thence followed the course
-of the little river Zizandre to its mouth on the sea-coast.
-The line followed the sinuosities of the mountain track
-which extends from the Tagus to the sea, about thirty
-miles north of Lisbon. Lord Wellington’s headquarters
-were fixed at Pero Negro, a little in the rear of the centre
-of the line, where a telegraph was fixed corresponding
-with every part of the position. The second line, at a
-distance varying from six to ten miles in the rear of the
-first, extended from Quintella, on the Tagus, by Bucellas,
-Montechique, and Mafra, to the mouth of the little<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_132">132</a></span>
-river S. Lourenço, on the sea-coast, and was twenty-four
-miles long. This was the stronger line of the two, both
-by Nature and art, and if the first line were forced by
-the enemy, the retreat of the army upon the second was
-secure at all times. Both lines were secured by breastworks,
-abattis, stone walls with banquettes, and scarps.
-In the rear of the second line there was a line of embarkation,
-should that measure become necessary, enclosing
-an entrenched camp and the fort of St Julian.” As
-many as 120 redoubts and 427 pieces of artillery were
-scattered along these lines. “Lord Wellington had received
-reinforcements from England and Cadiz; the
-Portuguese army had also been strengthened, and the
-Spanish division of La Romana, 5000 strong, came from
-Estremadura to join the Allies;<a id="FNanchor_59" href="#Footnote_59" class="fnanchor">59</a> so that the British
-commander had about 60,000 regular troops posted along
-the first and second lines, besides the Portuguese militia
-and artillery (which manned the forts and redoubts and
-garrisoned Lisbon), a fine body of English marines which
-occupied a line of embarkation, a powerful fleet in the
-Tagus, and a flotilla of gun-boats flanking the right of
-the British line. It was altogether a stupendous line
-of defence, conceived by the military genius of the
-British commander, and executed by the military skill
-of the British engineer officers.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellington continued to fall back until he reached
-“Busaco’s iron ridge,” north of the Mondego. Here he
-determined to offer Masséna battle, for three principal
-reasons. First, there was a growing discontent amongst
-the rank and file of his army by reason of lack of active
-warfare and the fall of Ciudad Rodrigo and Almeida,
-and a victory would put an end to this growing despondency.
-Second, also a military consideration, the
-orders he had given for the laying waste of the districts
-about Lisbon were not yet fully carried out. Third,
-from a political point of view it was necessary because<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_133">133</a></span>
-it would show that he was not about to lock himself up
-within the lines of Torres Vedras because he was incapable
-or afraid of Napoleon’s legions. In a word, it
-would “restore confidence,” a matter of first importance.
-It is quite incorrect to term Busaco a “useless battle”
-as some historians have done.</p>
-
-<p>“On the 25th and 26th,”<a id="FNanchor_60" href="#Footnote_60" class="fnanchor">60</a> says M. de Rocca, “the
-French corps arrived successively at the foot of the
-mountains Sierra de Busaco, whose summits they found
-occupied by the Anglo-Portuguese army. At six o’clock,
-on the morning of the 27th, they marched in column
-against the right and centre of that army, in the two
-roads leading to Coimbra, by the village of San Antonio
-de Cantaro, and by the convent of Busaco. These
-roads were cut up in several places, and defended by
-artillery. The mountain over which they pass is besides
-encumbered with steep rocks, and is very difficult of access.</p>
-
-<p>“The French column which attacked the right of the
-English advanced with intrepidity, in spite of the fire of
-their artillery and light troops. It reached the top of
-the eminence after sustaining considerable loss, and began
-to deploy in line with the greatest coolness, and most
-perfect regularity. But a superior force again assaulted
-it, and compelled it to retire. It soon rallied, made a
-second attack, and was again repulsed. The French
-battalions, which advanced against the convent of
-Busaco, where the left and centre of the English divisions
-joined, were also driven back, a little before they reached
-that post. General Simon, who had been struck by two
-balls during the charge, was left on the height, and a great
-many wounded officers and soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>“The position occupied by the English and Portuguese
-on the brow of the hill, formed the arc of a circle, whose
-two extremes embraced the ground over which the
-French had to advance. The allied army saw the least
-movements made below them, and had time to form to
-receive any powerful body before it arrived. This circumstance<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_134">134</a></span>
-materially contributed to the advantage they
-obtained....</p>
-
-<p>“Marshal Masséna judged that the position of Lord
-Wellington could not be carried in front, and resolved to
-turn it. He kept up an irregular fire till the evening,
-and sent off a body of troops by the mountain-road,
-which leads from Mortago to Oporto. The English
-and Portuguese, in consequence of this movement,
-abandoned their position on the mountain of Busaco.”</p>
-
-<p>The attack on the British left was led by Ney, and it
-succeeded in driving in the sharp-shooters. The French
-had practically reached the summit, as Rocca states,
-when Craufurd’s division, concealed in a hollow, gave
-them the full benefit of their fire. “The enemy,” says
-Sir Charles Stewart, who fought on this memorable day,
-“unable to retreat, and afraid to resist, were rolled down
-the steep like a torrent of hailstones driven before a
-powerful wind; and not the bayonets only, but the very
-hands of some of our brave fellows, became in an instant
-red with the blood of the fugitives. More brilliant or
-more decisive charges than those executed this day
-by the two divisions which bore the brunt of the action,
-were never perhaps witnessed; nor could anything equal
-the gallantry and intrepidity of our men throughout,
-except perhaps the hardihood which had ventured upon
-so desperate an attack.”</p>
-
-<p>Reynier’s two divisions, 15,000 men in all, attacked
-Picton’s 3rd division on the right. The troops of
-Generals Hill and Leith, moving rapidly to Picton’s
-aid, decided their fate. “The right of the 3rd division
-had been, in the first instance, borne back,” says an eye-witness,
-“the 8th Portuguese had suffered most severely;
-the enemy had formed, in good order, upon the ground
-which they had so boldly won, and were preparing to bear
-down to the right, and sweep our field of battle. Lord
-Wellington arrived on the spot at this moment, and aided
-the gallant efforts of Picton’s regiments, the fire of whose
-musketry was terrible, by causing two guns to play<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_135">135</a></span>
-upon the French flank with grape. Unshaken even with
-this destruction, they still held their ground, till, with
-levelled bayonets and the shout of the charge, the 45th
-and 88th regiments, British, most gallantly supported
-by the 8th Portuguese, rushed forwards, and hurried
-them down the mountain side with a fearful slaughter.”</p>
-
-<p>“This movement,” writes Wellington, “has afforded
-me a favorable opportunity of showing the enemy the
-description of troops of which this army is composed;
-it has brought the Portuguese levies into action with the
-enemy for the first time in an advantageous situation;
-and they have proved that the trouble which has been
-taken with them has not been thrown away, and that they
-are worthy of contending in the same ranks with British
-troops in this interesting cause, which they afford the
-best hopes of saving.</p>
-
-<p>“Throughout the contest on the Serra, and in all the
-previous marches, and those which we have since made,
-the whole army have conducted themselves in the most
-regular manner. Accordingly all the operations have
-been carried on with ease; the soldiers have suffered
-no privations, have undergone no unnecessary fatigue,
-there has been no loss of stores, and the army is in the
-highest spirits.”</p>
-
-<p>The total British and Portuguese losses, according to
-the official figures, were 197 killed, 1014 wounded, and
-58 missing. Masséna reported casualties to the number
-of 4486 men, including five generals. Anything but a
-kindly feeling existed between the French Commander-in-Chief
-and Ney previous to the battle; the result
-merely deepened their unfriendliness, a pitiful contrast
-to the cordial relations of Wellington and his colleagues.<a id="FNanchor_61" href="#Footnote_61" class="fnanchor">61</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_136">136</a></span>
-It is both delightful and pathetic to know that, after
-the last roll of the guns had echoed through the valley,
-the British and the French put aside their weapons and
-worked side by side in the humanitarian task of searching
-for the wounded. It was the final scene of the
-tragedy, acted after the curtain had fallen. It is recorded,
-as one of the incidents, that a German officer serving
-with Napoleon’s colours, who had a brother in the British
-60th Regiment, asked a sworn enemy of an hour ago if he
-knew what had happened to his relative? He answered
-his own pathetic question by finding the soldier’s corpse.</p>
-
-<div class="poem-container">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza"><i>
-<span class="i0">Books may tell of its story,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">But only the heart can know<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">How war is robbed of its glory,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">By the brave ones lying low,</span></i>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_137">137</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_XIII"></a>CHAPTER XIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Masséna beats a Retreat</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1810&ndash;11)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>There will be a breeze near Lisbon, but I hope we shall have the best
-of it.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap b"><span class="smcap1">Owing</span> to the failure of one of Wellington’s
-officers to occupy the Boialva Pass, Masséna
-was able to turn the British position, with the
-result that his advanced guard appeared in front of
-Coimbra on the evening of the 30th September.</p>
-
-<p>When the Commander-in-Chief saw the French army
-defiling across the mountains “he seemed uneasy,”
-according to one who watched him, “his countenance
-bore a fierce, angry expression, and, suddenly mounting
-his horse, he rode away without speaking.”</p>
-
-<p>No attempt was made to attack the enemy, Wellington
-considering it more prudent to leave the ridge, cross the
-Mondego, and retreat towards Lisbon. This resolution
-was come to on the 28th September, and on the 1st
-October the last man of the rear-guard had evacuated
-the town. “Although I could not save Coimbra,”
-Wellington writes, “I have very little doubt of being
-able to hold this country against the force which has now
-attacked it.”</p>
-
-<p>The place was immediately occupied by Masséna’s
-famished troops, who found it not entirely destitute of
-eatables, as seemed only too probable judging by previous<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_138">138</a></span>
-experience, although much of the food had been destroyed
-by Wellington’s orders. They had merely to
-help themselves to what they could find, for most of
-the population had followed in the wake of the allied
-army. “The inhabitants of the country have fled from
-their houses universally,” the Commander-in-Chief writes
-to the Earl of Liverpool from Alcobaço on the 5th
-October, “carrying with them every thing they could
-take away which could be deemed useful to the enemy;
-and the habits of plunder which have been so long
-encouraged in the enemy’s army prevent them from
-deriving any general advantage from the little resource
-which the inhabitants may have been obliged to leave
-behind them.”</p>
-
-<p>It is the straightforward utterance of a straightforward
-man. Wellington seldom indulged in picturesque
-language; he had neither the natural ability which
-commands a delicate choice of language nor the time for
-vivid diction. His mind was cast in a sterner mould; he
-craved for exactness, for cold, matter-of-fact calculations,
-for ungarnished essentials.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_138" class="figcenter" style="width: 405px;">
- <img src="images/i_153.jpg" width="405" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>The Retreat from Coimbra</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">Thomas Maybank</p></div></div>
-
-<p>For graphic details we must turn to such an authority
-as Sir Charles Stewart, who writes with the fluency of
-a gifted war-correspondent permitted to ride with the
-officers and obtain a view of everything of importance.
-“Crowds of men, women, and children,” he says,“&mdash;of
-the sick, the aged, and the infirm, as well as of
-the robust and the young&mdash;covered the roads and the
-fields in every direction. Mothers might be seen with
-infants at their breasts hurrying towards the capital,
-and weeping as they went; old men, scarcely able to
-totter along, made way chiefly by the aid of their sons
-and daughters; whilst the whole wayside soon became
-strewed with bedding, blankets, and other species of
-household furniture, which the weary fugitives were
-unable to carry farther. During the retreat of Sir John
-Moore’s army numerous heartrending scenes were brought
-before us; for then, as now, the people, particularly<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_139">139</a></span>
-in Galicia, fled at our approach; but they all returned
-sooner or later to their homes, nor ever dreamed of
-accumulating upon our line of march, or following our
-fortunes. The case was different here. Those who
-forsook their dwellings, forsook them under the persuasion
-that they should never behold them again; and
-the agony which such an apprehension appeared to
-excite among the majority exceeds any attempt at
-description.... It could not but occur to us that, though
-the devastating system must inevitably bear hard upon
-the French, the most serious evils would, in all probability,
-arise out of it, both to ourselves and our allies, from the
-famine and general distress which it threatened to
-bring upon a crowd so dense, shut up within the walls
-of a single city. At the moment there were few amongst
-us who seemed not disposed to view it with reprobation;
-because, whilst they condemned its apparent violation
-of every feeling of humanity and justice, they doubted
-the soundness of the policy in which it originated.”</p>
-
-<p>Leaving a meagre force to guard the wounded and sick
-at Coimbra, Masséna started off in pursuit of the enemy
-as soon as the most primeval of creature comforts had
-been satisfied. Six days after his soldiers had left the
-place, namely, the 11th October 1810, Wellington’s men
-entered the lines of Torres Vedras, but so rapid had been
-the French advance that they began to appear on the
-following morning. La Romana had crossed from
-Estremadura with several thousand Spanish troops,
-thereby adding to Wellington’s forces, while Portuguese
-militia threatened the enemy’s communications.</p>
-
-<p>Masséna dared not attempt to retreat for fear of incurring
-Napoleon’s displeasure. His only hope, as he
-repented at leisure, was that the supplies of the defenders
-might fail, or that the Emperor, in response to urgent
-dispatches, would speedily send reinforcements both of
-men and of arms. The news that Coimbra, its garrison,
-and its invalids, had fallen into the hands of militia under
-Colonel Trant merely added insult to injury. As regards<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_140">140</a></span>
-“starving out” the British and their allies, it was far
-more probable that their own food would run out, for
-while Wellington held the Tagus a constant supply of
-the necessaries of life was secured from incoming ships.
-Hunger did indeed eventually drive Masséna from
-Santarem, a town some thirty miles from Wellington’s
-lines, on which he had been forced to fall back in
-November. The place, perched on the summit of a
-height between the rivers Rio Mayor and Aviella,
-was admirably suited for defensive purposes, but after
-the surrounding country had been stripped there was
-nothing to do but retire. The Marshal was fortunate
-in finding a district which the Portuguese had not laid
-bare. It sounds almost incredible, but it is recorded
-that when Masséna succeeded in crossing the frontier
-his men were so famished that one of them consumed no
-less than seventeen pounds of native bread. The French
-General awaited with feverish anxiety the coming of
-Soult to his relief for nearly four months, but that
-worthy was fighting battles and besieging Badajoz, which
-the Spaniards surrendered on the 10th March 1811, five
-days after his colleague had been forced by sheer necessity
-to begin a retreat across the mountains towards Ciudad
-Rodrigo.</p>
-
-<p>The author of “The Journal of an Officer,” a reliable
-eye-witness, thus describes the town after Masséna had
-left it: “I have been for some weeks in view of Santarem,
-and saw at last with pleasure some symptoms of
-the French abandoning it. The first was setting fire
-to one of the principal convents in the upper town,
-and part of the lower town; the volume of smoke was
-immense for three days. On the fourth morning some
-information to depend on reached us, and the bugle
-of attack roused us from our pillows. The haze of
-the morning clearing up, we could easily perceive the
-out sentinels were men of straw, and quite passive.<a id="FNanchor_62" href="#Footnote_62" class="fnanchor">62</a>
-In fact, a better managed retreat was never executed.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_141">141</a></span>
-Not a vestige of a dollar’s worth remained. Being at
-the outposts with the 11th Dragoons and the 1st
-Royals, I entered with them, and three miserable
-deserters, who had hid themselves with one too ill to
-move, were the only enemies to be found. Such a scene
-of horror, misery, and desolation, scarce ever saluted
-the eye of man. Smoking ruins, the accumulated filth
-of months, horses and human beings putrefied to suffocation,
-nearly caused to many a vomiting. The houses
-had scarcely a vestige of wood&mdash;doors, windows, ceilings,
-roofs, burnt; and where the sick had expired,
-there left to decay! The number thus left were great.
-Every church demolished, the tombs opened for searching
-after hidden plate, every altar-piece universally
-destroyed, and the effluvia so offensive as to defy
-describing.</p>
-
-<p>“In some gardens, the miserable heads, undecayed,
-stuck up like scarecrows; in some wells, a body floating.</p>
-
-<p>“Down a precipice to which we were invited by
-prospect to look, the human and animal carcases ...
-repulsed our senses, and shudderingly vibrated the soul
-at the savage, horrible, diabolical acts of a French
-army. Greater spirits, better discipline, and more order,
-never attended an army than this. But to see the
-country, is to weep for the horrors of war. Such horrid
-excess I never saw before. Every town, village, or
-cottage destroyed. The growing nursery and the wild
-grove, each havocked for destruction’s sake. The
-pot that refined the oil broken, the wine-press burnt,
-for burning’s sake; the grape vines destroyed as noxious
-weeds; the furniture unburnt thrown from the windows,
-and with carriages, etc., made a bonfire of; the large
-libraries strewed over the land in remnants of paper;
-the noble convent in ashes, and the poor, unhappy,
-aged inhabitants, unable to flee, hung around as ornamenting
-the walls, ten or twelve in a place!”</p>
-
-<p>Wellington, who had now received reinforcements,
-moved his headquarters to Santarem on the 6th March,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_142">142</a></span>
-anxious to overtake the enemy with the least possible
-delay. He received the usual conflicting accounts of
-the direction taken by them and their probable destination.
-Oporto was suggested, which the Commander
-did not believe, “but they are in such a state of distress,
-that it may be expected that they will try anything,
-however desperate. But I follow them closely; and
-they will find it difficult to stop anywhere, for any
-purpose, till they shall draw near the frontier.” He
-detached two divisions under Beresford, hoping that
-he might be able to relieve Badajoz, and with five others
-continued to keep “close at their heels,” to use his own
-expression. Unfortunately the place fell before it was
-possible for Beresford to reach it. Had the Governor
-held out, Wellington was of opinion that “the Peninsula
-would have been safe,” and the relief of the south of
-Spain practically certain.</p>
-
-<p>“Affairs” with the enemy were frequent during
-Wellington’s pursuit, but by forcing them to evacuate
-the various positions they attempted to occupy, such
-as Pombal, Redinha, Cazal Nova and Foz d’Aronce,
-any designs they might have had against the northern
-provinces were prevented, notwithstanding the fact
-that the country afforded “many advantageous positions
-to a retreating army, of which the enemy have
-shown that they know how to avail themselves.”</p>
-
-<p>In writing to the Earl of Liverpool, Wellington
-remarks that “their conduct throughout this retreat
-has been marked by a barbarity seldom equalled, and
-never surpassed.” He tells a moving story of plunder,
-the burning of houses, a convent, and a bishop’s palace.
-“This is the mode,” he adds in a burst of indignation,
-“in which the promises have been performed, and the
-assurances have been fulfilled, which were held out in
-the proclamation of the French Commander-in-Chief, in
-which he told the inhabitants of Portugal that he was
-not come to make war upon them, but with a powerful
-army of 110,000 men to drive the English into the sea.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_143">143</a></span>
-“It is to be hoped that the example of what has
-occurred in this country will teach the people of this
-and of other nations what value they ought to place
-on such promises and assurances; and that there is no
-security for life, or for anything which makes life valuable,
-excepting in decided resistance to the enemy.”</p>
-
-<p>The difficulties of the chase were many and oftentimes
-almost unsurmountable. Boats and bridge-building
-materials were scarce, and caused delay in crossing
-rivers. Shoes wore out rapidly on account of the bad
-quality of the leather, and many of them were too small.
-Endless trouble was caused by the Spanish muleteers,
-who absolutely refused to attend the Portuguese troops,
-some of whom Wellington was obliged to leave in the
-rear owing to the scarcity of provisions. For instance,
-two brigades of infantry had to make nine days’ provisions,
-consisting chiefly of bread and a little meat
-supplied by the British commissariat, last for twenty-four
-days. “This is the assistance I receive from the
-Portuguese Government!” the Commander-in-Chief
-writes, and one can imagine his grim face hardening as
-he pens the words. There were the usual grievances
-against the rascally army contractors. The boots sent
-out were of bad quality, “in general too small.” We
-find him ordering 150,000 pairs of boots and 100,000 pairs
-of soles and heels at a time.</p>
-
-<p>The most serious action during Masséna’s retreat was
-fought at Sabugal, on the Coa, on the 3rd April. “We
-moved on the 2nd,” Wellington says when giving details
-of the engagement to Beresford, “and the British army
-was formed opposite to them; the divisions of militia,
-under Trant and Wilson, were sent across the river at
-Cinco Villas, to alarm Almeida for its communication.
-Yesterday morning”&mdash;he is writing on the 4th inst.&mdash;“we
-moved the whole army (with the exception of the
-6th division, which remained at Rapoula de Coa, opposite
-Loison) to the right, in order to turn this position, and
-force the passage of the river. The 2nd corps could not<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_144">144</a></span>
-have stood here for a moment; but unfortunately the
-Light division, which formed the right of the whole,
-necessarily passed first, and the leading brigade,
-Beckwith’s, drove in the enemy’s piquets, which were
-followed briskly by four companies of the 95th, and three
-of Elder’s caçadores, and supported by the 43rd regiment.
-At this time there came on a rain storm, and it
-was as difficult to see as in the fogs on Busaco, and these
-troops pushed on too far, and became engaged with the
-main body of the enemy. The light infantry fell back
-upon their support, which instead of halting, moved
-forward. The French then seeing how weak the body
-was which had passed, attempted to drive them down to
-the Coa, and did oblige the 43rd to turn. They rallied
-again, however, and beat in the French; but were
-attacked by fresh troops and cavalry, and were obliged
-to retire; but formed again, and beat back the enemy.
-At this time the 52nd joined the 43rd, and both moved
-on upon the enemy, and to be charged and attacked
-again in the same manner, and beat back. They formed
-again, moved forward upon the enemy, and established
-themselves on the top of the hill in an enclosure, and here
-they beat off the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>“But Reynier was placing a body of infantry on
-their left flank, which must have destroyed them, only
-that at that moment the head of the 3rd division, which
-had passed the Coa on the left of the Light division, came
-up, and opened their fire upon this column; and the
-5th division, which passed this bridge and through
-this town [Sabugal], made their appearance.</p>
-
-<p>“The enemy then retired, having lost in this affair
-a howitzer, and I should think not less than 1000
-men.</p>
-
-<p>“Our loss is much less than one would have supposed
-possible, scarcely 200 men. The 43rd have 73 killed
-and wounded. But really these attacks in columns<a id="FNanchor_63" href="#Footnote_63" class="fnanchor">63</a>
-against our lines are very contemptible.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_145">145</a></span>
-“The contest was latterly entirely for the howitzer,
-which was taken and retaken twice, and at last remained
-in our hands. Our cavalry, which ought to have crossed
-the Coa on the right of the Light division, crossed at the
-same ford, and therefore could be of no use to them.
-Besides they went too far to the right.</p>
-
-<p>“In short, these combinations for engagements do
-not answer, unless one is upon the spot to direct every
-trifling movement. I was upon a hill on the left of the
-Coa, immediately above the town, till the 3rd and 5th
-divisions crossed, whence I could see every movement
-on both sides, and could communicate with ease with
-everybody; but that was not near enough.</p>
-
-<p>“We took 6 Officers, and between 200 and 300
-prisoners, and Soult’s<a id="FNanchor_64" href="#Footnote_64" class="fnanchor">64</a> and Loison’s baggage.”</p>
-
-<p>Two days after this affair on the banks of the Coa
-Masséna crossed the frontier, having been literally
-driven out of Portugal. Within a few hours we
-find Wellington urging on Beresford the necessity
-for a strict blockade of Badajoz preparatory to
-besieging it. Masséna fell back upon Salamanca, while
-Wellington busied himself with the investment of
-Almeida, where a French garrison had been left. With
-Ciudad Rodrigo, the second and remaining place occupied
-by the Marshal’s troops, he felt he could do little at the
-moment beyond intercepting supplies. These two forts,
-which are within comparatively easy distance and
-almost parallel, the one in Portugal and the other in
-Spain, were extremely important, and commanded the
-north-eastern frontier of the former country.</p>
-
-<p>Incidentally, the British Commander-in-Chief also
-took the opportunity to publish a lengthy Proclamation
-to the Portuguese nation, of which the following is a
-brief synopsis. He informs the inhabitants that they
-are now “at liberty to return to their occupations,”
-that nearly four years have elapsed since “the tyrant
-of Europe” invaded the country, the object being “the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_146">146</a></span>
-insatiable desire of plunder, the wish to disturb the
-tranquillity, and to enjoy the riches of a people who
-had passed nearly half a century in peace.” He then
-strikes a deeper note and adds a few words of advice
-as to the future:</p>
-
-<p>“The Marshal General, however, considers it his duty,
-in announcing the intelligence of the result of the last
-invasion, to warn the people of Portugal, that, although
-the danger is removed, it is not entirely gone by. They
-have something to lose, and the tyrant will endeavor
-to plunder them: they are happy under the mild
-government of a beneficent Sovereign; and he will
-endeavor to destroy their happiness: they have successfully
-resisted him, and he will endeavor to force
-them to submit to his iron yoke. They should be unremitting
-in their preparations for decided and steady
-resistance; those capable of bearing arms should learn
-the use of them; or those whose age or sex renders them
-unfit to bear arms should fix upon places of security
-and concealment, and should make all the arrangements
-for their easy removal to them when the moment of
-danger shall approach. Valuable property, which
-tempts the avarice of the tyrant and his followers,
-and is the great object of their invasion, should be
-carefully buried beforehand, each individual concealing
-his own, and thus not trusting to the weakness
-of others to keep a secret in which they may not be
-interested.</p>
-
-<p>“Measures should be taken to conceal or destroy
-provisions which cannot be removed, and everything
-which can tend to facilitate the enemy’s progress; for
-this may be depended upon, that the enemy’s troops
-seize upon everything, and leave nothing for the owner.</p>
-
-<p>“By these measures, whatever may be the superiority
-of numbers with which the desire of plunder and of
-revenge may induce, and his power may enable, the
-tyrant again to invade this country, the result will be
-certain; and the independence of Portugal, and the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_147">147</a></span>
-happiness of its inhabitants, will be finally established
-to their eternal honor.”<a id="FNanchor_65" href="#Footnote_65" class="fnanchor">65</a></p>
-
-<p>However “beneficent” the Sovereign&mdash;who was a
-lunatic and out of the country&mdash;might be, Wellington
-had little that was good to say of its present rulers. He
-told them that he would inform the home Cabinet “that
-they cannot with propriety continue to risk a British
-army in this country unsupported by any exertion of
-any description on the part of the Portuguese Government.”
-The army was lamentably deficient “in that
-essential arm, its cavalry,” and the commissariat
-arrangements remained hopelessly deficient.</p>
-
-<p>The blockade of Almeida being “a simple operation,
-which I do not think the enemy have the means or inclination
-to interrupt,” Wellington left it in the hands of Lieut.-General
-Sir Brent Spencer in the middle of April, and
-set out from Villa Fermosa for Alemtejo to discuss
-his future projects with Castaños and also to visit
-Beresford. He knew that the French at Almeida would
-be forced to withdraw or surrender owing to the scarcity
-of provisions, but at Ciudad Rodrigo “there is a good
-garrison, and we certainly shall not get that place without
-a siege; for which God knows if we shall have time before
-the enemy will be reinforced. The first object is certainly
-Badajoz, and, as soon as I know whether any or what
-part of our train is required for the attack of that place,
-I shall send the remainder to Oporto, and make all the
-arrangements for the eventual attack of Ciudad Rodrigo.”</p>
-
-<p>As Soult was then busily occupied in fortifying Seville,
-to the south of Badajoz, the siege of the latter city
-became imperative, and without unnecessary delay.
-Soult might attempt to relieve Badajoz; certainly his
-presence at Seville precluded the likelihood of the
-garrison being deceived by any feint or actual attack
-made on that place by the allies with the object of
-distracting their attention.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_148">148</a></span>
-Although Wellington did not meet Castaños personally
-during his visit to the south, he sent him a plan of
-operations, to be undertaken with Blake and Ballasteros
-in co-operation with Beresford, and got through an
-immense amount of work in connection with the siege.
-“The continued and increasing inefficiency of the
-Portuguese regiments with this army,” gave him much
-cause for concern. On the 30th April 1811, four days
-after Parliament had thanked him for the liberation of
-Portugal, he tells Beresford that “if some effectual
-steps are not taken, the Portuguese force with this part
-of the army (<i>i.e.</i> Wellington’s) will be annihilated.” He
-concludes by saying that he must report the matter to
-the home authorities, which he did. “The Ministers and
-the English public believe that we have 30,000 men for
-whom we pay, and half as many more supported by the
-Portuguese Government. I do not believe that I have
-here 11,000, or that you have 5000, and of the number
-many are not fit for service.”</p>
-
-<p>Masséna was not the type of man who easily
-acknowledges defeat. He had been busily engaged at
-Salamanca in getting what remained of his army into
-working order. He had lost at least 25,000 of the 70,000
-men who had entered Portugal, but when he decided to
-go to the assistance of Almeida he could with difficulty
-muster only 39,000, some 5000 more than Wellington
-could put into the field. Having relieved Ciudad
-Rodrigo, Masséna crossed the Agueda, with the fixed
-intention of raising the blockade of Almeida. On the
-3rd May he was in sight of the British army, now arrayed
-at Fuentes de Oñoro.</p>
-
-<p>The Commander-in-Chief had returned from his travels
-on the 28th of the previous month, after having been
-informed by Spencer of the gathering of the enemy.
-“I’ll venture to say,” remarks Kincaid, “that there
-was not a heart in the army that did not beat more lightly
-when we heard the joyful news of his arrival the day
-before the enemy’s advance.” On the 3rd May the British<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_149">149</a></span>
-were “warmly but partially engaged,” and “made no
-progress in raising the blockade.”</p>
-
-<p>The real battle began on the 5th, and was, in Alison’s
-opinion, “the most critical in which Lord Wellington was
-engaged in the whole war, and in which the chances of
-irreparable defeat were most against the British army.”
-He then gives some of Sir Charles Stewart’s reflections
-on the fight, which help us to appreciate its difficulties
-from the point of view of an actual eye-witness who took
-a leading part in the battle. “Masséna’s superiority to
-us,” he notes, “both in cavalry and artillery, was very
-great; whilst the thick woods in our front afforded the
-most convenient plateau which he could have desired
-for the distribution of his columns unseen, and therefore
-disregarded. Had he rightly availed himself of this
-advantage, he might have poured the mass of his force
-upon any single point, and perhaps made an impression
-before we could have had time to support it. Had he
-commenced his attack with a violent cannonade, it
-must have produced some havoc, and probably considerable
-confusion, in our line. He might then have moved
-forward his cavalry <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">en masse</i>, supporting it by strong
-columns of infantry; and had either the one or the other
-succeeded in piercing through, our situation would have
-been by no means an enviable one.... Had he thrown
-his cavalry round our right flank&mdash;a movement which
-we should have found it no easy matter to prevent&mdash;crossed
-the Coa, advanced upon our lines of communication,
-and stopped our supplies, at the moment when,
-with his infantry, he threatened to turn us; then pushed
-upon Sabugal and the places near, he might have compelled
-us to pass the Coa with all our artillery at the most
-disadvantageous places, and cut us off from our best and
-safest retreat. There was, indeed, a time during the
-affair of the 5th, when his design of acting in this manner
-was seriously apprehended; and Lord Wellington was in
-consequence reduced to the necessity of deciding whether
-he should relinquish the Sabugal road or raise the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_150">150</a></span>
-blockade of Almeida. But Lord Wellington’s presence of
-mind never for a moment forsook him. He felt no
-distrust in his troops; to retain his hold over a secure
-and accessible line of retreat was therefore to him a
-consideration of less moment than to continue an operation
-of which the ultimate success could now be neither
-doubtful nor remote; and he at once determined to
-expose Sabugal rather than throw open a communication
-with Almeida. It was a bold measure, but it was not
-adopted without due consideration, and it received an
-ample reward in the successful termination of this hard-fought
-battle.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellington’s line was extended on a table-land between
-the rivers Turones and Dos Casas. It reached several
-miles, namely, from Fort Conception, which covered
-Almeida (opposite the village of that name he disposed
-his centre), to beyond Nava d’Aver, his right being at
-Fuentes de Oñoro. Poço Velho, between the latter place
-and Nava d’Aver, was also occupied by the left wing of
-the 7th Division, commanded by General Houstoun.</p>
-
-<p>Masséna’s first movement was to attack the Spanish
-irregulars, under Don Julian Sanchez, stationed on the
-hill of Nava d’Aver, which was neither a lengthy nor a
-difficult process.</p>
-
-<p>Major-General Houstoun scarcely fared better, two of
-his battalions being routed. The immediate consequence
-was that Captain Norman Ramsay’s battery of Horse
-Artillery, which were supporting Houstoun, were soon
-fighting against fearful odds. By means of a magnificent
-charge, while the attention of part of the French force
-was detracted by the dragoons under Sir Stapleton
-Cotton, Ramsay made good his escape with every gun.</p>
-
-<p>The situation was extremely critical when the squares
-of the 7th and Light Divisions were attacked by the
-enemy’s cavalry, but Wellington did not hesitate for a
-moment as to the best course to pursue. He abandoned
-Nava d’Aver and closed in his line by a complete change
-of front, withdrawing some of his divisions to the heights,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_151">151</a></span>
-and Houstoun’s men behind the Turones, to a position
-near Freneda, which became the British right and
-Fuentes de Oñoro the left.</p>
-
-<p>“Montbrun’s cavalry,” we are told, “merely hovered
-about Craufurd’s squares, the plain was soon cleared,
-the cavalry took post behind the centre, and the Light
-Division formed a reserve to the right of the 1st Division,
-sending the riflemen among the rocks to connect it with
-the 7th Division, which had arrived at Freneda, and was
-there joined by Julian Sanchez. At the sight of this new
-front, so deeply lined with troops, the French stopped
-short, and commenced a heavy cannonade, which did
-great execution, from the closeness of the allied masses;
-but twelve British guns replied with vigour, and the
-violence of the enemy’s fire abated; their cavalry then
-drew out of range, and a body of French infantry,
-attempting to glide down the ravine of the Turones, was
-repulsed by the riflemen and light companies of the
-Guards.”</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile a fierce conflict was taking place in the
-village of Fuentes. It continued see-saw fashion until
-the evening, both sides bringing up reserves and contesting
-every inch of the ground. Three regiments were
-driven from the lower parts of the village, but reinforcements
-were at hand, and the higher streets were never
-abandoned, although a chapel held by the troops in that
-quarter was evacuated. At nightfall the French crossed
-the river, leaving 400 of their dead in the village.
-Wellington averred that the battle “was the most
-difficult I was ever concerned in, and against the greatest
-odds. We had very nearly three to one against us
-engaged; about four to one of cavalry; and, moreover,
-our cavalry had not a gallop in them, while some of that
-of the enemy was fresh, and in excellent order. If Bony
-had been there we should have been beaten.”</p>
-
-<p>As a battle the engagement scarcely could be called a
-victory for the Allies, but Masséna had failed to relieve
-Almeida, while Wellington had succeeded in covering its<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_152">152</a></span>
-blockade. The total casualties of the British, Spanish,
-and Portuguese on the 3rd and 5th reached 1800, of the
-French nearly 3000, and 210 were taken prisoners. On the
-morning of the 8th May the last of the enemy left the
-field, but three days later the Commander-in-Chief
-received bad news. On the previous night the garrison
-of Almeida blew up part of the fortress and escaped,
-although the force sent by Wellington to blockade it
-was “four times more numerous than the garrison.”
-He characterized it as “the most disgraceful event that
-has yet occurred to us.” His correspondence at this
-period teems with references to it.</p>
-
-<p>Masséna was no longer “the favoured child of victory”
-or Napoleon’s “right arm,” as the Emperor had called
-him, and he was recalled, to be succeeded by Marmont,
-an excellent artillery officer then not quite thirty-seven
-years of age, whereas Masséna was fifty-three and
-deemed “too old” by his autocratic sovereign.</p>
-
-<p>Marmont speedily came to the conclusion when he
-took up his new post that without rest the so-called army
-of Portugal could not possibly expect to meet Wellington
-with any likelihood of success. He accordingly moved
-his troops to the province of Salamanca, where we will
-leave them for a little while to watch the course of the
-war elsewhere.</p>
-
-<p>Beresford had now invested Badajoz, and engaged the
-enemy in several sorties, on one occasion suffering severe
-loss owing to the imprudence of his troops. Receiving
-news to the effect that Soult was rapidly approaching
-with the determined object of relieving it, he raised the
-siege and posted his army on the ridge of Albuera to stop
-the French advance. The British Commander had
-nearly 32,000 men at his disposal. Of these no fewer
-than 24,000 were foreigners, including the Spanish forces
-of Blake, Castaños, Ballasteros, and Don Carlos d’España,
-which had formed a junction with him. The enemy
-had 23,000 troops.</p>
-
-<p>As Wellington was not present a detailed description<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_153">153</a></span>
-of the battle, which took place on the 16th May, does not
-come within the province of this volume. It was one
-of the most fiercely contested of the entire war. So
-much so that Beresford used up his entire reserves and
-lost 4100 British troops, in addition to 1400 Portuguese
-and Spanish killed and wounded. The French losses
-were over 6000, and 500 were taken prisoners. Had it
-not been for Colonel Hardinge, Beresford would have
-retreated. Following his colleague’s advice he remained
-and was victorious. It was at Albuera that the 57th
-Foot (now the 1st Middlesex Regiment) won the well-deserved
-name of “Die Hards” from the fact that
-Colonel Inglis shouted to his troops, “Die hard, my men;
-die hard!”<a id="FNanchor_66" href="#Footnote_66" class="fnanchor">66</a> “It was observed,” writes Beresford to
-Wellington, “that our dead, particularly the 57th
-regiment, were lying, as they had fought, in ranks, and
-that every wound was in front.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 19th Wellington, with two divisions, arrived at
-Elvas, and on the 21st he rode to Albuera and surveyed
-the site of the contest. “The fighting was desperate,”
-he writes, “and the loss of the British has been very
-severe; but, adverting to the nature of the contest, and
-the manner in which they held their ground against all
-the efforts the whole French army could make against
-them, notwithstanding all the losses which they had
-sustained, I think this action one of the most glorious
-and honourable to the character of the troops of any that
-has been fought during the war.”</p>
-
-<p>Surely a more noble tribute to the “common”
-soldier was never penned!</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_154">154</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_XIV"></a>CHAPTER XIV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">The Siege of Ciudad Rodrigo</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1811&ndash;12)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>The great object in all sieges is to gain time.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">The</span> exacting nature of the campaign was
-beginning to tell on Wellington. “I certainly
-feel, every day,” he had written to the Earl
-of Liverpool on the 15th May 1811, “more and more
-the difficulty of the situation in which I am placed. I
-am obliged to go everywhere, and if absent from any
-operation, something goes wrong.” “Another such
-battle” as Albuera, he informs his brother Henry on
-the 22nd, “would ruin us,” and he proceeds to compare
-the Spanish and Portuguese troops, to the disadvantage
-of the former. They often held their ground too
-well, there was no moving them in a battle. On the
-other hand, “We do what we please now with the
-Portuguese troops; we manœuvre them under fire
-equally with our own, and have some dependence on
-them; but these Spaniards can do nothing, but stand
-still, and we consider ourselves fortunate if they do not
-run away.” In his report of the battle Beresford
-mentions the Spanish cavalry as having behaved
-“extremely well.”</p>
-
-<p>Some idea of the enormous amount of labour involved
-may be gained from the fact that on the day mentioned
-Wellington either wrote or dictated at least eighteen<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_155">155</a></span>
-dispatches, including two dealing with the loss of an
-officer for whose widow and child he was endeavouring
-to obtain “favour and protection” at the hands of the
-home authorities. At the same time he was actively
-preparing for the renewed siege of Badajoz: “The late
-action has made a terrible hole in our ranks; but I am
-working hard to set all to rights again.” He appeared
-“destined to pass his life in the harness,” to use his own
-phrase, and had “a monstrous quantity of business to
-settle of different descriptions.”</p>
-
-<p>Referring to the difference of opinion held by his
-officers regarding his policy, he says, “I believe nothing
-but something worse than firmness could have carried
-me through.... To this add that people in England
-were changing their opinions almost with the wind, and
-you will see that I had not much to look to excepting
-myself.” The words are almost those of a broken-hearted
-man.</p>
-
-<p>Badajoz was again invested on the 25th May, and the
-batteries opened fire on the 3rd of the following month
-in an attempt to breach the fort of San Christoval and
-the castle. Wellington had then made his headquarters
-at Quinta de Granicha, from whence he writes, on the 6th
-to the Earl of Liverpool, to the effect that if he cannot
-prevent the enemy from receiving provisions he will not
-risk an action because he has not the means, and out of
-fairness to his soldiers he cannot “make them endure the
-labours of another siege at this advanced season. Notwithstanding
-that we have carried on our operations
-with such celerity,” he concludes “we have had great
-difficulties to contend with, and have been much delayed
-by the use of the old ordnance and equipments of Elvas,
-and of the Portuguese artillery, in this siege; some of
-the guns from which we fire are above 150 years old.”
-The majority of them were supposed to be 24-pounders,
-but they proved to be larger, with the result that their
-fire was very uncertain. Two attempts were made to
-storm the outwork of San Christoval without success,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_156">156</a></span>
-many brave fellows perishing in the vain effort to escalade
-the walls.</p>
-
-<p>Three weeks had not elapsed before it became eminently
-necessary to retire from this scene of activity.
-During this short time nearly 500 officers and men had
-been reported as killed, wounded, or missing, and fifty-two
-of the Chasseurs Britanniques had deserted. “I
-have a great objection to foreigners in this army,” he
-informs a colleague a little later, “as they desert terribly;
-and they not only give the enemy intelligence which he
-would find it difficult to get in any other manner, but by
-their accounts and stories of the mode in which deserters
-from the French army are treated by us, some of them
-well founded, they have almost put an end to desertion.”
-The reason for the latter belief was the legend “that the
-deserters from the enemy are sent to the West India
-Islands, and have no chance of ever returning to Europe.”</p>
-
-<p>Marmont, having united his scattered units, was about
-to join forces with Soult, which meant that when they
-marched on Badajoz, as undoubtedly they would do, the
-French army might number between 50,000 and 60,000
-troops. Wellington had been of opinion that it was
-possible to reduce the place before the end of the second
-week of June. An intercepted dispatch from Soult to
-Marmont made it abundantly evident that the enemy
-were to concentrate in Estremadura, and other intelligence
-clearly proved that the destination of the French
-army was “to the southward.” Elvas, where supplies
-were running low, had first to be replenished, so that it
-might be in a condition of defence should the enemy
-cross the frontiers. Leaving a comparatively small
-number of men to blockade Badajoz, and having made
-arrangements for the strengthening of Elvas, he marched
-from that place to Quinta de St João, where he remained
-for a considerable period. For nearly a fortnight the
-French threatened to attack, and had they done so it is
-scarcely possible that Wellington could have held his
-own in the field. Soult was the first to withdraw, the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_157">157</a></span>
-immediate cause being the threatening of Seville by
-Blake, who retired when Soult approached. Marmont,
-feeling unequal to fight alone, marched to the valley
-of the Tagus and cantoned his army between Talavera
-and Plasencia. During the crisis the two marshals
-mustered 62,000 troops, Wellington about
-48,000.</p>
-
-<p>The heat and other considerations prevented Wellington
-from besieging Badajoz; to relieve Cadiz was out
-of the question because the forces of Soult and Marmont
-would be almost certain to come to the assistance of the
-force before the great southern port. He therefore
-decided to besiege Ciudad Rodrigo, for four reasons stated
-in a letter to the Earl of Liverpool dated the 18th July,
-namely: “We can derive some assistance from our
-militia in the north in carrying it into execution, and the
-climate in which the operation is to be carried on is not
-unfavorable at this season. If it should not succeed,
-the attempt will remove the war to the strongest frontier
-of Portugal; and, if obliged to resume the defensive,
-the strength of our army will be centrically situated,
-while the enemy’s armies of the north and of the south
-will be disunited.” Shortly after the above dispatch
-was written he heard that Suchet had captured Tarragona,
-which made the proposed operation “less favorable.”
-“However,” he tells Beresford on the 20th of the same
-month, “we shall have a very fine army of little less than
-60,000 men,<a id="FNanchor_67" href="#Footnote_67" class="fnanchor">67</a> including artillery, in the course of about a
-fortnight; and I do not see what I can do with it, to
-improve the situation of the allies, during the period in
-which it is probable that, the enemy’s attention being
-taken up with the affairs of the north of Europe,<a id="FNanchor_68" href="#Footnote_68" class="fnanchor">68</a> we shall
-be more nearly on a par of strength with him, excepting
-we undertake this operation.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_158">158</a></span>
-Lieutenant-General Hill was entrusted with the duty
-of watching the enemy in Alemtejo,<a id="FNanchor_69" href="#Footnote_69" class="fnanchor">69</a> and two divisions
-were left in Estremadura. The Commander-in-Chief,
-with some 40,000 men, hastened towards Ciudad
-Rodrigo, unaware at the moment that the garrison had
-been reinforced and that Napoleon was sending more men
-to the Peninsula. When these important facts reached
-him he contented himself with blockading the place, and
-prepared to retire behind the Agueda should necessity
-warrant. Marmont sent for Dorsenne, who had taken
-the command in Galicia from Bessières, and with 60,000
-troops set out toward the end of September to relieve
-Ciudad Rodrigo. Wellington then occupied El Bodon,
-on the left bank of the Agueda. “The object of taking
-a position so near to the enemy,” he says, “was to force
-them to show their army. This was an object, because
-the people of the country, as usual, believed and reported
-that the enemy were not so strong as we knew them to
-be; and if they had not seen the enemy’s strength, they
-would have entertained a very unfavorable opinion of
-the British army, which it was desirable to avoid. This
-object was accomplished by the operations at the close
-of September.”</p>
-
-<p>Early on the morning of the 25th the Marshal drove in
-the outposts of Wellington’s left wing, and turned the
-heights occupied by the right centre, thereby placing the
-British Commander in a dangerous position, from which
-he extricated himself by hurling his cavalry at the horsemen
-and artillery now endeavouring to scale the heights.
-Two British guns were captured and retaken at the point
-of the bayonet. When the French infantry were brought
-into action Wellington gradually withdrew in the
-direction of Fuente Guinaldo, pursued by the enemy’s
-cavalry, which were received by solid British squares and
-repelled as six miles were traversed. Marmont again
-advanced on the 26th, but did not attack. Wellington<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_159">159</a></span>
-retreated until he reached a strong position in front of
-Sabugal on the 28th.</p>
-
-<p>A rear-guard action had been fought on the previous
-day at Aldea da Ponte, but Marmont withdrew without
-offering battle, and, after supplying much needed necessaries
-to Ciudad Rodrigo, proceeded to the Tagus valley
-and Dorsenne to Salamanca. Wellington renewed the
-blockade “in order,” as he says, “to keep a large force
-of the enemy employed to observe our operations, and
-to prevent them from undertaking any operation elsewhere.”
-Placing his army in cantonments on the banks
-of the Coa, the Commander-in-Chief made his headquarters
-at Freneda.</p>
-
-<p>While in their winter quarters both officers and men
-were able to recuperate after their previous arduous
-campaign. Sports, theatricals and other amusements
-helped to pass away the time and to cheer up the
-army. Even more important was the opportunity thus
-afforded the many semi-invalids to recover their health.
-“We are really almost an army of convalescents.”
-Wellington himself rode to hounds occasionally, and
-applauded the amateur histrionic efforts of his soldiers,
-when time and circumstances permitted him to attend
-their performances. He was able to re-establish Almeida
-as a military post, where he kept his battering-train to
-deceive the enemy, to blockade Ciudad Rodrigo, and to
-prepare for its investment.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the guerillas were “increasing in numbers
-and boldness throughout the Peninsula,” constantly
-annoying the French commanders. “It was their
-indomitable spirit of resistance,” says Professor Oman,<a id="FNanchor_70" href="#Footnote_70" class="fnanchor">70</a>
-“which enabled Wellington, with his small Anglo-Portuguese
-army, to keep the field against such largely
-superior numbers. No sooner had the French concentrated,
-and abandoned a district, than there sprang
-up in it a local Junta and a ragged apology for an army.
-Even where the invaders lay thickest, along the route<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_160">160</a></span>
-from Bayonne to Madrid, guerilla bands maintained
-themselves in the mountains, cut off couriers and escorts,
-and often isolated one French army from another for
-weeks at a time. The greater partisan chiefs, such as
-Mina in Navarre, Julian Sanchez in Leon, and Porlier in
-the Cantabrian hills, kept whole brigades of the French
-in constant employment. Often beaten, they were never
-destroyed, and always reappeared to strike some daring
-blow at the point where they were least expected. Half
-the French army was always employed in the fruitless
-task of guerilla-hunting. This was the secret which
-explains the fact that, with 300,000 men under arms,
-the invaders could never concentrate more than 70,000
-to deal with Wellington.”</p>
-
-<p>In the autumn and winter of 1811 the enemy accomplished
-nothing of importance in eastern and southern
-Spain. In the south-east Suchet defeated Blake on
-the 25th October at the battle of Sagunto, “the last
-pitched battle of the war,” remarks the above authority,
-“in which a Spanish army, unaided by British troops,
-attempted to face the French.” Forced into the city of
-Valencia with part of his motley array, Blake made a
-gallant attempt to rid himself of his besieger, an almost
-impossible task considering that Suchet had been reinforced
-while the unfortunate Spanish commander had
-been considerably reduced. On the 9th January 1812
-his 16,000 followers laid down their weapons.</p>
-
-<p>The investment of Ciudad Rodrigo by Wellington had
-been delayed owing to a complexity of causes. All the
-carting had to be performed by Portuguese and Spanish,
-and their slowness and the inclement weather combined
-precluded the Commander-in-Chief from pushing forward
-his operations with any celerity of movement.
-Empty carts took two days to go ten miles on a good road.
-Wellington confessed that he had to appear satisfied,
-otherwise the drivers would have deserted. If he succeeded
-in his designs he hoped to “make a fine campaign
-in the spring”; if he did not, “I shall bring back towards<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_161">161</a></span>
-this frontier the whole [French] army which had marched
-towards Valencia and Aragon. By these means I hope
-to save Valencia.”</p>
-
-<p>Alas, for human ambition! The capital of the province
-fell three days after the above dispatch was written.</p>
-
-<p>On the 8th January 1812 a start was made, and Ciudad
-Rodrigo invested. During the night the palisaded redoubt
-on the hill of San Francisco, which the French had
-recently constructed, was stormed and carried, but
-Wellington at once perceived that the enemy had made
-good use of their time by strengthening their works and
-fortifying three convents in the suburbs. “The success
-of this operation,” he writes, “enabled us immediately
-to break ground within 600 yards of the place, notwithstanding
-that the enemy still hold the fortified convents;
-and the enemy’s work has been turned into a part of
-our first parallel, and a good communication made with
-it.” Wellington encamped his men on the southern
-bank, which necessitated their fording the narrow
-stream, although he had built a bridge lower down the
-Agueda for munitions. It was no child’s play for the
-soldiers. Through icy cold water, across ground covered
-with snow and frost, and amidst a rain of shot and shell,
-these brave fellows went to their work, each division in
-succession. Some of them returned, others did not, for
-“The path of glory leads but to the grave.”</p>
-
-<p>The convent of Santa Cruz was captured on the night
-of the 13th, followed on the 14th by the fall of the
-convent of San Francisco and other fortified posts in the
-suburbs. By this time batteries were within 180 yards
-of the walls. “We proceeded at Ciudad Rodrigo,” he
-tells the Duke of Richmond, “on quite a new principle
-in sieges. The whole object of our fire was to lay open
-the walls. We had not one mortar; nor a howitzer,
-excepting to prevent the enemy from clearing the
-breaches, and for that purpose we had only two; and we
-fired upon the flanks and defences only when we wished
-to get the better of them, with a view to protect those<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_162">162</a></span>
-who were to storm. This shows the kind of place we
-had to attack....” Matters now became urgent, for
-advice had been received that Marmont was stirring.
-By the 19th the breaches made in the ramparts by the
-artillery were declared practicable. Wellington had
-already summoned the Governor to surrender. His reply
-was that “he and the brave garrison which he commanded
-were prepared rather to bury themselves in the ruins of a
-place entrusted to them by their Emperor.” The troops,
-consisting of the regiments of the 3rd and Light Divisions
-and some Portuguese caçadores, marched to the assault
-in five columns. “Rangers of Connaught,” cried General
-Picton to the “Fighting 3rd,” who were charged with
-the centre attack, “it is not my intention to expend any
-powder this evening; we’ll do this business with the
-cold iron.”</p>
-
-<p>It was the task of Picton and his men to assault the
-great breach, while the 52nd, the 43rd, and the 95th
-regiments, assisted by two battalions of caçadores,
-assaulted the other. At the same time a brigade of
-Portuguese under General Pack was to make a feint at
-the Santiago gate, at the southern end of the town, and
-the light company of the 83rd regiment with another body
-of native soldiers were to scale the castle walls. As the
-columns advanced the moon, then in its first quarter,
-revealed their black outline to the enemy. They at
-once opened fire. No reply was vouchsafed by the Allies,
-who marched with fixed bayonets and unloaded muskets.
-It was not part of their plan to return a greeting made
-by men who were behind ramparts.</p>
-
-<p>The Portuguese under Colonel O’Toole were the first
-to attack, closely followed by the 5th, 94th, and 77th
-regiments, the last supposed to act as a reserve. The
-Light Division, impatient of delay and not wishing to be
-rivalled in prowess, hurled themselves at the small
-breach without waiting for the bags of hay which were to
-be thrown in the ditch to assist them in crossing. Many
-of the attacking force literally passed over the shot-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_163">163</a></span>riddled
-bodies of the vanguard as they attempted to get
-through. Major George Napier, while leading his men,
-had his arm shattered, but still continued to encourage
-them; Robert Craufurd, the intrepid and cantankerous
-commander of the Light Division, fell mortally wounded;
-Major-General Mackinnon was blown up by the explosion
-of a magazine. Nine officers and eleven non-commissioned
-officers and drummers gave up their lives for
-their country during the siege and in the assault from the
-8th to the 19th, the total loss in killed and injured being
-nearly 1000. The hand-to-hand fighting continued in the
-streets, and the town caught fire.</p>
-
-<p>At dawn 1700 of the enemy surrendered, including
-the Governor. Marmont’s battering train, scores of
-field guns, and a plentiful supply of ammunition fell into
-the hands of the victors. Wellington had “great
-pleasure” in reporting “the uniform good conduct, and
-spirit of enterprise, and patience, and perseverance in the
-performance of great labor” on the part of the troops
-who had been engaged. As for the men themselves, they
-got drunk and sacked the place.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington’s rewards for the capture of Ciudad Rodrigo
-were numerous. He became an Earl in Great Britain,
-a Duke in Spain, and a Marquis in Portugal. In addition
-he was granted an extra annual pension of £2000 by
-Parliament. Financial offers were also forthcoming
-from the two Peninsula Powers, but he declined them.
-“He had only done his duty to his country, and to his
-country alone he would look for his reward.”</p>
-
-<p>Marmont was in ignorance of the siege until the 15th
-January. He then began to make preparations, but
-when he was ready the fortress had fallen, and he moved
-his army to Valladolid, to the north-east. Napoleon then
-sent orders to the Marshal that if he could not regain
-Ciudad Rodrigo he was to return to Salamanca, cross
-the frontier, and advance on Almeida. He foresaw that
-perhaps Wellington might turn his attention to Badajoz,
-which, in the Emperor’s opinion, would be a “mistake,”<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_164">164</a></span>
-and that of necessity he would have to return to succour
-the Portuguese fortress: “You will soon bring him
-back again.” The British Commander also surmised
-that another attack on Ciudad was quite possible.
-Before setting out on his next bold enterprise he therefore
-put the fortifications in thorough repair, and brought up
-a reserve supply of 50,000 rations in case it should be
-besieged. Satisfied that the place could now offer a bold
-resistance to the enemy, and having also repaired the
-works of Almeida, he marched the greater part of his army
-to the valley of the Guadiana, and invested Badajoz, which
-is on the left side of that river, on the 16th March 1812.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington fully appreciated the immense value of
-time, and if he did not actually work with his eyes on
-the clock, he always endeavoured to fix a definite date
-for his operations. Thus as early as the preceding
-January he had written to his brother from Gallegos, a
-little to the north of Ciudad, that it was probable he
-would be in readiness to invest the place “in the second
-week in March.” “We shall have great advantages in
-making the attack so early if the weather will allow of
-it,” he tells another correspondent. “First, all the
-torrents in this part of the country are then full, so that
-we may assemble nearly our whole army on the Guadiana,
-without risk to anything valuable here.<a id="FNanchor_71" href="#Footnote_71" class="fnanchor">71</a> Secondly, it
-will be convenient to assemble our army at an early
-period in Estremadura, for the sake of the green forage,
-which comes in earlier to the south than here. Thirdly,
-we shall have advantages, in point of subsistence, over
-the enemy, at that season, which we should not have at
-a later period. Fourthly, their operations will necessarily
-be confined by the swelling of the rivers in that part
-as well as here.” In order to deceive the enemy he remained
-behind with the 5th Division as long as possible
-and gave instructions for a report to be circulated to
-the effect that he was going to hunt on the banks of the
-Huelbra and Yeltes.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_165">165</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_XV"></a>CHAPTER XV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Badajoz and Salamanca</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1812)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>I shall not give the thing up without good cause.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">Considerable</span> energy was displayed by the
-troops in the siege operations at Badajoz, notwithstanding
-the persistent torrents of rain
-which soaked the men to the skin and filled the trenches
-as they worked. A bridge of pontoons was carried away
-and the flying bridges irretrievably injured by the
-swollen state of the Guadiana. The place was by no
-means an easy one to take, for strong outworks defended
-it, and Philippon, the French Governor, was a most able
-officer in whom his troops placed every confidence.
-However, good fortune did not attend the first sortie
-made by about 2000 of the enemy on the 19th March.
-They were “almost immediately driven in, without
-effecting any object, with considerable loss, by Major-General
-Bowes, who commanded the guard in the
-trenches,” to quote from Wellington’s official dispatch.</p>
-
-<p>On the 25th an attack was made on fort Picurina, an
-advanced post separated from Badajoz by the little river
-called the Rivillas. Twenty-eight guns in six batteries
-were brought to bear upon it, and after dark the place was
-carried by storm, although it was protected by three
-rows of palisades defended by musketry. The garrison
-of the outwork consisted of about 250 men. Of these<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_166">166</a></span>
-ninety, including the colonel, were taken prisoners, and
-most of the others were either killed or drowned in the
-swollen stream. An attempt was made to succour the
-brave defenders, but the soldiers were driven back before
-they could come up to the Picurina. The possession of
-this outwork enabled Wellington to place guns within
-300 yards of the body of the place, and on the following
-day two breaching batteries began their work of destruction,
-with the result that on the 6th April three
-breaches were declared to be practicable.</p>
-
-<p>At ten o’clock that night the attempt was to be made,
-the 3rd Division under Picton escalading the castle, the
-4th Division with General the Hon. C. Colville attacking
-the bastion of La Trinidad, the Light Division commanded
-by Colonel Barnard the bastion of Santa Maria,
-General Leith’s 5th Division the bastion of San Vincente.
-The attack on the bastions was to be made by storming
-the breaches. Wellington stood on rising ground facing
-the main breach, accompanied by the Prince of Orange
-and Lord March.</p>
-
-<p>“When the head of the Light Division arrived at the
-ditch of the place (the great breach) it was a beautiful
-moonlight night,” Sir Harry Smith relates with the
-authority of a participant in the action.<a id="FNanchor_72" href="#Footnote_72" class="fnanchor">72</a> “Old Alister
-Cameron, who was in command of four Companies of the
-95th Regiment, extended along the counterscarp to
-attract the enemy’s fire, while the column planted their
-ladders and descended, came up to Barnard and said,
-‘Now my men are ready; shall I begin?’ ‘No, certainly
-not,’ says Barnard. The breach and the works
-were full of the enemy, looking quietly at us, but not
-fifty yards off and most prepared, although <em>not firing a
-shot</em>. So soon as our ladders were all ready posted, and
-the columns in the very act to move and rush down the
-ladders, Barnard called out, ‘<em>Now</em>, Cameron!’ and the
-first shot from us brought down such a hail of fire as I
-shall never forget, nor ever saw before or since. It was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_167">167</a></span>
-most murderous. We flew down the ladders and rushed
-at the breach, but we were broken, and carried no weight
-with us, although every soldier was a hero. The breach
-was covered by a breastwork from behind, and ably defended
-on the top by <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">chevaux-de-frises</i> of sword-blades,
-sharp as razors, chained to the ground; while the ascent
-to the top of the breach was covered with planks with
-sharp nails in them.... One of the officers of the forlorn
-hope, lieutenant Taggart of the 43rd, was hanging on
-my arm&mdash;a mode we adopted to help each other up, for
-the ascent was most difficult and steep. A Rifleman
-stood among the sword-blades on the top of one of the
-<i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">chevaux-de-frises</i>. We made a glorious rush to follow,
-but, alas! in vain. He was knocked over. My old
-captain, O’Hare, who commanded the storming party,
-was killed. All were awfully wounded except, I do
-believe, myself and little Freer of the 43rd. I had been
-some seconds at the <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">revétement</i> of the bastion near the
-breach, and my red-coat pockets were literally filled with
-chips of stones splintered by musket-balls. Those not
-knocked down were driven back by this hail of mortality
-to the ladders. At the foot of them I saw poor Colonel
-M<sup>c</sup>Leod with his hands on his breast.... He said, ‘Oh,
-Smith, I am mortally wounded. Help me up the ladder.’
-I said, ‘Oh, no, dear fellow!’ ‘I am,’ he said; ‘be
-quick!’ I did so, and came back again. Little Freer
-and I said, ‘Let us throw down the ladders; the fellows
-shan’t go out.’ Some soldiers behind said, ‘... if you
-do we will bayonet you!’ and we were literally forced
-up with the crowd. My sash had got loose, and one end
-of it was fast in the ladder, and the bayonet was very
-nearly applied, but the sash by pulling became loose.
-So soon as we got on the glacis, up came a fresh Brigade
-of the Portuguese of the 4th Division. I never saw any
-soldiers behave with more pluck. Down into the ditch
-we all went again, but the more we tried to get up, the
-more we were destroyed. The 4th Division followed us
-in marching up to the breach, and they made a most<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_168">168</a></span>
-uncommon noise. The French saw us, but took no
-notice.... Both Divisions were fairly beaten back; we
-never carried either breach (nominally there were two
-breaches).... There is no battle, day or night, I would
-not willingly react except this. The murder of our
-gallant officers and soldiers is not to be believed.”</p>
-
-<p>The attack on the castle was no less furious. Again
-and again the ladders were hurled back, but they were
-always put in place again, notwithstanding the fearful
-and continuous fire to which the assailants were subjected.
-Great beams of timber, stones, everything calculated to
-kill or maim a man were regarded as useful weapons by
-the defenders. Nothing came amiss to them in their
-determined defence. Scores of soldiers were flung
-down, when another minute of safety would have enabled
-them to secure a footing on the ramparts. They fell in
-the ditch, often injuring or killing others besides themselves.
-At last Lieutenant-Colonel Ridge managed to
-place two ladders at a spot which had not been used
-before, and where the wall was lower. The officer scaled
-one, followed by his men, and reached the rampart. The
-surprised garrison was repulsed, and very soon the castle
-was in the hands of the British. Poor Ridge did not
-live to reap his richly-deserved reward. He was killed
-before the conclusion of the assault.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_168" class="figcenter" style="width: 600px;">
- <img src="images/i_185.jpg" width="600" height="421" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>Wellington at Badajos congratulating Colonel Watson</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">R. Caton Woodville</p></div></div>
-
-<p>A little while previous to the successful termination
-of the attack Dr James M<sup>c</sup>Gregor and Dr Forbes
-approached Wellington. “His lordship,” says the
-former, “was so intent on what was going on, that I
-believe he did not observe us. Soon after our arrival, an
-officer came up with an unfavourable report of the
-assault, announcing that Colonel M<sup>c</sup>Leod and several
-officers were killed, with heaps of men who choked the
-approach to the breach. At the place where we stood we
-were within hearing of the voices of the assailants and
-the assailed, and it was now painful to notice that the
-voices of our countrymen had grown fainter, while the
-French cry of ‘<i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">Avancez, étrillons ces Anglais</i>,’ became<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_169">169</a></span>
-stronger. Another officer came up with still more unfavourable
-reports, that no progress was being made, for
-almost all the officers were killed, and none left to lead
-on the men, of whom a great many had fallen.</p>
-
-<p>“At this moment I cast my eyes on the countenance of
-Lord Wellington, lit up by the glare of the torch held by
-Lord March. I never shall forget it to the last moment
-of my existence, and I could even now sketch it. The
-jaw had fallen, the face was of unusual length, while the
-torch-light gave his countenance a lurid aspect; but
-still the expression of the face was fair. Suddenly turning
-to me and putting his hand on my arm, he said, ‘Go
-over immediately to Picton, and tell him he must try if
-he cannot succeed on the castle.’ I replied, ‘My lord, I
-have not my horse with me, but I will walk as fast as I
-can, and I think I can find the way; I know part of the
-road is swampy.’ ‘No, no,’ he replied, ‘I beg your
-pardon, I thought it was De Lancey.’ I repeated my
-offer, saying I was sure I could find the way, but he said
-‘No.’</p>
-
-<p>“Another officer arrived, asking loudly, ‘Where is
-Lord Wellington?’ He came to announce that Picton
-was in the castle. He was desired instantly to go to the
-breach, and to request the stormers to renew their efforts,
-announcing what had befallen; and immediately Lord
-Wellington called for his own horse, and followed by the
-Prince and Lord March, rode to the breach.”</p>
-
-<p>General Walker, leading the assault on San Vincente,
-experienced much the same rough treatment as the other
-divisions, but eventually succeeded in forcing his way
-into the town.</p>
-
-<p>Philippon and a few hundred men managed to cross the
-Guadiana and found refuge in Fort San Christoval, only
-to surrender the following morning. The price paid by
-the victors in dead and wounded during the siege was
-nearly 5000 men; those of the enemy who laid down their
-arms numbered some 3800. The glory of the triumphant
-army was unfortunately tarnished by the gross misconduct<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_170">170</a></span>
-of the men, and it was not until a gallows was raised
-that a stop was put to their evil ways.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington was now anxious to meet Soult as soon as
-Badajoz was put in a state of defence, but when he received
-the ill news of the defeat of the French garrison
-the Marshal promptly retired to Seville. As Marmont
-was threatening Almeida and Ciudad Rodrigo the
-British General had no alternative but to turn northward.
-He had to thank the Spaniards for this. By
-neglecting to provision the places they had practically
-placed them at the mercy of the enemy should he appear
-in considerable numbers. They were already blockading
-the latter place. “If Ciudad Rodrigo had been provisioned,”
-Wellington writes to his brother Henry, “as
-I had a right to expect, there was nothing to prevent me
-from marching to Seville at the head of 40,000 men, the
-moment the siege of Badajoz was concluded.” It was,
-of course, very important that the line of communication
-between Marmont and Soult should be impeded as much
-as possible, and Hill was given this important task.
-Failing to surprise Almarez, the General pushed on to
-Fort Napoleon, on the other side of the Tagus, which was
-captured as well as Fort Ragusa. False information
-alone prevented Hill from following up his victories. He
-was told that Soult was in Estremadura, and he withdrew
-to the Guadiana.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington began his advance, and on the 13th June
-crossed the Agueda. On his approach to Salamanca
-he at once laid siege to three newly-erected forts, “each
-defending the other.” Marmont, knowing the likelihood
-of such an event, had wisely stored a good supply of food
-in them, so that there was a likelihood of their being
-able to hold out until he could succour them. The
-Marshal made one or two demonstrations to no good
-effect. He as obstinately declined to begin offensive
-measures as Wellington declined to be enticed to leave
-his strong position on the heights of San Christoval.</p>
-
-<p>It took Wellington some time to secure the forts, which<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_171">171</a></span>
-were well built and equipped, but on the 27th they fell
-into his hands, two by storm and one by capitulation.
-The last mentioned was being attacked when the flag was
-hauled down and would doubtless have been captured
-had not the commander given way before the British
-made good their assault. Marmont thereupon retired
-behind the Douro to await reinforcements.</p>
-
-<p>After having destroyed some military works at Alba
-de Tormes and garrisoned the castle of Salamanca with
-Spaniards, Wellington pushed forward and engaged
-Marmont’s rearguard on the 2nd July. He took up a
-position on the left bank of the Douro, on the opposite
-side of that occupied by the enemy, who was shortly
-afterwards strengthened by the support of Bonnet’s
-division from the Asturias. Near Tordesillas, which with
-Toro and Tudela was held by the French, the Marshal
-took courage and fought an action with Sir Stapleton
-Cotton, who was in command of Wellington’s right, on
-the 18th July. To resist him was impossible, for he had
-secured all the bridges and many of the fords. The
-action began at dawn, and Cotton gallantly maintained
-his post, but the enemy managed to turn the left flank
-of the British position. “The troops,” says Wellington
-in his official report, “retired in admirable order to
-Torrecilla de la Orden, having the enemy’s whole army
-on their flank, or in their rear, and thence to Guareña,
-which river they passed under the same circumstances,
-and effected their junction with the army.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellington fell back to within two miles of Salamanca,
-his left resting on the Tormes, his right abutting on two
-hills called Los Aripeles;<a id="FNanchor_73" href="#Footnote_73" class="fnanchor">73</a> Marmont secured the heights
-of Nuestra Señora de la Peña.</p>
-
-<p>Many years after the battle of Salamanca, General
-Alava, a Spanish officer at the British headquarters, was
-at Wellington’s breakfast table at Walmer, and he regaled
-the company with the story of the great soldier’s breakfast
-on the 22nd July 1812. Croker has recorded it for us,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_172">172</a></span>
-with the comment that the Duke listened “as quietly
-as if it related to another person.”</p>
-
-<p>“The Duke had been very busy all the morning, and
-had not thought of breakfast, and the staff had grown
-very hungry; at last, however, there was a pause (I
-think he said about two) near a farmyard surrounded by
-a wall, where a kind of breakfast was spread on the
-ground, and the staff alighted and fell to; while they
-were eating, the Duke rode into the enclosure; he refused
-to alight, and advised them to make haste; he seemed
-anxious and on the look-out. At last they persuaded
-him to take a bit of bread and the leg of a cold roast fowl,
-which he was eating without knife from his fingers, when
-suddenly they saw him throw the leg of the fowl far away
-over his shoulder, and gallop out of the yard, calling to
-them to follow him. The fact is, he had been waiting to
-have the French <em>sighted</em> at a certain gap in the hills, and
-that was to be the signal of a long-meditated and long-suspended
-attack. ‘I knew,’ says Alava, with grave
-drollery, ‘that something <em>very serious was about to
-happen when an article so precious as the leg of a roast
-fowl was thus thrown away</em>.’” Croker adds that “the
-Duke sat by with his head inclined, quite silent, but with
-a quiet smile which seemed to say that the narration was
-a good deal pleasanter than the reality had been.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellington was able to seize the nearer hill but the
-French secured the other, while another miniature height
-named Nuestra Señora de la Peña was the centre of a most
-desperate conflict, which continued through the long hours
-of the day. Marmont made the fatal error of dividing
-his army, sending Thomière’s division to turn the British
-right flank, with intent to cut off all hope of retreat on
-the part of Wellington, should he wish to do so, by means
-of the Ciudad Rodrigo road. This movement separated
-the French left wing from the centre, and this it was that
-caused the British Commander to fling away the dearly
-prized leg of a chicken.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_172" class="figcenter" style="width: 411px;">
- <img src="images/i_191.jpg" width="411" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>The End of Breakfast</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">Thomas Maybank</p></div></div>
-
-<p>After looking through his glass with wrapt attention<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_173">173</a></span>
-Wellington turned to his Spanish colleague with the
-words, “My dear Alava, Marmont is undone!” His
-active brain told him at once of his enemy’s mistake.
-Having made his dispositions he ordered Pakenham, his
-brother-in-law, to throw the 3rd Division into line and
-cross the march of Thomière’s columns. “It shall be
-done; give me your hand,” replied that energetic officer.
-He hurled the Portuguese cavalry, two squadrons of the
-14th Light Dragoons, and the “Fighting 3rd” at the
-flank and rear of the French left. Other divisions under
-Cole, Leith, Bradford, and Cotton attacked the enemy
-in front. “No sooner was Pakenham in motion towards
-the heights,” says one who took part in the battle, “than
-the ridge he was about to assail was crowned with twenty
-pieces of cannon, while in the rear of this battery were
-seen Foy’s division, endeavouring to regain its place in
-the combat. A flat space of 1000 yards in breadth was
-to be crossed before Pakenham could reach the height.</p>
-
-<p>“The French batteries opened a heavy fire, while
-the two brigades of artillery, commanded by Captain
-Douglas, posted on a rising ground behind the 3rd
-Division, replied to them with much warmth. Pakenham’s
-men may thus be said to have been between two fires,
-that of our own guns firing over their heads, while the
-French balls passed through their ranks, ploughing up
-the ground in every direction; but the veteran troops
-which composed the 3rd Division were not shaken even
-by this.</p>
-
-<p>“Wallace’s three regiments advanced in open columns,
-until within 250 yards of the ridge held by the French
-infantry. Foy’s column, 5000 strong, had by this time
-reached their ground, while in their front the face of the
-hill had been hastily garnished with riflemen. All were
-impatient to engage, and the calm but stern advance of
-Pakenham’s right brigade was received with beating of
-drums and loud cheers from the French, whose light
-troops, hoping to take advantage of the time which the
-deploying into line would take, ran down the face of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_174">174</a></span>
-hill in a state of great excitement, but Pakenham, who
-was naturally of a boiling spirit and hasty temper, was
-on this day perfectly cool. He told Wallace to form line
-from open column without halting, and thus the different
-companies, by throwing forward their right shoulders,
-were in a line without the slow manœuvre of deployment.</p>
-
-<p>“Astonished at the rapidity of the movement, the
-French riflemen commenced an irregular and hurried fire,
-and even at this early stage of the battle a looker-on
-could, from the difference in the demeanour of the troops
-of the two nations, form a tolerably correct opinion of
-what the result would be. Regardless of the fire of the
-riflemen, and the showers of grape and canister,
-Pakenham continued to press forward; his centre
-suffered, but still advanced; his right and left, being less
-oppressed by the weight of the fire, continued to advance
-at a more rapid pace, and as his wings inclined forward
-and outstripped the centre, his right brigade assumed
-the form of a crescent. The manœuvre was a bold as
-well as a novel one, and the appearance of the brigade
-imposing and unique; because it so happened that all
-the British officers were in front of their men&mdash;a rare
-occurrence. The French officers were also in front, but
-their relative duties were widely different&mdash;the latter
-encouraging their men into the heat of the battle&mdash;the
-former keeping their devoted soldiers back&mdash;what a
-splendid national contrast!”</p>
-
-<p>When the brow of the hill was reached the men were
-subjected to a murderous hail of fire from Foy’s division.
-Nearly all of Wallace’s first rank, as well as many
-officers, fell beneath it. But the others, urged by their
-commander, pressed on with fixed bayonets, and the
-French troops were forced backward. Thomière was
-amongst the killed, and many were taken prisoners in
-the rout which followed.</p>
-
-<p>“Immediately on our left,” the narrative continues,
-“the 5th Division were discharging vollies against the
-French 4th; and Pack’s brigade could be seen mounting<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_175">175</a></span>
-the Aripeles height, but disregarding everything except
-the complete destruction of the column before him,
-Pakenham followed it with the brigade of Wallace, supported
-by the reserves of his division.</p>
-
-<p>“The battle at this point would have been decided on
-the moment, had the heavy horse under Le Marchant
-been near enough to sustain him. The confusion of the
-enemy was so great that they became mixed pell-mell
-together, without any regard to order or regularity, and
-it was manifest that nothing short of a miracle could save
-Foy from total destruction. Sir Edward Pakenham
-continued to press on at the head of Wallace’s brigade,
-but Foy’s troops outran him. Had Le Marchant been
-aware of this state of the combat, or been near enough
-to profit by it, Pakenham would have settled the business
-by six o’clock instead of seven. An hour, at any period
-during a battle, is a serious loss of time, but in this action
-every moment was of vital import. Day was rapidly
-drawing to a close: the Tormes was close behind the
-army of Marmont, ruin stared him in the face; in a word,
-his left wing was doubled up&mdash;lost; and Pakenham
-could have turned to the support of the 4th and 5th
-Divisions, had our cavalry been ready to back Wallace
-at the moment he pierced the column. This, beyond
-doubt, was the moment by which to profit, that the
-enemy might not have time to re-collect himself; but,
-while Le Marchant was preparing to take part in the
-combat, Foy, with admirable presence of mind, remedied
-the terrible confusion of his division, and calling up a
-first brigade to his support, once more led his men into
-the fight, assumed the offensive, and Pakenham was now
-about to be assailed in turn. This was the most critical
-moment of the battle; Boyer’s horsemen stood before
-us, inclining towards our right, which was flanked by two
-squadrons of the 14th Dragoons and two regiments of
-Portuguese cavalry; but we had little dependence upon
-the Portuguese, and it behoved us to look to ourselves.</p>
-
-<p>“Led on by the ardour of conquest, we had followed<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_176">176</a></span>
-the column until at length we found ourselves in an open
-plain, intersected with cork trees, opposed by a multitude,
-who, reinforced, again rallied, and turned upon us with
-fury. Pakenham, Wallace, Seton, and Mackie, rode
-along the line from wing to wing, almost from rank to
-rank, and fulfilled the functions of adjutants in assisting
-the officers to reorganise the tellings-off of the men for
-square. Meanwhile the first battalion of the 5th drove
-back some squadrons of Boyer’s dragoons; the other six
-regiments were fast approaching the point held by
-Wallace, but the French cavalry in our front and upon
-our right flank caused Pakenham some uneasiness.</p>
-
-<p>“The peals of musketry along the centre still continued
-without intermission; the smoke was so thick that
-nothing to our left was distinguishable; some men of the
-5th Division got intermingled with ours; the dry grass
-was set on fire by the numerous cartridge papers that
-strewed the field of battle; the air was scorching, and the
-smoke rolling on in huge volumes, nearly suffocated us.</p>
-
-<p>“A loud cheering was heard in our rear&mdash;the brigade
-turned half round, supposing themselves about to be
-attacked by the French cavalry. A few seconds passed&mdash;the
-trampling of horse was heard&mdash;the smoke cleared
-away, and the heavy brigade of Le Marchant was seen
-coming forward in a line at a canter. ‘Open right and
-left,’ was an order quickly obeyed; the line opened, the
-cavalry passed through the intervals, and forming
-rapidly in our front prepared for their work.</p>
-
-<p>“The French column, which a moment before held so
-imposing an attitude, became startled at this unexpected
-sight. A victorious and highly excited infantry
-pressed closely upon them; a splendid brigade of three
-regiments of cavalry, ready to burst through their ill-arranged
-and beaten column, while no appearance of
-succour was at hand to protect them, was enough to
-appal the boldest intrepidity. The plain was filled with
-the vast multitude; retreat was impossible, and the
-troopers came still pouring in, to join their comrades<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_177">177</a></span>
-already prepared for the attack. It was too much for
-their nerves, and they sank under its influence, although
-they bravely made an effort to face the danger.</p>
-
-<p>“Hastily, yet with much regularity, all things considered,
-they attempted to get into the square; but Le
-Marchant’s brigade galloped forward before the evolution
-was half completed.</p>
-
-<p>“The column hesitated, wavered, tottered, and then
-stood still! The motion of the countless bayonets, as
-they clashed together, might be likened to a forest about
-to be assailed by a tempest, whose first warnings
-announce the ravage it is about to inflict. Foy’s division
-vomited forth a dreadful volley of fire as the horsemen
-thundered across the flat; Le Marchant was killed,<a id="FNanchor_74" href="#Footnote_74" class="fnanchor">74</a> and
-fell downright in the midst of the French bayonets; but
-his brigade pierced through the vast mass, killing or
-trampling down all before them. The conflict was severe,
-and the troopers fell thick and fast, but their long, heavy
-swords, cut through bone as well as flesh....</p>
-
-<p>“Such as got away from the sabres of the horsemen,
-sought safety among the ranks of our infantry, and
-scrambling under the horses, ran to us for protection,
-like men who, having escaped the first shock of a wreck,
-will cling to any broken spar, no matter how little to be
-depended on. Hundreds of beings frightfully disfigured,
-in whom the human face and form were almost obliterated&mdash;black
-with dust, worn down with fatigue, and covered
-with sabre cuts and blood&mdash;threw themselves among us
-for safety. Not a man was bayoneted&mdash;not even
-molested or plundered.”</p>
-
-<p>The battle still raged with unabated fury; “immediately
-in front of the 5th Division, Leith fell wounded
-as he led on his men, but his division carried the point
-in dispute, and drove the enemy before them up the hill.</p>
-
-<p>“While these events were taking place on the right, the
-4th Division, which formed the centre of the army, met<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_178">178</a></span>
-with a serious opposition. The more distant Aripeles,
-occupied by the French 122nd, whose numbers did not
-count more than 400, supported by a few pieces of
-cannon, was left to the Portuguese brigade of General
-Pack, amounting to 2000 bayonets. Falsely, though
-with well-founded reliance&mdash;their former conduct taken
-into the scale&mdash;Cole’s division advanced into the plain,
-confident that all was right with Pack’s troops, and a
-terrible struggle between them and Bonnet’s corps took
-place. It was, however, but of short duration. Bonnet’s
-troops were driven back in confusion, and up to this
-moment all had gone on well.</p>
-
-<p>“The three British Divisions engaged, overthrew all
-obstacles, and the battle might be said to be won, had
-Pack’s formidable brigade (formidable in numbers, at
-least) fulfilled their part&mdash;but these men totally failed in
-their effort to take the height occupied only by a few
-hundred Frenchmen, and thus gave the park of artillery
-that was posted with them, full liberty to turn its efforts
-against the rear and flank of Cole’s soldiers. Nothing
-could be worse than the state in which the 4th Division
-was now placed, and the battle, which ought to have been
-and had been in a manner won, was still in doubt.</p>
-
-<p>“Bonnet, seeing the turn which Pack’s failure had
-wrought in his favour, re-formed his men, and advanced
-against Cole, while the fire from the battery and small
-arms on the Aripeles height completed the confusion.
-Cole fell wounded; half of his division were cut off;
-the remainder in full retreat, and Bonnet’s troops pressing
-on in a compact body, made it manifest that a
-material change had taken place in the battle, and that ere
-it was gained some ugly up-hill work was yet to be done.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_178" class="figcenter" style="width: 600px;">
- <img src="images/i_199.jpg" width="600" height="413" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>Charge of Pakenham’s Third Division at Salamanca</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">R. Caton Woodville</p></div></div>
-
-<p>“Marshal Beresford, who arrived at this moment,
-galloped up to the head of a brigade of the 5th Division,
-which he took out of the second line, and for a moment
-covered the retreat of Cole’s troops; but this force&mdash;composed
-of Portuguese&mdash;was insufficient to arrest the
-progress of the enemy, who advanced in the full confidence<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_179">179</a></span>
-of an assured victory, and at this moment Beresford
-was carried off the field wounded. Bonnet’s troops
-advanced, uttering loud cheers, while the entire of Cole’s
-division and Spry’s brigade of Portuguese were routed.
-Our centre was thus endangered. Boyer’s dragoons,
-after the overthrow of the French left, countermarched,
-and moved rapidly to the support of Bonnet; they were
-also close in the track of his infantry; and the fate of
-this momentous battle might be said to hang by a hair.
-The fugitives of the 7th and 4th French Divisions ran to
-the succour of Bonnet, and by the time they had joined
-him, his force had, indeed, assumed a formidable aspect,
-and thus reinforced it stood in an attitude far different
-from what it would have done, had Pack’s brigade
-succeeded in its attack.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord Wellington, who saw what had taken place by
-the failure of Pack’s troops, ordered up the 6th Division
-to the support of the 4th, and the battle, although it was
-half-past 8 o’clock at night, recommenced with the same
-fury as at the outset.</p>
-
-<p>“Clinton’s division, consisting of 6000 bayonets,
-rapidly advanced to occupy its place in the combat,
-and relieve the 4th from the awkward predicament in
-which it was placed, and essayed to gain what was lost
-by the failure of Pack’s troops, in their feeble effort to
-wrest the Aripeles height from a few brave Frenchmen;
-but they were received by Bonnet’s troops at the point
-of the bayonet, and the fire opened against them seemed
-to be three-fold more heavy than that sustained by the
-3rd and 5th Divisions. It was nearly dark, and the great
-glare of light caused by the thunder of the artillery, the
-continued blaze of musketry, and the burning grass, gave
-to the face of the hill a novel and terrific appearance&mdash;it
-was one vast sheet of flame, and Clinton’s men looked
-as if they were attacking a burning mountain, the crater
-of which was defended by a barrier of shining steel. But
-nothing could stop the intrepid valour of the 6th Division,
-as they advanced with desperate resolution to carry the hill.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_180">180</a></span>
-“The troops posted on the face of it to arrest their
-advance were trampled down and destroyed at the first
-charge, and each reserve sent forward to extricate them
-met with the same fate.</p>
-
-<p>“Still Bonnet’s reserves having attained their place in
-the fight, and the fugitives from Foy’s division joining
-them at the moment, prolonged the battle until dark.</p>
-
-<p>“These men, besmeared with blood, dust, and clay,
-half naked, and some carrying only broken weapons,
-fought with a fury not to be surpassed; but their impetuosity
-was at length calmed by the bayonets of
-Clinton’s troops, and they no longer fought for victory,
-but for safety. After a desperate struggle they were
-driven from their last hold in confusion, and a general
-and overwhelming charge, which the nature of the ground
-enabled Clinton’s troops to make, carried this ill-formed
-mass of desperate soldiers before them, as a shattered
-wreck borne along by the force of some mighty current.
-The mingled mass of fugitives fled to the woods and to the
-river for safety, and under cover of the night, succeeded
-in gaining the pass of Alba, over the Tormes. It was
-10 o’clock at night&mdash;the battle was ended.”</p>
-
-<p>Marmont, who was wounded in the early part of the
-fight, lost 15,000 men, of whom 7000 surrendered to the
-British. The victors had nearly 700 officers and men
-killed, and over 4500 returned as wounded and missing.
-Six British Generals, including Wellington, whose thigh
-was grazed by a musket ball which had fortunately
-passed through his holster before it hit him, received
-injuries, and Le Marchant, as already mentioned, was
-shot. Of the enemy four Generals were wounded and
-three killed, sufficient proof of the sanguinary nature of
-the long-continued contest. The victory would have
-been even more complete had the Spanish garrison at
-Alba de Tormes remained at their post instead of withdrawing
-without informing the Commander-in-Chief of
-their intention. As a consequence the enemy were enabled
-to use the bridge there and make good their escape.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_181">181</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_XVI"></a>CHAPTER XVI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">The Closing Battles of the Peninsular War</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1812&ndash;14)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>In the whole of my experience I never saw an army so strongly posted
-as the French at the battle of Toulouse. There ought to have been an
-accurate plan and description made of the whole affair as a matter of
-professional science.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="sigright">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">Marmont</span>’s army was not the only one in retreat.
-King Joseph, with 15,000 troops, had
-left Madrid with the set purpose of joining
-the Marshal, but when he received news of the battle of
-Salamanca he retreated on Valencia, where Suchet’s
-army was posted, and peremptorily ordered Soult to
-evacuate Andalusia. This would enable him to bring
-90,000 men to bear on his victorious enemy. His withdrawal
-from Madrid enabled Wellington to enter the
-capital on the 12th August 1812, Marmont, or rather
-Clausel, who had temporarily succeeded him, being driven
-back upon Burgos. The evacuation of the southern
-province was doubtless very gratifying to the Spaniards,
-but the threatened concentration of such a vast array of
-troops placed the Anglo-Portuguese army in an extremely
-unhappy position. The force at Wellington’s disposal
-numbered 60,000 men, and although an additional 6000
-had just landed at Alicante, in Valencia, it was evident
-that they would be of little service at the moment.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_182">182</a></span>
-When he became aware that Soult was about to abandon
-Andalusia he left part of his army to occupy Madrid, and
-with the remainder set out in the hope of being able to
-crush Clausel, who was at Valladolid. This he was unable
-to do, for the enemy retired from position to position. He
-followed him to Burgos, which Wellington entered, the
-French General meanwhile encamping on the banks
-of the Ebro, where he shortly afterwards received substantial
-reinforcements under Caffarelli and Souham
-the latter of whom arrived as Marmont’s successor.
-Wellington was also joined by some 11,000 Spanish
-troops of the army of Galicia. He at once laid siege to
-the castle above the town, which was strongly defended,
-and although the troops worked with praiseworthy
-ardour and four attempts were made to take it by assault,
-he was eventually forced to abandon the idea, and for a
-very important reason. Soult had joined King Joseph,
-and the combined army was on its way to Madrid. He
-had wasted a precious month, time which the French had
-used to full advantage.</p>
-
-<p>It is related that one of the Irish regiments incurred
-his displeasure during the siege, and some of its members
-asked permission for it to lead one of the assaults. Their
-wish was granted, with the result that nearly all the men
-laid down their lives in the desperate undertaking.
-When Wellington passed a little later, a soldier who had
-lost both his legs saluted and cried, “Arrah, maybe
-ye’r satisfied now, you hooky-nosed vagabond!” The
-Commander could not restrain a smile, and promptly
-sent assistance. The Irishman ended his days in Chelsea
-Hospital.</p>
-
-<p>Sending word to Hill to abandon Madrid and meet him
-on the Tormes, Wellington skilfully withdrew his men
-from Burgos, and although his rear-guard was much
-harassed by Souham’s troops, he formed a junction with
-his lieutenant near the battlefield of Salamanca. On
-arrival on the Tormes they were almost face to face with
-the united army, but divided counsels reigned, and he<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_183">183</a></span>
-skilfully eluded the French, although they turned his
-position. Aided by a dense fog, Wellington managed to
-slip away unperceived. After a sharp engagement at a
-ford of the Huebra, the pursuers abandoned the attempt
-to secure the roads to Ciudad Rodrigo, which place was
-reached by Wellington on the 18th November. Soult
-retired to Toledo, Souham to Valladolid, and Joseph to
-Segovia.</p>
-
-<p>A pen-sketch of the men during this terrible retreat
-tells us that “such a set of scare-crows never was seen.
-It was difficult to say what they were, as the men’s coats
-were patched with grey, some had blankets over them,
-and most were barefooted; every step they took was up
-to the knees in mud; women and sick men were actually
-sticking in it.... A brigade of cavalry, however, which
-was covering the rear, had left Lisbon but a short time
-before, and was in high order. The clothing of the men
-scarcely soiled, and the horses sleek and fat, made a
-strange contrast with the others, especially the company
-of artillery that had served in the batteries before Burgos.
-We at first took the latter for prisoners, as they were
-mostly in French clothing, many of them riding in the
-carriages with the sick and wounded, drawn, some by
-oxen, and some by mules and horses. I never saw
-British soldiers in such a state.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellington and his men then went into cantonments,
-the former making his headquarters at Freneda. Much
-was done to improve the <em>morale</em> of the troops, who had
-got into a very insubordinate state. Reinforcements
-came to hand, and Wellington worked hard to reorganize
-the Spanish army, of which he had been appointed
-Generalissimo after the battle of Salamanca. He had
-also been raised to the rank of Marquis, thanked by both
-Houses of Parliament, and presented with £100,000.
-He paid a visit to the Cortes, made a speech, and wrote a
-long letter to one of the Deputies in which he criticized
-“the powers that be” in no uncertain way, adding,
-however, a number of measures which would “give your<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_184">184</a></span>
-Government some chance of standing, and your country
-some chance of avoiding farther revolutions.” The
-whole communication must be studied to be fully
-appreciated.<a id="FNanchor_75" href="#Footnote_75" class="fnanchor">75</a> “The Government and the Assembly,”
-he says in one passage, “instead of drawing together, are
-like two independent powers, jealous and afraid of each
-other; and the consequence is, that the machine of
-Government is at a stand. To this add that the whole
-system is governed by little local views, as propounded
-by the daily press of Cadiz, of all others the least enlightened
-and the most licentious.” “I will fight for
-Spain as long as she is the enemy of France, whatever
-may be her system of government,” he adds, “but I
-cannot avoid seeing and lamenting the evils which
-await the country if you do not retrace your steps, let
-what will be the result of the military operations of
-the war....”</p>
-
-<p>He advised the establishment of a permanent Regency,
-“with all the powers allotted by the constitution to the
-King, in the hands of one person.” He, or she, should be
-aided by a Council, whose five members should superintend
-the Department de Estado, the Interior and
-Ultramar, Gracia y Justicia, Hacienda, and of War and
-of Marine respectively, each being responsible for the
-department under his superintendence. He suggested
-either turning “the Council of State into a House of
-Lords,” or making “a House of Lords of the Grandees,
-giving then concurrent powers of legislation with the
-Cortes; and you should leave the patronage now in the
-hands of the Council of State in the hands of the Crown.”</p>
-
-<p>In these days of Socialism the following remarks,
-which occur in the same letter, are of more than passing
-interest. “The theory of all legislation,” he says, “is
-founded in justice; and, if we could be certain that
-legislative assemblies would on all occasions act according
-to the principles of justice, there would be no occasion
-for those checks and guards which we have seen<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_185">185</a></span>
-established under the best systems. Unfortunately,
-however, we have seen that legislative assemblies are
-swayed by the fears and passions of individuals; when
-unchecked, they are tyrannical and unjust; nay, more:
-it unfortunately happens too frequently that the most
-tyrannical and unjust measures are the most popular.
-Those measures are particularly popular which deprive
-rich and powerful individuals of their properties under
-the pretence of the public advantage; and I tremble
-for a country in which, as in Spain, there is no barrier
-for the preservation of private property, excepting the
-justice of a legislative assembly possessing supreme
-powers.”</p>
-
-<p>In summing up the result of his operations in the field
-during 1812, Wellington tells the Earl of Liverpool on the
-23rd November, that notwithstanding adverse criticism
-in the newspapers, “it is in fact the most successful
-campaign in all its circumstances, and has produced for
-the cause more important results than any campaign in
-which a British army has been engaged for the last
-century. We have taken by siege Ciudad Rodrigo,
-Badajoz, and Salamanca; and the Retiro surrendered.
-In the meantime the Allies have taken Astorga,
-Guadalaxara, and Consuegra, besides other places taken
-by Duran and Sir H. Popham. In the months elapsed
-since January this army has sent to England little short
-of 20,000 prisoners, and they have taken and destroyed
-or have themselves the use of the enemy’s arsenals in
-Ciudad Rodrigo, Badajoz, Salamanca, Valladolid, Madrid,
-Astorga, Seville, the line before Cadiz, etc.; and upon the
-whole we have taken and destroyed, or we now possess,
-little short of 3000 pieces of artillery. The siege of Cadiz
-has been raised, and all the countries south of the Tagus
-have been cleared of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>“We should have retained still greater advantages, I
-think, and should have remained in possession of Castile
-and Madrid during the winter, if I could have taken
-Burgos, as I ought early in October, or if Ballasteros had<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_186">186</a></span>
-moved upon Alcarez as he was ordered, instead of intriguing
-for his own aggrandizement.</p>
-
-<p>“The fault of which I was guilty in the expedition to
-Burgos was, not that I undertook the operation with
-inadequate means, but that I took there the most inexperienced
-instead of the best troops.... I see that a
-disposition already exists to blame the Government for
-the failure of the siege of Burgos. The Government had
-nothing to say to the siege. It was entirely my own act.
-In regard to means, there were ample means both at
-Madrid and at Santander for the siege of the strongest
-fortress. That which was wanting at both places was
-means of transporting ordnance and military stores to
-the place where it was desirable to use them.</p>
-
-<p>“The people of England, so happy as they are in every
-respect, so rich in resources of every description, having
-the use of such excellent roads, etc., will not readily
-believe that important results here frequently depend
-upon 50 or 60 mules more or less, or a few bundles of
-straw to feed them; but the fact is so, notwithstanding
-their incredulity....”</p>
-
-<p>When Wellington was ready for his 1813 campaign he
-had 75,000 British and Portuguese at his disposal, and
-some 60,000 Spaniards, in addition to the irregular bands
-which were the bane of the enemy. The different French
-armies totalled some 200,000 troops, but it was deemed
-necessary to send 40,000 of these, under Clausel and Foy,
-to exterminate the <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">guerilleros</i>, which was to Wellington’s
-advantage, especially as it was impossible for Napoleon,
-now deeply involved owing to the disastrous Russian
-campaign, to send further reinforcements. Soult was
-withdrawn, with 20,000 men, to oppose the Russian
-advance. By way of further encouragement, Andalusia,
-Estremadura, Galacia, and the Asturias no longer sheltered
-the enemy. The British left was under Graham, the
-right under Hill, and the centre under the Commander-in-Chief.
-The first marched upon Valladolid, the
-French retreating before him, and was joined near<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_187">187</a></span>
-Zamora on the 1st June 1813 by Wellington, followed
-two days later by Hill. The French were deceived by
-these movements, for they expected the main attack to
-be made from Ciudad Rodrigo and Almeida with the
-object of occupying Madrid. This was far from
-Wellington’s purpose, which was to carry on the war in
-the northern provinces, sever the French communications
-with the homeland, and force them to withdraw to the
-Pyrenees. King Joseph hastily retired from Valladolid
-and reached Burgos. On the approach of Wellington to
-that town, the fortifications were blown up and the enemy
-fell back beyond the Ebro.</p>
-
-<p>“When I heard and saw this explosion (for I was
-within a few miles, and the effect was tremendous),”
-Wellington remarks, “I made a sudden resolution forthwith&mdash;instanter
-to cross the Ebro, and endeavour to
-push the French to the Pyrenees. We had heard of the
-battles of Lützen and Bautzen and of the armistice,<a id="FNanchor_76" href="#Footnote_76" class="fnanchor">76</a> and
-the affairs of the Allies looked very ill. Some of my
-officers remonstrated with me about the impudence of
-crossing the Ebro, and advised me to take up the line of
-the Ebro, etc. I asked them what they meant by taking
-up the line of the Ebro, a river 300 miles long, and what
-good I was to do along that line? In short, I would not
-listen to the advice; and that very evening (or the very
-next morning) I crossed the river and pushed the French
-till I afterwards beat them at Vittoria.”</p>
-
-<p>“We continued to advance,” writes a soldier of the
-71st Regiment who fought in the battle, “until the 20th
-of June; when reaching the neighbourhood of Vittoria,
-we encamped upon the face of a hill. Provisions were
-very scarce. We had not a bit of tobacco, and were<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_188">188</a></span>
-smoking leaves and herbs. Colonel Cadogan rode away,
-and got us half a pound of tobacco a man, which was most
-welcome.</p>
-
-<p>“Next morning we got up as usual. The first pipes
-played for parade; the second did not play at the usual
-time. We began to suspect all was not right. We remained
-thus until eleven o’clock; then received orders to
-fall in, and follow the line of march. During our march
-we fell to one side, to allow a brigade of guns to pass
-us at full speed. ‘Now,’ said my comrades, ‘we will
-have work to do before night.’ We crossed a river, and,
-as we passed through a village, we saw, on the other side
-of the road, the French camp, and their fires still burning,
-just as they had left them. Not a shot had been fired at
-this time. We observed a large Spanish column moving
-along the heights on our right. We halted, and drew up
-in column. Orders were given to brush out our locks,
-oil them, and examine our flints. We being in the rear,
-these were soon followed by orders to open out from the
-centre, to allow the 71st to advance. Forward we
-moved up the hill. The firing was now very heavy.
-Our rear had not engaged, before word came for the
-doctor to assist Colonel Cadogan, who was wounded.
-Immediately we charged up the hill, the piper playing,
-‘Hey Johnny Cope.’ The French had possession of the
-top, but we soon forced them back, and drew up in
-column on the height; sending out four companies to
-our left to skirmish. The remainder moved on to the
-opposite height. As we advanced driving them before
-us, a French officer, a pretty fellow, was pricking and
-forcing his men to stand. They heeded him not&mdash;he
-was very harsh. ‘Down with him!’ cried one near me;
-and down he fell, pierced by more than one ball.</p>
-
-<p>“Scarce were we upon the height, when a heavy
-column, dressed in great-coats, with white covers on
-their hats, exactly resembling the Spanish, gave us a
-volley, which put us to the right about at double-quick
-time down the hill, the French close behind, through the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_189">189</a></span>
-whins. The four companies got the word the French
-were on them. They likewise thought them Spaniards,
-until they got a volley that killed or wounded almost
-every one of them. We retired to the height, covered by
-the 50th, who gave the pursuing column a volley which
-checked their speed. We moved up the remains of our
-shattered regiment to the height. Being in great want of
-ammunition, we were again served with sixty rounds a
-man, and kept up our fire for some time, until the bugle
-sounded to cease firing....</p>
-
-<p>“At this time the Major had the command, our second
-Colonel being wounded. There were not 300 of us on the
-height able to do duty, out of above 1000 who drew
-rations in the morning. The cries of the wounded were
-most heart-rending.</p>
-
-<p>“The French, on the opposite height, were getting
-under arms; we could give no assistance, as the enemy
-appeared to be six to one of us. Our orders were to
-maintain the height while there was a man of us. The
-word was given to shoulder arms. The French, at the
-same moment, got under arms. The engagement began
-in the plains. The French were amazed, and soon put
-to the right about, through Vittoria. We followed, as
-quick as our weary limbs could carry us. Our legs were
-full of thorns, and our feet bruised upon the roots of the
-trees. Coming to a bean field at the bottom of the
-heights, immediately the column was broke, and every
-man filled his haversack. We continued to advance
-until it was dark, and then encamped on a height above
-Vittoria.... I had fired 108 rounds this day.”</p>
-
-<p>According to the official figures the British lost 740
-men by death and 4174 were wounded, out of a total
-strength of 80,000. The captures included 151 guns,
-415 caissons, 14,249 rounds of ammunition, nearly
-2,000,000 musket ball cartridges, 40,668 lbs. of gunpowder,
-fifty-six forage waggons, forty-four forge
-waggons, treasure to the amount of £1,000,000, pictures
-by Velasquez and other masters, jewellery, public and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_190">190</a></span>
-private baggage. King Joseph’s carriage, and Jourdan’s
-bâton. The last-mentioned was given by Wellington to
-the Prince Regent, who with becoming fitness sent the
-donor a Field-Marshal’s bâton. The French had 65,000
-men engaged in the battle of Vittoria, of whom some
-6000 were killed and wounded, and 1000 taken
-prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>The defeated army crossed the Pyrenees and marched
-to Bayonne, where it was joined by the troops under Foy
-and Clausel, who had been pursued by the Allies. “To
-hustle the French out of Spain before they were reinforced,”
-had been Wellington’s object, and he had
-carried it out completely. As the garrisons of the
-fortresses of Pampeluna and San Sebastian had been
-strengthened, the former by Joseph and the latter by
-Foy, during their retreat, Wellington now turned his
-attention to them. Although the army under Suchet
-was the only one now left in the Peninsula, it occupied
-Catalonia and part of Valencia, and might therefore
-attack Wellington’s right flank.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon was at Dresden when he heard of his
-brother’s disaster at Vittoria, and he was in no mood for
-soft words. He recalled both Joseph and Jourdan, and
-gave the command to Soult. “It is hard to imagine
-anything so inconceivable as what is now going on in
-Spain,” the Emperor writes to Savary on the 3rd July
-1813. “The King could have collected 100,000 picked
-men: they might have beaten the whole of England.”
-He blamed himself for the “mistaken consideration” he
-had shown his brother, “who not only does not know
-how to command, but does not even know his own value
-enough to leave the military command alone.”</p>
-
-<div id="ip_190" class="figcenter" style="width: 600px;">
- <img src="images/i_213.jpg" width="600" height="465" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>Flight of the French through Vittoria</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">Robert Hillingford</p></div></div>
-
-<p>Soult reached Bayonne on the 12th July, and thirteen
-days later had marched on Pampeluna with 73,000
-troops, bent on relieving one or other of the fortresses,
-perhaps both. He attacked the British right at
-Roncesvalles and turned the position; Hill was attacked
-at the head of the valley of Baztan and was obliged to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_191">191</a></span>
-withdraw. Wellington at once raised the siege of San
-Sebastian, which had been carried on by Sir Thomas
-Graham, and contented himself by blockading the
-fortress. He immediately concentrated his right and
-centre at Sorauren, near Pampeluna. The series of fights
-which took place at this time is known as the battles of
-the Pyrenees. On the 27th Wellington arrived, and a
-rousing cheer greeted him, which it is said deterred the
-French from making anything but a partial attack.
-Probably the truth of the matter is that Soult hesitated
-because he was expecting additional forces with d’Erlon,
-for the Marshal was scarcely likely to be overawed by a
-greeting. A corporal, unable to restrain his enthusiasm
-as the Commander-in-Chief rode along the line, shouted
-out to the intense amusement of all, “There goes the
-little blackguard what whops the French!”<a id="FNanchor_77" href="#Footnote_77" class="fnanchor">77</a></p>
-
-<p>Soult was pointed out to the General by a spy.
-“Yonder,” Wellington is reported to have said, “is a
-great but cautious general; he will delay his attack to
-know the reason of those cheers; that will give time for
-my reinforcements to come up, and I shall beat him.”
-As a matter of fact, the 6th Division of infantry, to
-which Wellington had referred, did arrive, and
-“bludgeon work,” to use his expression, took place on
-the 28th, the anniversary of Talavera. The reinforcements
-had scarcely secured their position, their right resting
-on Orcain and their left on the heights overlooking
-the valley of the Lanz, than a very determined attack
-was made by the enemy. They were driven back, and
-made an attempt on the hill occupied by the 7th caçadores
-and Ross’s brigade of the 4th Division. They obtained
-possession of it for a short time until driven down.
-When the battle became general the 10th Portuguese
-regiment was overpowered, necessitating the withdrawal
-of Ross. Wellington then ordered two regiments to
-charge the enemy on the heights and those on the left,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_192">192</a></span>
-with the result that the French were “driven down with
-immense loss.” “Every regiment,” says Wellington,
-“charged with the bayonet, and the 40th, 7th, 20th, and
-23rd, four different times.” Of Wellington’s 16,000
-troops he lost 2600 killed and wounded, the French
-1800 out of 20,000. The Portuguese behaved “admirably,”
-and the Commander-in-Chief “had every reason to
-be satisfied with the conduct of the Spanish regiments
-El Principe and Pravia.”</p>
-
-<p>By sunset Soult’s attacks had waned, and on the following
-morning he began to retreat, although he received
-reinforcements to the number of 18,000 troops. On the
-30th he attacked Hill to no good effect, and Wellington
-forced the French to retire from a strong position they
-had taken up. The pursuit continued until the 1st
-August, when it was discontinued, for the Allies were in
-possession of the passes and the arduous exertion of
-the troops was beginning to tell upon them.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington again took up his headquarters at Lesaca.
-Writing to Graham he says, “I hope that Soult will not
-feel any inclination to renew his expedition. The French
-army must have suffered greatly. Between the 25th of
-last month and 2nd of this, they were engaged seriously
-not less than ten times; on many occasions in attacking
-very strong positions, in others beat from them or pursued.
-I understand that their officers say that they have
-lost 15,000 men. I thought so; but as <em>they</em> say so, I now
-think <em>more</em>. It is strange enough that our diminution
-of strength to the 31st does not exceed 1500 men,
-although, I believe, our casualties are 6000.” It was
-on the 31st that San Sebastian fell, the castle capitulating
-shortly afterwards, and the day is also noteworthy for
-Soult’s attack on San Marcial, which was repulsed by
-Spanish troops, the enemy retiring across the Bidassoa.
-Unfortunately, Sir John Murray made no headway
-against Suchet in the east of Spain, and was superseded
-by Lord William Bentinck, who besieged Tarragona,
-which his predecessor had evacuated. Although he<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_193">193</a></span>
-was compelled to retire on the approach of the French
-Marshal, the city was eventually occupied by the British
-troops. Their entry into Villa Franca was marred by
-the rout of the advanced guard in the pass of Ordal,
-necessitating their retreat towards Tarragona.</p>
-
-<p>It is obviously impossible to unravel with any approach
-to detail the tangled skein of complicated manœuvres
-which took place at this period, perhaps the most trying
-and exacting of the war in the Peninsula. Gleig, however,
-gives one picturesque touch to an involved picture
-which reveals more of the personality of the great General
-than many pages of military movements, and is infinitely
-more valuable for the purposes of a life story. “Lord
-Wellington,” he records, “after directing a Spanish
-column to move up a glen towards a specific point, looked
-at his watch, and observed to those about him that it
-would take the men so much time to perform the journey.
-He added that he was tired, and dismounting from his
-horse, wrapped himself in his cloak and went to sleep.
-A crowd of officers stood round him, and among others
-some Spanish generals, whose astonishment at the coolness
-of their chief was expressed in audible whispers.
-For the very crisis of the struggle was impending, and the
-French being in greater strength upon the spot, seemed
-to have the ball at their foot. Now, among the officers
-of the headquarters’ staff, there were several who had
-never approved the passage of the Ebro. These began to
-speak their minds freely, and one, the bravest of the
-brave, the gallant Colonel Gordon, exclaimed, ‘I
-always thought it would come to this. I was sure we
-should make a mess of it, if we got entangled among the
-Pyrenees, and now see if my words don’t come true.’
-Lord Wellington happened to awake just as Gordon thus
-unburdened his conscience. He sat up, and without
-addressing himself to anyone in particular, extended his
-right hand open, and said, as he closed it, ‘I have them
-all in my hand, just like that.’ Not another word was
-spoken. The Spaniards had reached the top of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_194">194</a></span>
-glen; Lord Wellington and his attendants remounted
-their horses, and the battle was renewed.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 7th October 1813 Wellington passed the
-Bidassoa with the left of his army. Soult was attacked
-and driven back with the loss of eight pieces of cannon,
-taken by the Allies in the captured redoubts and
-batteries. The fighting was continued on the following
-day, after the fog which obscured the enemy’s position
-had lifted, when a rock occupied by the French to the
-right of their position was carried “in the most gallant
-style” by the Spaniards, who immediately afterwards
-distinguished themselves by carrying an entrenchment
-on a hill which protected the right of the camp of Sarre.
-Soult withdrew during the following night, and took up
-a series of entrenched positions behind the Nivelle,
-leaving, as Alison so eloquently puts it, “a vast hostile
-army, for the first time since the Revolution, permanently
-encamped within the territory of France. And thus was
-England, which throughout the contest had been the
-most persevering and resolute of all the opponents of
-the Revolution, and whose government had never yet
-either yielded to the victories or acknowledged the chiefs
-which it had placed at the head of affairs, the first of all
-the forces of Europe who succeeded in planting its
-victorious standards on the soil of France.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 10th November, a little over a week after the
-surrender of Pampeluna through starvation, for the fall
-of which he had waited before resuming offensive operations,
-Wellington, with an army of about 90,000 men,
-attacked the enemy’s position, an exceedingly strong one,
-the right extending from the sea to St Jean de Luz, the
-left from Bidarray to St Jean Pied de Port, the centre
-between Amotz and Ascain. The enemy were driven
-out of the lines and followed over the river, with a loss
-of 4200 men and no fewer than 51 guns, the Allies losing
-about 2500 killed and wounded.</p>
-
-<p>“Our loss,” says Wellington, “although severe, has
-not been so great as might have been expected, considering<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_195">195</a></span>
-the strength of the positions attacked, and the length
-of time, from daylight in the morning till night, during
-which the troops were engaged.” The disorders which
-followed the battle were so great that with the exception
-of a single division Wellington sent the whole of the
-Spaniards&mdash;some 25,000&mdash;back to the Peninsula.</p>
-
-<p>On the 12th the Marshal was in the entrenched camp
-at Bayonne, and six days later the victorious army went
-into cantonments, where it remained until the 9th
-December, when it was ordered to march towards
-Bayonne. It forced the passage of the Nive, and a
-series of engagements was fought until the 13th, on which
-date Hill, with one British and one Portuguese division,
-fought and won the battle of Saint Pierre. Wellington
-came up but refrained from interfering, and when he
-saw that his brave colleague had proved victorious, he
-wrung his hand in a hearty grip and exclaimed, “Hill,
-the day is entirely your own.”</p>
-
-<p>In the battles of the Nive the French lost 5800 killed
-and wounded, and three German regiments by desertion
-to the Allies, whose losses totalled 4600. Soult had
-now one of two alternatives, either to be hemmed in at
-Bayonne or to retreat. He chose the latter, and marched
-in the direction of Toulouse with less than 40,000 troops,
-Napoleon, now in desperate plight, having withdrawn
-10,000 for the defence of the eastern frontier of France.</p>
-
-<p>Leaving Sir John Hope to blockade Bayonne,
-Wellington followed Soult, who took up a position at
-Orthez, on the right bank of the Gave de Pau. Early
-on the morning of the 27th February the battle opened
-by Beresford turning the enemy’s right, but he was driven
-back, as was Picton, who attacked the enemy’s centre.
-“<i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">Enfin je le tiens!</i>&mdash;At last I have him!” exclaimed
-Soult, but Wellington changed his plan, and at once sent
-Hill to cross the river by the ford above Souars and cut
-off the Marshal’s retreat by the great road to Pau. At
-the same time he ordered two divisions against the right
-of the enemy’s centre, and Colborne cut off the division<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_196">196</a></span>
-which had checkmated Beresford. The French under
-Reille were driven from the heights, and at first retired,
-in good order, but Cotton and Lord Edward Somerset
-charged and spread considerable confusion in the ranks,
-while Hill marched on Aire and attacked Clausel. The
-Portuguese were repulsed, but the British drove the
-enemy from the town with great loss.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington was wounded almost at the end of the battle,
-which is perhaps one reason why the pursuit was not so
-rapid as it might otherwise have been. However,
-Beresford was sent with two divisions to Bordeaux,
-whose citizens bade them enter, and thereupon proclaimed
-the Duc d’Angoulême, eldest nephew of Louis
-XVIII, who was now with the British army, as Prince
-Regent.</p>
-
-<p>The last battle of the Peninsular War was fought on
-Easter Sunday, the 10th April 1814, at Toulouse, on
-which Soult’s army had concentrated.</p>
-
-<p>A mistake on the part of an engineer as to the breadth
-of the Garonne above Toulouse prevented Wellington
-from crossing at the spot he had selected because there
-were not sufficient pontoons. This caused considerable
-delay and a march to a narrower but more difficult
-place below the town. Sir George Napier says that he
-never saw the Commander-in-Chief in such a rage&mdash;he
-was “furious.” On the completion of the gangway,
-Beresford, with a portion of the army, passed over,
-drove in the French outposts, and remained in front of
-the enemy. There they stopped for three days, cut off
-from the main force and liable to attack any moment.
-This unexpected situation was brought about by a storm
-which flooded the river and swept away the pontoons.</p>
-
-<p>Soult is stated to have given this reason for failing to
-assail Beresford’s force: “You do not know what stuff
-two British divisions are made of; they would not be
-conquered as long as there was a man of them left to
-stand, and I cannot afford to lose men now.”</p>
-
-<p>When the new bridge was available no time was lost<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_197">197</a></span>
-in crossing the river, and on the 10th Soult was attacked.
-An eye-witness thus records the event<a id="FNanchor_78" href="#Footnote_78" class="fnanchor">78</a>:</p>
-
-<p>“The 4th, 6th, and a Portuguese division under
-Marshal Beresford’s orders, attacked the great fort on
-the right of the French, and here was the brunt of the
-battle, for the enemy was strongly posted and flanked by
-works, with trenches in their front, and their best troops
-opposed to ours. But nothing could damp the courage
-of this column; the enemy’s guns poured a torrent of
-fire upon it; still it moved onward, when column upon
-column appeared, crowning the hill and forming lines
-in front and on the flanks of our brave fellows who were
-near the top; and then such a roll of musketry accompanied
-by peals of cannon and the shouts of the enemy
-commenced, that our soldiers were fairly forced to give
-way and were driven down again. This attack was
-twice renewed, and twice were our gallant fellows forced
-to retire, when, being got into order again and under a
-tremendous fire of all arms from the enemy, they once
-more marched onward determined ‘<em>to do or die</em>’ (for
-they were nearly all Scotch) and, having gained the
-summit of the position, they charged with the bayonet,
-and in spite of every effort of the enemy, drove all before
-them and entered every redoubt and fort with such a
-courage as I never saw before. The enemy lay in <em>heaps</em>,
-dead and dying! few, very few, escaped the slaughter
-of that day; but ‘victory’ was heard shouted from
-post to post as that gallant band moved along the crown
-of the enemy’s position taking every work at the point
-of the bayonet.</p>
-
-<p>“While the work of death was going on here, the
-centre of the French position was attacked by the
-Spanish column of 8000 men, under General Freyre,
-who had <em>demanded</em> in rather a haughty tone that Lord
-Wellington should give the Spaniards the post of honour
-in the battle. He acceded, but took special care to have
-the Light Division in reserve to support them in case of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_198">198</a></span>
-<em>accidents</em>. Old Freyre placed himself at the head of his
-column, surrounded by his staff, and marched boldly up
-the hollow way, or road, which led right up to the enemy,
-under a heavy and destructive fire of cannon shot, which
-plunging into the head of his column made great havoc
-among his men; still they went steadily and boldly on,
-to my astonishment and delight to see them behave so
-gallantly, and I could not help expressing my delight
-to Colonel Colborne. But, alas! he knew them too
-well, and said to me, ‘Gently, my friend; don’t praise
-them too soon; look at yonder brigade of French Light
-Infantry, ready to attack them as soon as the head of
-their column enters the open ground. One moment
-more and we shall see the Spaniards fly! Gallop off,
-you, and throw the 52nd Regiment (which was in line)
-into open column of companies, and let these fellows
-pass through, or they will carry the regiment off with
-them.’ He had scarcely finished the words when a
-well-directed fire from the French Infantry opened upon
-the Spanish column, and instantly the words ‘<i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">Vive
-l’Empereur! En avant! en avant!</i>’ accompanied by a
-charge, put the Spaniards to flight, and down they came
-upon the 52nd Regiment, and I had but just time to
-throw it into open column of companies when they rushed
-through the intervals like a torrent and never stopped
-till they arrived at the river some miles in the rear. As
-soon as they had passed, and I had formed the regiment
-into line again, we moved up and took the Spaniards’
-place, driving before us the enemy’s brigade, who, being
-by this time completely beaten on the right and all his
-forts and trenches carried by Beresford’s troops, had
-retreated into the town; so that we found the fort
-on that part of the position which we attacked quite
-abandoned, and we entered it without loss.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_198" class="figcenter" style="width: 434px;">
- <img src="images/i_223.jpg" width="434" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>The French Retreat over the Pyrenees</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">R. Caton Woodville</p></div></div>
-
-<p>“On our right the 3rd Division, under General Picton,
-was ordered to make a false attack on the canal bridge,
-which was strongly fortified and formed an impracticable
-barrier to that part of the town; but General Picton<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_199">199</a></span>
-(who never hesitated at disobeying his orders) thought
-proper to change this false attack into a real one, and
-after repeated and useless attempts to carry it was forced
-to give it up, with an immense loss of officers and men.
-To our extreme right and on the opposite side of the
-river General Hill was stationed with his corps in order
-to watch the bridge and gates of the town, and either
-prevent any attempt of the enemy to pass over a body of
-troops during the action to cut off our communications with
-the rear, or, should he show any design of retreating that
-way, to impede him. However, all was quiet on that
-side, and now that every man of the enemy’s army had
-been chased from the position the battle was won, and
-the roar of cannon, the fire of the musketry, and the
-shouts of the victors ceased. All was still; the pickets
-placed; the sentinels set; and the greatest part of the
-army sleeping in groups round the fires of the bivouac.”</p>
-
-<p>Soult had only been able to bring some 39,000 men into
-the field, to so great an extent had his forces been depleted,
-while Wellington had less than 50,000 available
-troops. Of the French, 3200 were killed or wounded, of
-the Allies 4600. On the 12th April Soult evacuated
-Toulouse, six days after Napoleon the Great had snatched
-up a pen and scrawled his formal abdication. A moment
-before he had been full of fight, had wanted to rally the
-corps of Augereau, Suchet and Soult. A year later he
-won back more than these. Wellington entered Toulouse
-on the day Soult left it, and within a few hours of the
-receipt of the news from Paris of the proclamation of
-Louis XVIII, a monarch as incompetent as the fallen
-Emperor was great. History is oftentimes ironic, and
-Time’s see-saw seldom maintains an even balance for
-any lengthy period.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_200">200</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_XVII"></a>CHAPTER XVII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">The Prelude to the Waterloo Campaign</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1814&ndash;15)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>I work as hard as I can in every way in order to succeed.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap i"><span class="smcap1">“I march</span> to-morrow to follow Marshal Soult, and
-to prevent his army from becoming the <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">noyau</i>
-of a civil war in France.” Thus writes Wellington
-to Sir John Hope on the 16th April 1814, when the
-white flag of the Bourbons was flying at Toulouse, and
-forty-eight hours after Hope had been made a prisoner
-during a sortie on the part of the French garrison of
-Bayonne. Soult extended no right hand of welcome to
-Louis XVIII, and positively refused to submit to the
-new <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">regime</i> until he had received trustworthy information
-from some of Napoleon’s ministers. However, he
-was speedily convinced of the fall of his former master,
-and both he and Suchet acknowledged the Provisional
-Government. On the 19th April a Convention was
-signed by each party and Wellington for the cessation
-of hostilities and the evacuation of Spain. The British
-infantry were sent either to the homeland or on foreign
-service; the cavalry traversed France and crossed to
-England from Calais.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington’s work was not yet over, although his
-military career was closed for a time. He was appointed
-British Ambassador at Paris, and while he wrote to a
-correspondent that recent political and military events<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_201">201</a></span>
-promised “to restore the blessings of peace permanently
-to the world,” we must not suppose that he believed
-the abdication of Napoleon to be the herald of the
-millennium. When Castlereagh proposed the diplomatic
-post to him Wellington would have been perfectly
-justified in declining it, but sufficient of his story has
-been told for the reader to appreciate the fact that the
-Hero of the Peninsula was as keenly devoted to the
-service of his king and country as the Hero of Trafalgar.
-Whatever egotism he possessed was certainly not carried
-to excess. He says that he should never have thought
-himself qualified for the work. “I hope, however,” he
-adds, and here the sterling qualities of the man are revealed,
-“that the Prince Regent, his Government, and
-your Lordship, are convinced that I am ready to serve
-him in any situation in which it may be thought that I
-can be of any service. Although I have been so long
-absent from England, I should have remained as much
-longer if it had been necessary; and I feel no objection to
-another absence in the public service, if it be necessary
-or desirable.” He says much the same thing to his
-brother Henry: “I must serve the public in some manner
-or other; and, as under existing circumstances I could
-not well do so at home, I must do so abroad.”</p>
-
-<p>Those who accuse Wellington of lack of heart will do
-well to remember that before leaving Toulouse for Paris
-he wrote an appealing letter to Earl Bathurst in behalf
-of Sir Rowland Hill and Sir Robert Kennedy, the latter
-of whom had exerted himself to the utmost in keeping
-the army well supplied with provisions, and to write
-a letter of condolence to Hope, who was a prisoner and
-wounded.</p>
-
-<p>But he found time to join in a few <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">fêtes</i> in honour of the
-Restoration, including a magnificent ball given by Sir
-Charles Stewart, the British Commissioner to the Army
-of the Allies, where monarchs were plentiful and Society
-beauties abundant. “It was in the midst of this ball,”
-the Comtesse de Boigne relates, “that the Duke of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_202">202</a></span>
-Wellington appeared for the first time in Paris. I can
-see him now entering the room with his two nieces, Lady
-Burgers<a id="FNanchor_79" href="#Footnote_79" class="fnanchor">79</a> and Miss Pole, hanging on his arms. There
-were no eyes for any one else, and at this ball, where
-grandeur abounded, everything gave way to military
-glory. That of the Duke of Wellington was brilliant and
-unalloyed, and a lustre was added to it by the interest
-that had long been felt in the cause of the Spanish
-nation.”</p>
-
-<p>He had only been in Paris six days before he set out for
-Madrid, viâ Toulouse, “in order to try whether I cannot
-prevail upon all parties to be more moderate, and to
-adopt a constitution more likely to be practicable and to
-contribute to the peace and happiness of the nation.”
-He had made the proposal, and the Allies had eagerly
-accepted it. When he started on his journey he was the
-Duke of Wellington,<a id="FNanchor_80" href="#Footnote_80" class="fnanchor">80</a> and it was additional cause of
-satisfaction to him to know that peerages had been conferred
-on Beresford, Hill, Cotton, Hope, and Graham,
-“my gallant coadjutors.” He stayed at Toulouse for a
-couple of days, attending to details connected with the
-army, and again continued his journey, writing dispatches,
-notes of condolence, a letter requesting permission to
-accept the Grand Cross of the Order of St George from the
-Czar, and so on.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon had released Ferdinand VII on the 13th of
-the previous March, and the king was now back in his
-capital. “I entertain a very favourable opinion of the
-King from what I have seen of him,” Wellington writes
-from Madrid on the 25th May 1814, “but not of his
-Ministers.” This opinion of Ferdinand must be taken as
-referring to the man and not to his methods, for he had
-already assumed the part of a despot to so alarming an
-extent that civil war was feared, hence the Duke’s
-journey. “I have accomplished my object in coming
-here”; he says in the same letter, “that is, I think there<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_203">203</a></span>
-will certainly be no civil war at present.” But seven
-days later he communicates with Castlereagh in a minor
-key: “I have been well received by the King and his
-Ministers; but I fear that I have done but little good.”</p>
-
-<p>He left a lengthy memorandum in the hands of his
-Catholic Majesty, full of excellent advice, and bereft, as
-he said, of “all national partialities and prejudices.”
-Commerce, the colonies, domestic interests, and finance
-are all touched upon in a sane, straightforward way,
-obviously with the intention of promoting “a good understanding
-and cementing the alliance with Great Britain,”
-but valuable quite apart from any motive that might be
-construed as selfish. As Wellington says in the preamble,
-“The Spanish nation having been engaged for
-six years in one of the most terrible and disastrous contests
-by which any nation was ever afflicted, its territory
-having been entirely occupied by the enemy, the country
-torn to pieces by internal divisions, its ancient constitution
-having been destroyed, and vain attempts made
-to establish a new one; its marine, its commerce, and
-revenue entirely annihilated; its colonies in a state of
-rebellion, and nearly lost to the mother country; it
-becomes a question for serious consideration, what line
-of policy should be adopted by His Majesty upon his
-happy restoration to his throne and authority.” Had
-Ferdinand taken Wellington’s well-intentioned advice
-to heart, Spain might have risen from her ashes. The
-old abuses cropped up, the Inquisition was re-established
-in a milder form, and troops were sent across the seas to
-perish in a futile endeavour to recover the Transatlantic
-colonies of a once glorious empire.</p>
-
-<p>After returning to Paris to make arrangements for the
-embarkation of the British cavalry at Calais, the Duke
-sailed for England. When he landed at Dover on the
-23rd June 1814, a salute from the batteries of the Castle
-welcomed him home. “About five o’clock this morning,”
-says a contemporary writer, “his majesty’s sloop-of-war,
-the <i>Rosario</i>, arrived in the roads, and fired a salute.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_204">204</a></span>
-Shortly afterwards, the yards of the different vessels
-of war were manned; a salute took place throughout
-the squadron, and the launch of the <i>Nymphen</i> frigate was
-seen advancing towards the harbour, with the Duke of
-Wellington; at this time the guns upon the heights and
-from the batteries commenced their thunder upon the
-boat leaving the ship; and on passing the pier-heads his
-Lordship was greeted with three distinct rounds of cheers
-from those assembled; but upon his landing at the Crosswall,
-nothing could exceed the rapture with which his
-Lordship was received by at least ten thousand persons;
-and notwithstanding it was so early, parties continued to
-arrive from town and country every minute. The
-instant his Lordship set foot on shore, a proposition was
-made, and instantly adopted, to carry him to the Ship Inn:
-he was borne on the shoulders of our townsmen, amidst
-the reiterated cheers of the populace.”</p>
-
-<p>London went wild with excitement when he arrived,
-and at Westminster Bridge the mob took the horses
-from his carriage and dragged it along in triumph. On
-the 28th he took his seat for the first time in the House
-of Lords. He must have appeared a fine figure as, clad
-in his Field Marshal’s uniform under a peer’s robes, he
-was introduced by the Dukes of Beaufort and Richmond.
-The Lord Chancellor expressed the sentiments of the
-House, but refrained from attempting to state the
-“eminent merits” of his military character, “to represent
-those brilliant actions, those illustrious achievements,
-which have attached immortality to the name of
-Wellington, and which have given to this country a degree
-of glory unexampled in the annals of this kingdom.
-In thus acting, I believe I best consult the feelings which
-evince your Grace’s title to the character of a truly great
-and illustrious man”; and the Duke replied, in a short
-speech, attributing his success to his troops and general
-officers. A little later a deputation from the Lower
-House waited upon Wellington to offer him the congratulations
-of the Commons, and he attended in person<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_205">205</a></span>
-to return thanks. The whole House rose as he entered.
-After a short speech the Speaker made an eloquent and
-touching address.</p>
-
-<p>“It is not ... the grandeur of military success,” he said,
-“which has alone fixed our admiration or commanded
-our applause; it has been that generous and lofty spirit
-which inspired your troops with unbounded confidence,
-and taught them to know that the day of battle was
-always a day of victory; that moral courage and
-enduring fortitude which, in perilous times, when gloom
-and doubt had beset ordinary minds, stood nevertheless
-unshaken; and that ascendancy of character which,
-uniting the energies of jealous and rival nations, enabled
-you to wield at will the fate and fortunes of mighty
-empires....</p>
-
-<p>“It now remains only that we congratulate your Grace
-upon the high and important mission on which you are
-about to proceed, and we doubt not that the same
-splendid talents, so conspicuous in war, will maintain,
-with equal authority, firmness, and temper, our national
-honour and interests in peace.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellington was made a Doctor of Laws by the University
-of Oxford, as Nelson had been before him,<a id="FNanchor_81" href="#Footnote_81" class="fnanchor">81</a> he
-received the freedom of the City of London in a gold
-casket, and a magnificent sword&mdash;in a word, he was
-the country’s Hero.</p>
-
-<p>The time at his disposal was short and fully occupied,
-for he left London on the 8th August for Paris, travelling
-by way of the Netherlands, where he inspected the
-frontier from Liège along the Meuse and the Sambre to
-Namur and Charleroi, and thence by Mons to Tournay
-and the sea with a view to determining how Holland and
-Belgium, now united into one kingdom, could be placed
-in an adequate state of defence for future service should
-circumstances dictate. He also noted some of the most
-advantageous positions, including “the entrance of the
-<i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">forêt</i> de Soignes by the high road which leads to Brussels<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_206">206</a></span>
-from Binch, Charleroi, and Namur,”&mdash;in one word,
-Waterloo. He realized that there were more disadvantages
-than advantages, but “this country must be
-defended in the best manner that is possible,” even
-though it “affords no features upon which reliance can
-be placed to establish any defensive system.”<a id="FNanchor_82" href="#Footnote_82" class="fnanchor">82</a></p>
-
-<p>Wellington had no hours of luxurious ease in Paris.
-The abolition of the slave trade, on which Great Britain
-had at last determined, occupied much of his attention,
-and one has only to refer to his dispatches at this period
-to understand the many difficulties he had to contend
-with in this one particular. Then there were questions
-of compensation for private property destroyed or
-damaged in the late war to be considered, of American
-vessels of war and privateers fitted out in French ports,
-and what was most important of all, a diagnosis of the
-increasing restlessness in Paris to be made. He believed
-that the sentiments of the people were favourable
-to the Bourbon king, “but the danger is not in that
-quarter, but among the discontented officers of the army,
-and others, heretofore in the civil departments of the
-service, now without employment.”</p>
-
-<p>It would be incorrect to state that Wellington was
-popular in Paris, for not a few prominent military men
-regarded the presence of the General who had played no
-small part in tarnishing the glory of France as a perpetual
-reminder of the country’s misfortunes. The
-people even went so far as to resent his coat of arms, in
-which there was a lion or leopard bearing a tricoloured
-flag. This was construed as the British lion trampling
-on the French national flag. There was an eagle on the
-Duchess’s arms, which was another cause of offence.
-“My coach was in danger of being torn to pieces,” says
-the Duke, and he was obliged to have the innocent bird
-painted out.</p>
-
-<p>The Congress of Vienna was now sitting, bent on undoing<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_207">207</a></span>
-the work of the Revolution so far as was possible
-with a view to upholding the Divine right of kings.
-This is not to be wondered at considering the members of
-the solemn conclave, which included the Czar, the
-Kings of Prussia, Bavaria, Denmark and Würtemberg,
-the Grand Duke Charles of Baden, the Elector William
-of Hesse, the Hereditary Grand Duke George of Hesse-Darmstadt,
-the Duke of Weimar, and Prince Eugene
-Beauharnais (Napoleon’s step-son). The President was
-Metternich, the Emperor of Austria’s right-hand man, the
-first representative of France was the wily Talleyrand, of
-Great Britain Castlereagh. A host of plenipotentiaries
-came to put their fingers into the political pie, including
-those of Spain, Portugal, Sweden, Norway, France,
-Great Britain, Prussia, Russia, Switzerland, Italy, the
-Pope, the Netherlands, and the smaller German States.</p>
-
-<p>What with talk of projected attempts on his life and the
-far from pacific doings at Vienna, the Earl of Liverpool
-was of opinion that it would be advisable to get Wellington
-out of France as soon as possible. With this
-idea in view he was offered the command of the troops
-in North America, an offer he bitterly resented. However,
-Castlereagh solved the difficulty by asking the
-Duke to take his place at Vienna. The proposition was
-made by the Foreign Secretary in a letter dated the 18th
-December 1814. “I do not hesitate to comply with
-your desire,” the Duke replies. “As I mean to serve
-the King’s Government in any situation which may be
-thought desirable, it is a matter of indifference to me in
-what stage I find your proceedings.”</p>
-
-<p>When Wellington reached the Austrian capital in
-January 1815&mdash;destined to be the greatest year in
-modern European history&mdash;he found that the wolves in
-sheep’s clothing had almost concluded their deliberations.
-Russia, supported by Prussia, was intent upon securing
-Poland, a plan bitterly opposed by Great Britain and
-Austria. France was wishful for Holland and Belgium.
-The quarrelling suddenly ceased when, on the 7th March,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_208">208</a></span>
-Metternich received the most astounding news.
-Napoleon, King of Elba, had left his little island state,
-landed on the French coast, and was marching in the
-direction of Paris! Wellington heard on the same day
-from another source, and immediately communicated
-the scanty news detailed to him by Lord Burghersh to the
-Emperor of Austria and the Czar.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not entertain the smallest doubt that, if unfortunately
-it should be possible for Buonaparte to hold
-at all against the King of France, he must fall under the
-cordially united efforts of the Sovereigns of Europe.”
-Thus writes the Duke to Castlereagh, but in a dispatch of
-the same date, namely the 12th March, he shows that he
-entirely failed to appreciate the fascination still exercised
-by the name “Napoleon.” “It is my opinion,” he
-writes, “that Buonaparte has acted upon false or no information,
-and that the King will destroy him without
-difficulty, and in a short time.” We know that the ex-Emperor’s
-reception was at first somewhat lukewarm,
-but as he marched towards the capital it assumed the form
-of a triumphal procession, with Ney and the 6000 men
-who were “to bring him back in an iron cage” as
-enthusiastic followers. The inhabitants of the south
-alone refused to recognize the former Emperor of the
-French.</p>
-
-<p>Far from Louis XVIII destroying Napoleon “without
-difficulty,” that brave monarch left France to its own
-devices on the 19th March, the day before his predecessor
-and successor reached the Tuileries. “What did he do
-in the midst of the general consternation of Paris?”
-asks the Baron de Frénilly. “He acted. A great
-crowd saw him in the morning proceeding in pomp with
-Monsieur to the Chamber of Deputies; he was seen to
-enter and throw himself into his brother’s arms, with the
-solemn promise to remain in Paris and be buried under
-the ruins of the monarchy; and on the following day the
-population learnt that he had fled in the night by the
-road to Flanders!” Soult, now Minister of War,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_209">209</a></span>
-apparently under the impression that an Army Order
-would tend to dispel any affection the soldiers might feel
-towards their former Head, issued the most stupid of
-nonsensical proclamations. “Bonaparte,” it reads in
-part, “mistakes us so far as to believe that we are
-capable of abandoning a legitimate and beloved sovereign
-in order to share the fortunes of one who is nothing more
-than an adventurer. He believes this&mdash;the idiot!&mdash;and
-his last act of folly is a convincing proof that he
-does so.”</p>
-
-<p>Without loss of time the Fifth Coalition was formed,
-Great Britain, Russia, Austria and Prussia entering into
-a treaty on the 17th March, whereby each of them
-guaranteed to put 150,000 men in the field against “the
-enemy and disturber of the peace of the world,” Great
-Britain, as usual, financing the Allies, this time to the
-enormous extent of £5,000,000.</p>
-
-<p>With commendable dispatch Napoleon formed a new
-ministry and began to marshal his troops, which at first
-numbered 200,000 and eventually 284,000, excluding a
-quarter of a million of men for internal defence. “It
-was the finest army,” writes Professor Oman, “that
-Napoleon had commanded since Friedland, for it was
-purely French, and was composed almost entirely of
-veterans; but it was too small for its purpose.”<a id="FNanchor_83" href="#Footnote_83" class="fnanchor">83</a> Murat,
-king of Naples, precipitated matters by invading the
-Papal States, and failed at the hands of Austria, thereby
-robbing his brother-in-law of his only possible ally.
-But this was finished by the beginning of May, over a
-month before Napoleon started for the front, leaving
-10,000 of his none-too-numerous troops to quell an outburst
-of royalist enthusiasm in La Vendée, ever the most
-warlike province of France and apt to flame into insurrection
-on the slightest provocation.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_210">210</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_XVIII"></a>CHAPTER XVIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Ligny and Quatre Bras</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1815)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>I go to measure myself with Wellington.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Napoleon.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">Napoleon</span> left Paris at dawn on the 12th June,
-and travelled to Laon. His troops were
-divided into the Army of the North, intended
-for the invasion of Belgium, which totalled a little over
-124,000; the Army of the Rhine, commanded by Rapp,
-about 20,000, with a reserve of 3000 National Guards; Le
-Courbe’s corps of observation, watching the passes of the
-Jura, about 8000; the Army of the Alps, with Suchet,
-some 23,000; a detachment, under Brune, guarding the
-line of the Var, 6000; the 7th Corps, watching the line of
-the Pyrenees, 14,000, in two sections under Decaen and
-Clausel. The Army of the North was distributed at
-Lille, Valenciennes, Mézières, Thionville, and Soissons,
-under D’Erlon, Reille, Vandamme, Gérard and Lobau
-respectively; the Imperial Guard near Paris, and the
-Reserve Cavalry, under Grouchy, between the Aisne and
-the Sambre.<a id="FNanchor_84" href="#Footnote_84" class="fnanchor">84</a> Soult was chief of the staff, an appointment
-not particularly happy.<a id="FNanchor_85" href="#Footnote_85" class="fnanchor">85</a></p>
-
-<p>In Belgium there was the nucleus of an army, consisting<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_211">211</a></span>
-of some 10,000 soldiers, mostly British. Wellington
-arrived at Brussels on the 5th April, with the formidable
-task in hand of organizing a substantial body to oppose
-the returned Exile. He managed it, but the result was
-almost as motley a crowd of fighting men as Napoleon
-had for his disastrous Russian campaign. Wellington
-bluntly called them “not only the worst troops, but the
-worst-equipped army, with the worst staff that was ever
-brought together.” There were Hanoverians, Belgians,
-Dutch, Brunswickers, and Nassauers, as well as men of
-his own country. The 1st Corps, under the Prince of
-Orange, totalled 25,000, with headquarters at Braine-le-Comte;
-the 2nd Corps, commanded by Lord Hill,
-numbered 24,000, with headquarters at Ath; the Reserve
-Corps, with the Duke at Brussels, 21,000; the
-Cavalry, under the Earl of Uxbridge, 14,000; in the
-garrisons were 12,000, and the artillery and engineers
-reached 10,000&mdash;grand total 106,000.<a id="FNanchor_86" href="#Footnote_86" class="fnanchor">86</a> The Prussian
-Army, commanded by Blücher, reached 124,000 men,
-some few thousands of whom were already in Belgium
-in March. It was made up of four corps stationed at
-Charleroi, Namur, Ciney, and Liége, with headquarters
-at Namur. Both armies were in touch with each other,
-although distributed over a large extent of territory. It
-was intended that 750,000 men should be available for
-the invasion of France, but none of the other allies was
-ready. Napoleon acted promptly, his idea being to deal
-with each separately and drive them back on their
-bases before they were able to concentrate. He would
-then turn on the Austrians before the Russians were
-ready.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon succeeded in concentrating the Army of the
-North without definite particulars of his movements
-reaching either Wellington or Blücher. On the 15th
-June he was across the frontier and had made a preliminary
-success by driving Ziethen, who commanded
-Blücher’s first corps, from the banks of the Sambre,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_212">212</a></span>
-gaining the bridges, and securing Charleroi. The
-Emperor followed the Prussians to within a short distance
-of Gilly, where the French right wing defeated
-them with the loss of nearly 2000 men. The enemy
-then fell back in the direction of Ligny, and Napoleon
-made his headquarters at Charleroi. Meanwhile Ney,
-who had only arrived in the afternoon, was given
-charge of Reille’s and D’Erlon’s corps, and it is usually
-contended that he had told Lefebvre-Desnoëttes to
-reconnoitre towards Quatre Bras, then held by some
-4500 Nassau troops, commanded by Prince Bernard of
-Saxe-Weimar.</p>
-
-<p>Lefebvre first encountered the enemy at the village of
-Frasnes, some twenty-three miles from Brussels and
-covering Quatre Bras, where about 1500 men were
-stationed, who fell back towards Quatre Bras. The
-French General occupied the village in the evening after
-an indecisive action.</p>
-
-<p>When information reached Wellington from Ziethen,
-vague because it was dispatched early in the morning, he
-ordered the majority of the troops at his disposal to be
-“ready to move at the shortest notice,” and a few only
-were told to change the positions they then occupied.
-He issued his final instructions at 10 p.m., and then went
-to the ball given by the Duchess of Richmond, who had
-invited some of the non-commissioned officers and
-privates in order “to show her Bruxelles friends the <em>real
-Highland dance</em>,” as Wellington afterwards averred.
-The Commander-in-Chief was quite easy in his mind, for
-he had done all that it was possible for him to do, and his
-appearance at such a festivity tended to allay the anxiety
-of the inhabitants as to Napoleon’s movements. Surely
-the capital was safe if Wellington was so unconcerned as
-to go to a dance?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_213">213</a></span></p>
-<div class="poem-container">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza"><i>
-<span class="i0">There was a sound of Revelry by night;<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">And Belgium’s Capital had gather’d then<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Her Beauty and her Chivalry; and bright<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">The lamps shone o’er fair women, and brave men:<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">A thousand hearts beat happily; and when<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">Music arose with its voluptuous swell,<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">Soft eyes look’d love to eyes which spake again;<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">And all went merry as a marriage-bell:<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">But Hush! Hark! a deep sound strikes like a rising knell!</span></i>
-</div><div class="stanza"><i>
-<span class="i4">Did ye not hear it? No: ’twas but the wind;<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">Or the car rattling o’er the stony street:<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">On with the dance! let Joy be unconfined:<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">No sleep till morn, when Youth and Pleasure meet<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">To chase the glowing Hours with flying feet:<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">But, Hark! that heavy sound breaks in once more;<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">As if the clouds its echo would repeat;<br /></span>
-<span class="i4">And nearer, clearer, deadlier than before!<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Arm! Arm! it is; it is; the Cannon’s opening Roar!</span></i>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Had Byron pictured the entry of Lieutenant Webster
-with a dispatch for the Prince of Orange he would have
-been more literally, if not artistically, correct. The
-nineteen words which the Prince read were momentous:
-“Captain Baron von Gagern has just arrived from
-Nivelles, reporting that the enemy had pushed up to
-Quatre Bras.” It had been written at Braine-le-Comte
-at 10.30 p.m. No further instructions were issued by
-Wellington, for he had already arranged “for a movement
-tending to draw the right of his forces in towards the
-left.”<a id="FNanchor_87" href="#Footnote_87" class="fnanchor">87</a> He therefore remained at the ball until about
-2 a.m., on the 16th, and then went to bed.</p>
-
-<p>He left the city very early and arrived at Quatre
-Bras about 10 o’clock. There he found, according to his
-own statement,<a id="FNanchor_88" href="#Footnote_88" class="fnanchor">88</a> “the Prince of Orange with a small
-body of Belgian troops, two or three battalions of
-infantry, a squadron of Belgian dragoons, and two or
-three pieces of cannon which had been at the Quatre
-Bras&mdash;the four roads&mdash;since the preceding evening. It
-appeared that the picket of this detachment had been
-touched by a French patrol, and there was some firing,
-but very little; and of so little importance that, after
-seeing what was doing, I went on to the Prussian army,
-which I saw from the ground, was assembling upon<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_214">214</a></span>
-the field of St Amand and Ligny, about eight miles
-distant.</p>
-
-<p>“I reached the Prussian army; was at their headquarters;
-stayed there a considerable time; saw the
-army formed; the commencement of the battle; and
-returned to join my own army assembled and assembling
-at the Quatre Bras. I arrived then at Quatre Bras a
-second time on that day, as well as I recollect, at about
-two or three o’clock in the afternoon.</p>
-
-<p>“The straggling fire there had continued from morning;
-the Prince of Orange was with the line troops still in the
-same position. I was informed that the army was
-collecting in a wood in front. I rode forward and reconnoitred
-or examined their position according to my
-usual practice. I saw clearly a very large body of men
-assembled, and a Maréchal reviewing them, according
-to their usual practice, preparatory to an attack. I
-heard distinctly the usual cries: ‘<i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">En avant! en
-avant! L’Empereur récompensera celui qui s’avancera!</i>’</p>
-
-<p>“Before I quitted the Prince of Orange, some of the
-officers standing about had doubted whether we should
-be attacked at this point. I sent to the Prince of Orange
-from the ground on which I was standing, to tell him that
-he might rely upon it that we should be attacked in five
-minutes, and that he had better order the retreat towards
-the main position of the light troops and guns which were
-in front, and which could make no resistance to the fierce
-attack about to be made upon us. These were accordingly
-withdrawn, and in less than five minutes we were
-attacked by the whole French army under Maréchal Ney.
-There was in fact no delay nor cessation from attack
-from that time till night. The reserves of the British
-army from Brussels had arrived at the Quatre Bras at this
-time; and the corps of Brunswick troops from the headquarters,
-and a division of Belgian troops from Nivelles,
-Braine, &amp;c.”</p>
-
-<p>Ney did not begin his attack until 2 p.m. He had only
-Reille’s corps at his disposal, and he was uncertain as to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_215">215</a></span>
-the movements of the Prussians. But when a move was
-made against the farm of Gémioncourt,<a id="FNanchor_89" href="#Footnote_89" class="fnanchor">89</a> the key of the
-position, the 7000 troops of the Prince of Orange were
-speedily driven back, and the wood of Bossu also fell
-into the enemy’s hands. It was at this precise moment
-that Wellington and reinforcements arrived. Picton
-with his brave 5th Division, although exhausted by a
-long march on a sultry day, were ordered to retake the
-wood. It was then that Ney hurled his cavalry at them
-in a determined endeavour to save the situation at all
-costs.</p>
-
-<p>“One regiment,” we are told, “after sustaining a
-furious cannonade, was suddenly, and on three different
-sides, assailed by cavalry. Two faces of the square were
-charged by the lancers, while the cuirassiers galloped
-down upon another. It was a trying moment. There
-was a death-like silence, and one voice alone, calm and
-clear, was heard. It was their Colonel’s, who called
-upon them to be ‘steady.’ On came the enemy&mdash;the
-earth shook beneath the horses’ feet; while on every side of
-the devoted band, the corn,<a id="FNanchor_90" href="#Footnote_90" class="fnanchor">90</a> bending beneath the rush of
-cavalry, disclosed their numerous assailants. The lance-blades
-approached the bayonets of the kneeling front
-rank&mdash;the cuirassiers were within forty paces&mdash;yet not
-a trigger was drawn. But when the word ‘Fire!’
-thundered from the colonel’s lips, each piece poured out
-its deadly volley, and in a moment the leading files
-of the French lay before the square, as if hurled by a
-thunderbolt to the earth. The assailants, broken and
-dispersed, galloped off for shelter to the tall rye; while
-a stream of musketry from the British square carried
-death into the retreating squadrons.” At length
-Maitland’s division of the Guards secured possession of
-the wood. The French continued to attack with ardour,
-but with the close of day Ney fell back upon the road
-to Frasnes. The British remained at Quatre Bras.</p>
-
-<p>Many brave incidents are recorded. A soldier of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_216">216</a></span>
-92nd was wounded in the thigh. After having been
-attended by a surgeon the medical man dismissed him
-by saying, “There is now no fear of you, get slowly
-behind.” His reply, unpremeditated and instant, was,
-“The presence of every man is necessary,” and calmly
-went back to his post, from which he never returned.
-Another fellow had his knapsack carried away from his
-shoulders by a cannon-ball. He caught it by a dexterous
-movement before it reached the ground. Wellington
-happened to be near, and the incident afforded him considerable
-amusement.</p>
-
-<p>The 2nd Battalion of the 69th Regiment of Foot<a id="FNanchor_91" href="#Footnote_91" class="fnanchor">91</a>
-had its flag captured, the precious symbol being wrenched
-from the hands of the officer almost at the same time as
-the attempted capture of another colour during a charge
-of French cuirassiers. The latter was preserved, although
-the bearer received severe wounds. Ensign Christie also
-saved a flag by throwing himself upon it. As the soldier
-lay on the ground a portion of the colour was torn off by
-the lancer who had made the attempt, but before the
-prize could be taken the captor was shot and the piece
-recovered.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington lost 4600 killed and wounded at Quatre
-Bras, but although he remained in possession of the field,
-Ney’s grim determination had precluded him from sending
-reinforcements to Blücher, who had been contesting
-Napoleon at Ligny, eight miles distant. On the other
-hand, the Emperor had ordered his Marshal to assist him
-at Ligny after having dispersed the troops at Quatre
-Bras, which he was far too heavily engaged all day to do,
-although it is conceivable that had he begun his attack
-earlier he might have carried out his Chief’s instructions.
-Napoleon himself delayed his attack because some of his
-soldiers had not arrived, and when he was ready to open
-fire he totalled 20,000 men less than the Prussian commander.
-D’Erlon’s troops, forming Ney’s reserve, were
-sent for, but before they were pressed into service were<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_217">217</a></span>
-ordered back by Ney to assist him. Had D’Erlon remained,
-Napoleon would have won a decisive victory.
-As it was, Blücher’s losses reached over 20,000, and
-he narrowly averted capture. He was thrown during
-a cavalry charge and badly injured. The Prussians
-abandoned the field, retiring towards Wavre, which
-enabled them to be in touch with Wellington, and
-where they later formed a junction with the fresh corps
-of Bülow. Napoleon, who had 11,000 men killed or
-wounded, was convinced that the enemy would fall
-back on Namur and Liége, which would enable him to
-deal with Wellington alone on the morrow.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon was unusually lethargic on the following
-day, and squandered much precious time until noon in
-various useless ways. He then ordered Grouchy, with
-33,000 men, to ascertain the position occupied by the
-Prussians, while he joined Ney. Wellington, hearing
-of Blücher’s defeat and realizing that every moment
-was of value, had evacuated Quatre Bras almost without
-interference, although Napoleon’s cavalry came up
-with the British rear and the situation was saved by
-a propitious downpour of rain which soon transformed
-road and field alike into a quagmire. Still, Napoleon
-chased in pursuit to the ridge of Waterloo, where a
-heavy cannonade put an end to his advance. The
-Emperor made his headquarters at the Caillou farm,
-retiring to rest only after he had seen that Wellington’s
-army was not retreating from the position it had taken
-up at Mont St Jean. Unable to sleep, he again satisfied
-himself that the army he was bent on shattering had
-not stolen a march on him, and when the 18th June
-dawned he was still gazing in the direction of Wellington
-and his men.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_218">218</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_XIX"></a>CHAPTER XIX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Waterloo</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1815)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>The history of a battle is not unlike the history of a ball. Some individuals
-may recollect all the little events of which the great result is the
-battle lost or won; but no individual can recollect the order in which, or
-the exact moment at which they occurred, which makes all the difference
-as to their value or importance.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="sigright">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">The</span> British General had already sent word to
-Blücher that he was prepared to fight Napoleon
-if the Prussian Commander could see his way
-to send him one army-corps, the assistance of which he
-deemed imperative. He did not receive a reply until
-the early hours of the 18th, and it was in the affirmative.
-He promised Bülow’s corps, which would march at
-daybreak against Napoleon’s right, followed by that
-of Pirch. Those of Thielmann and Ziethen would
-also be sent provided the presence of Grouchy did not
-prevent. As events turned out, Thielmann’s corps
-was sufficient for this purpose of defending the Dyle
-against the French Marshal. The first report from
-Grouchy received by Napoleon on the 18th was sent
-from Gembloux, and contained news up to 10 o’clock
-on the previous night, namely, that part of the Prussians
-had retired towards Wavre, that Blücher with their
-centre had fallen back on Perwez, and a column with
-artillery had moved in the direction of Namur.<a id="FNanchor_92" href="#Footnote_92" class="fnanchor">92</a></p>
-
-<p class="hideme"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_219">219</a></span></p>
-
-<div id="ip_219" class="figcenter" style="width: 434px;">
- <img src="images/i_245.jpg" width="434" height="700" alt="" /></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_220">220</a></span>
-From another source Napoleon gathered that three
-bodies of the Prussians were concentrating at Wavre,
-vital information which, for some inexplicable reason,
-he did not dispatch to Grouchy until 10 a.m. We
-have it on the authority of Foy, who had fought in
-Spain, that at daybreak Napoleon was told that the
-junction of Wellington and Blücher was possible. This
-he refused to believe, stating that such an event could
-not take place before the 20th. Grouchy was ordered
-to keep up his communications with Napoleon, pushing
-before him “those bodies of Prussians which have
-taken this direction and which may have stopped at
-Wavre.” In addition, he was to “follow those
-columns which have gone to your right.” Dr
-Holland Rose pronounces these instructions as far
-from clear: “Grouchy was not bidden to throw all his
-efforts on the side of Wavre; and he was not told
-whether he must attack the enemy at that town, or
-interpose a wedge between them and Wellington, or
-support Napoleon’s right. Now Napoleon would certainly
-have prescribed an immediate concentration of
-Grouchy’s force towards the north-west for one of the
-last two objects, had he believed Blücher about to
-attempt a flank march against the chief French army.
-Obviously it had not yet entered his thoughts that so
-daring a step would be taken by a foe whom he pictured
-as scattered and demoralized by defeat.”<a id="FNanchor_93" href="#Footnote_93" class="fnanchor">93</a></p>
-
-<p>As Houssaye, one of the most painstaking of historians,
-says, “It is necessary to walk over the ground, to perceive
-its constantly undulating formation, similar to
-the billows of a swelling sea.” I have followed his
-advice for the purposes of the present volume. The
-configuration of the land near the ridge, which was at
-first the right centre of the Allies, has been altered
-somewhat by the excavation of earth for the celebrated
-but unsightly Lion Mound, otherwise the field is much
-the same as it was in 1815. Major Cotton, who fought<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_221">221</a></span>
-at Waterloo, tells us that on the day of the battle there
-were “splendid crops of rye, wheat, barley, oats, beans,
-peas, potatoes, tares, and clover; some of these were
-of great height. There were a few patches of ploughed
-ground.” Exactly the same is true now. The soil
-which covers the mouldering bones of many a hero yields
-a mighty harvest. Practically every inch of it is either
-pasture or under cultivation.</p>
-
-<p>By far the most interesting point is the château and
-farm-house of Hougoumont. The buildings were
-then over two centuries old, and were erected with a
-view to defence, the garden being strongly walled on the
-south and east sides. In 1815 it was replete with
-orchard, outbuildings, banked-up hedges, and a chapel.
-Additional loop-holes were made by Wellington’s orders,
-a scaffold was erected so that the troops could discharge
-their muskets over the wall, and the flooring over the
-south gateway hastily taken up “to enable our men
-to fire down upon the enemy should they force the gate
-which had been blocked up.” This strong strategic position
-before the right flank of the allied line was admirably
-defended by the light companies of the second battalions
-of Coldstream and Foot Guards.</p>
-
-<p>The battle began with a protracted but successful
-attack by Napoleon’s brother, Jerome, on the Nassauer
-and Hanoverian troops, which held the wood in front
-of the château. Proud of his triumph, and contrary
-to the Emperor’s orders, three attempts to assault the
-grim building were made and failed. At length Napoleon
-made up his mind to bombard Hougoumont, which he
-did to some effect, the chapel and barn blazing fiercely,
-but its brave defenders never surrendered. Four days
-after the battle, Major W.&nbsp;E. Frye visited the spot.
-“At Hougoumont,” he says, “where there is an orchard,
-every tree is pierced with bullets. The barns are all
-burned down, and in the courtyard it is said they have
-been obliged to burn upwards of a thousand carcases,
-an awful holocaust to the War-Demon.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_222">222</a></span>
-On one of the outside walls of the little chapel, within
-which many gallant soldiers breathed their last, is a
-bronze tablet erected in 1907, “to the memory of the
-brave dead by His Britannic Majesty’s Brigade of Guards
-and by Comte Charles van der Burch.”<a id="FNanchor_94" href="#Footnote_94" class="fnanchor">94</a> The sacred
-building has been thoroughly repaired, and the interior
-white-washed. The latter is to be regretted, but was
-incumbent owing to the vandalism of visitors whose
-one aim in life apparently is to carve or scrawl their
-names upon monuments and buildings.</p>
-
-<p>Within easy distance is the farm of La Haye Sainte,
-still used for the purpose for which it was originally
-built. If the thick wall which abuts the road to the
-Belgian capital is not so strong as it was&mdash;and there
-are signs of recent repair&mdash;the most cursory examination
-is sufficient to prove that it offered a strong resistance.
-La Haye Sainte was the key of the allied position. It
-was Napoleon’s ambition to secure it, together with
-the farm of Mont St Jean, so that the enemy’s communications
-with Brussels and Blücher might be cut
-off. Wellington had unwisely left the defence of La
-Haye Sainte to a mere handful of men, 376 in all, of the
-King’s German Legion. The buildings were attacked
-on all sides during the eventful day, and it was not
-until 6.30 p.m., or thereabouts, when ammunition was
-exhausted, that the place fell. Professor Oman points
-out that the Emperor should have sent the Guard “to
-the front <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">en masse</i>” the moment that happened. This
-he did not do, and a golden opportunity was irretrievably
-lost.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_222" class="figcenter" style="width: 392px;">
- <img src="images/i_249.jpg" width="392" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="captionl">
-
-<p class="in0 in20pct">
-1. Farm of Mont St. Jean<br />
-2. Château of Hougoumont<br />
-3. La Belle Alliance Inn<br />
-4. Farm of La Haye Sainte
-</p>
-
-<p class="center smaller">Photographs by C. Hamilton, Hornsey</p></div></div>
-
-<p>A little farther up the road, and on the opposite side,
-is a long, white-washed building known as the farm
-of Mont St Jean, the hamlet of that name being the
-centre of the position. This was the chief hospital of
-the Allies, and once a monastery of the Knights Templar.
-Near here the Iron Duke drew up the second line of
-his reserve, with three reserve batteries. Napoleon’s<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_223">223</a></span>
-headquarters were on the Belle Alliance height, where
-he spent the greater part of the day, and where he kept
-the Imperial Guard, nick-named “The Immortals,” in
-reserve until after 7 p.m. It was not until evening had
-given place to night that the French troops were routed.</p>
-
-<p>When you enter La Belle Alliance Inn you are shown
-“the historical chamber of Napoleon.” But let me
-warn visitors who admire the grotesque painting of
-“Wellington Meeting Blücher,” which is nailed to the
-outside wall, against believing that this is the scene
-of the memorable incident. Mutual congratulations
-took place before La Belle Alliance was reached, the
-Duke turning off the high road leading to the village
-of Waterloo to meet the rugged old soldier when he
-descried him surrounded by his staff.</p>
-
-<p>Within a few hundred yards of the inn is a memorial
-“to the last combatants of the Grand Army.” It is
-by far the most artistic and apposite of the several
-monuments on the field. With shattered wings the
-French eagle guards the tattered standard of “The
-Immortals” on the ground where the last square of
-Napoleon’s famous Guard was cut down. “It was a
-fatality,” said the fallen Emperor of the West, “for in
-spite of all, I should have won that battle.”</p>
-
-<p>Having glanced at the chief objects of interest on the
-field of Waterloo, we must now turn our attention to
-the leading features of the fight. It is not proposed to
-enter into minute details, or to discuss the many vexed
-points which have been raised from time to time. Sir
-Harry Smith, who took part in the battle, issued a
-word of warning years ago, which we shall endeavour
-to bear in mind. “Every moment was a crisis,” he
-said, “and the controversialists had better have left
-the discussion on the battle-field.”</p>
-
-<p>The morning of Sunday, the 18th June 1815, was
-dismal, foggy, and wet. No “Sun of Austerlitz”
-pierced the low clouds that scudded across the sky.
-The state of the weather being then, as now, a universal<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_224">224</a></span>
-topic of conversation and record, we have abundant
-documentary evidence on the subject. After this uninteresting,
-but not unimportant, fact, our witnesses,
-to a large extent, break down. It would be much
-easier to detail what we do not know about the battle of
-Waterloo than to put down in black and white what may
-be regarded as indisputable truth. For instance, there
-is an amazing disparity between the times at which
-eye-witnesses assert the first cannon was fired. The
-Duke says eleven o’clock, Napoleon two hours later.
-Alava mentions half-past eleven, Ney one o’clock.
-Lord Hill, who used a stop-watch, avers with some
-semblance of authority, 11.50 a.m. The Emperor
-certainly delayed giving battle. Soult issued an order
-between 4 and 5 a.m. for the army to be “ready to
-attack at 9 a.m.” At 11 o’clock Napoleon stated that
-the soldiers were to be “in battle array, about an hour
-after noon.” Scores of volumes and thousands of
-pages have been devoted to the subject of the conflict
-which concluded Napoleon’s military career. It seems
-fairly reasonable to suppose that after the lapse of one
-hundred years any further research, although it may
-throw valuable sidelights on the battle, will not solve
-the problem. We have the Duke’s assurance that “it
-is impossible to say when each important occurrence
-took place, nor in what order.” To a would-be narrator
-he wrote, “I recommend you to leave the battle of
-Waterloo as it is,” to another, “the Duke entertains
-no hopes of ever seeing an account of all its details
-which shall be true,” and again, “I am really disgusted
-with and ashamed of all that I have seen of the battle
-of Waterloo.” That being so, it is not purposed to view
-it from a critical standpoint, but merely to detail the
-leading events of the day as these are generally accepted.</p>
-
-<p>The ridge on which Napoleon posted his forces in
-three lines, with a reserve of 11,000 troops behind the
-centre, was opposite Mont St Jean, with the farm of
-La Belle Alliance, on the high road from Charleroi to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_225">225</a></span>
-Brussels, in the centre. The number of troops at his
-immediate disposal was 74,000, and they occupied a
-front of about two miles. The spectacle as the French
-troops deployed “was magnificent,” Napoleon afterwards
-averred, not without a touch of imagination,
-“and the enemy, who was so placed as to behold it
-down to the last man, must have been struck by it:
-the army must have seemed to him double in number
-what it really was.”</p>
-
-<p>Just before the conflict began there was scarcely a
-mile between the French and Wellington’s 67,000
-troops, who were posted across the high roads leading
-respectively from Charleroi and Nivelles to Brussels,
-just in front of Mont St Jean, where they cross. His
-right extended to Merbe Braine, and his left, which
-he considered was protected by the advancing Prussians,
-was to the westward of the high road. The army was
-drawn up in two lines, the second of which was composed
-entirely of cavalry under Lord Uxbridge. To the
-left Wellington held the villages of La Haye, Papelotte,
-and Smohain; Hougoumont was before his right, La Haye
-Sainte in front of the centre, and all were occupied by his
-troops. His reserves, numbering about 17,000, were unseen
-by the enemy owing to the formation of the ground, and
-were posted behind his centre and right. At the rear was
-the forest of Soignes, through which he could retreat if
-necessary. At Hal, nine miles away, the corps of
-Prince Frederick of Orange and two brigades of Colville’s
-division, some 14,000 men in all, were stationed. They
-took no part in the battle. Their presence at so great
-a distance was due to the somewhat unnecessary anxiety
-of Wellington, as after events proved, regarding the
-right flank. The Allies’ guns numbered 156, those of
-the French 246.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington displayed extraordinary activity, and
-commanded in person. Napoleon relied on his subordinates
-far more than was usual with him, and seemed
-to take little direct interest in the fighting. He sat in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_226">226</a></span>
-a chair; his antagonist rode about throughout the
-day. “It is hardly possible,” says Lord William
-Lennox, one of his aides-de-camp, “to describe the
-calm manner in which the hero gave his orders and
-watched the movements and attacks of the enemy.
-In the midst of danger, bullets whistling close about him,
-round shot ploughed the ground he occupied, and men
-and horses falling on every side, he sat upon his favourite
-charger, Copenhagen, as collectedly as if he had been
-reviewing the Household Troops in Hyde Park.”</p>
-
-<p>Although it would be foolish to endeavour to accurately
-divide the battle in different parts as one would
-do a sum, for the simple reason that fighting was going
-on all the time and the entire armies of the combatants
-were not used in any given moment, there were five
-more or less distinct attacks made by the French which
-may be useful as keys, viz.: (1) the diversion against
-Hougoumont, which opened the battle; (2) the attack
-against Wellington’s left-centre; (3) the cavalry attack
-on the right-centre; (4) a second attempt with infantry
-and cavalry having a similar object, and an infantry
-attack against the enemy’s left; (5) the charge of the
-Imperial Guard.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_226" class="figcenter" style="width: 600px;">
- <img src="images/i_255.jpg" width="600" height="380" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>The Desperate Stand of the Guards at Hougoumont</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">R. Caton Woodville</p></div></div>
-
-<p>The main attack was against the British left and
-centre, but by way of diversion an attempt was first
-made on the wood of Hougoumont, which was carried
-after so determined a resistance that Alison, the historian,
-afterwards counted no fewer than twenty-two shots
-in a tree less than six inches in diameter; fairly conclusive
-evidence of the death-dealing shower faced by
-the Nassauers and Hanoverians defending the copse
-and of the vigour of the enemy. The château was then
-attacked, contrary to orders, by Jerome Bonaparte,
-and brilliantly repulsed by the light companies of
-the second battalions of Coldstream and Foot Guards.<a id="FNanchor_95" href="#Footnote_95" class="fnanchor">95</a>
-Several attempts were afterwards made to secure the
-place, and dead bodies lay piled in heaps, but those
-within held it from the beginning to the end of the
-battle, although Wellington found it necessary to reinforce
-the men who were upholding Britain’s honour so
-determinedly. The orchard was captured and regained,
-howitzers battered the stout walls, the building was
-set on fire, the door of the courtyard was burst open
-and shut in the face of the French. These deeds were
-performed by the fellows of whom Napoleon had spoken
-earlier in the day as “breakfast for us!”</p>
-
-<p>It was not until about half-past one o’clock, when a
-black, moving mass was seen on the wooded heights
-of St Lambert that the Emperor really bestirred himself.
-Napoleon looked through his glass in the direction
-of the object on which nearly all eyes were strained.
-Some of his officers thought it a body of troops, some
-suggested Prussians, others Grouchy. “I think,” remarked
-Soult, “it is five or six thousand men, probably
-part of Grouchy’s army.” In reality it was the advanced
-guard of Bülow’s troops, and the Emperor shortly
-afterwards heard from the lips of a prisoner that at
-least 30,000 men were approaching to assist Wellington.
-However, some light horsemen were sent towards
-Frischermont to observe the Prussians,<a id="FNanchor_96" href="#Footnote_96" class="fnanchor">96</a> and a postscript
-was added to a dispatch already penned to Grouchy,
-begging him to “lose not an instant in drawing near
-and joining us, in order to crush Bülow, whom you
-will catch in the very act.”</p>
-
-<p>Without delay Napoleon launched D’Erlon’s corps
-in four columns totalling nearly 20,000 men against
-the enemy’s left-centre, Ney in command. They were
-supported by far too few cavalry. The Emperor’s
-idea was to take La Haye Sainte, break through the
-Allied line, and gain Mont St Jean. This operation, if
-successful, would compel Wellington to abandon his
-communications with the Belgian capital and change
-his formation. In addition, it would place the French
-between his army and the Prussians. Bylandt’s Dutch-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_227">227</a><br /><a id="Page_228" class="hideme">228</a></span>Belgians,
-who were nearest to the enemy and consequently
-more exposed to the covering fire of seventy-eight
-guns and the shots of the skirmishers, took to
-their heels as D’Erlon’s divisions, frantically yelling
-“<i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">Vive l’Empereur!</i>” approached the front line.<a id="FNanchor_97" href="#Footnote_97" class="fnanchor">97</a> The
-brigades of Pack and Kempt were at once brought forward
-by Picton. They stood firm and poured death into the
-oncoming columns, receiving them, as they appeared on
-the crest of the ridge, with fixed bayonets.</p>
-
-<p>The Earl of Uxbridge, who was in command of the
-cavalry, realizing that the position was still one of considerable
-danger, then ordered Ponsonby’s Union Brigade&mdash;the
-1st Royal Dragoons, Scots Greys, and Inniskillings&mdash;to
-charge. It burst upon the French with tremendous
-force and decided the issue.</p>
-
-<p>Several thousands of the enemy were killed or wounded,
-8000 taken prisoners, a number of guns silenced, and
-two eagles captured.</p>
-
-<p>The story of how the colours of the French 45th
-Regiment were secured by Serjeant Ewart, a magnificent
-specimen of a man, over six feet in height, who served
-in the Greys, is best told in his own modest language.
-“It was in the charge I took the eagle from the enemy,”
-he says; “he and I had a hard contest for it; he made a
-thrust at my groin, I parried it off and cut him down
-through the head. After this a lancer came at me; I
-threw the lance off by my right side, and cut him through
-the chin and upwards through the teeth. Next, a
-foot-soldier fired at me, and then charged me with his
-bayonet, which I also had the good luck to parry, and
-then I cut him down through the head; thus ended
-the contest. As I was about to follow my regiment,
-the General said, ‘My brave fellow, take that to the
-rear; you have done enough till you get quit of it.’ I
-took the eagle to the ridge, and afterwards to Brussels.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_229">229</a></span>
-We have also the record of Captain Clark Kennedy,
-of the Royal Dragoons, regarding the capture of the
-eagle of the 105th Regiment. “I was,” he relates,
-“in command of the centre squadron of the Royal
-Dragoons in this charge; while following up the attack,
-I perceived a little to my left, in the midst of a body
-of infantry, an eagle and colour, which the bearer was
-making off with towards the rear. I immediately
-gave the order to my squadron, ‘Right shoulders
-forward!’ at the same time leading direct upon the
-eagle and calling out to the men with me to secure the
-colour; the instant I got within reach of the officer
-who carried the eagle, I ran my sword into his right
-side, and he staggered and fell, but did not reach the
-ground on account of the pressure of his companions:
-as the officer was in the act of falling, I called out a
-second time to some men close behind me, ‘Secure
-the colour, it belongs to me.’ The standard coverer,
-Corporal Styles, and several other men rushed up, and
-the eagle fell across my horse’s head against that of
-Corporal Styles’s. As it was falling, I caught the
-fringe of the flag with my left hand, but could not at
-first pull up the eagle: at the second attempt, however,
-I succeeded. Being in the midst of French troops,
-I attempted to separate the eagle from the staff, to put
-it into the breast of my coatee, but it was too firmly
-fixed. Corporal Styles said, ‘Sir, don’t break it’;
-to which I replied, ‘Very well; carry it off to the rear
-as fast as you can.’ He did so.”</p>
-
-<p>Unfortunately the victors were too eager, and instead
-of returning they continued until they were in the
-French lines, thus enabling Napoleon to “turn the
-tables.” His reserve squadrons robbed the British
-ranks of 1000 brave men, including Ponsonby. More
-would have fallen had not Vandeleur’s Light Cavalry
-Brigade checked the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Picton was dead, shot at the head of his men. “When
-you hear of my death,” the latter had previously remarked<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_230">230</a></span>
-to a comrade, “you will hear of a
-bloody day.” He had “fallen gloriously at the head
-of his division, maintaining a position which, if it had
-not been kept, would have altered the fate of the day.”<a id="FNanchor_98" href="#Footnote_98" class="fnanchor">98</a></p>
-
-<p>The following account of the magnificent charge of
-Ponsonby’s Union Brigade, from the pen of James
-Armour, Rough-rider to the Scots Greys, who took part
-in it, gives some idea of the work performed:</p>
-
-<p>“Orders were now given that we were to prepare to
-charge. We gave our countrymen in front of us three
-hearty huzzas, and waving our swords aloft in the air,
-several swords were struck with balls while so doing;
-and I must not forget the <span class="locked">piper&mdash;</span></p>
-
-<div class="poem-container">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza"><i>
-<span class="i0">The piper loud and louder blew,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">The balls of all denominations quick and quicker flew.</span></i>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0">The Highlanders were then ordered to wheel back&mdash;I
-think by sections, but I am not certain: infantry
-words of command differ from the cavalry. When they
-had, and were wheeling back imperfectly, we rushed
-through them; at the same time they huzzaed us,
-calling out, ‘<em>Now, my boys&mdash;Scotland for ever!</em>’ I
-must own it had a thrilling effect upon me. I am
-certain numbers of them were knocked over by the
-horses: in our anxiety we could not help it. Some
-said ‘I didna think ye wad hae sair’d me sae’&mdash;catching
-hold of our legs and stirrups, as we passed, to support
-themselves. When we got clear through the Highlanders
-(92nd) we were now on the charge, and a short one it
-was. A cross road being in our way, we leaped the
-first hedge gallantly; crossed the road, and had to
-leap over another hedge. At this time the smoke
-from the firing on both sides made it so that we could
-not see distinctly. We had not charged far&mdash;not
-many yards, till we came to a column. We were pretty
-well together as yet, although a great number fell about
-that cross road. We were in the column in a very<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_231">231</a></span>
-short time (making pretty clean work). We still pushed
-forward, at least as many as could&mdash;a number had
-dropped off by this time&mdash;and soon came to another
-column. They cried out, ‘Prisoners!’ and threw
-down their arms, and stripped themselves of their
-belts (I think it is part of the French discipline to do so),
-and ran to our rear. Ay, they ran like hares. We
-still pushed on, and came upon another column; and
-some of them went down on their knees, calling out
-‘Quarter!’ in a very supplicatory way....</p>
-
-<p>“We now got amongst the guns, the terrible guns,
-which had annoyed us so much. <em>Such slaughtering!</em>&mdash;men
-cut down and run through, horses houghed, harness
-cut, and all rendered useless. Some, who were judges
-of such work, reckoned we had made a very good job
-of it. Amongst the guns&mdash;I think six or seven in
-number, all brass&mdash;that I was engaged with, mostly
-all the men were cut down, and the horses, most of them,
-if not all, were houghed. While we were at work
-amongst these guns, never thinking but, when we were
-done with it, we would have nothing to do but to return
-from where we came; but I must own I was very much
-surprised, when we began to retrace our steps, when
-what should we behold coming away across betwixt us
-and our own army but a great number of these cuirassiers
-and lancers, the first I ever beheld in my life, who were
-forming up in order to cut off our retreat; but, nothing
-daunted, we faced them manfully. We had none to
-command us now, but every man did what he could.
-‘Conquer or die!’ was the word. When the regiment
-returned from the charge mentioned, the troops that
-I belonged to did not muster above one or two sound
-men (unwounded) belonging to the front rank. Indeed
-the whole troop did not muster above a dozen; there
-were upwards of twenty of the front rank killed, and
-the others wounded.”</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the farm of La Haye Sainte, held by
-a detachment of the German Legion under Major<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_232">232</a></span>
-Baring, had been the object of assault by a French division
-detached for that purpose, and the defenders were driven
-from the orchard. Reinforcements were sent forward by
-Wellington, followed by additional cavalry by Napoleon.
-The cuirassiers were met by Lord Edward Somerset’s
-Brigade, led by the Earl of Uxbridge, and driven back
-after a furious struggle for supremacy. Not until the
-last pinch of powder was spent and several determined
-attempts had been made to secure the place, did the
-brave fellows vacate their position to D’Erlon’s infantry,
-between six and seven o’clock.</p>
-
-<p>Towards the close of the afternoon Milhaud’s cuirassiers,
-supported by light cavalry and dragoons, attacked the
-British right-centre. Wellington at once formed his
-troops in squares. When the crash came they stood
-firm and unbroken.</p>
-
-<p>The Commander-in-Chief lost not a moment. The
-heavy brigade of Lord Edward Somerset was flung
-against the Frenchmen and drove them from the ridge.<a id="FNanchor_99" href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">99</a>
-The artillery flamed destruction. Charge followed
-charge, thirteen in all, but the British squares remained
-steady, although continually reduced. Nearly all
-Wellington’s cavalry were pressed into service, and
-with the exception of a solitary Dutch-Belgian division,
-all his infantry reserve was employed. An officer who
-served in Halkett’s brigade has left a vivid account of
-this part of the battle.</p>
-
-<p>“Hougoumont and its wood,” he writes, “sent up
-a broad flame through the dark masses of smoke that
-overhung the field; beneath this cloud the French were
-indistinctly visible. Here a waving mass of long red
-feathers could be seen; there, gleams as from a sheet
-of steel showed that the cuirassiers were moving; 400
-cannon were belching forth fire and death on every
-side; the roaring and shouting were indistinguishably<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_233">233</a></span>
-commixed&mdash;together they gave me an idea of a labouring
-volcano. Bodies of infantry and cavalry were
-pouring down on us, and it was time to leave contemplation,
-so I moved towards our columns, which were
-standing up in square.... As I entered the rear face
-of our square I had to step over a body, and looking
-down, recognised Harry Beere, an officer of our
-Grenadiers, who about an hour before shook hands
-with me, laughing, as I left the columns.... The tear
-was not dry on my cheek when poor Harry was no
-longer thought of. In a few minutes after, the enemy’s
-cavalry galloped up and crowned the crest of our position.
-Our guns were abandoned,<a id="FNanchor_100" href="#Footnote_100" class="fnanchor">100</a> and they formed between
-the two brigades, about a hundred paces in our front.
-Their first charge was magnificent. As soon as they
-quickened their trot into a gallop, the cuirassiers bent
-their heads so that the peaks of their helmets looked
-like vizors, and they seemed cased in armour from the
-plume to the saddle. Not a shot was fired till they
-were within thirty yards, when the word was given,
-and our men fired away at them. The effect was
-magical. Through the smoke we could see helmets
-falling, cavaliers starting from their seats with convulsive
-springs as they received our balls, horses plunging and
-rearing in the agonies of fright and pain, and crowds
-of the soldiery dismounted, part of the squadron in
-retreat, but the more daring remainder backing their
-horses to force them on our bayonets. Our fire soon
-disposed of these gentlemen. The main body re-formed
-in our front, and rapidly and gallantly repeated their
-attacks. In fact, from this time (about four o’clock)
-till near six, we had a constant repetition of these
-brave but unavailing charges. There was no
-difficulty in repulsing them, but our ammunition decreased
-alarmingly. At length an artillery wagon<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_234">234</a></span>
-galloped up, emptied two or three casks of cartridges
-into the square, and we were all comfortable....</p>
-
-<p>“Though we constantly thrashed our steel-clad
-opponents, we found more troublesome customers in
-the round shot and grape, which all this time played on
-us with terrible effect, and fully avenged the cuirassiers.
-Often as the volleys created openings in our square
-would the cavalry dash on, but they were uniformly
-unsuccessful. A regiment on our right seemed sadly
-disconcerted, and at one moment was in considerable
-confusion. Halkett rode out to them, and seizing
-their colour, waved it over his head, and restored them
-to something like order, though not before his horse
-was shot under him. At the height of their unsteadiness
-we got the order to ‘right face’ to move to their
-assistance; some of the men mistook it for ‘right
-about face,’ and faced accordingly, when old Major
-M‘Laine, 73rd, called out, ‘No, my boys, its “right
-face”; you’ll never hear the right about as long as a
-French bayonet is in front of you!’”</p>
-
-<p>At Planchenoit, in the rear of the French centre,
-Lobau and his 10,000 men were doing their upmost to
-prevent Bülow with three times that number of troops
-from succouring Wellington. The French held the
-village for two hours, and then saw it fall into the hands
-of the enemy, but only for a time. Some of the Young
-Guard and three batteries of artillery had been sent by
-the Emperor to support Lobau, and when they arrived
-the scales again turned in favour of the French. While
-this body was held in check, Napoleon’s infantry had
-suffered near Hougoumont, but La Haye Sainte had
-fallen, as already noticed. Had Napoleon sent reinforcements
-to Ney he might have won the battle,
-but he hesitated to use his remaining reserves. Before
-anything further was done, Wellington had made fresh
-dispositions, and Ziethen’s men, who had marched
-by way of Ohain, were on the field.</p>
-
-<div id="ip_234" class="figcenter" style="width: 428px;">
- <img src="images/i_265.jpg" width="428" height="600" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>Charge of the Scots Greys at Waterloo</p>
-
-<p class="notbold">R. Caton Woodville</p></div></div>
-
-<p>Six battalions of the Middle Guard and two battalions<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_235">235</a></span>
-of the Old Guard were at last sent forward.<a id="FNanchor_101" href="#Footnote_101" class="fnanchor">101</a> As they
-crossed the open ground between Hougoumont and the
-high road the artillery played sad havoc with some of
-them, but behind the crest of the ridge was Maitland’s
-brigade of the Foot Guards, led by Wellington, himself.
-“Up, Guards, and make ready!” he shouted, and ere
-the first column was upon them the British infantry
-had dealt a deadly fire into its ranks which made it
-pause. The second column was caught in flank by
-Adam’s Brigade. Then two brigades of British cavalry
-charged, and although the celebrated Imperial Guards
-endeavoured to hold their own they were forced back.
-Blücher, who had arrived at a most opportune moment,
-carried the position occupied by the French right at
-Papelotte and La Haye with Ziethen’s corps. The
-whole Allied line then advanced, the heights were
-carried, and Napoleon’s last army, on the victory of
-which he had staked his all, was scattered. The battle
-of Waterloo was won. “My plan,” said the Commander-in-Chief,
-“was to keep my ground until the Prussians
-appeared, and then to attack the French position; and
-I executed my plan.”</p>
-
-<p>Throughout the night the Prussians followed up the
-defeated legions, which got across the Sambre on the
-19th. Some 30,000 of Napoleon’s men were killed or
-wounded, and 13,000 of the Allied army, more than
-half of whom were British. On the 22nd June 1815,
-the fallen Emperor abdicated in favour of his son; on
-the 7th July the Allies entered Paris in triumph,
-and eight days later Napoleon surrendered to Captain
-Maitland, of H.M.S. <i>Bellerophon</i>.</p>
-
-<div class="poem-container">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza"><i>
-<span class="i0">The Desolator desolate!<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">The Victor overthrown!<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">The Arbiter of others fate<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">A Suppliant for his own!</span></i>
-</div>
-<div class="attrib"><span class="smcap">Byron.</span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-<hr />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_236">236</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="CHAPTER_XX"></a>CHAPTER XX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">Wellington the Statesman</span>
-
-<span class="subhead">(1815&ndash;52)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<div class="poem-container"><div class="poem">
-<p>“<i>It is the duty of all to look our difficulties in the face and to lay the
-ground for getting the better of them.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="rightx">
-<span class="smcap">Wellington.</span>
-</p>
-</div></div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap1">While</span> the good folk of London were listening
-to the guns of the Tower and of the Park,
-which told of the Waterloo victory, and
-the joyful news was percolating to the smallest hamlet,
-Wellington was fighting a battle in which neither sword
-nor gun was involved. It was one of diplomacy, and
-he proved the conqueror. Blücher, armed with the
-Declaration of the 13th March 1815 to the effect that
-“Napoleon Bonaparte is put beyond the pale of social
-and civil relations, and as enemy and disturber of the
-repose of the world, he is delivered over to public
-vengeance,” was for seizing the fallen Emperor and
-shooting him as an outlaw at Vincennes, the scene of
-the Duc d’Enghien tragedy.<a id="FNanchor_102" href="#Footnote_102" class="fnanchor">102</a> The bloodthirsty Prussian
-asked for Wellington’s views on the matter. He received
-them without delay, and expressed in such a
-way that Blücher must have felt thoroughly ashamed
-of himself, if only for a passing moment. “They had
-both acted too distinguished a part in the recent transactions
-to become executioners,” the Duke wrote. This
-single sentence reveals the sterling uprightness of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_237">237</a></span>
-man and his hatred of unnecessary bloodshed. Even
-supposing that he had received authority for the carrying
-out of such a measure, it is extremely doubtful
-whether Wellington would have concurred in his
-colleague’s wish. Blücher sneered&mdash;and accepted the
-decision. Wellington also found himself in disagreement
-with the Prussian view regarding the bridge of Jena at
-Paris, which commemorated the crushing Prussian
-defeat of October 1806. Blücher, with true patriotic
-zeal as it seemed to him, was for blowing it to pieces.
-Wellington regarded the idea as foolish, and he carried
-his point. It would have been a bitter day for the
-Capital had Blücher been allowed to work his will.
-The Prussian Commander insisted on levying a contribution
-on the city of Paris of 100,000,000 francs.
-Wellington upset the scheme by insisting that the
-question was one for the Allied sovereigns to arrange.
-For the third time vindictive Blücher had to give in.</p>
-
-<p>When the Provisional Government appealed to the
-Duke with reference to Napoleon’s successor, he bluntly
-told them that “the best security for Europe was the
-restoration of the King,” namely, Louis XVIII, and
-that he should be recalled “without loss of time, so as
-to avoid the appearance of the measure having been
-forced upon them by the allies.”</p>
-
-<p>When the Exile King returned to Paris the enormous
-demands of certain of the Powers, particularly of
-Austria and Prussia, had to be discussed. Had it not
-been for the resistance of Castlereagh, Wellington, and
-Nesselrode, extensive partitions undoubtedly would
-have resulted. As finally settled by the Second Treaty
-of Paris, concluded on the 20th November, the territory
-of France was reduced to practically the limits of 1790,
-an indemnity of 700,000,000 francs was determined
-for the expenses of the war, and an army of occupation
-not exceeding 150,000 troops under the Duke was to
-garrison the chief frontier fortresses, including Valenciennes,
-Cambray, Quesnoy, Maubeuge, and Landrecy,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_238">238</a></span>
-for a maximum period of five years, the expense being
-met by the French Government. The magnificent art
-treasures, which Napoleon had gloried in plundering,
-were to be returned to their rightful owners. That is
-why the celebrated bronze horses of St Mark may be
-seen on the great Venetian Cathedral to-day, and the
-wonderful “Descent from the Cross,” by Rubens,
-admired in the Cathedral of Antwerp, from whence it
-had been taken to find a temporary resting-place in the
-Louvre.</p>
-
-<p>An excellent account of the Army of Occupation is
-given by a Scotsman who visited Paris shortly after
-the battle of Waterloo. There were comparatively
-few Austrians, the majority of them being in the south
-of France, but those seen by the writer of <cite>Paul’s Letters
-to his Kinsfolk</cite> were “bulky men” who “want the
-hardy and athletic look of the British, Russians, or
-Prussians.” The Russian infantry were “fine, firm,
-steady-looking men, clean, handsome, but by no means
-remarkable for stature.” The artillery were “in the
-highest possible order,” the cavalry “remarkably fine
-men,” the appearance of the Cossacks “prepossessing.”
-The Prussians, while never having been accused of
-“gross violence,” succeeded in wrecking the Château
-de Montmorency, where a large body of them was
-quartered. Camp-kettles were boiled with picture-frames,
-and the furniture stripped by female camp
-followers. Paul notes that the Prussian officers were
-the principal customers of the expensive restaurants
-and theatres, but that many British officers of rank
-had gone so far as to decline the quarters appointed
-them in private houses. He bestows much praise on
-Wellington for his discipline and justice: “The strong
-sense and firmness for which the Duke is as much distinguished
-as for skill in arms and bravery in the field
-of battle, easily saw that the high and paramount
-part which Britain now holds in Europe, that preeminence
-which, in so many instances, has made her<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_239">239</a></span>
-and her delegates the chosen mediators when disputes
-occurred amongst the allied powers, depends entirely
-on our maintaining pure and sacred the national character
-for good faith and disinterested honour. The
-slightest complaint, therefore, of want of discipline or
-oppression perpetrated by a British officer or soldier
-has instantly met with reprehension and punishment,
-and the result has been the reducing the French to the
-cruel situation of hating us without having any complaint
-to justify themselves for doing so, even in their
-own eyes.... The soldiers, without exception, both
-British and foreigners, conduct themselves in public
-with civility, are very rarely to be seen intoxicated,
-though the means are so much within reach; and, considering
-all the irritating circumstances that exist, few
-quarrels occur betwixt them and the populace. Very
-strong precautions are, however, taken in case of any
-accidental or premeditated commotion.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellington threw the whole weight of his influence
-on the side of moderation. Prussia was all for partition,
-for getting her territorial “pound of flesh,” but the
-calmer statesmanship of the diplomatists already mentioned,
-especially of Wellington, won the day. The
-Duke’s policy is clearly outlined in his dispatch of the
-11th August, which, in the opinion of Dr Holland Rose,
-“deserves to rank among his highest titles to fame.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellington states that while France has been left
-“in too great strength for the rest of Europe, weakened
-as all the powers of Europe have been by the wars in
-which they have been engaged with France,” his objection
-to the demand of a “great cession from France upon
-this occasion is, that it will defeat the object which the
-Allies have held out to themselves in the present and
-the preceding wars.” He then proceeds to detail
-what were, in his opinion, the various causes which led
-to so much bloodshed: “to put an end to the French
-Revolution, to obtain peace for themselves and their
-people, to have the power of reducing their overgrown<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_240">240</a></span>
-military establishments, and the leisure to attend to
-the internal concerns of their several nations, and to
-improve the situation of their people. The Allies took
-up arms against Buonaparte because it was certain
-that the world could not be at peace as long as he should
-possess, or should be in a situation to attain, supreme
-power in France; and care must be taken,” he adds,
-“in making the arrangements consequent upon our
-success, that we do not leave the world in the same
-unfortunate situation respecting France that it would
-have been in if Buonaparte had continued in possession
-of his power.”</p>
-
-<p>The Duke then goes on to review the situation. If
-Louis XVIII were to refuse the cession of territory,
-his people would undoubtedly support him, and the
-Allies “might take the fortresses and provinces which
-might suit them, but there would be no genuine peace
-for the world, no nation could disarm, no Sovereign
-could turn his attention from the affairs of this country.”
-If the King consented to the partition, “which, from
-all that one hears, is an event by no means probable,
-the Allies must be satisfied, and must retire; but I
-would appeal to the experience of the transactions
-of last year for a statement of the situation in which
-we should find ourselves.” France was then reduced
-to her limits of 1792, and “the Allies were obliged to
-maintain each in the field half of the war establishment
-stipulated in the treaty of Chaumont, in order to guard
-their conquests, and what had been ceded to them.”
-In France “the general topic of conversation was the
-recovery of the left bank of the Rhine as the frontier
-of France.” Wellington therefore preferred “the
-temporary occupation of some of the strong places,
-and to maintain for a time a strong force in France,
-both at the expense of the French Government, and
-under strict regulation, to the permanent cession of
-even all the places which in my opinion ought to be
-occupied for a time. These measures will not only give<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_241">241</a></span>
-us, during the period of occupation, all the military
-security which could be expected from the permanent
-cession, but, if carried into execution in the spirit in
-which they are conceived, they are in themselves the
-bond of peace.”</p>
-
-<p>During the remainder of his stay in France, broken
-by a short visit to England in 1816, Wellington was far
-from popular, and one or two attempts were made
-on his life. It was scarcely to be expected that a man
-who had been pre-eminently successful in the field
-against the nation’s armies would be lauded as a popular
-hero, but, as we have seen, he had helped to save the
-country from a bitter and vindictive humiliation. He
-finally returned home in 1818, when the Army of
-Occupation evacuated France with the consent of the
-Powers at the request of its Commander-in-Chief. He
-never again drew his sword in warfare, but he maintained
-a commanding position in the affairs of Great
-Britain until the close of his long life.</p>
-
-<p>His honours and orders were now varied and many.
-England and foreign countries honoured themselves
-by honouring him. Parliament voted him £200,000
-for the erection or purchase of Strathfieldsaye, Hampshire,
-and the estate granted to him as Prince of Waterloo
-by the King of the Netherlands was valued at £4000
-per annum. On his return to England he became
-Master of the Ordnance, which entitled him to a seat
-in the Cabinet.</p>
-
-<p>In 1821 Wellington revisited the scene of his most
-famous battle with George IV, and afterwards proceeded
-to Verona to represent, with Lord Strangford,
-Great Britain at the Congress about to be held there
-to determine the attitude of England, France, Russia,
-Austria, and Prussia regarding various matters, including
-the insurrection in Greece and the relations of
-Russia and Turkey in the matter, the evacuation of
-Piedmont and Naples by the Austrian troops, the
-slave trade, and more particularly the unhappy state<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_242">242</a></span>
-of affairs in Spain, which country was then in a state
-of civil war. Should the five Powers send armed
-assistance to Ferdinand, whom Wellington’s victories
-in the Peninsula had replaced on the throne? Answering
-for his own country the Duke maintained the principle
-of non-interference excepting in a case of necessity.
-In this matter Great Britain stood alone, and the Duke
-had to run the gauntlet of fierce criticism on his return
-to England.</p>
-
-<p>His next continental journey was in 1826, when he was
-sent on a special mission to Petersburg on the accession
-of the Emperor Nicholas, with the object of arriving
-at a satisfactory settlement of the projected Russian
-attack on Turkey over the Greek difficulty. In this
-he was not entirely successful, for after events proved
-that he had only succeeded in staving off the evil day.</p>
-
-<p>On the death of the Duke of York in the following year,
-Wellington was appointed Commander-in-Chief, retaining
-his other office, which controlled merely the artillery
-and engineers.</p>
-
-<p>A month later Canning became Prime Minister, and
-the Duke was asked to continue as a member of the
-Cabinet. This request he not only declined, but surrendered
-his two important offices as well. Mutual
-suspicion seems to have been the cause of this unexpected
-event, certainly not jealousy, for Wellington said that
-he should be “worse than mad if he had ever thought
-of it for a moment,” the “it” referring to his possible
-appointment as First Lord of the Treasury. Canning did
-not live long to enjoy the sweets of office, for he died
-on the following August, and was succeeded by “Prosperity”
-Robinson, otherwise Lord Goderich, who
-resigned at the beginning of 1828.</p>
-
-<p>The Duke, once again Commander-in-Chief, was sent
-for by George IV, and requested to form a Ministry.
-He obeyed with the instinct of a soldier when ordered
-by his superior officer, rather than as a keen politician
-about to have his highest ambition gratified. Wellington<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_243">243</a></span>
-was a Tory, and the political freedom of the Roman
-Catholics and the reform of Parliament were the burning
-questions of the hour. The Duke was uncertain as to
-the practical utility of either, but he was not prepared
-to go against the known wishes of the nation so far as
-the religious question was concerned. After navigating
-a sea of difficulties, the Roman Catholic Relief Bill
-passed both Houses in the early days of 1829. One of
-his opponents, the Earl of Winchilsea, charged Wellington
-with “breaking in upon the Constitution of 1688 in
-order that he might the more effectively, under the
-cloak of some outward show of zeal for the Protestant
-religion, carry on his insidious designs for the infringement
-of our liberties, and the introduction of Popery
-in every department of the State.” The Premier
-requested an apology, which was not forthcoming,
-whereupon the former demanded “satisfaction,” in
-other words, a duel. Sir Henry Hardinge for Wellington
-and Lord Falmouth for Winchilsea were the respective
-seconds.</p>
-
-<p>The meeting took place in Battersea Fields.<a id="FNanchor_103" href="#Footnote_103" class="fnanchor">103</a> “Now
-then, Hardinge,” said the Duke, “look sharp and step
-out the ground. I have no time to waste. Don’t stick
-him up so near the ditch. If I hit him he will tumble
-in.” The signal was given to fire. Noting that his
-opponent did not level his pistol on the command being
-given, the Duke purposely fired wide, and an instant
-afterwards Winchilsea fired in the air. The latter then
-produced a written sheet which he called an apology,
-which had to be altered before it met with Wellington’s
-approval. “Good morning, my Lord Winchilsea;
-good morning, my Lord Falmouth,” cried the Duke
-as he saluted with two fingers, and, mounting his horse,
-cantered off.</p>
-
-<p>The Duke had a most thankless task during his administration,
-so much so that we find him writing,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_244">244</a></span>
-“If I had known in January 1828, one tithe of what I
-do now, and of what I discovered one month after I
-was in office, I should never have been the King’s
-Minister, and so have avoided loads of misery. However,
-I trust God Almighty will soon determine that
-I have been sufficiently punished for my sins and will
-relieve me from the unlucky lot which has befallen
-me. I believe there never was a man who suffered so
-much for so little purpose.”</p>
-
-<p>He had almost as much trouble with the King as had
-Pitt with George III, and many of his old supporters
-were indignant with him over the Relief Bill. Wellington
-vehemently opposed Parliamentary Reform in the face
-of public opinion, with the result that his Ministry rode
-to a fall in November 1830.</p>
-
-<p>Two months before he had taken part in the opening
-ceremony of the Manchester and Liverpool Railway,
-the first line to cater for passenger traffic in the British
-Empire. He rode in one of the two trains which made
-the initial journey, and the fact that they both went in
-the same direction was the cause of a lamentable accident
-which deprived one of Wellington’s friends of his life.
-The incident occurred at Parkside, where the engines
-stopped to obtain a supply of water. While the trains
-were at a standstill, Mr Huskisson, formerly President
-of the Board of Trade, got out of the carriage in which
-he had been travelling and sought Wellington. A
-minute or two later the train on the opposite line started.
-One of the open doors knocked him down, and his
-right leg was crushed by the locomotive. The Duke
-and several others ran to the injured man’s assistance,
-but his injuries were such that he only survived a few
-hours.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington was succeeded as First Lord of the
-Treasury by Earl Grey, whose Government was speedily
-defeated by the Reform Bill which it introduced being
-rejected by the Lords. Riots broke out in London
-and the provinces; William IV “was frightened by<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_245">245</a></span>
-the appearance of the people outside of St James’s”;
-the celebrated Dr Arnold wrote that his “sense of the
-evils of the times, and to what purpose I am bringing
-up my children, is overwhelmingly bitter.” The King
-implored the Ministers not to hand in their resignation,
-the House of Commons carried by a large majority a
-vote of confidence in the Government, and the nation
-showed that it bitterly resented the action of the Lords.
-There was an attempt at compromise, but the concessions
-were so trivial from Wellington’s point of view
-that he declined to take part in the negotiations. After
-further angry scenes in the following session Grey
-resigned on the 9th May 1832. It was during this
-trying period of our national history that the window-panes
-of Apsley House were stoned and the Duke’s
-life was threatened.<a id="FNanchor_104" href="#Footnote_104" class="fnanchor">104</a></p>
-
-<p>Once again the King requested Wellington to form
-a new administration, and several meetings were held
-with that idea in view, but to no purpose. He had to
-confess that the task was absolutely impossible: “I
-felt that my duty to the King required that I should
-make a great sacrifice of opinion to serve him, and
-to save his Majesty and the country from what I considered
-a great evil. Others were not of the same
-opinion. I failed in performing the service which I
-intended to perform....” Several resident members
-of Oxford University, including Professor the Rev.
-John Keble, impressed by the Duke’s devotion, raised
-funds for the purpose of a bust to commemorate his
-self-denying conduct. This appreciation of approval
-greatly pleased Wellington, who announced his intention
-of sitting for Chantrey, the celebrated sculptor, or whoever
-else the committee might choose, “with the greatest
-satisfaction.” When Grey resumed office the Reform
-Bill was read for a third time and passed, a number of
-peers having declared “that in consequence of the
-present state of affairs they have come to the resolution<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_246">246</a></span>
-of dropping their further opposition to the Reform Bill,
-so that it may pass without delay as nearly as possible
-in its present shape.” Wellington quietly left the
-House. He was no more kindly disposed towards the
-Irish Reform Bill, and subjected it to a fire of criticism
-which did not, however, preclude it from passing.</p>
-
-<p>One of the most remarkable events of the Duke’s
-crowded life occurred in November 1834. When Earl
-Grey resigned in July 1834, on which occasion his
-opponent made a graceful speech to the effect that there
-had been no personal hostility in his opposition, the
-retiring statesman recommended Lord Melbourne as
-his successor. This suggestion met with the King’s
-approval, but the reign of the new Administration
-lasted only until the middle of the following November.
-His Majesty sent for Wellington at six in the morning.
-The latter refused to form a Cabinet, and recommended
-Sir Robert Peel, who was then in Rome. The Duke
-promised to carry on the Government during the
-interim, with the result that he held the offices of First
-Lord of the Treasury, Home Secretary, Foreign and
-Colonial Secretary, and Secretary at War for nearly a
-month. On Peel’s return he appointed his industrious
-ally Foreign Secretary, a position he held until the
-following April, when the Government resigned. In
-1841, in Peel’s second Administration, he occupied a
-seat in the Cabinet, without office, and in the following
-year he was created Commander-in-Chief for life by
-patent under the great seal.</p>
-
-<p>During the Chartist agitation Wellington was asked
-who was to command the forces in London, where a
-riot was expected. He answered, “I can name no one
-except the Duke of Wellington.” He organized the
-arrangements with his usual thoroughness, disposing
-his troops to keep them out of sight, and taking prompt
-measures to protect important public buildings. Fortunately
-the excitement died down, and armed force
-was not required.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_247">247</a></span>
-The Duke frequently spent several hours a day at
-the Horse Guards. “Speaking from the experience
-which I had of him,” says General Sir George Brown,
-G.C.B., “I should say that the Duke was a remarkably
-agreeable man to do business with, because of his
-clear and ready decision. However much I may have
-seen him irritated and excited, with the subjects which
-I have repeatedly had to bring under his notice, I have
-no recollection of his ever having made use of a harsh
-or discourteous expression to me, or of his having dismissed
-me without a distinct and explicit answer or
-decision in the case under consideration. Like all good
-men of business, who consider well before coming to a
-decision, his Grace was accustomed to adhere strictly
-to precedent; to the decisions he may have previously
-come to on similar cases. This practice greatly facilitated
-the task of those who had to transact business
-with him, seeing that all we had to do in concluding
-our statement of any particular case was to refer to his
-decision or some similar one.”</p>
-
-<p>“Everybody writes to me for everything,” he once
-remarked to Stanhope. “They know the Duke of
-Wellington is said to be a good-natured man, and so
-at the least they will get an answer.” The Earl,
-astonished at the amount of the Duke’s correspondence,
-ventured to say that his host might expect to be allowed
-some rest and recreation while he was at Walmer.
-“Rest!” cried the Duke. “Every other animal&mdash;even
-a donkey&mdash;a costermonger’s donkey&mdash;is allowed
-some rest, but the Duke of Wellington never! There
-is no help for it. As long as I am able to go on, they
-will put the saddle upon my back and make me go.”</p>
-
-<p>Georgiana, Lady De Ros, who was a frequent visitor
-at Walmer Castle and at Strathfieldsaye, relates an
-incident which has a direct bearing on this point.
-“Wellington,” she says, “would tell a story against himself
-sometimes, and amused us all quite in his latter
-days by the account of various impostures that had<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_248">248</a></span>
-been practised upon him; for years he had helped an
-imaginary officer’s daughter, paid for music lessons for
-her, given her a piano, paid for her wedding trousseau,
-for her child’s funeral, etc., etc. At last it came out
-that <em>one man</em> was the author of these impostures, ‘and
-then,’ the Duke said, ‘an Officer from the Mendicity
-Society called on me and gave me such a scolding as I
-never had before in my life!’”</p>
-
-<p>In a book inscribed as “A Slight Souvenir of the
-Season 1845&ndash;6” we find a delightful little glimpse of
-“the hero of a hundred fights” as a country gentlemen.
-“What can be a finer sight than to see the Duke of
-Wellington enter the hunting field?” the author asks.
-“Not one of those gorgeous spectacles, it is true, such
-as a coronation, a review, the Lord Mayor’s Show, or
-a procession to the Houses of Parliament&mdash;not one of
-those pompous Continental exhibitions called a <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">chasse</i>,
-where armed menials keep back the crowd, and brass
-bands proclaim alike the find and finish; but what
-can be a finer sight&mdash;a sight more genial to the mind of
-a Briton&mdash;than the mighty Wellington entering the
-hunting field with a single attendant, making no more
-fuss than a country squire? Yet many have seen the
-sight, and many, we trust, may yet see it. The Duke
-takes the country sport like a country gentleman&mdash;no
-man less the great man than this greatest of all men;
-affable to all, his presence adds joy to the scene. The
-Duke is a true sportsman, and has long been a supporter
-of the Vine and Sir John Cope’s hounds. He kept
-hounds himself during the Peninsular War, and divers
-good stories are related of them and their huntsman
-(Tom Crane), whose enthusiasm used sometimes to carry
-him in the enemy’s country, a fact that he used to
-be reminded of by a few bullets whizzing about his
-ears.”</p>
-
-<p>Wellington was now the trusted friend of Queen
-Victoria, who ever held him in the highest esteem.
-He was one of the first persons, perhaps actually the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_249">249</a></span>
-first,<a id="FNanchor_105" href="#Footnote_105" class="fnanchor">105</a> outside the Royal family and the medical attendants
-to see the baby who afterwards became Edward VII.
-According to one account he was met outside Buckingham
-Palace by Lord Hill, who was informed “All over&mdash;fine
-boy, very fine boy, almost as red as you Hill.”</p>
-
-<p>Two days after the first anniversary of the birthday
-of Edward Albert, Prince of Wales, the Queen and the
-Prince Consort, accompanied by the Royal children,
-journeyed to Walmer Castle to pay the Duke a visit.
-An even greater honour was reserved for the veteran
-warrior, for on the birth of her Majesty’s third son on
-the 1st May 1850, it got noised abroad that the infant
-was to be called Arthur, “in compliment to the Hero
-of Waterloo.” The present Duke of Connaught is
-thus a living link with Wellington. “I must not omit
-to mention,” the Queen writes exactly a year later,
-“an interesting episode of this day, viz., the visit of
-the good old Duke on this his eighty-second birthday,
-to his little godson, our dear little boy. He came to
-us both at five, and gave him a golden cup and some
-toys, which he had himself chosen, and Arthur gave
-him a nosegay.”</p>
-
-<p>The day was also that on which the great Exhibition
-at the Crystal Palace was opened. “The Royal party,”
-says Queen Victoria, “were received with continued
-acclamation as they passed through the Park and
-round the Exhibition house, and it was also very interesting
-to witness the cordial greeting given to the Duke
-of Wellington. I was just behind him and Anglesey
-[on whose arm he was leaning], during the procession
-round the building, and he was accompanied by an
-incessant running fire of applause from the men, and
-waving of handkerchiefs and kissing of hands from the
-women, who lined the pathway of the march during
-the three-quarters of an hour that it took us to march
-round....”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_250">250</a></span>
-Although the Duke never courted popularity, seemed
-indeed to shun it and to regard the satisfaction shown
-by some of his colleagues in the plaudits of the multitude
-as a sign of weakness, there can be little doubt that he
-felt a glow of inward pleasure, however slight, when he
-reflected on the good feeling displayed towards him in
-the closing years of his long and well-filled life. Apt
-to be somewhat cynical on occasion, and to think that
-the times were “like sweet bells jangled, out of tune
-and harsh,” he was neither censorious nor vindictive.
-Nelson preached the gospel of Duty, but Wellington
-lived it and sacrificed everything to it.</p>
-
-<p>Brougham, as champion of Parliamentary Reform,
-was an opponent of Wellington, but in middle age he
-took up an independent position, and has left in his
-“Historical Sketches of Statesmen who flourished in
-the Time of George III” a magnificent testimony of
-the Duke’s worth.</p>
-
-<p>“The peculiar characteristic of this great man,” he
-writes, “and which, though far less dazzling than his
-exalted genius, and his marvellous fortune, is incomparably
-more useful for the contemplation of the statesman,
-as well as the moralist, is that constant abnegation
-of all selfish feelings, that habitual sacrifice of every
-personal, every party consideration to the single object
-of strict duty&mdash;duty rigorously performed in what
-station soever he might be called to act. This was
-ever perceived to be his distinguishing quality; and it
-was displayed at every period of his public life, and in
-all matters from the most trifling to the most important.”</p>
-
-<p>Regarding the Reform Bill, Brougham says that
-Wellington’s conduct “during the whole of the debates
-in both sessions upon that measure was exemplary.
-Opposing it to the utmost of his power, no one could
-charge him with making the least approach to factious
-violence, or with ever taking an unfair advantage....
-After the Bill had passed, the same absence of all factious
-feelings marked his conduct.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_251">251</a></span>
-The Duke’s modesty, his good sense, candour and
-fairness, love of justice, hatred of oppression and fraud
-are touched upon by Brougham, who closes his brief
-acknowledgment of his subject’s virtues by quoting
-a remark made by Lord Denman, “the greatest judge
-of the day.” It is that of all Wellington’s “great and
-good qualities, the one which stands first, is his anxious
-desire ever to see justice done, and the pain he manifestly
-feels from the sight of injustice.”</p>
-
-<p>On the morning of the 14th September 1852 the
-victor of Waterloo had a paralytic stroke at Walmer
-Castle. At six o’clock his valet entered the Duke’s
-room to call him, but he complained of not feeling quite
-well and sent for an apothecary. In the evening he
-was lying dead on his camp bedstead. We are apt to
-use the phrase “full of years and honour” rather too
-glibly perhaps, but it is intensely apposite when applied
-to the great Duke. He was eighty-three years of age,
-and as for honour a glance at the following list of distinctions
-bestowed upon Arthur Wellesley will make
-the fact self evident:</p>
-
-<p>He was Duke of Wellington, Marquis of Wellington,
-Earl of Wellington in Somerset, Viscount Wellington of
-Talavera, Marquis of Douro, Baron Douro of Wellesley,
-Prince of Waterloo in the Netherlands, Duke of Ciudad
-Rodrigo in Spain, Duke of Bennoy in France, Duke of
-Vittoria, Marquis of Torres Vedras, Count of Vimiero
-in Portugal, a Grandee of the First Class in Spain, a
-Privy Councillor, Commander-in-Chief of the British
-Army, Colonel of the Grenadier Guards, Colonel of
-the Rifle Brigade, a Field Marshal of Great Britain,
-a Marshal of Russia, Austria, Prussia, Spain, Portugal,
-and the Netherlands; a Knight of the Garter, the
-Holy Ghost, the Golden Fleece; a Knight Grand
-Cross of the Bath and of Hanover, a Knight of the
-Black Eagle, the Tower and Sword, St Fernando, of
-William of the Low Countries, Charles III, of the Sword
-of Sweden, St Andrew of Russia, the Annunciado of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_252">252</a></span>
-Sardinia, the Elephant of Denmark, of Maria Theresa,
-of St George of Russia, of the Crown of Rue of Saxony;
-a Knight of Fidelity of Baden, of Maximilian Joseph
-of Bavaria, of St Alexander Newsky of Russia, of St
-Hermenegilda of Spain, of the Red Eagle of Bradenburg,
-of St Januarius, of the Golden Lion of Hesse Cassel, of
-the Lion of Baden; and a Knight of Merit of Würtemburg.
-In addition, Wellington was Lord High Constable
-of England, Constable of the Tower and of Dover Castle,
-Warden, Chancellor and Admiral of the Cinque Ports,
-Lord-Lieutenant of Hampshire and of the Tower
-Hamlets, Ranger of St James’s Park and of Hyde Park,
-Chancellor of the University of Oxford, Commissioner
-of the Royal Military College, Vice-President of the
-Scottish Naval and Military Academy, the Master of
-Trinity House, a Governor of King’s College, a Doctor
-of Laws, and a Fellow of the Royal Society.</p>
-
-<p>The motto on Wellington’s escutcheon, <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">Virtutis
-fortuna comes</i>&mdash;“Fortune is the companion of valour”&mdash;was
-exemplified in his long and eventful career, and
-perhaps the following words, once used by him in a
-dispatch, suggest how keen was his sense of responsibility:
-“God help me if I fail, for no one else will.”
-With true British inconsistency the nation spent
-£100,000 on the funeral of him whose habits were of
-Spartan simplicity, but with more appropriateness the
-body of the Conqueror of Napoleon was placed next
-to that of the Hero of Trafalgar in the crypt of St Paul’s
-Cathedral.</p>
-
-<p>And so these two great Warriors sleep together.
-They were worthy of England; may England be
-worthy of them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_253">253</a></span></p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2><a id="Index"></a>Index of Proper Names</h2>
-
-<div class="index">
-<ul class="index"><li class="ifrst">Abbé Siéyès, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Abercromby, General, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Abrantes, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">d’Abrantès, Duc, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Acland, General, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Adam, Sir Frederick, <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Addington, Henry, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Agraça, Mount, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Agueda, River, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_158">158</a>, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ahmednuggur, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aire, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alava, General, <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>, <a href="#Page_173">173</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alba de Tormes, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alberche, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Albergaria, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Albert, Edward, Prince of Wales, <a href="#Page_249">249</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Albuera, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>, <a href="#Page_154">154</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Albuquerque, Duke of, <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alcarez, <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alcobaço, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aldea da Ponte, <a href="#Page_159">159</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alemtejo, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_158">158</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alexander, Emperor, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alhandra, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alicante, <a href="#Page_181">181</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alison, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Almarez, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Almeida, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>, <a href="#Page_145">145</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Almonacid, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alps, the, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Amarante, Convent of, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">America, North, <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Amiens, Peace of, <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Amotz, <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Amrut Rao, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Andalusia, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Angers, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">d’Angoulême, Duc, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Anselme, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Anstruther, General, <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Antwerp, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Antwerp, Cathedral of, <a href="#Page_238">238</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Apsley House, <a href="#Page_245">245</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aragon, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Areizaga, General, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Argaum, Battle of, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Armia, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Armour, James, <a href="#Page_230">230</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arnold, Dr, <a href="#Page_245">245</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arzobispo, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ascain, <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Assaye, Battle of, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Asseerghur, Fortress, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Astorga, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Asturias, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Augereau, <a href="#Page_199">199</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Austerlitz, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Austria, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_237">237</a>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Austrians, the, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aviella, River, <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Badajoz, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>, <a href="#Page_142">142</a>, <a href="#Page_145">145</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>, <a href="#Page_165">165</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Baird, General, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Baji Rao, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Balasore, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ballasteros, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bappoo, Manoo, <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Barcelona, Fortress of, <a href="#Page_79">79</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Baring, Major, <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Barnard, Colonel, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Barrington, Sir Jonah, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bassein, Subsidiary Treaty of, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Batavia, Island of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Batavia, Expedition to, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bathurst, Earl, <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Battersea Fields, <a href="#Page_243">243</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bautzen, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Baylen, <a href="#Page_79">79</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bayonne, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Baztan, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Beckwith, <a href="#Page_144">144</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Beere, Harry, <a href="#Page_233">233</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Belgium, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_205">205</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Belle Alliance, La, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">_Bellerophon_, H.M.S., <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Belvedere, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bentinck, Lord William, <a href="#Page_192">192</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Beresford, Marshal Sir W. C., <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bessières, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bhonsla Rájá of Berar, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bidarray, <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bidassoa, River, <a href="#Page_192">192</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Blake, General, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Blakeney, Robert, <a href="#Page_83">83</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Blücher, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a>, <a href="#Page_235">235</a>, <a href="#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Boialva, Pass of, <a href="#Page_137">137</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Boigne, Comtesse de, <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bombay, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bonaparte, Jerome, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>, <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bonaparte, Joseph, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bonaparte, Letizia, <a href="#Page_18">18</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bonnet, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>, <a href="#Page_179">179</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bordeaux, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bowes, Major-General, <a href="#Page_165">165</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Boxtel, Village, <a href="#Page_30">30</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Boyer, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_176">176</a>, <a href="#Page_179">179</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bradford, <a href="#Page_173">173</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Braganza, House of, <a href="#Page_78">78</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Braine-le-Comte, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_213">213</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brazil, <a href="#Page_78">78</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bremen, <a href="#Page_31">31</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brienne, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brissac, Duc de, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brougham, <a href="#Page_250">250</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brown, Sir George, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bruges, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brune, Marshal, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brussels, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_205">205</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bucellas, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bülow, General, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a>, <a href="#Page_227">227</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Burghersh, Lady, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Burgos, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Burrampur, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Burrard, Sir Harry, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_93">93</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Busaco, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bylandt, <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Caçadores, the, <a href="#Page_105">105</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cadiz, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_184">184</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cadogan, Colonel, <a href="#Page_188">188</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Caffarelli, <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Caillou, Farm, <a href="#Page_217">217</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Calcutta, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cambray, <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Camden, Lord, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cameron, Alister, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Campbell, Captain, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Canada, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Canning, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_74">74</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_242">242</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cantabrian Hills, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Carnatic, the, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Casserbarry Ghaut, <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Castaños, General, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Castilian Mountains, <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Castile, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Castlereagh, Lord, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="#Page_96">96</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Catalonia, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cathcart, Lord, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cawnpore, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cazal Nova, <a href="#Page_142">142</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ceylon, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Châlons, <a href="#Page_24">24</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chantrey, <a href="#Page_245">245</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charlemagne, <a href="#Page_127">127</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charleroi, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charles IV, <a href="#Page_79">79</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chasseurs Britanniques, the, <a href="#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Château de Montmorency, <a href="#Page_238">238</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chateaubriand, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chaves, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chelsea, <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chelsea Hospital, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chesterford, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Choiseul, Duc de, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">“Christian’s Storm,” <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cinco Villas, <a href="#Page_143">143</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cintra, Convention of, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ciudad Real, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ciudad Rodrigo, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>, <a href="#Page_145">145</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_158">158</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clausel, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clerfait, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clinton, <a href="#Page_179">179</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clive, Lord, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Coa, River, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_144">144</a>, <a href="#Page_145">145</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Coalition, Fifth, <a href="#Page_209">209</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Coburg, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Coimbra, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133</a>, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Colborne, Colonel, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cole, Major-General, <a href="#Page_178">178</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Collingwood, Vice-Admiral, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Colville, Hon. C., <a href="#Page_166">166</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Comorin, Cape, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Conahgull, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Conception, Fort, <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Condé, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Consuegra, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cope, Sir John, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Copenhagen, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_74">74</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cork, <a href="#Page_84">84</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cornwallis, Marquis, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Corsica, Island, <a href="#Page_18">18</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cortes, the, <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Coruña, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Costello, Edward, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cotton, Sir Stapleton, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cox, Colonel, <a href="#Page_129">129</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cradock, Sir John, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Crane, Tom, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Craufurd, General, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Croker, John Wilson, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_172">172</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Crystal Palace, <a href="#Page_249">249</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cuesta, General, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cuttack, Province, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Danes, the, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_74">74</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dangan Castle, <a href="#Page_18">18</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dalrymple, Sir Hew, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">D’Archambault, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Daulat Rao, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Decaen, Count, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Deccan, the, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Delaborde, General, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Deleytosa, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Denman, Lord, <a href="#Page_251">251</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Denmark, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">D’Erlon, <a href="#Page_210">210</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>, <a href="#Page_227">227</a>, <a href="#Page_228">228</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Despeña Perros, Pass of, <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Don Carlos d’España, <a href="#Page_152">152</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dorsenne, <a href="#Page_158">158</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dos Casas, River, <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Douro, River, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Douro of Wellesley, Baron, <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dresden, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dublin, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dumouriez, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dundas, Sir David, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dungannon, Viscount, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dunkirk, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dupont, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Duran, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">East India Company, <a href="#Page_36">36</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ebro, River, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Edinburgh Castle, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Edward VII, <a href="#Page_249">249</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Eguia, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Egypt, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Elba, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ellichpúr, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Elvas, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">d’Enghien, Duc, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">England, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_74">74</a>, <a href="#Page_96">96</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a>, <a href="#Page_242">242</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Essling, Prince of, <a href="#Page_127">127</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Estremadura, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Eton, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Europe, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_194">194</a>, <a href="#Page_237">237</a>, <a href="#Page_238">238</a>, <a href="#Page_239">239</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ewart, Serjeant, <a href="#Page_228">228</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Falmouth, Lord, <a href="#Page_243">243</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ferdinand VII, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_203">203</a>, <a href="#Page_242">242</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ferguson, <a href="#Page_91">91</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ferrol, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Figueras, Fortress of, <a href="#Page_79">79</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Finisterre, Cape, <a href="#Page_86">86</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Flanders, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Fleurus, Plains of, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Fontainebleau, Treaty of, <a href="#Page_78">78</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Forbes, Dr, <a href="#Page_168">168</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Foy, General, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_177">177</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Foz d’Aronce, <a href="#Page_142">142</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">France, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_194">194</a>, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_239">239</a>, <a href="#Page_240">240</a>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Francis II., Emperor, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Frasnes, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_215">215</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Frazer, Mackenzie, <a href="#Page_87">87</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Freer, <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Freire, Bernardino, <a href="#Page_86">86</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Freneda, <a href="#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Frénilly, Baron de, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Freyre, General, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Frischermont, <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Fuente Guinaldo, <a href="#Page_158">158</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Fuentes de Oñoro, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Gagern, Captain Baron von, <a href="#Page_213">213</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gaikwár of Baroda, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Galicia, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_158">158</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gallegos, <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Galluzzo, General, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gambier, Admiral, <a href="#Page_72">72</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Garonne, the, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gave de Pau, the, <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gawilghur, Fort, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gémioncourt, Farm of, <a href="#Page_215">215</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">George III, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_244">244</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">George IV, <a href="#Page_241">241</a>, <a href="#Page_242">242</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Georgiana, Lady De Ros, <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gérard, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Germany, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ghent, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gleig, George Robert, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Goderich, Lord, <a href="#Page_242">242</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Godoy, Duke of Alcudia, <a href="#Page_78">78</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Good Hope, Cape of, <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gordon, Colonel, <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Graham, Sir Thomas, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_191">191</a>, <a href="#Page_192">192</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Great Britain, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_238">238</a>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a>, <a href="#Page_242">242</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Greece, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Grey, Earl, <a href="#Page_244">244</a>, <a href="#Page_245">245</a>, <a href="#Page_246">246</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Grouchy, General, <a href="#Page_210">210</a>, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a>, <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Guadalaxara, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Guadiana, the, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>, <a href="#Page_165">165</a>, <a href="#Page_169">169</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Guareña, <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Hal, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Halkett, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hampshire, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Handel, <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hanover, <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hanoverians, the, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hardinge, Colonel Sir Henry, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>, <a href="#Page_243">243</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Harris, General, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hastings, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Herrasti, Governor, <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hessians, the, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hill, Lord, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_158">158</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_192">192</a>, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_199">199</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_249">249</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hockrill, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Holkar of Indore, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Holland, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_205">205</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Holy Roman Empire, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hood, <a href="#Page_27">27</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hope, Sir John, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hope, the Hon. J., <a href="#Page_87">87</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hostalrich, <a href="#Page_127">127</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Houchard, General, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hougoumont, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_226">226</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Houssaye, <a href="#Page_220">220</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Houstoun, Major-General, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Huebra, River, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hughes, <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hungary, <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Huskisson, Mr, <a href="#Page_244">244</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hyde Park, <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hyder Ali, <a href="#Page_36">36</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hyderabad, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Iberian Peninsula, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Imperialists, the, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">India, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Indore, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Inglis, Colonel, <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Inniskillings, the, <a href="#Page_228">228</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ireland, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Irish Reform Bill, <a href="#Page_246">246</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Isle of Wight, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Jackson, Mr F. J., <a href="#Page_72">72</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jaraicejo, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jaucourt, Marquis de, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jemappes, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jena, Bridge of, <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jerome, <a href="#Page_221">221</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jesuits, the, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jeswant Rao, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">John, King, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Joseph, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jourdan, Marshal, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Junot, General, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_96">96</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jura Mountains, the, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Keble, John, <a href="#Page_245">245</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Kellermann, Marshal, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Kempt, Sir James, <a href="#Page_228">228</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Kennedy, Captain Clark, <a href="#Page_228">228</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Kennedy, Sir Robert, <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Kincaid, <a href="#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Kiöge, Battle of, <a href="#Page_74">74</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Kléber, <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Kray, General, <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Labada, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">La Carolina, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">La Haye, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">La Haye Sainte, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_227">227</a>, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lake, General, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">La Mancha, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lamego, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Landrecy, <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Langlands, Lieutenant, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lannes, Marshal, <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lanz, the, <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lapisse, <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">La Romana, Marquis, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">La Trinidad, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">La Vendée, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_209">209</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Le Courbe, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lefebvre, Marshal, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lefebvre-Desnoëttes, General, <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leiria, <a href="#Page_88">88</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leith, General, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a>, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_177">177</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Le Marchant, General, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_176">176</a>, <a href="#Page_177">177</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lennox, Lord William, <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leon, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lerida, <a href="#Page_127">127</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lesaca, <a href="#Page_192">192</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ligny, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lion Mound, <a href="#Page_220">220</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lisbon, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Liverpool, Earl of, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_142">142</a>, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lobau, General, <a href="#Page_210">210</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Loison, General, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_143">143</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">London, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Longford, Baron, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Los Aripeles, <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>, <a href="#Page_179">179</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Los Santos, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Louis XV, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Louis XVIII, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_199">199</a>, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, <a href="#Page_237">237</a>, <a href="#Page_240">240</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lourinhão, <a href="#Page_91">91</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lützen, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lyons, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Mack, General, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mackay, Piper, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mackie, <a href="#Page_176">176</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mackinnon, Major-General, <a href="#Page_163">163</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Madras, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Madrid, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Maes, the, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Maestricht, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mafra, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Maitland, Captain Frederick Lewis, <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Maitland, General Sir Peregrine, <a href="#Page_215">215</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Malavelly, <a href="#Page_39">39</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Malcolm, Sir John, <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Malines, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Malpurda, River, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Manilla, <a href="#Page_35">35</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">March, Lord, <a href="#Page_169">169</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marchand, Jean Gabriel, Comte, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marhattás, the, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marion Street, <a href="#Page_18">18</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marmont, Marshal, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>, <a href="#Page_158">158</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_162">162</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Masséna, Marshal, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_135">135</a>, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>, <a href="#Page_145">145</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Maubeuge, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mauritius, <a href="#Page_47">47</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Maxwell, Colonel, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Maxwell, Sir Herbert, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mayence, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Meath, County, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Medellin, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Medina de Rio Seco, <a href="#Page_85">85</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Meer Allum, <a href="#Page_42">42</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Melbourne, Lord, <a href="#Page_246">246</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mequinenza, Castle of, <a href="#Page_127">127</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Merbe Braine, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Merida, <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Metternich, Prince, <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Metz, <a href="#Page_27">27</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">McGregor, Dr James, <a href="#Page_168">168</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Middlesex, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Milhaud, <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mina, General, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">M‘Laine, Major, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">McLeod, Colonel, <a href="#Page_167">167</a>, <a href="#Page_168">168</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Moira, Lord, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Monasterio, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Moncey, Marshal, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mondego, River, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_137">137</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mons, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mont St Jean, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Montbrun, <a href="#Page_151">151</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Montealegre, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Montechique, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Montesquiou, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Moore, Sir John, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Moreau, General, <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mornington, Baron, <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mornington, Countess of, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mornington, Earl of, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mornington House, <a href="#Page_18">18</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mortago, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mortier, Marshal, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">M‘Quade, Serjeant Robert, <a href="#Page_129">129</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Munro, Sir Thomas, <a href="#Page_45">45</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Murat, Marshal, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>, <a href="#Page_209">209</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Murcia, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Murray, Lieutenant-Colonel George, <a href="#Page_74">74</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Murray, General Sir John, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_192">192</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mysore, Presidency of, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Namur, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Napier, Major Sir George, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Naples, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_209">209</a>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Napoleon, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133</a>, <a href="#Page_158">158</a>, <a href="#Page_199">199</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a>, <a href="#Page_224">224</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_227">227</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>, <a href="#Page_235">235</a>, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Napoleon, Fort, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nassauers, the, <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nava d’Aver, <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Naval Moral, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Navarre, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Neerwinden, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nelson, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nesselrode, <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ney, Marshal, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_135">135</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nice, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nicholas, Emperor, <a href="#Page_242">242</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nive, River, <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nivelles, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nizám of Hyderabad, the, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nuestra Señora de la Peña, <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_172">172</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Obidos, <a href="#Page_88">88</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ocaña, Battle of, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">O’Donnell, <a href="#Page_127">127</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ohain, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">O’Hare, Captain, <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Old Castile, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Oman, Professor, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Oporto, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_142">142</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Orange, Prince of, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>, <a href="#Page_215">215</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Orcain, <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ordal, <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Orense, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Oropesa, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Orthez, <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ostend, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">O’Toole, Colonel, <a href="#Page_162">162</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Oude, <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Oxford University, <a href="#Page_245">245</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Pack, General, <a href="#Page_162">162</a>, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>, <a href="#Page_179">179</a>, <a href="#Page_228">228</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Paget, Sir E., <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pakenham, Major-General, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_176">176</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pakenham, Hon. Catherine, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Palafox, General, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pampeluna, Fortress of, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_191">191</a>, <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Papelotte, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Paris, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_235">235</a>, <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Parkside, <a href="#Page_244">244</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Parque, Duque del, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pasquier, Duc de, <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pau, <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peel, Sir Robert, <a href="#Page_246">246</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Penafiel, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Penang, <a href="#Page_35">35</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Perar, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Perceval, Spencer, <a href="#Page_126">126</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pero Negro, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Perron, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Perwez, <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peshwá of Poona, the, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philippine Islands, <a href="#Page_35">35</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philippon, General, <a href="#Page_165">165</a>, <a href="#Page_169">169</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pichegru, General, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Picton, General, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_162">162</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a>, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>, <a href="#Page_215">215</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Picurina, Fort, <a href="#Page_165">165</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Piedmont, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pignerol, Marquis of, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pirch, <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pitt, William, the Younger, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_244">244</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Planchenoit, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Plasencia, Vera de, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Poço Velho, <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Poland, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pole, Miss, <a href="#Page_202">202</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pombal, <a href="#Page_142">142</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ponsonby, Major-General Sir William, <a href="#Page_228">228</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a>, <a href="#Page_230">230</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pont-à-chin, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Poona, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Popham, Sir Home, <a href="#Page_74">74</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Porlier, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Portland, Duke of, <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Portugal, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_84">84</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_146">146</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Praslin, Duc de, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Prince Consort, <a href="#Page_249">249</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Prussia, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_237">237</a>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Prussians, the, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_227">227</a>, <a href="#Page_238">238</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Puerto de Baños, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Puerto del Rey, Pass of, <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pyrenees, the, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_193">193</a>, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Quatre Bras, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>, <a href="#Page_215">215</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>, <a href="#Page_217">217</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Quesnoy, <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Quinta de Granicha, <a href="#Page_155">155</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Quinta de St João, <a href="#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Quintella, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Ragusa, Fort, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rainier, Admiral, <a href="#Page_45">45</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ramsay, Captain Norman, <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rao, Amrut, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rapoula de Coa, <a href="#Page_143">143</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rapp, Count, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Reding, General, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Redinha, <a href="#Page_142">142</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Red Sea, <a href="#Page_50">50</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Reille, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_210">210</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Reynier, General, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_144">144</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rhine, the, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_210">210</a>, <a href="#Page_240">240</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Richmond, Duchess of, <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Richmond, Duke of, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ridge, Lieutenant-Colonel, <a href="#Page_168">168</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rio Mayor, River, <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rivillas, River, <a href="#Page_165">165</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roberts, Earl, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Robinson, <a href="#Page_242">242</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rocca, Captain M. de, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roliça, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roman Catholic Relief Bill, <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_244">244</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rome, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_246">246</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rose, Dr J. Holland, <a href="#Page_74">74</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a>, <a href="#Page_239">239</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roskilde, <a href="#Page_73">73</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ross, Major-General Robert, <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ross-Lewin, Major, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rubens, <a href="#Page_238">238</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ruffin, Count, <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Runa, Ravine of, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Russia, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rye, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Sabugal, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sagunto, Battle of, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sahagun, <a href="#Page_101">101</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Salamanca, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_145">145</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Salamonde, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">San Antonio de Cantaro, <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sanchez, Don Julian, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">San Christoval, Fort of, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">San Francisco, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">San Juan, General, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">San Marcial, <a href="#Page_192">192</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">San Sebastian, Fortress of, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Santa Cruz, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Santa Maria, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Santander, <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Santarem, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>, <a href="#Page_141">141</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">San Vincente, <a href="#Page_166">166</a>, <a href="#Page_169">169</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sardinia, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Savanore, <a href="#Page_43">43</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Savary, General, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Savoy, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sax-Weimar, Prince Bernard of, <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Scheldt, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Schwartzenberg, Prince, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Scindia, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sebastiani, General, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sedasser, <a href="#Page_39">39</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Segovia, <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Seringapatam, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="#Page_50">50</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Serra, the, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_135">135</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sersooly, <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Seton, <a href="#Page_176">176</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Seven Years’ War, the, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Seville, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Shaw, Colonel, <a href="#Page_40">40</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sherbrooke, General, <a href="#Page_40">40</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sherer, Captain, <a href="#Page_62">62</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Shore, Sir John, <a href="#Page_35">35</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sierra Catalina, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sierra de Busaco, <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sierra Morena, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Simon, General, <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sindhia of Gwalior, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_59">59</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">S. Lourenço, River, <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Smith, Robert, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Smith, Sir Harry, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a>, <a href="#Page_167">167</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Smith, Sydney, <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Soignes, Forest of, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Somerset, Lord Edward, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sorauren, <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Souars, <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Souham, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Soult, Marshal, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_191">191</a>, <a href="#Page_192">192</a>, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_199">199</a>, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>, <a href="#Page_210">210</a>, <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Southampton, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Spain, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Spencer, General Sir Brent, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Spry, <a href="#Page_179">179</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St Amand, <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stanhope, <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St Cyr, General, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stevenson, Colonel, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stewart, General Sir Charles, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stewart, Major-General the Hon. W., <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St Jean de Luz, <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St Jean Pied de Port, <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St Julian, Fort of, <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St Ledger, General, <a href="#Page_35">35</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">St Peter’s, Dublin, <a href="#Page_18">18</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Strangford, Lord, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Strathfieldsaye, <a href="#Page_241">241</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stuart, General, <a href="#Page_39">39</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Styles, Corporal, <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Suchet, Marshal, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_199">199</a>, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Surat, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sweden, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Taggart, Lieutenant, <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tagus, the, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Talavera, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Talleyrand, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tamames, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tarragona, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_192">192</a>, <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thielmann, General, <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thomière, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>, <a href="#Page_173">173</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tilsit, Peace of, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tipú Sultan, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Toledo, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tordesillas, <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Toro, <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Torrecilla de la Orden, <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Torres Vedras, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Toulon, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Toulouse, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_199">199</a>, <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tournay, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Trafalgar, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Trant, Colonel, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>, <a href="#Page_143">143</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tras os Montes, Province of, <a href="#Page_86">86</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Trim, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Trincomalee, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Troisville, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tudela, <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Turkey, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Turones, River, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Ulm, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Uxbridge, Earl of, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Valencia, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Valenciennes, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Valladolid, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vallée, <a href="#Page_105">105</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Valmy, <a href="#Page_24">24</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vandal, Count, <a href="#Page_74">74</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vandamme, General, <a href="#Page_210">210</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vandeleur, <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vedras, <a href="#Page_91">91</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Velasquez, <a href="#Page_189">189</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Veldbeck, <a href="#Page_73">73</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vellore, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vendas Novas, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Venegas, General, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Verona, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Victor, General, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Victoria, Queen, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vienna, Congress of, <a href="#Page_206">206</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Villa Franca, <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Villatte, <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Villiers, Rt. Hon. John, <a href="#Page_126">126</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vimiero, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_98">98</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vincennes, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Viseu, <a href="#Page_126">126</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vittoria, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vives, General, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vouga, River, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Walcheren, Expedition, <a href="#Page_126">126</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Walker, General, <a href="#Page_169">169</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wallace, Lieutenant-Colonel, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_176">176</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Walmer Castle, <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a>, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <a href="#Page_251">251</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Warre, Sir William, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Waterloo, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Waterloo, Prince of, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Waters, Colonel, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wattignies, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Waugh, Dhoondia, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_44">44</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wavre, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Webster, Lieutenant, <a href="#Page_213">213</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wellesley, Henry, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wellesley, Lord, <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wellesley, Richard, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wellington of Talavera, Viscount, <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wesley, Garret, <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">West India Islands, <a href="#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Westleys, <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">West Meath, <a href="#Page_18">18</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Westmorland, Lord, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wilkes, John, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">William IV, <a href="#Page_244">244</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wilson, Sir Robert, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_143">143</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Winchilsea, Earl of, <a href="#Page_243">243</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Windham, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Yeltes, the, <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">York, Duke of, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>, <a href="#Page_242">242</a></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Zamora, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Zaragoza, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Zibreira, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ziethen, General, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>, <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Zizandre, River, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-</ul>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="footnotes">
-<h2 class="p1 nobreak"><a id="FOOTNOTES"></a>FOOTNOTES</h2>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_1" href="#FNanchor_1" class="fnanchor">1</a> Sir Herbert Maxwell in his “Life of Wellington” (p. 2) suggests
-that the confusion arose owing to the then comparatively recent alteration
-of the calendar. Supposing Arthur Wellesley was born on the
-1st May (new style), that date would be the 18th April (old style), and
-the 30th April (old style) the 12th May according to the present way
-of reckoning.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_2" href="#FNanchor_2" class="fnanchor">2</a> It must be remembered that Barrington wrote from the point of
-view of a “patriot,” and that Castlereagh had much to do with the
-Union of Great Britain and Ireland. Castlereagh entered the Irish
-Parliament in 1790, served in the Pitt, Addington, Perceval, and
-Portland ministries, was present at the Congress of Vienna, and died
-by his own hand in 1822.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_3" href="#FNanchor_3" class="fnanchor">3</a> Dumouriez was in London from the 12th June until the 22nd, 1793.
-He lived in England from October 1803 until his death on the 14th
-March 1823.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_4" href="#FNanchor_4" class="fnanchor">4</a> Similar incidents occurred during the Peninsular War.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_5" href="#FNanchor_5" class="fnanchor">5</a> At Arnheim, on the Rhine, less than twenty-five miles distant.
-According to the de Ros MS., consulted by Sir Herbert Maxwell,
-Dundas paid a visit to Wellesley “about once a fortnight.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_6" href="#FNanchor_6" class="fnanchor">6</a> Lord-Lieutenant of Ireland, 1794&ndash;8.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_7" href="#FNanchor_7" class="fnanchor">7</a> Letter to Sir Chichester Fortescue, dated 20th June 1796, cited by
-Sir Herbert Maxwell, vol. i. p. 19 n.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_8" href="#FNanchor_8" class="fnanchor">8</a> Sir Herbert Maxwell, p. 35.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_9" href="#FNanchor_9" class="fnanchor">9</a> Gleig (p. 26) says £7000, Roberts (p. 11) £7000 in money and
-£1200 in jewels. Sir Herbert Maxwell (p. 39) calls attention to a
-letter, dated the 14th June 1799, in which Wellesley “gives it as 3000
-pagodas in jewels, and 7000 in money; in all, 10,000 pagodas, equal to
-about £4000.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_10" href="#FNanchor_10" class="fnanchor">10</a> In later years Wellington offered to provide for the unfortunate
-Spanish general, Alava, and gave him a small house in the park of
-Strathfieldsaye.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_11" href="#FNanchor_11" class="fnanchor">11</a> Created 20th December 1800.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_12" href="#FNanchor_12" class="fnanchor">12</a> The Austrian general, Kray, had succeeded Archduke Charles as
-Commander-in-Chief of the army in Germany in the campaign of 1800,
-but owing to his ill-success he was superseded in a few months by Archduke
-John, hence Wellesley’s reference.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_13" href="#FNanchor_13" class="fnanchor">13</a> “The Life of Wellington,” pp. 45&ndash;6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_14" href="#FNanchor_14" class="fnanchor">14</a> “Dispatches,” vol. ii. p. 312.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_15" href="#FNanchor_15" class="fnanchor">15</a> “The Life of Arthur Duke of Wellington,” by G.&nbsp;R. Gleig, M.A.,
-F.R.G.S. (London Ed. 1864), pp. 33&ndash;4.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_16" href="#FNanchor_16" class="fnanchor">16</a> 79 officers and 1778 soldiers were killed and wounded.&mdash;Sir Herbert
-Maxwell, p. 58.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_17" href="#FNanchor_17" class="fnanchor">17</a> Gleig, pp. 37&ndash;8.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_18" href="#FNanchor_18" class="fnanchor">18</a> Envoy.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_19" href="#FNanchor_19" class="fnanchor">19</a> Alison in his “Lives of Lord Castlereagh and Sir Charles Stewart”
-(vol. i. p. 175), says that it generally took six months to make the
-voyage. When Sir James Mackintosh sailed from Portsmouth for
-Bombay in 1804 his vessel only occupied three months and thirteen
-days (see his “Memoirs,” vol. i. p. 207).</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_20" href="#FNanchor_20" class="fnanchor">20</a> “His relationship to the Governor-General naturally lent much
-weight to his views with Lord Clive and General Harris, but,” Sir
-Herbert Maxwell adds (p. 24), “it is remarkable how freely and
-frequently the elder brother sought the younger’s advice.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_21" href="#FNanchor_21" class="fnanchor">21</a> “The Life and Correspondence of the Right Honble. Henry
-Addington, first Viscount Sidmouth,” by the Honble. George Pellew,
-D.D. (London, 1847), vol. ii. p. 242. In this connection see also
-“Wellington’s Dispatches,” vol. ii. pp. 335&ndash;36 n., and “Despatches,
-Minutes, and Correspondence of the Marquess Wellesley, K.G.,” vol.
-iii. p. 543.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_22" href="#FNanchor_22" class="fnanchor">22</a> “The Rise of Wellington,” by Earl Roberts, V.C., p. 26.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_23" href="#FNanchor_23" class="fnanchor">23</a> “Personal interest was as much recognized in those days as the chief
-motor in military promotion, as seniority and merit are now.”&mdash;Sir
-Herbert Maxwell, vol. i. p. 67.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_24" href="#FNanchor_24" class="fnanchor">24</a> Shortly after his return from India Wellesley had his only interview
-with Nelson, an account of which is given in the author’s companion
-work, “The Story of Nelson,” pp. 113&ndash;4.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_25" href="#FNanchor_25" class="fnanchor">25</a> See <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">ante</i>, p. 23.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_26" href="#FNanchor_26" class="fnanchor">26</a> “Personal Reminiscences of the first Duke of Wellington”
-(Edinburgh 1904), p. 274.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_27" href="#FNanchor_27" class="fnanchor">27</a> Lord-Lieutenant of Ireland.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_28" href="#FNanchor_28" class="fnanchor">28</a> At Copenhagen.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_29" href="#FNanchor_29" class="fnanchor">29</a> Flat-bottomed boats, usually armed with small guns.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_30" href="#FNanchor_30" class="fnanchor">30</a> Sir Herbert Maxwell, vol. i. p. 87.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_31" href="#FNanchor_31" class="fnanchor">31</a> Wilson is wrong in some of his facts. The Danish troops numbered
-some 14,000, and 1100 prisoners were taken. See Sir Herbert Maxwell,
-vol. i. p. 87.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_32" href="#FNanchor_32" class="fnanchor">32</a> “The Croker Papers,” vol. ii. pp. 120&ndash;21.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_33" href="#FNanchor_33" class="fnanchor">33</a> H.&nbsp;W. Wilson, B.A., in “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix.
-p. 236.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_34" href="#FNanchor_34" class="fnanchor">34</a> “The Life of Napoleon I,” vol. ii. p. 143.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_35" href="#FNanchor_35" class="fnanchor">35</a> See Oman’s “Peninsular War,” vol i. pp. 1&ndash;11.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_36" href="#FNanchor_36" class="fnanchor">36</a> Oman, vol. i. pp. 631&ndash;639. Returns of October-November 1808.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_37" href="#FNanchor_37" class="fnanchor">37</a> Succeeded by Soult in November 1808.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_38" href="#FNanchor_38" class="fnanchor">38</a> Oman, vol. i. pp. 640&ndash;45.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_39" href="#FNanchor_39" class="fnanchor">39</a> “The Autobiography of Sir Harry Smith,” 1787&ndash;1819. Edited by
-G.&nbsp;C. Moore Smith, M.A. (London Ed. 1910).</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_40" href="#FNanchor_40" class="fnanchor">40</a> “A Boy in the Peninsular War,” edited by Julian Sturgis (London,
-1899), p. 313.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_41" href="#FNanchor_41" class="fnanchor">41</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">Ibid.</i> p. 311.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_42" href="#FNanchor_42" class="fnanchor">42</a> Vol. i. p. 235 n.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_43" href="#FNanchor_43" class="fnanchor">43</a> The total loss of the regiment was 190, by far the heaviest of those
-engaged.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_44" href="#FNanchor_44" class="fnanchor">44</a> The case of Peter Findlater at Dargai is almost an exact parallel.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_45" href="#FNanchor_45" class="fnanchor">45</a> See also some remarks in “The Croker Papers,” vol. ii. pp.
-121&ndash;22.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_46" href="#FNanchor_46" class="fnanchor">46</a> As to the merits and demerits of national resistance, see some wise
-remarks in Arnold’s “Introductory Lectures on Modern History,”
-pp. 158&ndash;64.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_47" href="#FNanchor_47" class="fnanchor">47</a> See also some pregnant remarks in Wellesley’s dispatch dated
-Badajoz, 21st November 1809. It will be remembered that at the time
-of the Russian-Japanese war, newspaper men were wisely precluded
-from publishing particulars of proposed movements and similar intelligence
-likely to be of service to the enemy. During the recent
-conflict between Italy and Turkey the most rigid censorship was
-exercised by the former Power.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_48" href="#FNanchor_48" class="fnanchor">48</a> “I rather think that Mortier had removed from Zaragoza; but
-some time elapsed before he arrived in Old Castile.”&mdash;Note by Wellesley.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_49" href="#FNanchor_49" class="fnanchor">49</a> “The Adventures of a Soldier,” by Edward Costello.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_50" href="#FNanchor_50" class="fnanchor">50</a> Oman, vol. ii. p. 334. This disposes of the often-repeated story
-that Waters discovered the little craft in the reeds. Brailmont, for
-instance, says that the Colonel “suddenly darted off from the throng,”
-and half an hour later the skiff “shot out into the deep” with six men
-on board.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_51" href="#FNanchor_51" class="fnanchor">51</a> At the approach of the enemy no fewer than 6000 Spaniards took
-to their heels and played no part in the battle.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_52" href="#FNanchor_52" class="fnanchor">52</a> Napoleon made a similar error of judgment at Waterloo by keeping
-the Imperial Guard in reserve until after 7 p.m. (See <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">post</i>, p. 222).</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_53" href="#FNanchor_53" class="fnanchor">53</a> Sir Herbert Maxwell, vol. i. p. 165, says 6268; Professor Oman
-(“Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 452) gives 5300, the
-Spanish casualties “trifling.” The latter authority states that 7200
-Frenchmen were killed or wounded.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_54" href="#FNanchor_54" class="fnanchor">54</a> “Passages in the Early Military Life of General Sir George
-T. Napier, K.C.B.” (London, 1884), pp. 111&ndash;12.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_55" href="#FNanchor_55" class="fnanchor">55</a> See <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">post</i>, p. 130.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_56" href="#FNanchor_56" class="fnanchor">56</a> “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 455. This authority
-gives the date of the battle of Tamames as the 18th October, but
-Wellington states that it occurred on the 19th.&mdash;See “Dispatches,”
-vol. v. pp. 261 and 350.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_57" href="#FNanchor_57" class="fnanchor">57</a> Its object was to destroy the ships and dockyards at Antwerp.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_58" href="#FNanchor_58" class="fnanchor">58</a> General Sir George T. Napier, pp. 120&ndash;21.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_59" href="#FNanchor_59" class="fnanchor">59</a> Really his two reserve divisions, consisting of some 8000 men.
-See Oman, vol. iii. p. 432, and <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">post</i>, p. 139.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_60" href="#FNanchor_60" class="fnanchor">60</a> September 1810.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_61" href="#FNanchor_61" class="fnanchor">61</a> On the 27th September 1910, the centenary of the battle, an
-anniversary banquet was given at Busaco, which was attended by
-Wellington’s grandson. King Manoel&mdash;now dethroned&mdash;signed a
-decree reaffirming the duke’s Portuguese titles of Duke of Vittoria,
-Marquis of Torres Vedras, and Count of Vimiero. Celebrations were
-also held on the site of the battle.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_62" href="#FNanchor_62" class="fnanchor">62</a> The writer is speaking literally.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_63" href="#FNanchor_63" class="fnanchor">63</a> The usual French mode of attack.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_64" href="#FNanchor_64" class="fnanchor">64</a> Not Marshal Soult, but his nephew.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_65" href="#FNanchor_65" class="fnanchor">65</a> The Proclamation is printed in full in Gurwood’s edition of
-“Wellington’s Dispatches,” vol. vii. pp. 455&ndash;7.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_66" href="#FNanchor_66" class="fnanchor">66</a> Lady Butler’s picture, “Steady, the Drums and Fifes,” represents
-this regiment drawn up on the ridge.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_67" href="#FNanchor_67" class="fnanchor">67</a> He had recently received reinforcements from England.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_68" href="#FNanchor_68" class="fnanchor">68</a> Napoleon dominated practically the whole of Northern Europe.
-He was then planning a confederacy which was to consist of Sweden,
-Denmark, and the Grand Duchy of Warsaw.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_69" href="#FNanchor_69" class="fnanchor">69</a> Wellington’s instructions to Hill will be found in “Dispatches,”
-vol. viii. pp. 180&ndash;82.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_70" href="#FNanchor_70" class="fnanchor">70</a> “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 469.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_71" href="#FNanchor_71" class="fnanchor">71</a> <i>i.e.</i> The province of Leon, in which Ciudad Rodrigo is situated.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_72" href="#FNanchor_72" class="fnanchor">72</a> “Autobiography,” pp. 64&ndash;5.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_73" href="#FNanchor_73" class="fnanchor">73</a> Sir Herbert Maxwell, vol. i. p. 280.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_74" href="#FNanchor_74" class="fnanchor">74</a> A monument to the memory of Major-General Gaspard Le Marchant
-is in St Paul’s Cathedral.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_75" href="#FNanchor_75" class="fnanchor">75</a> It is given in Gurwood, vol. x. pp. 61&ndash;66.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_76" href="#FNanchor_76" class="fnanchor">76</a> Lützen was fought on the 3rd May 1813, and Bautzen on the 20th
-and 21st May. In both battles the Prussians and Russians, who at
-the opening of the Leipzig campaign bore all the fighting for the
-Allies, were defeated. The only result of the armistice was that
-Austria threw in her lot with Russia, Prussia, and Sweden.&mdash;See the
-author’s “Story of Napoleon,” pp. 296&ndash;299.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_77" href="#FNanchor_77" class="fnanchor">77</a> “Personal Reminiscences of the Duke of Wellington by Francis,
-the first Earl of Ellesmere,” p. 129. (London, 1903.)</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_78" href="#FNanchor_78" class="fnanchor">78</a> General Sir George T. Napier, pp. 255&ndash;260.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_79" href="#FNanchor_79" class="fnanchor">79</a> Lady Burghersh.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_80" href="#FNanchor_80" class="fnanchor">80</a> Parliament also granted to him the sum of £400,000.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_81" href="#FNanchor_81" class="fnanchor">81</a> See the author’s “Story of Nelson,” p. 195.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_82" href="#FNanchor_82" class="fnanchor">82</a> The complete Memorandum will be found in Gurwood, vol. xii.,
-pp. 125&ndash;9.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_83" href="#FNanchor_83" class="fnanchor">83</a> “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 619.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_84" href="#FNanchor_84" class="fnanchor">84</a> “The Campaign of 1815, chiefly in Flanders,” by Lieut.-Colonel
-W.&nbsp;H. James, P.S.C., pp. 14&ndash;15.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_85" href="#FNanchor_85" class="fnanchor">85</a> “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 625. See also “The
-Life of Napoleon I” by J. Holland Rose, Litt.D., vol. ii. p. 455.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_86" href="#FNanchor_86" class="fnanchor">86</a> James, p. 27.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_87" href="#FNanchor_87" class="fnanchor">87</a> James, p. 100.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_88" href="#FNanchor_88" class="fnanchor">88</a> Croker, vol. iii. p. 173.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_89" href="#FNanchor_89" class="fnanchor">89</a> This interesting relic still exists.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_90" href="#FNanchor_90" class="fnanchor">90</a> Rye.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_91" href="#FNanchor_91" class="fnanchor">91</a> Disbanded in 1816.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_92" href="#FNanchor_92" class="fnanchor">92</a> Rose’s “Napoleon,” vol. ii. p. 487&ndash;8.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_93" href="#FNanchor_93" class="fnanchor">93</a> Rose’s “Napoleon,” vol. ii. p. 488.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_94" href="#FNanchor_94" class="fnanchor">94</a> Comte Charles van der Burch is the present owner of Hougoumont.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_95" href="#FNanchor_95" class="fnanchor">95</a> Now the Grenadier Guards.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_96" href="#FNanchor_96" class="fnanchor">96</a> Rose, vol. ii. p. 496.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_97" href="#FNanchor_97" class="fnanchor">97</a> “Some of this brigade, particularly the 5th Military, had behaved
-with great gallantry on the 16th, at Quatre Bras.”&mdash;Cotton’s, “A
-Voice from Waterloo,” p. 56.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_98" href="#FNanchor_98" class="fnanchor">98</a> General Gascoigne in the House of Commons, the 29th June 1815.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_99" href="#FNanchor_99" class="fnanchor">99</a> “Some one asked whether the French Cuirassiers had not come
-up very well at Waterloo? ‘Yes,’ he (Wellington) said, ‘and they
-went down very well too.’”&mdash;Croker, vol. i. p. 330.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_100" href="#FNanchor_100" class="fnanchor">100</a> <i>I.e.</i> the guns were not removed, the artillerymen working them
-till the last moment and then seeking refuge in the nearest square,
-to resume their former position when the enemy began to retire.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_101" href="#FNanchor_101" class="fnanchor">101</a> “Cambridge Modern History,” vol. ix. p. 639.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_102" href="#FNanchor_102" class="fnanchor">102</a> See the author’s “Story of Napoleon,” p. 135.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_103" href="#FNanchor_103" class="fnanchor">103</a> Not at Wimbledon, as Mr Asquith said in a speech at the Guildhall
-in 1911.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_104" href="#FNanchor_104" class="fnanchor">104</a> See <a href="#Foreword">Foreword</a>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_105" href="#FNanchor_105" class="fnanchor">105</a> The point is somewhat obscure owing to conflicting evidence.&mdash;See
-“The Boyhood of a Great King,” by A.&nbsp;M. Broadley, pp. 99&ndash;100.</p></div>
-</div></div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="transnote">
-<h2 class="p1 nobreak"><a id="Transcribers_Notes"></a>Transcriber’s Notes</h2>
-
-<p>Punctuation, hyphenation, and spelling were made consistent when a predominant
-preference was found in this book; otherwise they were not changed. Spelling
-variants in quoted passages were not changed.</p>
-
-<p>Simple typographical errors were corrected; occasional unbalanced
-quotation marks retained.</p>
-
-<p>Ambiguous hyphens at the ends of lines were retained.</p>
-
-<p>Index not checked for proper alphabetization or correct page references.</p>
-
-<p>Page <a href="#Page_172">172</a>: “wrapt attention” was printed that way.</p>
-
-<p>Page <a href="#Page_177">177</a>: “downright” was printed that way, rather than as “down right”.</p>
-
-<p>Page <a href="#Page_200">200</a>: Opening quotation mark added before “I march”.</p>
-
-<p>Page <a href="#Page_234">234</a>: “doing their upmost” was printed that way.</p>
-
-<p><a href="#Footnote_9">Footnote 9</a> (originally on page <a href="#Page_42">42</a>): Missing closing quotation mark
-added at the end of the footnote.</p>
-</div></div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's The Story of Wellington, by Harold F. B. Wheeler
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF WELLINGTON ***
-
-***** This file should be named 50434-h.htm or 50434-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/0/4/3/50434/
-
-Produced by Shaun Pinder, Charlie Howard, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b9d5850..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_004.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_004.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7063d9d..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_004.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_023.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_023.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f3924f8..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_023.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_037.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_037.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 618fc8e..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_037.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_043.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_043.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 952a013..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_043.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_061.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_061.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index cd5e927..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_061.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_085.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_085.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0e8b9ad..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_085.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_091.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_091.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 766bd27..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_091.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_103.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_103.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f676f0b..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_103.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_141.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_141.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index fdb25de..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_141.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_153.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_153.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5b56fda..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_153.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_185.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_185.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f9edd6c..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_185.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_191.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_191.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 536eeb0..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_191.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_199.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_199.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c96e0ed..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_199.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_213.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_213.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 49103e5..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_213.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_223.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_223.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 40b21ec..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_223.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_245.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_245.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7fcc679..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_245.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_249.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_249.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 89ebfbc..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_249.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_255.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_255.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3e89691..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_255.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50434-h/images/i_265.jpg b/old/50434-h/images/i_265.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 621a8d2..0000000
--- a/old/50434-h/images/i_265.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ